MisterFixit Posts
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 14 "Hokkaido Vacation, Part 2"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated K for a mild Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 19 years old.
.
A/N: This is part 2 of the 'Vacation" arc. This is the following day. June 30th.
As of this writing, this story already has over 16,000 views! Thank you everyone for your generous support in making this version of 'Confession' such a huge success! ^_^
The original character "Yukina Morisato" is created by me and can not be used nor borrowed in any way, shape, or form.
.
At roughly six o'clock PM, Moka began getting restless. Even though they had just made love for the past two days pretty much nonstop, the young vampiress still wanted to be closer to her blood-mate, Tsukune. It had rained all day and the night before, hence all their time in bed.
She had of course prepared several home cooked meals so they could keep their strength up.
'Maybe the bond between us is getting even stronger?', she thought to herself as she turned to her right and saw that Tsukune was still resting peacefully in their bed.
'And we have a five days left to ourselves here in Hokkaido. At least Kyoko gave up on asking to come along with us. I know she's his cousin, but she really gets on my nerves from time to time; getting in our way like that. Well, she knows about me and supports our relationship."
Tsukune turned then to his left, holding Moka's naked body closer to him.
"M-mmm...Moka...you feel so good...", he mumbled, barely audible.
She giggled at his adorable expression and returned his embrace firmly.
"So do you, my love" she said with a warm, inviting smile.
"M-mmm...Moka...what time is it?" he inquired as he opened his heavy eyelids.
"It's nearly six PM."
"I see...", he said wiping the sleep from his chestnut eyes.
"So...um...what would you like to do this evening?", he continued as she then got on top of him, straddling his thighs, her huge breasts pressed against his bare, scarred, chest.
"Well, I was thinking maybe we could go into Sapporo this evening for dinner and do some exploring downtown. I haven't been there in ages, but I still know my way around," she suggested.
"Sure thing Moka. That sounds like a great idea. I guess we should get up and get ready to go out."
"Thank you Tsukune. Make sure to wear something nice," she told him while she winked.
"No problem. Um, sure thing Moka," he replied as she got up off him and sat on the bed to his right.
"So I suppose I can't go out like this?", the silver-haired vampiress inquired, displaying her magnificent, nude, body before him, causing the desire to make love to her again, grow by the passing second.
'My Kami...her body is so gorgeous. She is definitely more attractive than Kurumu' he noted.
"No, not unless you want to cause every guy to pass out from a huge nosebleed," he teasingly replied.
"I know, Tsukune. I just wanted to hear what you'd say," she cutely answered, as she rose off the bed and ambled towards the closet, opposite from the bed.
Once the couple got themselves ready and dressed, Tsukune called for a taxi to pick them up and drive them to downtown Sapporo, which would be roughly a thirty minute drive. It was now early Saturday evening, and they had asked the driver to take them to a decent restaurant in the middle of the downtown district.
Moka was sporting a simple, yet beautiful crushed-velvet, red mini-dress that tied in the back behind her neck, along with matching high-heeled, wedge-type shoes; showing off her splendidly, well-toned legs. She was also wearing the Silver Rosary-shaped earrings she had received as her birthday gift from her loving fiancée'. Around her right shoulder hung a small purse of the same brilliant, crimson shade. Her long, platinum hair was pulled into a ponytail, held in place with a color-coordinated claw-type, hair clip.
'Wow, Moka looks so beautiful this evening' he breathlessly thought.
She was also wearing simple make-up to accentuate her natural, otherworldly, beauty, seeing that they were going to spend the night on the town. Dark green eyeshadow, oink blush dusted across her pale cheeks and dark red lip gloss on her plump lips.
Tsukune was dressed in a pair of black pinstriped slacks along with an aqua short-sleeved dress shirt, plus the silver, Casio wrist-watch he had received from Moka on his birthday last week.
Once they arrived downtown, Moka asked the driver to pull up along the sidewalk that ran through the main area of downtown, Chou-ku ward. There are numerous stores, restaurants, and nightclubs in the surrounding area as well as the famous Sapporo Clock Tower and Odori Park, which is home to the Sapporo TV Tower which gives a panoramic view of the entire downtown area.
The Tower was built in 1957, is 147.2 meters high, with an observation deck at a height of 90.38 meters.
After paying the driver, Tsukune helped Moka to step out of the cab, and onto the sidewalk. Closing the door behind her, he gave Moka a hand as she wobbled upon exiting the taxi.
"Thank you, Tsukune. My shoes are new and a little hard to walk in," she told him as they held hands and walked towards the restaurant just a few meters from their current location.
"You're very welcome, Moka. I can see that. Well, they do look nice on you and show off your beautiful legs," he replied with a small grin.
"Oh thank you very much, Tsukune. You think my legs are beautiful?", she asked while her face turned pink hearing his compliment.
"Of course they are. Everything about you is absolutely flawless, Moka."
'Oh, Tsukune...you always know what to say, my love.'
Hearing that compliment caused the vampiress to leap into his arms, and catching him off-balance. Luckily, they didn't stumble to the sidewalk below.
"Thank you Tsukune. I love you so very much," she said as she grabbed and kissed him passionately on the lips just outside the front door of the Chinese restaurant.
"You're welcome, Moka. I meant that. Everything about you is beautiful. And I love you just as much," he told her as he was gasping for life-giving oxygen after their two-minute embrace.
"Oh Tsukune...hearing that makes me very happy."
"Well Moka...it's true. I'm so fortunate to have you in my life."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka...I'm getting kinda hungry now...hahaha..." he replied as his stomach protested loudly in accord once he had detected the delectable aromas through his sensitive nose.
"Oh, yes. Me too. Shall we then?"
"Of course. After you, my princess," he replied as he opened the door to the Chinese restaurant for her.
"Thank you, my love," she adorably replied as she winked at him, resulting in him to blush madly at the simple, yet loving gesture.
'Damn it! Why do I have to get turned on right now? What the hell's going on with me? It's like I want her now!', he screamed in his mind.
As the duo followed the hostess to their booth, all eyes once again were focused on the vampiress. Nearly every man in the establishment was practically drooling over her and most of the women were jealous of her amazing beauty, and jaw-dropping physique.
Sensing her grow uncomfortable from the stares through their ever-growing blood-bond, he placed his arm around her waist and held her closer in a loving, protective manner; in turn which helped alleviate her increasing anxiety.
Arriving at their corner booth in the rear of the restaurant, Moka slid into the red leather seat as Tsukune slid in next to her. She placed her left hand on his right thigh, massaging it as they perused over the menu, deciding on what to order for dinner.
"M-moka...um...w-what are y-you doing?"
"Reading the menu" she stated as she was contemplating on what to order for dinner.
"O-oh..is t-that so?" he sputtered out with a nervous sweat.
"Mm-hmm. Is something wrong, Tsukune?" she inquired with a quirked, silver brow.
"Um...n-no. N-not really...it's just that...um...your hand...is rubbing it" he stated as she then gave his thigh a gentle squeeze, furthering his growing arousal.
"I see. It's alright. We are together so there's no reason for you to be nervous, Tsukune. I'm just showing you my appreciation from earlier, that's all," she told him as-a-matter-of-factually.
'Calm down, man. Nobody can see. She's just happy, that's all' he rationalized as he attempted to calm down his libido to a somewhat more normal level.
He then placed his right hand on her left leg and gently grazed the alabaster flesh of her thigh, which resulted in her breath to hitch.
"Ahhngh...Tsukune" she replied as her plump, red lips quivered from the soft caress, that resulted in her toes to curl upward.
Of course the waitress appeared at the same moment, suddenly breaking their wonderful mood.
…..
After they had placed their dinner order, they wondered what to do for the remainder of the night.
"So Moka, where would you like to go next?"
"Well, I was wondering if we could go dancing tonight, since it's been a while? Remember that you told me that you'd like to take me again."
"That sounds like a great plan, Moka. And yes, you're right; I said that before we left the nightclub in Tokyo."
"Thank you, Tsukune. There's quite a few nightclubs within walking distance from here."
"You're welcome, Moka. I know that we'll have a lot of fun."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Excuse me? Am I interrupting anything?", the waitress inquired as she witnessed the two young adults gaze lovingly into each others eyes.
"Oh! Sorry about that! Thank you very much," apologized Tsukune as his face burned red with embarrassment from being nearly on top of Moka, lost in his own emotions.
As the couple began eating their Shrimp with Lobster sauce and pork-fried rice, they couldn't escape the thoughts of being that close to each other, desperately wanting to take one anthers blood. Yes, the bond between them had indeed grown even stronger. So strong in fact that they each had to hold back even more, especially being out in public on a Saturday evening on a date.
"So, Tsukune. What do you think of Sapporo so far?", she asked, in-between bites.
"Oh, it's really nice, Moka. More mountains than I imagined," he replied as he glanced to his right, watching her nibble adorably on her food.
"Well, that's true," she added.
"There's a lot to do around here, including a really nice park not too far from here to have a picnic at," she hinted.
"Oh, I see. That would be really nice, Moka."
The couple talked and ate, speculating what the future may hold. They both knew that being together forever, would indeed be a very long time.
After finishing their dinner, the couple asked the waitress for the check, which they split the cost between themselves. As they left the restaurant hand-in-hand, Moka led Tsukune down the main avenue, then made a right and walked down another side street for about thirty meters.
A few minutes later, they eventually arrived in front of their next destination: Karaoke Maneki Neko, which was indicated by a bright yellow sign with a chubby white and brown anime-type cat as their mascot.
…..
Walking down the few steps to the karaoke club, Tsukune started to get somewhat excited, knowing that he'd have another opportunity to hear Moka's impressive singing voice.
Once they arrived inside, the pair found a high-top table on the far right-hand side of the club and sat down. Moka picked up the song menu and searched for a musical composition, appropriate enough to declare her love for her wonderful fiancée.
The waitress arrived a moment later and asked the duo what they would like to drink, which of course would be the obvious reply: two tall glasses of chilled tomato juice.
The female server also asked which song Moka would like to sing. After giving her name, Moka told her the song number, which she typed into a small, electronic, tablet-like device. The server informed her that when it was her turn, the emcee would call her up to the small stage in the front of the club.
As the waitress left the table, Moka scooted her chair closer to Tsukune and leaned her head on his left shoulder and let out a happy sigh.
"Um, Moka?"
"Yes, Tsukune?"
"What song did you pick out?"
"Oh. That's a secret, love" she answered with a smile.
"Well, whatever you chose, I just know that you'll sing it beautifully."
"Awww...thank you so much, Tsukune," she lovingly replied as she planted a soft kiss on his cheek, causing him to blush brightly, as the other patrons witnessed their public display of outward affection.
Their good mood was disrupted by the emcee calling Moka up to the stage a few moments later.
"Moka Akashiya? Please make your way to the stage at the front of the club, please. Moka Akashiya. Your turn is next. Thank you."
After hearing her name announced, Moka excused herself from their table, hopping off her chair and made her way to the stage in front. Once the emcee handed her the wireless microphone, she closed her eyes for a moment, gathering her thoughts.
…..
Once the music started, she opened her red eyes once again and spoke.
"I dedicate this song to my very best friend and fiancée, Tsukune Aono. I love you with all of my heart. This song is dedicated to you."
"From this Moment" by Shania Twain.
I do swear...
That I'll always be there
I'd give anything...
And everything
And I will always care...
Through weakness and strength
Happiness and sorrow...
For better, for worse -
I will love you...
With every beat of my heart...
From this moment...life has begun
From this moment...you are the one...
Right beside you...is where I belong -
From this moment...on...
From this moment...I have been blessed -
I live only, for your happiness...
And for your love, I give my last breath -
From this moment on...
I give my hand...to you...with all my heart...
I can't wait to live my life with you, I can't wait to start -
You and I will never be apart...
My dreams...came true...because of you -
From this moment, as long as I live...
I will love you, I promise you this...
There is nothing, I wouldn't give -
From this moment on...
You're the reason I believe in love...
And you're the answer to my prayers from up above -
All we need is just the two of us...
My dreams...came true...because of you -
From this moment, as long as I live...
I will love you, I promise you this -
There is nothing, I wouldn't give...
From this moment, I will love you -
As long as I live from this moment on...
...
As the song ended, the entire karaoke club erupted into a massive round of applause. Tsukune was once again rendered speechless by Moka's awe-inspiring singing voice. She bowed politely and winked at her fiancée' who was giving her an enthusiastic, standing ovation.
Once she made her way back to their table, Tsukune reached his hand out and took her into his arms, and embraced her tightly.
"Moka...that was simply...amazing. I love you so very much" he said as a happy tear trickled sown his cheek. He was completely moved emotionally by her song dedicated solely to him.
"Thank you...Tsukune. I'm very happy that you enjoyed it. I love you too."
…..
"Um...excuse me?", said an unknown female voice, a moment later.
It was an older woman in her mid-twenties, dressed in a navy blue, business pant-suit. She was roughly the same height as Tsukune with shoulder-length, black hair, and was wearing oval-shaped eyeglasses.
Breaking their hug, the couple turned their attention to the woman who was waiting to have a word with them.
"Yes? Can I help you?", Tsukune asked, while he Moka's hand.
"Yes. My name is Yukina Morisato. Here is my business card," she announced whole bowing and presenting her card in typical Japanese fashion. Tsukune released Moka's hand momentarily and took the card from her hand, while bowing in return.
Tsukune read her business card while he showed it to Moka.
...
Yukina Morisato
AVEX House, AVEX Trax, AVEX Trance, AVEX Idol,
AVEX International Records.
Avex Building, 1-30 Minami-Aoyama San-chome,
Minato-ku, Tokyo 107-8577
...
"So, Miss Morisato, what can we do for you?" Tsukune asked while he and Moka took their seats while offering her one in return.
"Ah, yes. The reason I was here tonight was for scouting new talent. I have family in the area and visit this particular venue when I'm in town. As you can see, my company produces music for all music genres. As I entered the club, I heard Ms. Akashiya's singing voice. I haven't heard such an impressive voice such as hers' in several years. I was wondering if she'd like to audition for an upcoming talent search in Tokyo to be held during the second week of July? We would compensate her for travel, food, and lodging expenses, of course. The top prize would be a five-year contract with one of our music labels, depending on what genre of music best suits the winner, " she explained in detail and was now clearly out of breath.
Tsukune was completely shocked. No words could describe the numerous thoughts rolling throughout his head at this moment. He knew Moka had a real talent for singing, but he never thought in a million years that she would be scouted to be a J-pop Idol.
"...une...kune...Tsukune...Tsukune...", he heard as Moka gently pulled on his left elbow, attempting to bring him back to reality.
"Moka. Uh, yes?"
"What do you think? This woman wants me to enter a talent contest."
"Miss Morisato? Could you give us a minute please? It seems as if my fiance' would like to have a private word with me."
"Oh, uh. Sure thing. Take your time, please," she replied smiling brightly.
'His fiance', huh? Not good. I find it hard to believe that she's engaged at such a young age. Hm-mm,' Yukina though to herself as the couple walked to the far side of the club out of ear-shot.
As they made their way down a hallway towards the rear of the club, Moka was grinning from ear-to-ear. Once they disappeared around the corner, she hugged Tsukune suddenly, as she was quite excited.
"So what do you think, Tsukune?"she asked with a wide grin, entirely caught off guard at the unusual request.
"I don't know, Moka. I mean, you do have an amazing singing voice. But what about the other part of being an Idol?"
"An Idol, Tsukune? What's that?" she inquired at the peculiar idiom, which she had never heard of before.
"Well, aside from performing live in front of thousands of screaming fans, shooting music videos, and appearing in commercials, you'd most likely have to make live appearances to meet your fans and sign CD's, who would probably be all male...dressed in...skimpy and...uh...revealing cosplay. Moka...plus we might have to be...separated as most Idols are single. I don't know if I could handle being away from you anymore Moka", he explained now hugging her tighter.
Moka returned his embrace as she thought over what he just explained to her. She knew he was being honest as always but she also realized that he did not wish to be apart from her like they were last year, during the entire Fairy Tale debacle that was very taxing on the both of them, especially since a part of her had in fact "died".
"I understand what you're saying Tsukune. I don't wish to be away from you either. Let's go tell her that I'm not interested in becoming an 'Idol'" Moka said as she ended their hug and returned to their table where Miss Morisato was waiting their eventual return.
…..
Yukina watched the pair approach the table where they had left her at a few minutes ago. She was quite relieved that they had not bailed out on her without a proper reply.
"Miss Morisato. I must apologize, but Moka doesn't wish to participate in any type of contest" Tsukune said with a bow.
"I don't understand. Why not, Miss Akashiya? You have an amazing voice and it would be a shame to allow your talent to go to waste" Yukina replied, clearly upset over what she had heard.
"Miss Morisato. It's a very long story...well, the truth is...I was...kidnapped last year and was...forced to do – certain things against my will. I can not say anything further, Miss Morisato. Please, do not press the issue any further...I appreciate it, but I must humbly decline your more-than generous offer" Moka said with a bow as tears formed at the corners of her crimson eyes as the sad memories bubbled to the surface; brought on suddenly by her explanation to the music producer.
No matter how painful it was, Moka realized that she had to be truthful.
"Oh...Miss Akashiya. I am deeply sorry. I had no idea. Please, excuse me then" Yukina replied as she returned the bow and left the vampire duo alone then exited the karaoke bar as quickly as possible.
"Moka? Are you alright?" Tsukune asked as they returned to their seats so they could finally drink their beverages which were now warm.
"Oh yes, love. Thank you for standing by my decision. I will be fine" Moka said as she held her beverage in her hand. Her mood had taken a nosedive and wasn't feeling like doing anything else for the remainder of the night, truth be told.
"Moka, I know you're upset and I don't blame you. I'm kinda surprised that you told her so much. Well enough for her to at least get the picture. Are you gonna be alright?" he said as he placed his arm around her waist and pulled her closer to him.
"I'll be fine Tsukune. Can we um, go now? I feel like dancing" she said as she stood up from her stool and downed the rest of her beverage in one swig. She then opened her purse and left enough Yen for their drinks, along with a generous tip for their server. Tsukune sat up and repeated her actions.
…..
"Are you sure Moka? We don't have to go if you're not up to it" he asked, just to be certain that's what she wanted to do instead of calling it an early night.
"Oh, yes, Tsukune. I'm sure. I'd really love to go as I'm feeling better now, but thank you for your concern. There's an all-ages night-club just down the street, not too far from here," she happily informed him as they sat up from their seats and walked towards the front exit hand-in-hand.
"Alright Moka. Lead the way then."
Opening the door for her, Moka placed her hand lovingly on his left cheek, caressing it as she walked up the few steps onto the sidewalk outside the karaoke bar.
"Well she does seem to be feeling better now. As long as she's happy then we might as well make the best of it and have a good time.'
As they walked back towards the main road, Tsukune noted that the evening weather in the Hokkaido region was indeed about ten to fifteen degrees cooler compared to his hometown on the main island of Honshu.
He noticed that Moka was shivering due to the change in climate, so he wrapped his right arm around her shoulder, sharing his warmth with her.
'Tsukune...you are just too sweet', she though to herself as a wide smile parted her ruby-red lips.
"Thank you, Tsukune. We're almost there."
"You're welcome, Moka. It's my pleasure."
…..
Roughly five minutes later, they arrived at the nightclub 'A Life', which is the most popular nightspot in the area.
"Moka...this line..."
"Yes, Tsukune. This nightclub is quite famous from what I heard."
"I can see that. Well, we might as well wait in line then. Looks like we'll be here for a while."
"That won't be necessary, Tsukune. I have two VIP passes, here in my purse."
"Moka, you never cease to amaze me."
"Thank you, Tsukune. Come love, let's go to the front of the line."
Doing as requested, he held her hand as they made their way to the front entrance. Moka then opened her small red purse and handed the two complimentary passes to the door host.
After presenting their complimentary vouchers, he then marked a small blue "A" on the top of their right hands with a rubber stamp.
Upon entering the cavernous nightclub, Moka and Tsukune marveled at the amount of people crammed onto the dance floor, that was lit from above with several multicolored lamps spinning patterns of ever-changing designs of light, painting the crowd below, that was dancing to the pulsing, Electronica beat.
Tsukune grabbed Moka's free hand, and made his way through the mass of bodies, searching for a table or booth. He spotted a small booth a moment later, towards the back, right corner of the nighttime establishment and motioned for her to have a seat.
The 'booth' was barely big enough for them to sit comfortably, but they made the best of the situation by scooting shoulder-to-shoulder.
"So, Tsukune. What do you think of the night club?", she asked as she had to speak into his ear since the music was somewhat on the loud side.
"Well, it's nice but a lot more crowded than I would expect," he replied, speaking into her left ear.
"Would you like to go somewhere else?", she replied, now somewhat upset, seeing that the club was indeed quite crowded at such an early hour. It was barely past nine PM.
"No, of course not, Moka. Maybe we can try another of the rooms. I saw the sign as we came in there are two other rooms with different types of music."
"Okay, that sounds like a wonderful idea, Tsukune. Let's go then!", she happily agreed, as he stood up and slid out of the booth, offering her a hand up.
…..
After asking for directions from one of the servers, Tsukune led Moka through a doorway on the opposite side of the packed dance floor and followed the stairs to the upper level. They noticed immediately it was neither as noisy nor as packed as the first floor. The couple inwardly sighed a heavy sigh of relief.
"Wow, Tsukune. It's really nice up here," Moka said as they found a row of tables facing the small dance floor on the left hand side wall. The floor was a dark wood, and the lighting was more subtle as was the music selection. Across from the row of tables was a long bar made of the same type of dark-stained wood. Red and amber light trickled out of recessed fixtures in the ceiling, which gave the atmosphere a relaxing aura.
"Yes, it is Moka. I'm really glad we came here," he answered as he held her hand.
"Me too, Tsukune. Um, could we get something to drink, please? I'm kind of warm from being in that crowd downstairs."
"Of course, Moka. I'll be right back with the usual."
"Thanks, Tsukune. Hurry back though, love" she told him, smiling adorably.
"O-of course Moka, and I will," he said as he sat up from his seat and made his way to bar just a few meters away from their table.
"Thank you, Tsukune," Moka said as he returned a minute later and set both glasses of tomato juice on the small, wooden table in front of themselves.
"You're welcome, Moka. My pleasure," he replied as he sat down next to her once again.
'Oh kami...I want some blood right now...ah...Moka...I can smell your sweet scent...'
Tsukune then leaned his head on Moka's left shoulder. She in turn placed her right hand on his cheek, tenderly letting him know it would be alright if he did what he wanted to do so desperately.
'Thank you...Moka...'
Taking her silent cue, he turned to bury his head in the crook of her neck, and inhaled her delectable scent that still reminded him of freshly picked strawberries. Moka then lovingly wrapped her right hand around his back, and nudged him closer to her.
'Oh, Tsukune...go ahead...I am all yours, my love...'
He opened his mouth slightly as his vampire senses took over, intoxicated by his mate's overwhelming sweet scent, his fangs fully extending and lightly piercing her tender white flesh. He started to lap the life-giving liquid in slow, steady slurps, licking at the wound lightly with his tongue; sending shivers of absolute pleasure down Moka's spine.
"Ah...Tsukune...ahhhhnn...oh yes...love...ahhhhnn..." she whimpered slightly as her toes instantly curled.
'Oh, Kami..that feels so good...ahhhngh...Tsukune...my love...'
"Mmmm...Moka...ahhh...I...love...you...", he replied still taking small sips of her precious, sweet blood. He couldn't seem to help the moans that escaped him, as pleasurable tingles ran through him. He shuddered as he began to pick up on his lover's ecstasy.
'Oh, Moka…I don't think I can ever get enough of being this close to you…I-I love you so much…'
"Ahhhnn...Tsukune...oh Kami...I love...you...too..." Moka moaned softly, wrapping her arms around his shoulders as he continued his gentle suckling.
A few seconds later, he retracted his fangs; licked the wound clean with his wet tongue, which sealed it closed in the process.
Still panting from the gratifying sensations that ran throughout her body, Moka still remained close to her love, not wanting to let go of him anytime soon. Holding her tighter in his embrace, he felt much closer to her, due to the growing bond between themselves.
Words were unnecessary to tell that these two young vampires were very much in love with each other and their bond was the strongest it would ever be.
"Moka. Would you like to dance now?" he said as he stood up.
"I was hoping that you'd ask me sooner or later. Yes, I'd love to, Tsukune," she tenderly replied. He held her hand and led her to the mini dance floor, just a short distance away. Tsukune then looked deep into her lovely amber eyes; placed his right arm around her waist and held her left hand in his own. She mimicked his actions as they began swaying to the slow music.
…..
As she leaned her head gently on his right shoulder, Moka laughed with delight.
"Tsukune...this is really nice...spending this time alone, together with you. Words can't begin to describe how much I'm in love with you," she whispered into his right ear.
"Yes, it is, Moka. I've never felt this close to you. Just being next to you makes me very happy. I love you more than anything. And I feel a lot more intimate with you now."
"I agree, Tsukune. When you were sucking my blood, just a few minutes ago, I felt as if I've known you my entire life. I suppose that our bond has grown a great deal stronger since we've been spending so much time together. I am so glad that you asked me to come home with you before Graduation. I love you so, so very much, my dear Tsukune" she replied, as she gazed adoringly into his chocolate-brown eyes.
"Oh Moka...", he replied as he caught her lips suddenly with his own, causing her breath to hitch as the sudden jolt of affection ceased anymore thoughts to form in her mind; allowing the sudden wave of pure love wash over her, enveloping the vampiress and causing her to moan erotically into her lover's mouth.
'Oh, Tsukune...I want you...all of you...'
'Moka...I want you...too...let's head back now...ah...Moka.'
'Yes, love...I am all yours and yours alone...body, heart, and soul.'
As the couple broke their embrace momentarily, Tsukune grabbed her left hand and quickly made his way down the closest stairwell. Once he found the back exit of the night-club, they made their way to the main street in front of the club, searching for a taxi-cab. Flagging down the closest one, Moka told the driver to take them to their vacation home as quickly as possible, once she gave him the address.
Sitting close to each other in the back seat of the cab, Tsukune held Moka around her waist with this left arm, as she lovingly massaged his left thigh with her right hand, which resulted in the ebony-haired teen to become more aroused by the second.
'Ah, Moka...that feels really good...'
'Patience, love...we'll be back soon enough.'
Holding each other closely, the pair closed their eyes, sharing their thoughts and emotions with each other, they eventually came to a mutual agreement, this was less taxing on their minds, and not as embarrassing.
Leaning shoulder to shoulder, the duo closed their eyes, basking in the knowledge that they were indeed destined to meet each other that fateful day over three years ago on their first day of high school.
…..
Nearly half-an-hour later, the taxi driver finally made it to the address given to him by the vampiress earlier. Stopping the cab near the front pathway to their cottage, he cleared his throat, attempting to wake the dozing couple in the back seat.
"Oh, sorry about that. I guess we dozed off," apologized Tsukune as he gently nudged Moka who still had her eyes closed.
"Hm-hmm? Tsukune. Oh, we're back. Thanks, love," she replied, wiping the sleep from her ruby-red eyes.
As he reached into his back right pocket, Tsukune took out his wallet, opened it up and paid the proper fare to the driver who humbly replied 'thank you'.
He then opened the rear passenger side door and stepped out of the cab, then stuck out his right hand to aid Moka out in turn.
"Thank you, Tsukune," she said with an overly adorable smile.
"No problem, Moka," he answered smiling as well.
Once she was on her own two feet again, he closed the door behind her as the taxi cab driver headed back down the narrow, winding mountainside road to parts unknown.
As the couple walked towards the front door hand-in-hand, Tsukune had an idea rapidly form in his mind. With one quick movement, he scooped Moka into his arms and carried her the remainder of the way to the cottage, princess style. She giggled at his chivalrous act, and smiled lovingly the rest of the way.
Once the arrived at the front door, Moka opened her small red purse and fished out the key. After unlocking the door, she replaced the key in her purse then closed it shut. Tsukune opened the door with his foot, still carrying Moka in his arms. Once they were in the front doorway, Tsukune placed Moka on her feet, so he could lock the door behind himself.
After they removed their shoes, the pair made their way to the bedroom they shared in the rear of the cottage. Shutting the door closed behind themselves, they assisted each other in purging their clothing and undergarments. Folding their clothes neatly, they placed them on the chair in the corner near the closet, then crawled under the satiny sheets of the fluffy bed; holding each other close.
The pair held and caressed each other tenderly, making sweet love for the entire night, well into the wee hours of the early morning. It's a good thing they had no neighbors nearby, as Moka was being more vocal than usual. She even caused the local wolves in the mountains nearby to howl in sync as she rattled every window in the cottage when she climaxed a dozen times in a row.
Once they were finally finished, they dozed off, embracing each other firmly while sleeping in the nude.
.
Author's Notes: Yay. Another chapter. Woot woot.
I worked on this chapter for most of the day as I wondered what direction to go with it. I know it's nearly identical to another chapter from my original story but I changed it up and added some more to it. Moka will be not participating in the Idol contest. But they will be spending more time together. The next chapter will be all new material as I already have some ideas from some of my readers on fan fic dot net.
No hints at this time but it will be a good one and will be out in a week as this chapter is a few days early. Thank you everyone again for your continued support ^_^
Chapter 14 "Hokkaido Vacation, Part 2"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated K for a mild Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 19 years old.
.
A/N: This is part 2 of the 'Vacation" arc. This is the following day. June 30th.
As of this writing, this story already has over 16,000 views! Thank you everyone for your generous support in making this version of 'Confession' such a huge success! ^_^
The original character "Yukina Morisato" is created by me and can not be used nor borrowed in any way, shape, or form.
.
At roughly six o'clock PM, Moka began getting restless. Even though they had just made love for the past two days pretty much nonstop, the young vampiress still wanted to be closer to her blood-mate, Tsukune. It had rained all day and the night before, hence all their time in bed.
She had of course prepared several home cooked meals so they could keep their strength up.
'Maybe the bond between us is getting even stronger?', she thought to herself as she turned to her right and saw that Tsukune was still resting peacefully in their bed.
'And we have a five days left to ourselves here in Hokkaido. At least Kyoko gave up on asking to come along with us. I know she's his cousin, but she really gets on my nerves from time to time; getting in our way like that. Well, she knows about me and supports our relationship."
Tsukune turned then to his left, holding Moka's naked body closer to him.
"M-mmm...Moka...you feel so good...", he mumbled, barely audible.
She giggled at his adorable expression and returned his embrace firmly.
"So do you, my love" she said with a warm, inviting smile.
"M-mmm...Moka...what time is it?" he inquired as he opened his heavy eyelids.
"It's nearly six PM."
"I see...", he said wiping the sleep from his chestnut eyes.
"So...um...what would you like to do this evening?", he continued as she then got on top of him, straddling his thighs, her huge breasts pressed against his bare, scarred, chest.
"Well, I was thinking maybe we could go into Sapporo this evening for dinner and do some exploring downtown. I haven't been there in ages, but I still know my way around," she suggested.
"Sure thing Moka. That sounds like a great idea. I guess we should get up and get ready to go out."
"Thank you Tsukune. Make sure to wear something nice," she told him while she winked.
"No problem. Um, sure thing Moka," he replied as she got up off him and sat on the bed to his right.
"So I suppose I can't go out like this?", the silver-haired vampiress inquired, displaying her magnificent, nude, body before him, causing the desire to make love to her again, grow by the passing second.
'My Kami...her body is so gorgeous. She is definitely more attractive than Kurumu' he noted.
"No, not unless you want to cause every guy to pass out from a huge nosebleed," he teasingly replied.
"I know, Tsukune. I just wanted to hear what you'd say," she cutely answered, as she rose off the bed and ambled towards the closet, opposite from the bed.
Once the couple got themselves ready and dressed, Tsukune called for a taxi to pick them up and drive them to downtown Sapporo, which would be roughly a thirty minute drive. It was now early Saturday evening, and they had asked the driver to take them to a decent restaurant in the middle of the downtown district.
Moka was sporting a simple, yet beautiful crushed-velvet, red mini-dress that tied in the back behind her neck, along with matching high-heeled, wedge-type shoes; showing off her splendidly, well-toned legs. She was also wearing the Silver Rosary-shaped earrings she had received as her birthday gift from her loving fiancée'. Around her right shoulder hung a small purse of the same brilliant, crimson shade. Her long, platinum hair was pulled into a ponytail, held in place with a color-coordinated claw-type, hair clip.
'Wow, Moka looks so beautiful this evening' he breathlessly thought.
She was also wearing simple make-up to accentuate her natural, otherworldly, beauty, seeing that they were going to spend the night on the town. Dark green eyeshadow, oink blush dusted across her pale cheeks and dark red lip gloss on her plump lips.
Tsukune was dressed in a pair of black pinstriped slacks along with an aqua short-sleeved dress shirt, plus the silver, Casio wrist-watch he had received from Moka on his birthday last week.
Once they arrived downtown, Moka asked the driver to pull up along the sidewalk that ran through the main area of downtown, Chou-ku ward. There are numerous stores, restaurants, and nightclubs in the surrounding area as well as the famous Sapporo Clock Tower and Odori Park, which is home to the Sapporo TV Tower which gives a panoramic view of the entire downtown area.
The Tower was built in 1957, is 147.2 meters high, with an observation deck at a height of 90.38 meters.
After paying the driver, Tsukune helped Moka to step out of the cab, and onto the sidewalk. Closing the door behind her, he gave Moka a hand as she wobbled upon exiting the taxi.
"Thank you, Tsukune. My shoes are new and a little hard to walk in," she told him as they held hands and walked towards the restaurant just a few meters from their current location.
"You're very welcome, Moka. I can see that. Well, they do look nice on you and show off your beautiful legs," he replied with a small grin.
"Oh thank you very much, Tsukune. You think my legs are beautiful?", she asked while her face turned pink hearing his compliment.
"Of course they are. Everything about you is absolutely flawless, Moka."
'Oh, Tsukune...you always know what to say, my love.'
Hearing that compliment caused the vampiress to leap into his arms, and catching him off-balance. Luckily, they didn't stumble to the sidewalk below.
"Thank you Tsukune. I love you so very much," she said as she grabbed and kissed him passionately on the lips just outside the front door of the Chinese restaurant.
"You're welcome, Moka. I meant that. Everything about you is beautiful. And I love you just as much," he told her as he was gasping for life-giving oxygen after their two-minute embrace.
"Oh Tsukune...hearing that makes me very happy."
"Well Moka...it's true. I'm so fortunate to have you in my life."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka...I'm getting kinda hungry now...hahaha..." he replied as his stomach protested loudly in accord once he had detected the delectable aromas through his sensitive nose.
"Oh, yes. Me too. Shall we then?"
"Of course. After you, my princess," he replied as he opened the door to the Chinese restaurant for her.
"Thank you, my love," she adorably replied as she winked at him, resulting in him to blush madly at the simple, yet loving gesture.
'Damn it! Why do I have to get turned on right now? What the hell's going on with me? It's like I want her now!', he screamed in his mind.
As the duo followed the hostess to their booth, all eyes once again were focused on the vampiress. Nearly every man in the establishment was practically drooling over her and most of the women were jealous of her amazing beauty, and jaw-dropping physique.
Sensing her grow uncomfortable from the stares through their ever-growing blood-bond, he placed his arm around her waist and held her closer in a loving, protective manner; in turn which helped alleviate her increasing anxiety.
Arriving at their corner booth in the rear of the restaurant, Moka slid into the red leather seat as Tsukune slid in next to her. She placed her left hand on his right thigh, massaging it as they perused over the menu, deciding on what to order for dinner.
"M-moka...um...w-what are y-you doing?"
"Reading the menu" she stated as she was contemplating on what to order for dinner.
"O-oh..is t-that so?" he sputtered out with a nervous sweat.
"Mm-hmm. Is something wrong, Tsukune?" she inquired with a quirked, silver brow.
"Um...n-no. N-not really...it's just that...um...your hand...is rubbing it" he stated as she then gave his thigh a gentle squeeze, furthering his growing arousal.
"I see. It's alright. We are together so there's no reason for you to be nervous, Tsukune. I'm just showing you my appreciation from earlier, that's all," she told him as-a-matter-of-factually.
'Calm down, man. Nobody can see. She's just happy, that's all' he rationalized as he attempted to calm down his libido to a somewhat more normal level.
He then placed his right hand on her left leg and gently grazed the alabaster flesh of her thigh, which resulted in her breath to hitch.
"Ahhngh...Tsukune" she replied as her plump, red lips quivered from the soft caress, that resulted in her toes to curl upward.
Of course the waitress appeared at the same moment, suddenly breaking their wonderful mood.
…..
After they had placed their dinner order, they wondered what to do for the remainder of the night.
"So Moka, where would you like to go next?"
"Well, I was wondering if we could go dancing tonight, since it's been a while? Remember that you told me that you'd like to take me again."
"That sounds like a great plan, Moka. And yes, you're right; I said that before we left the nightclub in Tokyo."
"Thank you, Tsukune. There's quite a few nightclubs within walking distance from here."
"You're welcome, Moka. I know that we'll have a lot of fun."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Excuse me? Am I interrupting anything?", the waitress inquired as she witnessed the two young adults gaze lovingly into each others eyes.
"Oh! Sorry about that! Thank you very much," apologized Tsukune as his face burned red with embarrassment from being nearly on top of Moka, lost in his own emotions.
As the couple began eating their Shrimp with Lobster sauce and pork-fried rice, they couldn't escape the thoughts of being that close to each other, desperately wanting to take one anthers blood. Yes, the bond between them had indeed grown even stronger. So strong in fact that they each had to hold back even more, especially being out in public on a Saturday evening on a date.
"So, Tsukune. What do you think of Sapporo so far?", she asked, in-between bites.
"Oh, it's really nice, Moka. More mountains than I imagined," he replied as he glanced to his right, watching her nibble adorably on her food.
"Well, that's true," she added.
"There's a lot to do around here, including a really nice park not too far from here to have a picnic at," she hinted.
"Oh, I see. That would be really nice, Moka."
The couple talked and ate, speculating what the future may hold. They both knew that being together forever, would indeed be a very long time.
After finishing their dinner, the couple asked the waitress for the check, which they split the cost between themselves. As they left the restaurant hand-in-hand, Moka led Tsukune down the main avenue, then made a right and walked down another side street for about thirty meters.
A few minutes later, they eventually arrived in front of their next destination: Karaoke Maneki Neko, which was indicated by a bright yellow sign with a chubby white and brown anime-type cat as their mascot.
…..
Walking down the few steps to the karaoke club, Tsukune started to get somewhat excited, knowing that he'd have another opportunity to hear Moka's impressive singing voice.
Once they arrived inside, the pair found a high-top table on the far right-hand side of the club and sat down. Moka picked up the song menu and searched for a musical composition, appropriate enough to declare her love for her wonderful fiancée.
The waitress arrived a moment later and asked the duo what they would like to drink, which of course would be the obvious reply: two tall glasses of chilled tomato juice.
The female server also asked which song Moka would like to sing. After giving her name, Moka told her the song number, which she typed into a small, electronic, tablet-like device. The server informed her that when it was her turn, the emcee would call her up to the small stage in the front of the club.
As the waitress left the table, Moka scooted her chair closer to Tsukune and leaned her head on his left shoulder and let out a happy sigh.
"Um, Moka?"
"Yes, Tsukune?"
"What song did you pick out?"
"Oh. That's a secret, love" she answered with a smile.
"Well, whatever you chose, I just know that you'll sing it beautifully."
"Awww...thank you so much, Tsukune," she lovingly replied as she planted a soft kiss on his cheek, causing him to blush brightly, as the other patrons witnessed their public display of outward affection.
Their good mood was disrupted by the emcee calling Moka up to the stage a few moments later.
"Moka Akashiya? Please make your way to the stage at the front of the club, please. Moka Akashiya. Your turn is next. Thank you."
After hearing her name announced, Moka excused herself from their table, hopping off her chair and made her way to the stage in front. Once the emcee handed her the wireless microphone, she closed her eyes for a moment, gathering her thoughts.
…..
Once the music started, she opened her red eyes once again and spoke.
"I dedicate this song to my very best friend and fiancée, Tsukune Aono. I love you with all of my heart. This song is dedicated to you."
"From this Moment" by Shania Twain.
I do swear...
That I'll always be there
I'd give anything...
And everything
And I will always care...
Through weakness and strength
Happiness and sorrow...
For better, for worse -
I will love you...
With every beat of my heart...
From this moment...life has begun
From this moment...you are the one...
Right beside you...is where I belong -
From this moment...on...
From this moment...I have been blessed -
I live only, for your happiness...
And for your love, I give my last breath -
From this moment on...
I give my hand...to you...with all my heart...
I can't wait to live my life with you, I can't wait to start -
You and I will never be apart...
My dreams...came true...because of you -
From this moment, as long as I live...
I will love you, I promise you this...
There is nothing, I wouldn't give -
From this moment on...
You're the reason I believe in love...
And you're the answer to my prayers from up above -
All we need is just the two of us...
My dreams...came true...because of you -
From this moment, as long as I live...
I will love you, I promise you this -
There is nothing, I wouldn't give...
From this moment, I will love you -
As long as I live from this moment on...
...
As the song ended, the entire karaoke club erupted into a massive round of applause. Tsukune was once again rendered speechless by Moka's awe-inspiring singing voice. She bowed politely and winked at her fiancée' who was giving her an enthusiastic, standing ovation.
Once she made her way back to their table, Tsukune reached his hand out and took her into his arms, and embraced her tightly.
"Moka...that was simply...amazing. I love you so very much" he said as a happy tear trickled sown his cheek. He was completely moved emotionally by her song dedicated solely to him.
"Thank you...Tsukune. I'm very happy that you enjoyed it. I love you too."
…..
"Um...excuse me?", said an unknown female voice, a moment later.
It was an older woman in her mid-twenties, dressed in a navy blue, business pant-suit. She was roughly the same height as Tsukune with shoulder-length, black hair, and was wearing oval-shaped eyeglasses.
Breaking their hug, the couple turned their attention to the woman who was waiting to have a word with them.
"Yes? Can I help you?", Tsukune asked, while he Moka's hand.
"Yes. My name is Yukina Morisato. Here is my business card," she announced whole bowing and presenting her card in typical Japanese fashion. Tsukune released Moka's hand momentarily and took the card from her hand, while bowing in return.
Tsukune read her business card while he showed it to Moka.
...
Yukina Morisato
AVEX House, AVEX Trax, AVEX Trance, AVEX Idol,
AVEX International Records.
Avex Building, 1-30 Minami-Aoyama San-chome,
Minato-ku, Tokyo 107-8577
...
"So, Miss Morisato, what can we do for you?" Tsukune asked while he and Moka took their seats while offering her one in return.
"Ah, yes. The reason I was here tonight was for scouting new talent. I have family in the area and visit this particular venue when I'm in town. As you can see, my company produces music for all music genres. As I entered the club, I heard Ms. Akashiya's singing voice. I haven't heard such an impressive voice such as hers' in several years. I was wondering if she'd like to audition for an upcoming talent search in Tokyo to be held during the second week of July? We would compensate her for travel, food, and lodging expenses, of course. The top prize would be a five-year contract with one of our music labels, depending on what genre of music best suits the winner, " she explained in detail and was now clearly out of breath.
Tsukune was completely shocked. No words could describe the numerous thoughts rolling throughout his head at this moment. He knew Moka had a real talent for singing, but he never thought in a million years that she would be scouted to be a J-pop Idol.
"...une...kune...Tsukune...Tsukune...", he heard as Moka gently pulled on his left elbow, attempting to bring him back to reality.
"Moka. Uh, yes?"
"What do you think? This woman wants me to enter a talent contest."
"Miss Morisato? Could you give us a minute please? It seems as if my fiance' would like to have a private word with me."
"Oh, uh. Sure thing. Take your time, please," she replied smiling brightly.
'His fiance', huh? Not good. I find it hard to believe that she's engaged at such a young age. Hm-mm,' Yukina though to herself as the couple walked to the far side of the club out of ear-shot.
As they made their way down a hallway towards the rear of the club, Moka was grinning from ear-to-ear. Once they disappeared around the corner, she hugged Tsukune suddenly, as she was quite excited.
"So what do you think, Tsukune?"she asked with a wide grin, entirely caught off guard at the unusual request.
"I don't know, Moka. I mean, you do have an amazing singing voice. But what about the other part of being an Idol?"
"An Idol, Tsukune? What's that?" she inquired at the peculiar idiom, which she had never heard of before.
"Well, aside from performing live in front of thousands of screaming fans, shooting music videos, and appearing in commercials, you'd most likely have to make live appearances to meet your fans and sign CD's, who would probably be all male...dressed in...skimpy and...uh...revealing cosplay. Moka...plus we might have to be...separated as most Idols are single. I don't know if I could handle being away from you anymore Moka", he explained now hugging her tighter.
Moka returned his embrace as she thought over what he just explained to her. She knew he was being honest as always but she also realized that he did not wish to be apart from her like they were last year, during the entire Fairy Tale debacle that was very taxing on the both of them, especially since a part of her had in fact "died".
"I understand what you're saying Tsukune. I don't wish to be away from you either. Let's go tell her that I'm not interested in becoming an 'Idol'" Moka said as she ended their hug and returned to their table where Miss Morisato was waiting their eventual return.
…..
Yukina watched the pair approach the table where they had left her at a few minutes ago. She was quite relieved that they had not bailed out on her without a proper reply.
"Miss Morisato. I must apologize, but Moka doesn't wish to participate in any type of contest" Tsukune said with a bow.
"I don't understand. Why not, Miss Akashiya? You have an amazing voice and it would be a shame to allow your talent to go to waste" Yukina replied, clearly upset over what she had heard.
"Miss Morisato. It's a very long story...well, the truth is...I was...kidnapped last year and was...forced to do – certain things against my will. I can not say anything further, Miss Morisato. Please, do not press the issue any further...I appreciate it, but I must humbly decline your more-than generous offer" Moka said with a bow as tears formed at the corners of her crimson eyes as the sad memories bubbled to the surface; brought on suddenly by her explanation to the music producer.
No matter how painful it was, Moka realized that she had to be truthful.
"Oh...Miss Akashiya. I am deeply sorry. I had no idea. Please, excuse me then" Yukina replied as she returned the bow and left the vampire duo alone then exited the karaoke bar as quickly as possible.
"Moka? Are you alright?" Tsukune asked as they returned to their seats so they could finally drink their beverages which were now warm.
"Oh yes, love. Thank you for standing by my decision. I will be fine" Moka said as she held her beverage in her hand. Her mood had taken a nosedive and wasn't feeling like doing anything else for the remainder of the night, truth be told.
"Moka, I know you're upset and I don't blame you. I'm kinda surprised that you told her so much. Well enough for her to at least get the picture. Are you gonna be alright?" he said as he placed his arm around her waist and pulled her closer to him.
"I'll be fine Tsukune. Can we um, go now? I feel like dancing" she said as she stood up from her stool and downed the rest of her beverage in one swig. She then opened her purse and left enough Yen for their drinks, along with a generous tip for their server. Tsukune sat up and repeated her actions.
…..
"Are you sure Moka? We don't have to go if you're not up to it" he asked, just to be certain that's what she wanted to do instead of calling it an early night.
"Oh, yes, Tsukune. I'm sure. I'd really love to go as I'm feeling better now, but thank you for your concern. There's an all-ages night-club just down the street, not too far from here," she happily informed him as they sat up from their seats and walked towards the front exit hand-in-hand.
"Alright Moka. Lead the way then."
Opening the door for her, Moka placed her hand lovingly on his left cheek, caressing it as she walked up the few steps onto the sidewalk outside the karaoke bar.
"Well she does seem to be feeling better now. As long as she's happy then we might as well make the best of it and have a good time.'
As they walked back towards the main road, Tsukune noted that the evening weather in the Hokkaido region was indeed about ten to fifteen degrees cooler compared to his hometown on the main island of Honshu.
He noticed that Moka was shivering due to the change in climate, so he wrapped his right arm around her shoulder, sharing his warmth with her.
'Tsukune...you are just too sweet', she though to herself as a wide smile parted her ruby-red lips.
"Thank you, Tsukune. We're almost there."
"You're welcome, Moka. It's my pleasure."
…..
Roughly five minutes later, they arrived at the nightclub 'A Life', which is the most popular nightspot in the area.
"Moka...this line..."
"Yes, Tsukune. This nightclub is quite famous from what I heard."
"I can see that. Well, we might as well wait in line then. Looks like we'll be here for a while."
"That won't be necessary, Tsukune. I have two VIP passes, here in my purse."
"Moka, you never cease to amaze me."
"Thank you, Tsukune. Come love, let's go to the front of the line."
Doing as requested, he held her hand as they made their way to the front entrance. Moka then opened her small red purse and handed the two complimentary passes to the door host.
After presenting their complimentary vouchers, he then marked a small blue "A" on the top of their right hands with a rubber stamp.
Upon entering the cavernous nightclub, Moka and Tsukune marveled at the amount of people crammed onto the dance floor, that was lit from above with several multicolored lamps spinning patterns of ever-changing designs of light, painting the crowd below, that was dancing to the pulsing, Electronica beat.
Tsukune grabbed Moka's free hand, and made his way through the mass of bodies, searching for a table or booth. He spotted a small booth a moment later, towards the back, right corner of the nighttime establishment and motioned for her to have a seat.
The 'booth' was barely big enough for them to sit comfortably, but they made the best of the situation by scooting shoulder-to-shoulder.
"So, Tsukune. What do you think of the night club?", she asked as she had to speak into his ear since the music was somewhat on the loud side.
"Well, it's nice but a lot more crowded than I would expect," he replied, speaking into her left ear.
"Would you like to go somewhere else?", she replied, now somewhat upset, seeing that the club was indeed quite crowded at such an early hour. It was barely past nine PM.
"No, of course not, Moka. Maybe we can try another of the rooms. I saw the sign as we came in there are two other rooms with different types of music."
"Okay, that sounds like a wonderful idea, Tsukune. Let's go then!", she happily agreed, as he stood up and slid out of the booth, offering her a hand up.
…..
After asking for directions from one of the servers, Tsukune led Moka through a doorway on the opposite side of the packed dance floor and followed the stairs to the upper level. They noticed immediately it was neither as noisy nor as packed as the first floor. The couple inwardly sighed a heavy sigh of relief.
"Wow, Tsukune. It's really nice up here," Moka said as they found a row of tables facing the small dance floor on the left hand side wall. The floor was a dark wood, and the lighting was more subtle as was the music selection. Across from the row of tables was a long bar made of the same type of dark-stained wood. Red and amber light trickled out of recessed fixtures in the ceiling, which gave the atmosphere a relaxing aura.
"Yes, it is Moka. I'm really glad we came here," he answered as he held her hand.
"Me too, Tsukune. Um, could we get something to drink, please? I'm kind of warm from being in that crowd downstairs."
"Of course, Moka. I'll be right back with the usual."
"Thanks, Tsukune. Hurry back though, love" she told him, smiling adorably.
"O-of course Moka, and I will," he said as he sat up from his seat and made his way to bar just a few meters away from their table.
"Thank you, Tsukune," Moka said as he returned a minute later and set both glasses of tomato juice on the small, wooden table in front of themselves.
"You're welcome, Moka. My pleasure," he replied as he sat down next to her once again.
'Oh kami...I want some blood right now...ah...Moka...I can smell your sweet scent...'
Tsukune then leaned his head on Moka's left shoulder. She in turn placed her right hand on his cheek, tenderly letting him know it would be alright if he did what he wanted to do so desperately.
'Thank you...Moka...'
Taking her silent cue, he turned to bury his head in the crook of her neck, and inhaled her delectable scent that still reminded him of freshly picked strawberries. Moka then lovingly wrapped her right hand around his back, and nudged him closer to her.
'Oh, Tsukune...go ahead...I am all yours, my love...'
He opened his mouth slightly as his vampire senses took over, intoxicated by his mate's overwhelming sweet scent, his fangs fully extending and lightly piercing her tender white flesh. He started to lap the life-giving liquid in slow, steady slurps, licking at the wound lightly with his tongue; sending shivers of absolute pleasure down Moka's spine.
"Ah...Tsukune...ahhhhnn...oh yes...love...ahhhhnn..." she whimpered slightly as her toes instantly curled.
'Oh, Kami..that feels so good...ahhhngh...Tsukune...my love...'
"Mmmm...Moka...ahhh...I...love...you...", he replied still taking small sips of her precious, sweet blood. He couldn't seem to help the moans that escaped him, as pleasurable tingles ran through him. He shuddered as he began to pick up on his lover's ecstasy.
'Oh, Moka…I don't think I can ever get enough of being this close to you…I-I love you so much…'
"Ahhhnn...Tsukune...oh Kami...I love...you...too..." Moka moaned softly, wrapping her arms around his shoulders as he continued his gentle suckling.
A few seconds later, he retracted his fangs; licked the wound clean with his wet tongue, which sealed it closed in the process.
Still panting from the gratifying sensations that ran throughout her body, Moka still remained close to her love, not wanting to let go of him anytime soon. Holding her tighter in his embrace, he felt much closer to her, due to the growing bond between themselves.
Words were unnecessary to tell that these two young vampires were very much in love with each other and their bond was the strongest it would ever be.
"Moka. Would you like to dance now?" he said as he stood up.
"I was hoping that you'd ask me sooner or later. Yes, I'd love to, Tsukune," she tenderly replied. He held her hand and led her to the mini dance floor, just a short distance away. Tsukune then looked deep into her lovely amber eyes; placed his right arm around her waist and held her left hand in his own. She mimicked his actions as they began swaying to the slow music.
…..
As she leaned her head gently on his right shoulder, Moka laughed with delight.
"Tsukune...this is really nice...spending this time alone, together with you. Words can't begin to describe how much I'm in love with you," she whispered into his right ear.
"Yes, it is, Moka. I've never felt this close to you. Just being next to you makes me very happy. I love you more than anything. And I feel a lot more intimate with you now."
"I agree, Tsukune. When you were sucking my blood, just a few minutes ago, I felt as if I've known you my entire life. I suppose that our bond has grown a great deal stronger since we've been spending so much time together. I am so glad that you asked me to come home with you before Graduation. I love you so, so very much, my dear Tsukune" she replied, as she gazed adoringly into his chocolate-brown eyes.
"Oh Moka...", he replied as he caught her lips suddenly with his own, causing her breath to hitch as the sudden jolt of affection ceased anymore thoughts to form in her mind; allowing the sudden wave of pure love wash over her, enveloping the vampiress and causing her to moan erotically into her lover's mouth.
'Oh, Tsukune...I want you...all of you...'
'Moka...I want you...too...let's head back now...ah...Moka.'
'Yes, love...I am all yours and yours alone...body, heart, and soul.'
As the couple broke their embrace momentarily, Tsukune grabbed her left hand and quickly made his way down the closest stairwell. Once he found the back exit of the night-club, they made their way to the main street in front of the club, searching for a taxi-cab. Flagging down the closest one, Moka told the driver to take them to their vacation home as quickly as possible, once she gave him the address.
Sitting close to each other in the back seat of the cab, Tsukune held Moka around her waist with this left arm, as she lovingly massaged his left thigh with her right hand, which resulted in the ebony-haired teen to become more aroused by the second.
'Ah, Moka...that feels really good...'
'Patience, love...we'll be back soon enough.'
Holding each other closely, the pair closed their eyes, sharing their thoughts and emotions with each other, they eventually came to a mutual agreement, this was less taxing on their minds, and not as embarrassing.
Leaning shoulder to shoulder, the duo closed their eyes, basking in the knowledge that they were indeed destined to meet each other that fateful day over three years ago on their first day of high school.
…..
Nearly half-an-hour later, the taxi driver finally made it to the address given to him by the vampiress earlier. Stopping the cab near the front pathway to their cottage, he cleared his throat, attempting to wake the dozing couple in the back seat.
"Oh, sorry about that. I guess we dozed off," apologized Tsukune as he gently nudged Moka who still had her eyes closed.
"Hm-hmm? Tsukune. Oh, we're back. Thanks, love," she replied, wiping the sleep from her ruby-red eyes.
As he reached into his back right pocket, Tsukune took out his wallet, opened it up and paid the proper fare to the driver who humbly replied 'thank you'.
He then opened the rear passenger side door and stepped out of the cab, then stuck out his right hand to aid Moka out in turn.
"Thank you, Tsukune," she said with an overly adorable smile.
"No problem, Moka," he answered smiling as well.
Once she was on her own two feet again, he closed the door behind her as the taxi cab driver headed back down the narrow, winding mountainside road to parts unknown.
As the couple walked towards the front door hand-in-hand, Tsukune had an idea rapidly form in his mind. With one quick movement, he scooped Moka into his arms and carried her the remainder of the way to the cottage, princess style. She giggled at his chivalrous act, and smiled lovingly the rest of the way.
Once the arrived at the front door, Moka opened her small red purse and fished out the key. After unlocking the door, she replaced the key in her purse then closed it shut. Tsukune opened the door with his foot, still carrying Moka in his arms. Once they were in the front doorway, Tsukune placed Moka on her feet, so he could lock the door behind himself.
After they removed their shoes, the pair made their way to the bedroom they shared in the rear of the cottage. Shutting the door closed behind themselves, they assisted each other in purging their clothing and undergarments. Folding their clothes neatly, they placed them on the chair in the corner near the closet, then crawled under the satiny sheets of the fluffy bed; holding each other close.
The pair held and caressed each other tenderly, making sweet love for the entire night, well into the wee hours of the early morning. It's a good thing they had no neighbors nearby, as Moka was being more vocal than usual. She even caused the local wolves in the mountains nearby to howl in sync as she rattled every window in the cottage when she climaxed a dozen times in a row.
Once they were finally finished, they dozed off, embracing each other firmly while sleeping in the nude.
.
Author's Notes: Yay. Another chapter. Woot woot.
I worked on this chapter for most of the day as I wondered what direction to go with it. I know it's nearly identical to another chapter from my original story but I changed it up and added some more to it. Moka will be not participating in the Idol contest. But they will be spending more time together. The next chapter will be all new material as I already have some ideas from some of my readers on fan fic dot net.
No hints at this time but it will be a good one and will be out in a week as this chapter is a few days early. Thank you everyone again for your continued support ^_^
leonard267 wrote...
gamera68 wrote...
leonard267 wrote...
Had a sense of deja vu when reading your work. Of course, this is because of the fact that the first chapter was the exact same as that of a previous thread. May I know where should I continue and how is this different from the previous thread.I understand that you have included an explanation that this version of the thread takes into account new developments in the original work. I would like to know what changes are those exactly.
That said, I can read it easily, big fonts, wonderful to read, easy language and I am really impressed! Quite the same as my remarks on the previous thread.
Of course, even my criticism of it remains the same! It appears that every chapter is a reaffirmation of their love for each other. I haven't read it thoroughly but I think there isn't much conflict between them is there apart from the two Lizardmen causing trouble, is there? I would think that living with a blood sucking monster or having an extremely beautiful lady as your partner would present quite a lot of problems that can be further explored.
Thanks for the feedback but I already explained the differences between this and my original fan-fic which is on hiatus. I even wrote 3 new chapters that were not in my original story. I appreciate your feedback but I believe I have explained my story and it's gotten a lot of feedback on fan-fiction. Plus has over 15,000 views as of today.
As for 'conflicts' it's really not my strong suit. Sorry but I really don't know how to write that to well. Maybe in future chapters there might be but for right now it is what it is.
Thanks for the feedback once again :)
I am afraid I did not see it. May I know where is it? If you are referring to the Author's Notes, I have to say that I have only read your one-shot and do not know what you meant by the other story. I presume I have to start from Chapter 2? Chapter 1 appears to be the one-shot that I have read.
Sorry, I meant to say this is based upon my ORIGINAL Rosario story called "A Confession and A Vampire", This is an alternate take on it with Inner Moka as the main focus. Sorry. I thought I was clear, hence the "Reboot".
The original story is on here somewhere and here: https://www.fanfiction.net/s/7921877/1/Rosario-Vampire-A-Confession-and-A-Vampire
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 13 "Hokkaido Vacation, Part 1"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for a Lemon scene.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Drama / Romance / Hurt-Comfort
Moka and Tsukune are 19 years old.
…..
A/N: This story has just passed over 14,400 views as of this writing! Thank you everyone so much for your more-than-generous support in making this 'reboot' of mine quite popular ^_^
Not too bad for being online for only 90 days, as of this date. (Jan. 25, 2014)
…..
Previously from chapter 11:
Moka then got up and stood behind Tsukune, who was still sitting down. She gave him a small envelope that had 'Happy Birthday, Tsukune', in her handwriting, scribbled on the front.
"Happy birthday, Tsukune," she whispered to him. He then opened the simple envelope and found a small, brass key inside.
"Um, Moka. What's this for?"
"Oh, this is the key to our cottage in Hokkaido. We'll be going there for our week vacation, starting on June 29th. A week from today," she happily informed him.
He gave a wide grin upon hearing that wonderful news.
A vacation with Moka. Alone? In the mountains of Northern Japan? Hell yes!
…..
After their airplane arrived at Chitose International Airport, in Sapporo, they found their luggage and walked outside the terminal. Moka spotted then flagged down a yellow taxi cab and gave the driver the directions to their cottage in Chitose ward, Sapporo; which was roughly an hour drive from the airport and approximately thirty minutes from downtown.
It was already past two o'clock in the afternoon.
A short while after, the taxi driver drove up a narrow mountain road, barley wide enough for it to pass, but he eventually arrived at their vacation home safely. Once they pulled up in front of their vacation home, the driver placed the cab in park and shut the engine off.
He got out of the driver's seat and opened the trunk; and assisted the young couple to remove their luggage. After paying the driver, Moka and Tsukune walked up the short pathway to the cottage, carrying their bags.
"So Moka, this was your vacation home while growing up?" he wondered as they approached the huge abode.
"Yes, Tsukune. We took all our summer vacations here when I was younger. The area is quite mountainous, and the weather is mostly mild, even though the temperature can reach a high of around 89 degrees in the daytime. But most nights are quite cool; around 55 to 60 degrees, from time to time."
Tsukune was shocked at the size of the 'cottage', as Moka had called it.
It was easily over 5,000 square feet; nearly three times bigger than his parent's house.
"Moka, this is it?!" he shouted once they arrived at the front door.
'Oh, my Kami! It's like a mansion!' he mentally screamed.
"Yes, Tsukune. Is there something wrong?" the silver-haired beauty asked with a quirked brow at his sudden, vocal outburst.
"Um no, not really; I'm just surprised, that's all. I wasn't expecting it to be such a nice place" he replied as he sweat-dropped. Once he again he marveled at Moka's family and how wealthy they actually were.
There were several large shade trees surrounding the stone and mortar house, keeping it cool from the early summertime heat. The cabin was one story, with a large wooden door and a few windows in the front, covered with dark curtains to ward off the blazing sunlight.
After placing the key in the lock and opening it, he was surprised, yet again, upon seeing the furnishings inside. There were several microfiber chairs in the living room, with a large couch in the center facing a sixty-five inch LCD television. In front of the plush sofa was a long, rectangular-shaped, coffee table made from dark stained Oak. On the far right-hand wall was an old, stone fireplace with a bear-skin rug on the floor in front of it. He also noted that the cabin had central air conditioning as well.
To the far left was the dining room with a rectangular-shaped table made of the same dark wood with four, matching chairs.
Overhead hung a large round lamp. The kitchen was quite modern; with marble counter tops, an all-aluminum stove, sink, and a double-wide refrigerator stocked with a week's worth of food, beverages, and transfusion blood packets.
In the rear of the cabin were four bedrooms, each with a full-size bed, along with a decent sized bathroom at the end of the hallway. The master bedroom had a queen-sized pillow top bed, which would be their room for their holiday.
…..
"Wow, Moka. I'm kinda surprised how big this place is. I'm really glad that we came up here though. Thanks again," Tsukune commented after they had placed their luggage in their bedroom.
'Wow! This is gonna be great. It's so cozy up here.' he remarked to himself.
"Oh, it's no problem, Tsukune. I really wanted to come up here with you. We're going to have a great time, that much I can promise you," she happily replied as they sat on the huge couch in the living room.
After bathing together and changing their clothes from their two hour flight, Moka decided to give Tsukune a tour of the remainder of the property, which consisted of a large, half-acre, back yard with their own, private, natural hot spring, surrounded with a bamboo fence on three sides, several meters tall.
There was also a bathing area, located on the far left side, including a dozen, small LED lamps which surrounded the perimeter for nighttime bathing. A few wooden lounge chairs and several bamboo trees, complimented the relaxing atmosphere.
"Tsukune, I'm so looking forward to going in here with you very soon," she told him as he knelt down and examined the natural Onsen, which was already treated with the special blend of herbs for the vampire couple beforehand.
"Me, too. Moka. That sounds like a great plan," he answered, smiling from ear-to-ear.
"So Tsukune, what would you like to do now?" she inquired as they wandered around the neighboring area, hand-in-hand, with no particular destination in mind.
"Um, well, I'm getting kind of hungry. How about we have lunch soon?" he asked as they walked along a worn down pathway.
"Sure, Tsukune. What would you like to have?"
"Um, anything is fine, Moka" he replied with a bashful smile, still holding her hand.
"Okay, let's head back, so I can get started on lunch."
"Sure thing, Moka. After you," he gladly answered as he motioned for her to lead the way back to the cottage.
…..
Once they re-entered the cottage through the side entrance, Moka asked Tsukune to have a seat at the dining-room table while she prepared lunch for them in the kitchen. She wore a simple, yet cute apron, so she wouldn't get her outfit dirty while preparing their late-afternoon meal.
'Oh my Kami, she looks so cute today,' he mused while watching her fix their mid-day meal.
'I-I really am lucky to have her in my life…' he continued.
Once she was finished, she brought two plates to the wooden table and set them down in front of their seats. She had made two large, ham, turkey and Swiss-cheese sandwiches with honey mustard, along with a side of potato chips and a dill pickle wedge, along with two tall, chilled glasses of tomato juice to drink.
"Wow, Moka. This is really good! Thanks for the food!" Tsukune praised.
Now blushing, Moka smiled happily.
"Thank you very much, Tsukune. I'm glad that you like it" she replied with an adorable blush across her cheeks.
...
After they finished their lunch-time meal, Moka cleared the table and set the dishes in the automatic dishwasher.
"Thanks again for lunch Moka, it was really good," he told her as they now sat on the living-room couch once again. Now leaning shoulder to shoulder, she hugged him from the left.
"You're welcome, Tsukune."
"Moka."
"Tsukune."
"Moka."
"Would it be alright if we took a short nap, Tsukune? I'm still a bit sleepy from waking up so early this morning."
"Uh, yeah, sure thing, Moka. That's the one of the best ideas I've heard all day," he told her as they both stood up and made their way to the back of the house where their bedroom was located. Walking hand in hand, Moka quickly led the way.
After she closed the door behind herself, she turned around and held her fiancé closely, not wanting to let the sudden wave of strong feelings that enveloped her so suddenly end anytime soon. Kissing him passionately, she gently nudged him in reverse, then began undressing him slowly.
'Oh, Tsukune, I love you so much…Right now, I just want to feel you as close to me as possible…'
First his blue tee-shirt was hastily displaced to the carpeted floor below. She then unbuckled his leather belt and unbuttoned his khaki cargo pants, allowing gravity to bring them to follow his shirt. Stepping out of his displaced trousers, he sat down on the soft bed behind himself, sitting on his knees.
Moka then seductively removed her neon pink tee-shirt, inching it upward slowly and giving her fiancé a view of her flat, yet firm, abdomen.
'Oh my Kami, I never imagined Moka would ever strip for me...oh man...I'm getting so turned on right now,' the ebony-haired teen screamed to himself, growing more aroused by the passing second and was now fully pitching a tent in his black and white boxer shorts.
Moka continued teasing Tsukune as she now exposed her white bra that held her magnificent bosom firmly in place, which bounced lightly as she removed the remainder of her tee-shirt and tossed it to the floor. She then slowly shimmied her denim jeans past her curvy hips, turning around as she pulled them down past her voluptuous posterior. Now bending over, she allowed them to fall to the floor too.
"Moka...you are so beautiful," Tsukune whispered in a breathless tone as she stood up and turned around to face him once again. Now crawling on the bed, he got aroused even more-so, if that was even possible.
"Thank you, handsome," she slyly replied as she glomped him suddenly, and gently pushed him onto the plush bed.
…..
Now lying on the soft bedding, Tsukune motioned for Moka to lay her head on his shoulder.
"Mmmm...Tsukune. I really appreciate you coming up here with me. Just being here with you has made me very happy," she told him as a tear of joy trickled down her right cheek, landing on his chest.
"Moka...of course I would. I haven't been on any sort of vacation since I was younger, either...so, I'm just as happy as you are," he told her as she got up and gazed lovingly into his chestnut eyes. She smiled happily and suddenly captured his lips with her own, French kissing him feverishly as his sincere words reached her throbbing heart.
'Ah...Tsukune...I want you so much...ah...Kami...now...', the vampiress mentioned to herself.
As he held her firmly, he reached behind her back and unsnapped her bra, releasing her magnificent breasts. Moka then raised her chest slightly so as to allow him to slip the straps over her shoulders as he slid the thin straps down her arms. She ceased kissing him momentarily, so she could be completely free.
Tossing her loosened bra to the opposite side of the room, he now had an amazing view of the cleavage of her impressive bosom. Holding her breasts between his hands, he began massaging them from the side, which caused Moka to softly moan with love and desire to be touched even more-so by her blood-mate.
"Tsukune...ahhh-nnn...feels...so...good...please, kiss my nipples...love."
Leaning closer to her now, Tsukune placed both of her pink erogenous zones into his mouth and licked the nubs simultaneously, which in turn resulted in Moka to get further aroused. Carnal gasps of ecstasy escaped her pink, pouty lips, reverberating off the bedroom walls and causing his erection to swell in size.
Feeling it throb next to her belly, Moka began tenderly massaging it through his cotton boxers.
"Ah...Moka...you can...take these off...uhn...if you want...," he told her as he was getting turned on more with every heartbeat. Now sitting upon her knees, she bent down and grabbed either side of his underwear, pulled them down past his waist, down his legs, then tossed them to join their other articles of missing clothing.
Moka then hopped off the bed, rapidly removed her last piece of clothing: her white, cotton panties. Returning to Tsukune's side on the soft bed, she gently laid down on top of him. Tsukune wrapped her in his caring arms, kissed her tenderly and could feel the bond between themselves multiply by the passing second.
"Tsukune...I want...you...now...please" she whispered between the eager, soft kisses they exchanged.
Tsukune then sat up on the bed, then swapped positions with Moka.
...
Now lying her head on the squishy pillow, he hovered over her on his knees as she spread her sexy legs apart, inviting him to become one with her. As his throbbing manhood entered her warm sex, Moka gasped as they consummated their love once again.
'Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...Tsukune...I love you so much...'
Slowly and tenderly the couple made passionate love, growing much closer as the flaming romance of their union burned inside of them. Time seemed to slow down for the pair as they were consumed with complete affection and absolute devotion for one another. Their pounding hearts were in now beating in sync.
'Moka...you feel...so...warm...oh man...I'm gonna...any now...second...now...ah calm down...slower...slower...', Tsukune moaned as he slowed his pace, gently rocking against her as the warm tingles of pleasure continued to tingle down his spine.
Then without further warning he sank his sharp fangs into the tender, white flesh of her neck, causing Moka to experience her first intense orgasm of the afternoon.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...oh kami!", Moka bellowed as she arched her back, climaxed forcefully; which caused her toes to curl upwards; the bedding was now damp from her juices.
Wrapping her arms around him tighter, she silently asked him to cease momentarily as she was reeling from the explosive consummation that just ran throughout her entire body.
Which he did without any further petition.
"Tsukune...that was...oh my Kami...so good...ahhh...you actually wore me...out..." the crimson-eyed vampiress told him as she continued to hold him close, still joined at the hips.
"Uh, thanks Moka. Um...sorry, but I'm still...um..." he murmured in reply, nearly whimpering from restraining himself.
'Ugh! What the hell's wrong with me?! It's like I have no more self-control!' the ebony-haired vampire mentally scolded himself.
"You're welcome, Tsukune...I know, love. You're still quite...um...yes...I can feel you inside me...still hmm...hard...oh...ahhh...okay...I'm ready now...slowly again..."
'I'm so tired, yet we both want more! Our bond must be increasing in strength...Oh Kami, I want so much more, Tsukune! Oh, yes! Yes!', the vampiress wailed to herself as he continued their gentle lovemaking.
Doing as she requested, the pair continued making passionate love for the next hour or so, as Tsukune kept his promise as to keep a steady, yet slow, pace.
The pressure was soon becoming unbearable for the young man as he was holding himself back, as he endeavored to prolong their lovemaking even more.
"Ahhh...Moka...ahhhhhh...I can't...hold out..." he gasped out, the pressure building to an unbearable level.
"It's okay, Love...go ahead...it's so big...oh Tsukune! TSUKUNE!" Moka yelled out at the top of her lungs.
"Oh Moka...MOKA!"
Convulsing from the simultaneous, powerful climaxes, they both collapsed from exhaustion. Holding each other closer, the pair felt nearly inseparable. Unable to form a comprehensive response, the couple just continued to embrace each other as their breathing and heart-rates returned somewhat to normal levels.
Before either teen had realized, they had fallen asleep, still cuddled up to each other. They both knew in their hearts that the growing bond between themselves had indeed reinforced and was now completely unbreakable. No other yokai had the guts or sanity to interfere in their lives anymore, not unless they wished to be severely punished.
….
A few hours later, Moka awoke from her unintentional nap, turned over on her right side and admired her one-and-only blood-mate. It was now early evening and the cottage had grown cooler, due in fact to the now-setting sun.
She then climbed on top of him and started to gently kiss the side of his neck. The effect she was looking for was immediate as Tsukune opened his chocolate-brown eyes and was wondering where he was. He then noticed that his wonderful mate sitting on top of him and was placing, soft, wet kisses on his neck. He gently draped his arms around her nude body and gave her a loving squeeze.
"Good evening, sleepyhead" she teased.
"Good evening, gorgeous" he replied which caused her to blush bright pink at the unexpected compliment.
"Um Tsukune, I was wondering if you would like to – um – maybe go into the hot spring with me? It's gotten quite cool outside" she asked, her blush only intensifying.
"Um, sure Moka. That sounds like a great idea. I even brought a bathing suit...even though well, you know" he said as he was blushing now in turn.
"Thank you Tsukune. Why don't you meet me out there? I'll be out shortly as I have a – little surprise for you" Moka suggested, her cheeks still tinted light red.
"Oh um, sure Moka. No problem. I'll see you outside whenever you're ready" he said as she removed herself from on top of him so he could get himself prepared to meet her in the natural Onsen, located in the backyard behind the cottage.
….
Ten minutes later, Tsukune was soaking in the pretreated, bubbling waters of the natural hot spring and was waiting for Moka's arrival any minute now. He had bathed himself prior to entering the soothing waters and was now speculating on just what type of "surprise" his mate had in store for him.
A few minutes later, she answered his question and was wrapped in a white, cotton towel. Her knee-length, silver hair was pinned up as to not get damp from the specially-treated waters of the hot-springs.
"Hello Tsukune...um...ah...um."
"Hi Moka. Is anything wrong?" he wondered to himself as she was now fidgeting and twiddling her fingers as if something were bothering her, but he had no idea what it could be.
"Well, no not exactly. Um...well, I might as well just show you then" she said as she rapidly unwrapped the towel from around herself and stood at the edge of the hot-springs. She then tossed her towel into the chair next to her.
"Oh my Kami!" Tsukune shouted as he swiftly covered his nose as he felt a powerful nose-bleed coming on.
Moka was wearing a pastel-pink bikini underneath her towel and her face was now flush, due to embarrassment. It was the very same one she wore during their first summer vacation of their freshman year, just before they met and saved Ruby from up on Witch Hill.
"Does it suit me Tsukune? I've never worn one before, except when I was sealed by the Rosary" she explained as she walked into the bubbling waters and sat across from Tsukune who was rather turned on again. He just shook his head 'yes' in agreement and walked over to her side. Truthfully, Tsukune had no idea what else to say as this bikini reminded him of 'Outer' Moka.
He just shook his yes in agreement as she entered the warm, calming waters.
…..
He quickly recalled their freshman year, beach-side vacation as the memories bubbled to the surface. She looked even more amazing now, than she did two years ago.
"Oh Moka" he said as he knelt down in front of her and embraced her without warning. The platinum-trussed beauty returned the loving hug and pulled him even closer. She then realized he was lightly sobbing. Moka instantly knew through their blood-bond, why he was upset so suddenly.
"Oh Tsukune. I'm so sorry love. I forgot. I just – I just wanted to surprise you. Oh love" she replied, as a she too shared his heart-wrenching pain. They were connected through their bond of blood and would experience what the other was feeling, whenever they were in such close proximity.
Moka held her blood-mate very close and desperately wanted to console him, in anyway she could. She knew in her heart that he missed that side of her, as did she. But Tsukune accepted the fact that 'Outer Moka' wouldn't be coming back since the Rosary was destroyed beyond repair, last year by Alucard.
Tsukune also knew that a small part of her other half was still there and undoubtedly loved the true Moka with all his heart and soul, but it still hurt inside to some degree. He knew that he would never see that side of her ever again, even though 'Inner' Moka was just as sweet and caring as her missing half.
The Vampire princess had calmed down a great deal since they became mates and was in fact very loving and affectionate. Sure, she still loved to fight from time to time, but that's a whole, other story.
Moka then stood up and pulled Tsukune into her soft bosom and held him for all she was worth. She then started singing for him, praying silently that his mood would somehow improve.
How do I,
Get through the night without you?
If I had to live without you,
What kind of life would that be?
Oh, I...
I need you in my arms, need you to hold,
You're my world, my heart, my soul,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...good in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever...ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
Without you,
There'd be no sun in my sky,
There would be no love in my life,
There'd be no world left for me.
And I...
Baby I don't know what I would do,
I'd be lost if I lost you,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...real in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
Please tell me baby...
How do I go on?
If you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything,
I need you with me,
Baby don't you know that you're everything,
Real in my life?
And tell me now,
How do I live without you,
I want to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
...
As Moka finished her song for the one and only love of her life, she could detect his spirits had indeed lifted, due to her never-ending love and determination.
"Thanks, Moka. I'm feeling better now. And I still can't get over how beautiful your singing voice is. And well, that's my all-time favorite song now" he happily replied as he pulled back for a brief moment, gazed lovingly into her crimson eyes then slowly closed the short space between themselves and kissed her ever so passionately.
'Oh Tsukune, you really are the sweetest man I have ever met. I am so madly in love with you.'
Moka deepened their kiss as she poured all her feelings into this one, simple act of love, adoration, and affection for each other. His always honest, heartfelt compliment caused her already soaring emotions to spiral out of her grasp.
She then moaned erotically into his mouth as her toes curled from the continuous stimulation that caused her to become entirely lost in the moment.
Tsukune then lowered his arms from around her slender waist and began to massage her perfectly peach-shaped derriere which caused the vampiress to squeak with delight. Moka temporarily ceased their kiss as she was getting lightheaded somewhat from all the emotions that quickly overcame her.
"Tsukune...I do love you so much."
"And I love you so much, my beautiful Moka."
"Oh Tsukune..." she replied as she started to kiss him with more intensity.
A few minutes later, the couple broke their kiss before either passed out, due to lack of life-giving air.
Tsukune leaned down a bit and moved her bikini top out of the way for a moment, then lightly held her right breast with his left hand and proceeded to gently suckle on her nipple and teased it with his tongue. He simultaneously began to tenderly massage her left breast in small circles, with his free hand.
Moka got aroused immediately from her fiance's ministrations and softly moaned in ecstasy. She had to wrap her arms around his back, so she wouldn't collapse from the warm waves of pleasure that washed over her body, as she felt her wanton desire for her mate exponentially increase by the passing second.
Tsukune was in heaven. He heard his beautiful mate's desire in her groans of delight that boosted his arousal as well.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...ah...ahhh...ahhhngh...ahhh...Tsukune! Ahhh...more please! Ahhhh!" Moka begged as she closed her eyes, as she desired even more attention on her impressive bosom.
The carnal sounds he heard his mate call out, caused his manhood to throb and swell madly under the warm water.
Moka could feel his hot flesh brush up against her flat belly. She lowered her left hand under the surface of the Onsen and started to rub it lightly which caused his breath to hitch from the unexpected stimulation.
"Moka...ahhhh...oh Moka..." he called out, his breath coming out in short pants.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...I want...you now...please...I want you...now...love...oh Tsukune..." she pleaded in-between moans of arousal. The heat was becoming unbearable for the red-eyed, vampire maiden as her mind began to go blank from her mate's constant attention on her voluptuous breasts.
Tsukune picked her up and carried her out of the hot-springs, much to her surprise. She was completely caught off guard by the simple, chivalrous act that caused her to cutey blush. He walked them over to the chair where there towels were and quickly dried each other off. He then picked her up once again and carried her bridal style into the cottage.
...
After opening and closing the door behind himself, he brought her into the living-room and laid her down on the faux bear-skin rug, which was very soft against her bare skin.
Moka then crawled over to the switch which activated the gas-powered fireplace, as she was still a bit chilly from the crisp, mountain air. She quickly removed her bikini and placed it in front of the hearth so it would dry properly. Tsukune followed her example and discarded his navy blue swim trunks. Moka laid down once again and patted the spot next to her.
"Tsukune, please...keep me warm" she beseeched with a slight blush. Doing so as requested by his beautiful bride-to-be, he wrapped his caring arms around her and held her very close. The warmth of his body next to hers' increased her heart rate. She started to kiss him again as she was still quite sexually-excited considerably due to their foreplay while they shared the natural, outdoor Onsen.
"Tsukune...please...make love to me..." she whispered in-between kisses. He then reached over to his right wrist and removed his Rosary with his left hand. Moka gasped as his yokai was released. His now ruby-red eyes mirrored her own, She ran her slender fingers through his shaggy, silvery hair. The massaging sensation was very relaxing to the male vampire. He smiled warmly at his one-and-only mate as she nuzzled her face against his bare chest, furthering his increasing arousal.
Moka spread her sexy legs as her fiance' tenderly entered her warm sex. Moka gasped once more as his full length was enveloped by her already soaked flower, which resulted in her to arch her back and her eyes to roll back into her head.
"Ah, Tsukune...please...rub my breasts love" she asked once she ceased their embrace momentarily. Without saying a word, he did as requested by his one and only mate. Holding her huge bosom between his hands, he massaged them from the side which caused Moka to softly moan with desire.
"Tsukune...oohhh...ahhhhhn...feels...so...good...please, kiss my nipples again" she begged, her voice dripping with desire.
He then sat partially up and then started to lightly suckle on her nipples, taking turns on each one as the pink erogenous zones stiffened immediately. Moka's heartbeat and breathing increased due to the wonderful sensations that began to completely overwhelm her.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...more...ahhhh...more...love...oh kami..."
Moka moaned erotically as tingles of pleasure traveled down her spine and caused her toes to curl from the exquisite sensation. Waves of pure ecstasy washed over her body as the heat was becoming nearly impossible for the ruby-eyed vampiress to bear for much longer.
She suddenly arched her back once more, then climaxed explosively as the stimulation on her sensitive nipples increased. Tsukune sucked even harder as she moaned loudly with lustful delight.
Once her breathing returned to somewhat normal levels, Tsukune wrapped her in his caring arms, kissed her tenderly and felt the bond between themselves multiply by the passing second.
"Tsukune...please..." she whispered between the eager, soft kisses they exchanged.
'Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...ah-hhh...' she silently communicated through their ever-growing blood-bond.
'Oh Moka...you feel so good', Tsukune wordlessly replied likewise.
...
Slowly and steadily the vampire pair made passionate love by the light of the glowing fireplace well into the late hours of the night. The romantic ambiance added to their burning passions that seemed to have no end in sight. Moans of delight escaped both unsealed yokia's lips as they continued to writhe their bodies against each other for several hours on end.
As they became further aroused, Moka could sense the growing blood-lust in her mate. She then tenderly licked him on his neck, signaling to him it would be alright if he wanted to partake in some of her delectable blood. He in response repeated the act, as his fangs extended then slowly pierced her delicate neck, drinking in her wonderful ambrosia.
As Tsukune lapped up her blood in small, steady slurps, Moka's opened her mouth, then pierced his neck with her own fangs, and hungrily consumed her mate's blood in turn. Once more, the blood-bonding took effect as they drank one anothers' life-force in accord.
Memories of the past they shared between themselves and cemented their relationship even further.
Tsukune's rhythm increased gradually, as Moka moaned, her fangs still buried in his neck, as she continued to lap up his blood in small, tender slurps. The tickling sensation was too much for her love, which caused a groan of desire in the back of his throat to come forth.
'Ahhh...Tsukune...oh yes...please...now...ah-hhh...Tsukune!'
"Moka...ahh-hhh...ah-hhhh...Moka...I can't – hold – out...anymore!'
'It's okay, Tsukune...I'm ready, love...'
As Moka released her fangs from her mate's neck, she shuddered in the aftershocks of her most powerful orgasm ever, her voice resonating loudly off the living-room's walls, which caused all the windows to rattle likewise by her screams of pleasurable release.
As her back arched, Tsukune retracted his fangs, rapidly cleaned her neck with his tongue and sealed the puncture marks closed that would vanish shortly. A moment later, he released his hot seed inside her; his entire body trembled as he peaked forcibly.
Once Tsukune calmed himself down from hours of lovemaking with Moka, he replaced the Stirling silver crucifix onto the matching chain that was wrapped around his right wrist. He then collapsed next to her, as his human persona returned.
She held him next to her as she wrapped the bear-skin rug over themselves as they were still, very nude. Moka was feeling quite happy and entirely satisfied. She hummed a nameless tune as she just held her mate next to herself while he dozed off, as the evening's activities finally caught up to him.
"I love you Tsukune...sleep well my love."
"Mmm...love you too Moka" he mumbled, now half-asleep.
The vampire duo fell asleep next to each other, as they were lulled into the peaceful pull of slumber. Whatever the future held for them, they would face it together. Their vacation had now begun, and it was sure to be an unforgettable time for either of them.
...............
Author's Notes:
Wow. I worked on this chapter for pretty much the entire day. Nearly 9 hours. I realize it's kind of short, but I will be covering their "Vacation arc" for at least 3, maybe 4 chapters in total. The next one will not be out for at least a week as this once is actually 2 days early. Thank you all once again for your continued support.
Chapter 13 "Hokkaido Vacation, Part 1"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for a Lemon scene.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Drama / Romance / Hurt-Comfort
Moka and Tsukune are 19 years old.
…..
A/N: This story has just passed over 14,400 views as of this writing! Thank you everyone so much for your more-than-generous support in making this 'reboot' of mine quite popular ^_^
Not too bad for being online for only 90 days, as of this date. (Jan. 25, 2014)
…..
Previously from chapter 11:
Moka then got up and stood behind Tsukune, who was still sitting down. She gave him a small envelope that had 'Happy Birthday, Tsukune', in her handwriting, scribbled on the front.
"Happy birthday, Tsukune," she whispered to him. He then opened the simple envelope and found a small, brass key inside.
"Um, Moka. What's this for?"
"Oh, this is the key to our cottage in Hokkaido. We'll be going there for our week vacation, starting on June 29th. A week from today," she happily informed him.
He gave a wide grin upon hearing that wonderful news.
A vacation with Moka. Alone? In the mountains of Northern Japan? Hell yes!
…..
After their airplane arrived at Chitose International Airport, in Sapporo, they found their luggage and walked outside the terminal. Moka spotted then flagged down a yellow taxi cab and gave the driver the directions to their cottage in Chitose ward, Sapporo; which was roughly an hour drive from the airport and approximately thirty minutes from downtown.
It was already past two o'clock in the afternoon.
A short while after, the taxi driver drove up a narrow mountain road, barley wide enough for it to pass, but he eventually arrived at their vacation home safely. Once they pulled up in front of their vacation home, the driver placed the cab in park and shut the engine off.
He got out of the driver's seat and opened the trunk; and assisted the young couple to remove their luggage. After paying the driver, Moka and Tsukune walked up the short pathway to the cottage, carrying their bags.
"So Moka, this was your vacation home while growing up?" he wondered as they approached the huge abode.
"Yes, Tsukune. We took all our summer vacations here when I was younger. The area is quite mountainous, and the weather is mostly mild, even though the temperature can reach a high of around 89 degrees in the daytime. But most nights are quite cool; around 55 to 60 degrees, from time to time."
Tsukune was shocked at the size of the 'cottage', as Moka had called it.
It was easily over 5,000 square feet; nearly three times bigger than his parent's house.
"Moka, this is it?!" he shouted once they arrived at the front door.
'Oh, my Kami! It's like a mansion!' he mentally screamed.
"Yes, Tsukune. Is there something wrong?" the silver-haired beauty asked with a quirked brow at his sudden, vocal outburst.
"Um no, not really; I'm just surprised, that's all. I wasn't expecting it to be such a nice place" he replied as he sweat-dropped. Once he again he marveled at Moka's family and how wealthy they actually were.
There were several large shade trees surrounding the stone and mortar house, keeping it cool from the early summertime heat. The cabin was one story, with a large wooden door and a few windows in the front, covered with dark curtains to ward off the blazing sunlight.
After placing the key in the lock and opening it, he was surprised, yet again, upon seeing the furnishings inside. There were several microfiber chairs in the living room, with a large couch in the center facing a sixty-five inch LCD television. In front of the plush sofa was a long, rectangular-shaped, coffee table made from dark stained Oak. On the far right-hand wall was an old, stone fireplace with a bear-skin rug on the floor in front of it. He also noted that the cabin had central air conditioning as well.
To the far left was the dining room with a rectangular-shaped table made of the same dark wood with four, matching chairs.
Overhead hung a large round lamp. The kitchen was quite modern; with marble counter tops, an all-aluminum stove, sink, and a double-wide refrigerator stocked with a week's worth of food, beverages, and transfusion blood packets.
In the rear of the cabin were four bedrooms, each with a full-size bed, along with a decent sized bathroom at the end of the hallway. The master bedroom had a queen-sized pillow top bed, which would be their room for their holiday.
…..
"Wow, Moka. I'm kinda surprised how big this place is. I'm really glad that we came up here though. Thanks again," Tsukune commented after they had placed their luggage in their bedroom.
'Wow! This is gonna be great. It's so cozy up here.' he remarked to himself.
"Oh, it's no problem, Tsukune. I really wanted to come up here with you. We're going to have a great time, that much I can promise you," she happily replied as they sat on the huge couch in the living room.
After bathing together and changing their clothes from their two hour flight, Moka decided to give Tsukune a tour of the remainder of the property, which consisted of a large, half-acre, back yard with their own, private, natural hot spring, surrounded with a bamboo fence on three sides, several meters tall.
There was also a bathing area, located on the far left side, including a dozen, small LED lamps which surrounded the perimeter for nighttime bathing. A few wooden lounge chairs and several bamboo trees, complimented the relaxing atmosphere.
"Tsukune, I'm so looking forward to going in here with you very soon," she told him as he knelt down and examined the natural Onsen, which was already treated with the special blend of herbs for the vampire couple beforehand.
"Me, too. Moka. That sounds like a great plan," he answered, smiling from ear-to-ear.
"So Tsukune, what would you like to do now?" she inquired as they wandered around the neighboring area, hand-in-hand, with no particular destination in mind.
"Um, well, I'm getting kind of hungry. How about we have lunch soon?" he asked as they walked along a worn down pathway.
"Sure, Tsukune. What would you like to have?"
"Um, anything is fine, Moka" he replied with a bashful smile, still holding her hand.
"Okay, let's head back, so I can get started on lunch."
"Sure thing, Moka. After you," he gladly answered as he motioned for her to lead the way back to the cottage.
…..
Once they re-entered the cottage through the side entrance, Moka asked Tsukune to have a seat at the dining-room table while she prepared lunch for them in the kitchen. She wore a simple, yet cute apron, so she wouldn't get her outfit dirty while preparing their late-afternoon meal.
'Oh my Kami, she looks so cute today,' he mused while watching her fix their mid-day meal.
'I-I really am lucky to have her in my life…' he continued.
Once she was finished, she brought two plates to the wooden table and set them down in front of their seats. She had made two large, ham, turkey and Swiss-cheese sandwiches with honey mustard, along with a side of potato chips and a dill pickle wedge, along with two tall, chilled glasses of tomato juice to drink.
"Wow, Moka. This is really good! Thanks for the food!" Tsukune praised.
Now blushing, Moka smiled happily.
"Thank you very much, Tsukune. I'm glad that you like it" she replied with an adorable blush across her cheeks.
...
After they finished their lunch-time meal, Moka cleared the table and set the dishes in the automatic dishwasher.
"Thanks again for lunch Moka, it was really good," he told her as they now sat on the living-room couch once again. Now leaning shoulder to shoulder, she hugged him from the left.
"You're welcome, Tsukune."
"Moka."
"Tsukune."
"Moka."
"Would it be alright if we took a short nap, Tsukune? I'm still a bit sleepy from waking up so early this morning."
"Uh, yeah, sure thing, Moka. That's the one of the best ideas I've heard all day," he told her as they both stood up and made their way to the back of the house where their bedroom was located. Walking hand in hand, Moka quickly led the way.
After she closed the door behind herself, she turned around and held her fiancé closely, not wanting to let the sudden wave of strong feelings that enveloped her so suddenly end anytime soon. Kissing him passionately, she gently nudged him in reverse, then began undressing him slowly.
'Oh, Tsukune, I love you so much…Right now, I just want to feel you as close to me as possible…'
First his blue tee-shirt was hastily displaced to the carpeted floor below. She then unbuckled his leather belt and unbuttoned his khaki cargo pants, allowing gravity to bring them to follow his shirt. Stepping out of his displaced trousers, he sat down on the soft bed behind himself, sitting on his knees.
Moka then seductively removed her neon pink tee-shirt, inching it upward slowly and giving her fiancé a view of her flat, yet firm, abdomen.
'Oh my Kami, I never imagined Moka would ever strip for me...oh man...I'm getting so turned on right now,' the ebony-haired teen screamed to himself, growing more aroused by the passing second and was now fully pitching a tent in his black and white boxer shorts.
Moka continued teasing Tsukune as she now exposed her white bra that held her magnificent bosom firmly in place, which bounced lightly as she removed the remainder of her tee-shirt and tossed it to the floor. She then slowly shimmied her denim jeans past her curvy hips, turning around as she pulled them down past her voluptuous posterior. Now bending over, she allowed them to fall to the floor too.
"Moka...you are so beautiful," Tsukune whispered in a breathless tone as she stood up and turned around to face him once again. Now crawling on the bed, he got aroused even more-so, if that was even possible.
"Thank you, handsome," she slyly replied as she glomped him suddenly, and gently pushed him onto the plush bed.
…..
Now lying on the soft bedding, Tsukune motioned for Moka to lay her head on his shoulder.
"Mmmm...Tsukune. I really appreciate you coming up here with me. Just being here with you has made me very happy," she told him as a tear of joy trickled down her right cheek, landing on his chest.
"Moka...of course I would. I haven't been on any sort of vacation since I was younger, either...so, I'm just as happy as you are," he told her as she got up and gazed lovingly into his chestnut eyes. She smiled happily and suddenly captured his lips with her own, French kissing him feverishly as his sincere words reached her throbbing heart.
'Ah...Tsukune...I want you so much...ah...Kami...now...', the vampiress mentioned to herself.
As he held her firmly, he reached behind her back and unsnapped her bra, releasing her magnificent breasts. Moka then raised her chest slightly so as to allow him to slip the straps over her shoulders as he slid the thin straps down her arms. She ceased kissing him momentarily, so she could be completely free.
Tossing her loosened bra to the opposite side of the room, he now had an amazing view of the cleavage of her impressive bosom. Holding her breasts between his hands, he began massaging them from the side, which caused Moka to softly moan with love and desire to be touched even more-so by her blood-mate.
"Tsukune...ahhh-nnn...feels...so...good...please, kiss my nipples...love."
Leaning closer to her now, Tsukune placed both of her pink erogenous zones into his mouth and licked the nubs simultaneously, which in turn resulted in Moka to get further aroused. Carnal gasps of ecstasy escaped her pink, pouty lips, reverberating off the bedroom walls and causing his erection to swell in size.
Feeling it throb next to her belly, Moka began tenderly massaging it through his cotton boxers.
"Ah...Moka...you can...take these off...uhn...if you want...," he told her as he was getting turned on more with every heartbeat. Now sitting upon her knees, she bent down and grabbed either side of his underwear, pulled them down past his waist, down his legs, then tossed them to join their other articles of missing clothing.
Moka then hopped off the bed, rapidly removed her last piece of clothing: her white, cotton panties. Returning to Tsukune's side on the soft bed, she gently laid down on top of him. Tsukune wrapped her in his caring arms, kissed her tenderly and could feel the bond between themselves multiply by the passing second.
"Tsukune...I want...you...now...please" she whispered between the eager, soft kisses they exchanged.
Tsukune then sat up on the bed, then swapped positions with Moka.
...
Now lying her head on the squishy pillow, he hovered over her on his knees as she spread her sexy legs apart, inviting him to become one with her. As his throbbing manhood entered her warm sex, Moka gasped as they consummated their love once again.
'Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...Tsukune...I love you so much...'
Slowly and tenderly the couple made passionate love, growing much closer as the flaming romance of their union burned inside of them. Time seemed to slow down for the pair as they were consumed with complete affection and absolute devotion for one another. Their pounding hearts were in now beating in sync.
'Moka...you feel...so...warm...oh man...I'm gonna...any now...second...now...ah calm down...slower...slower...', Tsukune moaned as he slowed his pace, gently rocking against her as the warm tingles of pleasure continued to tingle down his spine.
Then without further warning he sank his sharp fangs into the tender, white flesh of her neck, causing Moka to experience her first intense orgasm of the afternoon.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...oh kami!", Moka bellowed as she arched her back, climaxed forcefully; which caused her toes to curl upwards; the bedding was now damp from her juices.
Wrapping her arms around him tighter, she silently asked him to cease momentarily as she was reeling from the explosive consummation that just ran throughout her entire body.
Which he did without any further petition.
"Tsukune...that was...oh my Kami...so good...ahhh...you actually wore me...out..." the crimson-eyed vampiress told him as she continued to hold him close, still joined at the hips.
"Uh, thanks Moka. Um...sorry, but I'm still...um..." he murmured in reply, nearly whimpering from restraining himself.
'Ugh! What the hell's wrong with me?! It's like I have no more self-control!' the ebony-haired vampire mentally scolded himself.
"You're welcome, Tsukune...I know, love. You're still quite...um...yes...I can feel you inside me...still hmm...hard...oh...ahhh...okay...I'm ready now...slowly again..."
'I'm so tired, yet we both want more! Our bond must be increasing in strength...Oh Kami, I want so much more, Tsukune! Oh, yes! Yes!', the vampiress wailed to herself as he continued their gentle lovemaking.
Doing as she requested, the pair continued making passionate love for the next hour or so, as Tsukune kept his promise as to keep a steady, yet slow, pace.
The pressure was soon becoming unbearable for the young man as he was holding himself back, as he endeavored to prolong their lovemaking even more.
"Ahhh...Moka...ahhhhhh...I can't...hold out..." he gasped out, the pressure building to an unbearable level.
"It's okay, Love...go ahead...it's so big...oh Tsukune! TSUKUNE!" Moka yelled out at the top of her lungs.
"Oh Moka...MOKA!"
Convulsing from the simultaneous, powerful climaxes, they both collapsed from exhaustion. Holding each other closer, the pair felt nearly inseparable. Unable to form a comprehensive response, the couple just continued to embrace each other as their breathing and heart-rates returned somewhat to normal levels.
Before either teen had realized, they had fallen asleep, still cuddled up to each other. They both knew in their hearts that the growing bond between themselves had indeed reinforced and was now completely unbreakable. No other yokai had the guts or sanity to interfere in their lives anymore, not unless they wished to be severely punished.
….
A few hours later, Moka awoke from her unintentional nap, turned over on her right side and admired her one-and-only blood-mate. It was now early evening and the cottage had grown cooler, due in fact to the now-setting sun.
She then climbed on top of him and started to gently kiss the side of his neck. The effect she was looking for was immediate as Tsukune opened his chocolate-brown eyes and was wondering where he was. He then noticed that his wonderful mate sitting on top of him and was placing, soft, wet kisses on his neck. He gently draped his arms around her nude body and gave her a loving squeeze.
"Good evening, sleepyhead" she teased.
"Good evening, gorgeous" he replied which caused her to blush bright pink at the unexpected compliment.
"Um Tsukune, I was wondering if you would like to – um – maybe go into the hot spring with me? It's gotten quite cool outside" she asked, her blush only intensifying.
"Um, sure Moka. That sounds like a great idea. I even brought a bathing suit...even though well, you know" he said as he was blushing now in turn.
"Thank you Tsukune. Why don't you meet me out there? I'll be out shortly as I have a – little surprise for you" Moka suggested, her cheeks still tinted light red.
"Oh um, sure Moka. No problem. I'll see you outside whenever you're ready" he said as she removed herself from on top of him so he could get himself prepared to meet her in the natural Onsen, located in the backyard behind the cottage.
….
Ten minutes later, Tsukune was soaking in the pretreated, bubbling waters of the natural hot spring and was waiting for Moka's arrival any minute now. He had bathed himself prior to entering the soothing waters and was now speculating on just what type of "surprise" his mate had in store for him.
A few minutes later, she answered his question and was wrapped in a white, cotton towel. Her knee-length, silver hair was pinned up as to not get damp from the specially-treated waters of the hot-springs.
"Hello Tsukune...um...ah...um."
"Hi Moka. Is anything wrong?" he wondered to himself as she was now fidgeting and twiddling her fingers as if something were bothering her, but he had no idea what it could be.
"Well, no not exactly. Um...well, I might as well just show you then" she said as she rapidly unwrapped the towel from around herself and stood at the edge of the hot-springs. She then tossed her towel into the chair next to her.
"Oh my Kami!" Tsukune shouted as he swiftly covered his nose as he felt a powerful nose-bleed coming on.
Moka was wearing a pastel-pink bikini underneath her towel and her face was now flush, due to embarrassment. It was the very same one she wore during their first summer vacation of their freshman year, just before they met and saved Ruby from up on Witch Hill.
"Does it suit me Tsukune? I've never worn one before, except when I was sealed by the Rosary" she explained as she walked into the bubbling waters and sat across from Tsukune who was rather turned on again. He just shook his head 'yes' in agreement and walked over to her side. Truthfully, Tsukune had no idea what else to say as this bikini reminded him of 'Outer' Moka.
He just shook his yes in agreement as she entered the warm, calming waters.
…..
He quickly recalled their freshman year, beach-side vacation as the memories bubbled to the surface. She looked even more amazing now, than she did two years ago.
"Oh Moka" he said as he knelt down in front of her and embraced her without warning. The platinum-trussed beauty returned the loving hug and pulled him even closer. She then realized he was lightly sobbing. Moka instantly knew through their blood-bond, why he was upset so suddenly.
"Oh Tsukune. I'm so sorry love. I forgot. I just – I just wanted to surprise you. Oh love" she replied, as a she too shared his heart-wrenching pain. They were connected through their bond of blood and would experience what the other was feeling, whenever they were in such close proximity.
Moka held her blood-mate very close and desperately wanted to console him, in anyway she could. She knew in her heart that he missed that side of her, as did she. But Tsukune accepted the fact that 'Outer Moka' wouldn't be coming back since the Rosary was destroyed beyond repair, last year by Alucard.
Tsukune also knew that a small part of her other half was still there and undoubtedly loved the true Moka with all his heart and soul, but it still hurt inside to some degree. He knew that he would never see that side of her ever again, even though 'Inner' Moka was just as sweet and caring as her missing half.
The Vampire princess had calmed down a great deal since they became mates and was in fact very loving and affectionate. Sure, she still loved to fight from time to time, but that's a whole, other story.
Moka then stood up and pulled Tsukune into her soft bosom and held him for all she was worth. She then started singing for him, praying silently that his mood would somehow improve.
How do I,
Get through the night without you?
If I had to live without you,
What kind of life would that be?
Oh, I...
I need you in my arms, need you to hold,
You're my world, my heart, my soul,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...good in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever...ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
Without you,
There'd be no sun in my sky,
There would be no love in my life,
There'd be no world left for me.
And I...
Baby I don't know what I would do,
I'd be lost if I lost you,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...real in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
Please tell me baby...
How do I go on?
If you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything,
I need you with me,
Baby don't you know that you're everything,
Real in my life?
And tell me now,
How do I live without you,
I want to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
...
As Moka finished her song for the one and only love of her life, she could detect his spirits had indeed lifted, due to her never-ending love and determination.
"Thanks, Moka. I'm feeling better now. And I still can't get over how beautiful your singing voice is. And well, that's my all-time favorite song now" he happily replied as he pulled back for a brief moment, gazed lovingly into her crimson eyes then slowly closed the short space between themselves and kissed her ever so passionately.
'Oh Tsukune, you really are the sweetest man I have ever met. I am so madly in love with you.'
Moka deepened their kiss as she poured all her feelings into this one, simple act of love, adoration, and affection for each other. His always honest, heartfelt compliment caused her already soaring emotions to spiral out of her grasp.
She then moaned erotically into his mouth as her toes curled from the continuous stimulation that caused her to become entirely lost in the moment.
Tsukune then lowered his arms from around her slender waist and began to massage her perfectly peach-shaped derriere which caused the vampiress to squeak with delight. Moka temporarily ceased their kiss as she was getting lightheaded somewhat from all the emotions that quickly overcame her.
"Tsukune...I do love you so much."
"And I love you so much, my beautiful Moka."
"Oh Tsukune..." she replied as she started to kiss him with more intensity.
A few minutes later, the couple broke their kiss before either passed out, due to lack of life-giving air.
Tsukune leaned down a bit and moved her bikini top out of the way for a moment, then lightly held her right breast with his left hand and proceeded to gently suckle on her nipple and teased it with his tongue. He simultaneously began to tenderly massage her left breast in small circles, with his free hand.
Moka got aroused immediately from her fiance's ministrations and softly moaned in ecstasy. She had to wrap her arms around his back, so she wouldn't collapse from the warm waves of pleasure that washed over her body, as she felt her wanton desire for her mate exponentially increase by the passing second.
Tsukune was in heaven. He heard his beautiful mate's desire in her groans of delight that boosted his arousal as well.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...ah...ahhh...ahhhngh...ahhh...Tsukune! Ahhh...more please! Ahhhh!" Moka begged as she closed her eyes, as she desired even more attention on her impressive bosom.
The carnal sounds he heard his mate call out, caused his manhood to throb and swell madly under the warm water.
Moka could feel his hot flesh brush up against her flat belly. She lowered her left hand under the surface of the Onsen and started to rub it lightly which caused his breath to hitch from the unexpected stimulation.
"Moka...ahhhh...oh Moka..." he called out, his breath coming out in short pants.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...I want...you now...please...I want you...now...love...oh Tsukune..." she pleaded in-between moans of arousal. The heat was becoming unbearable for the red-eyed, vampire maiden as her mind began to go blank from her mate's constant attention on her voluptuous breasts.
Tsukune picked her up and carried her out of the hot-springs, much to her surprise. She was completely caught off guard by the simple, chivalrous act that caused her to cutey blush. He walked them over to the chair where there towels were and quickly dried each other off. He then picked her up once again and carried her bridal style into the cottage.
...
After opening and closing the door behind himself, he brought her into the living-room and laid her down on the faux bear-skin rug, which was very soft against her bare skin.
Moka then crawled over to the switch which activated the gas-powered fireplace, as she was still a bit chilly from the crisp, mountain air. She quickly removed her bikini and placed it in front of the hearth so it would dry properly. Tsukune followed her example and discarded his navy blue swim trunks. Moka laid down once again and patted the spot next to her.
"Tsukune, please...keep me warm" she beseeched with a slight blush. Doing so as requested by his beautiful bride-to-be, he wrapped his caring arms around her and held her very close. The warmth of his body next to hers' increased her heart rate. She started to kiss him again as she was still quite sexually-excited considerably due to their foreplay while they shared the natural, outdoor Onsen.
"Tsukune...please...make love to me..." she whispered in-between kisses. He then reached over to his right wrist and removed his Rosary with his left hand. Moka gasped as his yokai was released. His now ruby-red eyes mirrored her own, She ran her slender fingers through his shaggy, silvery hair. The massaging sensation was very relaxing to the male vampire. He smiled warmly at his one-and-only mate as she nuzzled her face against his bare chest, furthering his increasing arousal.
Moka spread her sexy legs as her fiance' tenderly entered her warm sex. Moka gasped once more as his full length was enveloped by her already soaked flower, which resulted in her to arch her back and her eyes to roll back into her head.
"Ah, Tsukune...please...rub my breasts love" she asked once she ceased their embrace momentarily. Without saying a word, he did as requested by his one and only mate. Holding her huge bosom between his hands, he massaged them from the side which caused Moka to softly moan with desire.
"Tsukune...oohhh...ahhhhhn...feels...so...good...please, kiss my nipples again" she begged, her voice dripping with desire.
He then sat partially up and then started to lightly suckle on her nipples, taking turns on each one as the pink erogenous zones stiffened immediately. Moka's heartbeat and breathing increased due to the wonderful sensations that began to completely overwhelm her.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...more...ahhhh...more...love...oh kami..."
Moka moaned erotically as tingles of pleasure traveled down her spine and caused her toes to curl from the exquisite sensation. Waves of pure ecstasy washed over her body as the heat was becoming nearly impossible for the ruby-eyed vampiress to bear for much longer.
She suddenly arched her back once more, then climaxed explosively as the stimulation on her sensitive nipples increased. Tsukune sucked even harder as she moaned loudly with lustful delight.
Once her breathing returned to somewhat normal levels, Tsukune wrapped her in his caring arms, kissed her tenderly and felt the bond between themselves multiply by the passing second.
"Tsukune...please..." she whispered between the eager, soft kisses they exchanged.
'Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...ah-hhh...' she silently communicated through their ever-growing blood-bond.
'Oh Moka...you feel so good', Tsukune wordlessly replied likewise.
...
Slowly and steadily the vampire pair made passionate love by the light of the glowing fireplace well into the late hours of the night. The romantic ambiance added to their burning passions that seemed to have no end in sight. Moans of delight escaped both unsealed yokia's lips as they continued to writhe their bodies against each other for several hours on end.
As they became further aroused, Moka could sense the growing blood-lust in her mate. She then tenderly licked him on his neck, signaling to him it would be alright if he wanted to partake in some of her delectable blood. He in response repeated the act, as his fangs extended then slowly pierced her delicate neck, drinking in her wonderful ambrosia.
As Tsukune lapped up her blood in small, steady slurps, Moka's opened her mouth, then pierced his neck with her own fangs, and hungrily consumed her mate's blood in turn. Once more, the blood-bonding took effect as they drank one anothers' life-force in accord.
Memories of the past they shared between themselves and cemented their relationship even further.
Tsukune's rhythm increased gradually, as Moka moaned, her fangs still buried in his neck, as she continued to lap up his blood in small, tender slurps. The tickling sensation was too much for her love, which caused a groan of desire in the back of his throat to come forth.
'Ahhh...Tsukune...oh yes...please...now...ah-hhh...Tsukune!'
"Moka...ahh-hhh...ah-hhhh...Moka...I can't – hold – out...anymore!'
'It's okay, Tsukune...I'm ready, love...'
As Moka released her fangs from her mate's neck, she shuddered in the aftershocks of her most powerful orgasm ever, her voice resonating loudly off the living-room's walls, which caused all the windows to rattle likewise by her screams of pleasurable release.
As her back arched, Tsukune retracted his fangs, rapidly cleaned her neck with his tongue and sealed the puncture marks closed that would vanish shortly. A moment later, he released his hot seed inside her; his entire body trembled as he peaked forcibly.
Once Tsukune calmed himself down from hours of lovemaking with Moka, he replaced the Stirling silver crucifix onto the matching chain that was wrapped around his right wrist. He then collapsed next to her, as his human persona returned.
She held him next to her as she wrapped the bear-skin rug over themselves as they were still, very nude. Moka was feeling quite happy and entirely satisfied. She hummed a nameless tune as she just held her mate next to herself while he dozed off, as the evening's activities finally caught up to him.
"I love you Tsukune...sleep well my love."
"Mmm...love you too Moka" he mumbled, now half-asleep.
The vampire duo fell asleep next to each other, as they were lulled into the peaceful pull of slumber. Whatever the future held for them, they would face it together. Their vacation had now begun, and it was sure to be an unforgettable time for either of them.
...............
Author's Notes:
Wow. I worked on this chapter for pretty much the entire day. Nearly 9 hours. I realize it's kind of short, but I will be covering their "Vacation arc" for at least 3, maybe 4 chapters in total. The next one will not be out for at least a week as this once is actually 2 days early. Thank you all once again for your continued support.
leonard267 wrote...
Had a sense of deja vu when reading your work. Of course, this is because of the fact that the first chapter was the exact same as that of a previous thread. May I know where should I continue and how is this different from the previous thread.I understand that you have included an explanation that this version of the thread takes into account new developments in the original work. I would like to know what changes are those exactly.
That said, I can read it easily, big fonts, wonderful to read, easy language and I am really impressed! Quite the same as my remarks on the previous thread.
Of course, even my criticism of it remains the same! It appears that every chapter is a reaffirmation of their love for each other. I haven't read it thoroughly but I think there isn't much conflict between them is there apart from the two Lizar-dmen causing trouble, is there? I would think that living with a blood sucking monster or having an extremely beautiful lady as your partner would present quite a lot of problems that can be further explored.
Thanks for the feedback but I already explained the differences between this and my original fan-fic which is on hiatus. I even wrote 3 new chapters that were not in my original story. I appreciate your feedback but I believe I have explained my story and it's gotten a lot of feedback on fan-fiction. Plus has over 15,000 views as of today.
As for 'conflicts' it's really not my strong suit. Sorry but I really don't know how to write that to well. Maybe in future chapters there might be but for right now it is what it is.
Thanks for the feedback once again :)
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 12 "Arigatou Gozaimasu" (Omake)
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for an intense Lemon scene towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 19
…
A/N: I decided to do an Omake (bonus) chapter before delving into their vacation arc.
Sunday, June 23.
...
Moka wanted to do something extra special for her blood-mate, to show her genuine gratitude for everything he's ever done for her. It's true she had told him on several occasions since they had become mates just before Graduation nearly two month ago, but she really wanted to show him her heartfelt appreciation for all he's ever done.
His mother Kasumi told him the kitchen was "off-limits" for the day and that she and Koji would be going out to do some shopping for the week and out to dinner afterward. That would mean the recently-engaged couple had the entire house to themselves for the remainder of the evening.
While the vampire princess was occupied in the kitchen, she lovingly asked Tsukune to "stay put" in the living room and watch some television.
"Are you sure you don't need any help in there?" he asked his lovely fiance' as he quite curious to what exactly she was preparing for dinner anyway.
"No, I'm fine love. If I do need any help, I'll be sure to ask you, okay?" she happily replied.
"Oh, okay Moka" he replied with a warm smile.
"Tsukune, I have learned a few, new, recipes that I'd really like to try out" she answered as she sat on the plush couch next to him and gave him a quick hug.
"You're right Moka. I guess you do have a point. I'm really looking forward to see what you've made, then."
"I'll let you know when dinner's ready so just relax for a while, okay?" she said with a wink and a smile then headed back into the kitchen and closed the door behind herself.
"Uh, sure Moka" he said once she disappeared into the kitchen.
…
'Well, she seems to be blending in well here in the human world, after all...Plus she looks really cute in an apron' he told himself with a goofy grin, remembering the first time he saw her wearing one when she had made them breakfast just after she had moved into his home to live with him on a permanent basis.
He then turned his attention back to the TV that hung on the living-room wall. He really wasn't much into watching television, since he had no access to one during his entire three year stint at the Academy. Electronic devices didn't work behind the barrier that relied on any type of 'signal' in order to function, like televisions, cellphones or FM radios.
While he was immersed in his own little world, Moka exited the kitchen and was carrying several plates and serving utensils. Tsukune quickly noticed that, hopped off the sofa and headed towards the dining-room table.
"Here, Moka. Let me help" he said to his mate/ fiance' who was setting the plates down.
"Oh, thank you Tsukune" she replied with a blush as she handed them to him.
"Not a problem, beautiful" he said with a smile, which in turn caused her to blush even more at the simple act.
"Tsukune, dinner will be ready in a few minutes, so why don't you have a seat?" she said as she turned back towards the kitchen.
"Oh, okay Moka. Do you need any more help?" he asked as he finally sat down at the table which was now set for two.
"I'm good, thank you though love. I can manage. But if I do, I promise I'll let you know" she replied as she walked back into the kitchen after opening and closing the door behind herself once again.
"Okay" he said to nobody in particular since he was now alone in the dining-room.
'I wonder what she made? Well, whatever it is, I just know it will be perfect' he silently thought to himself.
...
While the ebony-haired young man was lost in his fantasies once more, approximately five minutes later, the kitchen door slowly opened as Moka was carrying a large serving tray that was covered with a silver-colored top of some sorts, then set it in the middle of the wooden table.
"Dinner is served" she announced just as she removed the silver top that covered the tray.
"Wow!" Tsukune replied in utter shock and awe once he saw how much food she had prepared.
Angel Hair Pasta with homemade seafood sauce made with fresh shrimp and lobster, herb-crusted crab cakes, fresh, steamed mixed-vegetables, Caesar salad and homemade Italian bread.
"I hope that you're hungry, Tsukune" Moka said once she sat down on his left and joined him at the table.
"Uh, yeah, Moka. I've got to say; I am definitely impressed that you made all this" he replied as he reached over and held her right hand and gave it a gentle squeeze.
"Oh, thank you love. It only took me most of the day, but I'm glad that you like it. So please, dig in."
"You're welcome, Moka" he said as she started to serve her first.
"Oh, thank you love" she replied as he handed the plate back to her.
"Not a problem" he answered as he served himself next.
"Itadakimasu!" the pair said in unison as they started to eat.
"Hey Moka, this is simply amazing, I have to say, that you've definitely outdone yourself this time" he said in-between mouthfuls of the home-cooked meal made with love by his wonderful fiance'.
"Oh, thank you love. It's just my way of saying thank you for everything" she said with a bright smile, her cheeks tinted pink from his honest compliment.
"Uh, no problem Moka. It's really delicious" he said with a smile.
"I'm very glad that you like it" she replied with a bright, pink, blush from his honest compliment.
'That's all I want, Tsukune. For you to always smile and be happy' the vampiress thought to herself as a warm smile tugged at her plump lips.
Whenever she caught Tsukune glance in her direction, she would blush even more-so than usual.
...
'Oh, Moka. I do love you and I still can't believe that we ended up together. I'm just glad that we both survived the whole Fairy Tale thing last year, even though you nearly died' he thought to himself as the sad memory bubbled to the surface. Moka of course immediately picked up on the mournful thoughts through their ever-growing blood-bond.
"Tsukune?" she asked to break him out of his melancholy mood.
"Yes, Moka?" he replied.
"Is everything okay? I can tell that something's bothering you so suddenly" she stated.
"I was just thinking, I guess...about last year...when you almost died..." he sadly answered.
"Oh, Tsukune...I know it was very difficult on you, but I'm fine, thanks to Akua and you of course. I just can't believe she actually helped me out after...all that. But I'm glad she did" Moka replied as she reached across the table and held his left hand.
"It was Moka. I was really scared. I really don't know what I would've done if I had lost you. After everything we went through..." he grimly replied. Moka then stood up from her seat, walked behind her still-seated mate, wrapped her arms lovingly around his shoulders and gave him a firm hug.
"Tsukune, everything turned out fine. I was honestly scared too, but I somehow knew it would work out for us. It just had to. I'm just thankful knowing that we can now live in peace, away from all that. I can guarantee you that neither one of us are going to die anytime soon. Maybe a few thousand years from now, but that is a very long time, far in the future, if that even. I do love you more than I ever thought possible. And we are blood-mates, okay?" she told him as she attempted to lighten his mood.
"Thanks, Moka. You're right as usual. I guess I just needed to hear that...so thanks again" he replied as they temporarily ceased their embrace and continued eating their dinner in comfortable silence once Moka sat down again, just content to be in each others' company.
"Anytime, my love. Oh, I have dessert for you too, afterward" she said with a wink that caused him to furiously blush bright red.
"Oh, okay...thanks" he simply replied, still flushed in his face.
Once the pair eventually finished their dinner, Tsukune helped his blood-mate clear the table and loaded all the dishes in the dishwasher. She then stored all the remaining food away in the refrigerator.
"Tsukune, why don't you go upstairs to your room and make yourself comfortable? I'll bring the dessert up to you in a few minutes, okay?" she asked her mate as they were finally done in the kitchen a few minutes later. Unsure of that unusual request, he happily agreed to do as asked by his fiance' and made his way to his bedroom located upstairs.
…
Once he reached his room, he did as instructed by Moka and made himself cozy on the bed they shared occasionally.
'I wonder what Moka made for dessert?' he quietly asked himself as visions of all types of sweet treats filtered throughout his mind. Several minutes later his query was answered as Moka entered his room wearing nothing but a crimson nighty, with a black, fuzzy trim, that hugged her flawless body.
Tsukune swiftly covered his nose with both hands as he was on the verge of suffering a major nose-bleed. Moka seductively sauntered towards the bed with a huge grin on her lips.
He then noticed she was carrying a white and silver can of chocolate-flavored whipped-cream in her right hand.
"Moka?"
"Yes love?" she replied as she then crawled onto the bed with an adorable smile accompanied with a healthy blush across her features.
"Um, you mentioned dessert downstairs..."
"Yes, I did Tsukune. I'm your dessert" she boldly confessed as her face burned bright pink from her brave declaration.
"Oh. OH!" he said as he finally understood what she meant by her rather cryptic statement.
"But before that...I want to thank you – for everything, Tsukune."
…
The vampiress continued:
"Thank you for coming to my rescue on the first day of our freshman year. Thank you for being my first...I mean the first human that I ever drank blood from, directly. It is true I was quite addicted to your blood at the beginning, but the more I got to know you through my other half, and the way you treated me like a normal girl, even though I was far from 'normal', really meant a lot to me. Thank you for always standing by my side, no matter how impossible the odds were. Thank you for being my very first, true friend and for remaining my very best friend. Thank you for loving me and accepting me for who I am and for never turning your back on me. Thank you for coming to my rescue from Fairy Tale. Thank you for staying by my side, even when I was at death's door. Thank you for saving my life with your blood. Thank you for always being there for me, when nobody else was. Thank you for keeping me from being lonely. Thank you for being my blood-mate and now my fiancee'. And most importantly, thank you for always being yourself" Moka said as she bowed her head out of sincere gratitude. She then hugged him firmly and gently pushed him onto the bed.
Tsukune was for the first time in a very long time, rendered absolutely speechless. He continued to hold her for quite a while, not wanting to end their moment of bonding.
"Moka?" he asked as he attempted to gain her attention a few minutes afterward.
"Yes, Tsukune?" she answered with a bright smile and looked up at him.
"Um, you're welcome" he replied.
"Oh, Tsukune. I meant every word of it. I wouldn't be here today if it weren't for us meeting on the first day of high school" she told him with absolute conviction in her voice. He knew she was being completely truthful through their bond of blood.
"Well, thank you too, Moka. For saving my life countless times, for always being by my side and for being my very best friend, too. And for saying yes when I asked you to marry me. I never dreamed in my life, that I would end up being engaged to the most beautiful woman in the entire world...and I mean it" he replied as he hugged her firmly.
"Oh Tsukune...you're very welcome too my love. I guess we really were meant to be together in more ways than one. So, um...would you like some dessert now?" she asked as they ended their hug.
"Um, sure. There's always room for dessert ", he happily answered as Moka sat up on her knees, removed her red negligee and tossed it on the nightstand to the right of the bed.
She was of course, nude as the day she was born.
Tsukune then got more than an eyeful of her Goddess-like, impressive physique. Large, ample breasts that defied gravity, her sexy, flat abdomen, shapely thighs and very sexy, well-toned legs. Moka Akashiya was without a doubt exceedingly gorgeous.
She proceeded to lie down flat on her back and handed the can of chocolate whipped cream to her one and only mate.
Tsukune then shook the can a few times and proceeded to remove the red, plastic top then set it on the nightstand to the right of the bed.
"Um, okay...now what?" he asked Moka who was all smiles now.
"Um, you can put the whipped cream anywhere you like and then...lick...it off. I read about it in one of those 'woman's' magazines." she bashfully explained, her cheeks now a bright shade of red.
…
"Oh, I see...okay...um...here I go" he said unsure of what was going on, but decided to play along. The then pointed and squeezed the can's nozzle against her nipples, around in tiny circles creating a small mound of frothy, chocolatey, delight on her sensitive flesh.
The cool cream caused her pink erogenous zones to stiffen immediately.
"Ahhhh..." she said from the coldness that covered her areola and now-solid nipples, which were more prominent due to the stimulation.
'Oh Kami...this is so embarrassing...but it kind of feels good', Moka told herself.
Seeing his mate look so 'appetizing' resulted in him becoming very aroused. He then leaned down to her left breast and slowly licked the chocolate cream away.
"Ahhh-nnn...Tsukune...oh Kami!" she bellowed out rather boisterously. She dug her nails into the soft comforter as the sensation was becoming far too great for her to bear any longer. He then focused his attention on her right breast once her left nipple was clean and repeated the erotic action, with his warm tongue.
"Ahhhhh! More Tsukune...oh Kami...more please" she begged, as her voice echoed off the bedroom walls. Tsukune then served a small amount into her belly button and licked it clean.
"Aha...Tsukune...that..haha...tickles!" she clamorously objected as she let out a hearty laugh.
He then moved down to her womanhood and squeezed a generous serving of the sweet-tasting cream onto her flower.
"Ahhhngh...Oh Tsukune...please...lick it off...it's so cold..." she whimpered.
Doing so as asked by his mate, he placed his moist tongue on top of the whipped cream and ever-so slowly licked it off, careful to graze the top of her clitoris which was now solid and begging for a lot more attention. It twitched with approval from his loving gesture.
"OH KAMI! AHHHH! AHHHHHHH! OH TSUKUNE! MORE TSUKUNE!" she shouted obstreperously, as he gently licked her womanhood once again and caused her to experience a rather powerful orgasm that shook throughout her entire body, which also soaked the bedding a bit and caused her toes to curl in her release.
Now panting heavily, she asked for him to cease, momentarily anyway. He then set the half-empty can of cream on the nightstand after replacing its red, plastic top.
Now laying down to her left, he sat up and laid on his right side, head propped up on the palm of his hand. He then gently traced the fingers of his left hand across the top of her flat belly. Moka started to snicker from the tickling sensation that slowly overcame her.
"Hahahaha...hehehehehee...Ts-u-ku-ne...please...that tickles!" she protested.
"Oh you want more?" he asked with a hint of teasing in his voice.
"No...hahahaaaa...more...tickles..." Moka replied between fits of giggles. He then stopped his playful antics, pulled her into his arms and held her very close. He noticed that her body was still warm from all the attention, but realized it was completely normal.
'Oh kami...she feels so good...oh Moka...' he thought silently.
"Sorry about that, but I like your laugh, Moka. It's quite adorable" he told her as her heartbeat and breathing eventually returned to normal levels.
…
"Ah, it's okay...um, thanks. And Um, Tsukune...um, you have quite a talented tongue, I must admit. It felt really good," she told him as she swiftly buried her head in the crook of his neck as she realized what she had said aloud finally sunk in was quite embarrassing to no end, but truthful as well.
Now blushing himself he just simply muttered, "Thanks" and held her even firmer than before. Moka was still feeling quite aroused from Tsukune's affections. She then breathed into his right ear, which shot goosebumps up and down his arms and back.
"Mmmm...you smell so good, love. I can't help myself" she seductively told him as her breath was now coming out in short, labored pants. She then slowly opened her mouth. As her canines tenderly pierced his neck, she drank his sweet, intoxicating blood in short, and steady slurps.
"Moka" he said, as his lover had all her attention focused on satisfying her vampiric desires. As his mind started to fog over, his fangs extended as he then returned the act of intimacy and adoration by drinking her blood is slow, deep slurps, which in turn further cemented their blood-bond.
Once her blood lust was assuaged, Moka then released her mate's neck and quickly licked the small puncture marks clean, which sealed them up.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...oh Kami! Please...I need...you now! Please, Tsukune!" she told him as she was getting considerably aroused even further than she was just minutes ago.
Moka then started to massage his already-erect, throbbing manhood with her free hand through his red and blue boxer shorts, and caused it to pulse madly from the continuous attention. He then retracted his fangs and licked her neck clean of any traces of remaining blood.
Moka then rapidly sat up and pounced on her mate and basically pinned him to the bed. She then placed each of her hands between his boxer and hips and slowly removed the restrictive article of remaining clothing and tossed it aside.
She then saw his manhood. It was twitching energetically, just from her close proximity.
"Oh my. Somebody's looking rather...energetic. I really want to play now" she announced as she gave it one last stroke with her dainty fingers which caused it to throb, even more-so.
Moka then leaned down, sat on his thighs, then placed her huge bosom on top of his manhood and slid it between her soft, yet warm mounds of flesh.
'Oh Kami...that feels so good...Moka' he quietly mentioned to himself. He could not believe what Moka was doing to him and never considered she would do something like this in a thousand years.
…
Tsukune watched his mate as she slowly gave him great pleasure, but was fighting back the urge to release his seed any moment now. Sensing his immediate dilemma, she ceased her ministrations on his manhood, sat on top of it and slid it up and down, against her womanhood which was moist from their half hour of foreplay.
"Tsukune, please. I need you now, inside of me" she pleaded, with an adorable pout that caused his heart-rate to soar and his blood to boil.
"Moka...yes" he simply replied, giving her the go-ahead. She then grabbed his engorged member and slowly slid it into her already soaked flower.
"Oh Tsukune...oh Kami...it's so big...ahhhh ahhhhhh...ah...oh...Tsukune...ahhhh" she stated boldly as she acclimated to the increase in his size and girth. Tsukune noted how warm and inviting she felt.
"Oh Moka...you feel so amazing...oh Kami..." he replied as the vampiress slowly increased her rhythm as she rode his manhood like a professional cowgirl. Her impressively sized 38D breasts bounced to and fro, in accord to her constant pounding of flesh against flesh.
"Ahhhh...ahhhhh...oh Tsukune...oh...ah aha ah ha ah ahhhh ahhhhh...oh Kami...more!" she bellowed as she then leaned back, her hips hammering her mate's fully-erect manhood like a jackhammer. Tsukune had to firmly hold her hands, before she leaned back any further.
Her relentless rocking lasted for quite a while, her voice becoming louder as the minutes slowly ticked by. Tsukune's bed bounced up and down violently off the carpeted floor as the vampiress continued her rapid assault on his manhood.
Moka then leaned forward and placed her generous bosom above Tsukune's face. He released her hands and focused his attention on her nipples that were quite swollen and hard as small, pink pebbles. He then gently grabbed her wobbling breasts and suckled both of her nipples simultaneously. She then bucked her hips even harder, as she was on the brink of a powerful orgasm.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...any...second...more...oh Kami...more...ahhhh ahhhh ahhh ahhhh ahhhh ahhhhh ahh ah ah AHHHHHHHHHHH AAHHHHHHHHH AAHHHHHHHHHHHH!"
Moka slumped forward as she climaxed forcefully, her legs shuddered from the powerful sensation that ultimately left her weak in the knees, and rendered her temporarily immobile for the time being.
"Ah Moka...oh Kami...ahha haa ahh AAhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh!"
Tsukune peaked a few seconds later that caused her body to quiver from his equally intense climax, as he filled her with his warm seed. He continued to hold her in his strong arms for quite a while, so their bodies could recuperate from their hour-long love making that had brought them even closer.
…
"Hey, Moka?" he inquired as he felt her quite down now and was now snuggled on his chest and was using him as a pillow.
She squirmed a bit, not too thrilled with being bothered right now, as she was quite content just being where she truly belonged: in the arms of her fiancee' and blood-mate.
"Um, Tsukune..." she cooed in return a moment later as she finally opened her eyes.
"Yes, beautiful?" he inquired.
"M-mmm, that was incredible" she beamed happily as she was still embraced by her one and only love.
"Yes, I agree. How are you feeling now?" he asked as she then sat up and straddled his lap, still both nude from their intense activity that satisfied their mutual desire to be closer to each other.
"I feel wonderful. Fantastic, actually" she bubbly answered with a cuter-than-usual smile.
"I'm glad to hear that. I feel pretty good myself" he replied as he held her closer.
"Tsukune? I know it's early, but would it be alright if – I slept in here with you tonight? I don't want to be away from you..." she asked with a rather cute pout.
"Of course Moka. I – um would like that too."
"Thank you Tsukune. I love you."
"Anytime Moka. I love you too."
With that the happy couple covered themselves with the soft sheets and snuggled even closer to each other. Whatever the future held, they knew that as long as they had each other, they would face it together.
…..
Author's Notes: I know I was supposed to start the "Hokkaido Vacation" arc but I need to do some more research. It will be similar to the same arc in my original fan-fic which this one is loosely based upon but will be rather different in several areas. I should be starting it soon and will have the first chapter out in about a week from now.
Chapter 12 "Arigatou Gozaimasu" (Omake)
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for an intense Lemon scene towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 19
…
A/N: I decided to do an Omake (bonus) chapter before delving into their vacation arc.
Sunday, June 23.
...
Moka wanted to do something extra special for her blood-mate, to show her genuine gratitude for everything he's ever done for her. It's true she had told him on several occasions since they had become mates just before Graduation nearly two month ago, but she really wanted to show him her heartfelt appreciation for all he's ever done.
His mother Kasumi told him the kitchen was "off-limits" for the day and that she and Koji would be going out to do some shopping for the week and out to dinner afterward. That would mean the recently-engaged couple had the entire house to themselves for the remainder of the evening.
While the vampire princess was occupied in the kitchen, she lovingly asked Tsukune to "stay put" in the living room and watch some television.
"Are you sure you don't need any help in there?" he asked his lovely fiance' as he quite curious to what exactly she was preparing for dinner anyway.
"No, I'm fine love. If I do need any help, I'll be sure to ask you, okay?" she happily replied.
"Oh, okay Moka" he replied with a warm smile.
"Tsukune, I have learned a few, new, recipes that I'd really like to try out" she answered as she sat on the plush couch next to him and gave him a quick hug.
"You're right Moka. I guess you do have a point. I'm really looking forward to see what you've made, then."
"I'll let you know when dinner's ready so just relax for a while, okay?" she said with a wink and a smile then headed back into the kitchen and closed the door behind herself.
"Uh, sure Moka" he said once she disappeared into the kitchen.
…
'Well, she seems to be blending in well here in the human world, after all...Plus she looks really cute in an apron' he told himself with a goofy grin, remembering the first time he saw her wearing one when she had made them breakfast just after she had moved into his home to live with him on a permanent basis.
He then turned his attention back to the TV that hung on the living-room wall. He really wasn't much into watching television, since he had no access to one during his entire three year stint at the Academy. Electronic devices didn't work behind the barrier that relied on any type of 'signal' in order to function, like televisions, cellphones or FM radios.
While he was immersed in his own little world, Moka exited the kitchen and was carrying several plates and serving utensils. Tsukune quickly noticed that, hopped off the sofa and headed towards the dining-room table.
"Here, Moka. Let me help" he said to his mate/ fiance' who was setting the plates down.
"Oh, thank you Tsukune" she replied with a blush as she handed them to him.
"Not a problem, beautiful" he said with a smile, which in turn caused her to blush even more at the simple act.
"Tsukune, dinner will be ready in a few minutes, so why don't you have a seat?" she said as she turned back towards the kitchen.
"Oh, okay Moka. Do you need any more help?" he asked as he finally sat down at the table which was now set for two.
"I'm good, thank you though love. I can manage. But if I do, I promise I'll let you know" she replied as she walked back into the kitchen after opening and closing the door behind herself once again.
"Okay" he said to nobody in particular since he was now alone in the dining-room.
'I wonder what she made? Well, whatever it is, I just know it will be perfect' he silently thought to himself.
...
While the ebony-haired young man was lost in his fantasies once more, approximately five minutes later, the kitchen door slowly opened as Moka was carrying a large serving tray that was covered with a silver-colored top of some sorts, then set it in the middle of the wooden table.
"Dinner is served" she announced just as she removed the silver top that covered the tray.
"Wow!" Tsukune replied in utter shock and awe once he saw how much food she had prepared.
Angel Hair Pasta with homemade seafood sauce made with fresh shrimp and lobster, herb-crusted crab cakes, fresh, steamed mixed-vegetables, Caesar salad and homemade Italian bread.
"I hope that you're hungry, Tsukune" Moka said once she sat down on his left and joined him at the table.
"Uh, yeah, Moka. I've got to say; I am definitely impressed that you made all this" he replied as he reached over and held her right hand and gave it a gentle squeeze.
"Oh, thank you love. It only took me most of the day, but I'm glad that you like it. So please, dig in."
"You're welcome, Moka" he said as she started to serve her first.
"Oh, thank you love" she replied as he handed the plate back to her.
"Not a problem" he answered as he served himself next.
"Itadakimasu!" the pair said in unison as they started to eat.
"Hey Moka, this is simply amazing, I have to say, that you've definitely outdone yourself this time" he said in-between mouthfuls of the home-cooked meal made with love by his wonderful fiance'.
"Oh, thank you love. It's just my way of saying thank you for everything" she said with a bright smile, her cheeks tinted pink from his honest compliment.
"Uh, no problem Moka. It's really delicious" he said with a smile.
"I'm very glad that you like it" she replied with a bright, pink, blush from his honest compliment.
'That's all I want, Tsukune. For you to always smile and be happy' the vampiress thought to herself as a warm smile tugged at her plump lips.
Whenever she caught Tsukune glance in her direction, she would blush even more-so than usual.
...
'Oh, Moka. I do love you and I still can't believe that we ended up together. I'm just glad that we both survived the whole Fairy Tale thing last year, even though you nearly died' he thought to himself as the sad memory bubbled to the surface. Moka of course immediately picked up on the mournful thoughts through their ever-growing blood-bond.
"Tsukune?" she asked to break him out of his melancholy mood.
"Yes, Moka?" he replied.
"Is everything okay? I can tell that something's bothering you so suddenly" she stated.
"I was just thinking, I guess...about last year...when you almost died..." he sadly answered.
"Oh, Tsukune...I know it was very difficult on you, but I'm fine, thanks to Akua and you of course. I just can't believe she actually helped me out after...all that. But I'm glad she did" Moka replied as she reached across the table and held his left hand.
"It was Moka. I was really scared. I really don't know what I would've done if I had lost you. After everything we went through..." he grimly replied. Moka then stood up from her seat, walked behind her still-seated mate, wrapped her arms lovingly around his shoulders and gave him a firm hug.
"Tsukune, everything turned out fine. I was honestly scared too, but I somehow knew it would work out for us. It just had to. I'm just thankful knowing that we can now live in peace, away from all that. I can guarantee you that neither one of us are going to die anytime soon. Maybe a few thousand years from now, but that is a very long time, far in the future, if that even. I do love you more than I ever thought possible. And we are blood-mates, okay?" she told him as she attempted to lighten his mood.
"Thanks, Moka. You're right as usual. I guess I just needed to hear that...so thanks again" he replied as they temporarily ceased their embrace and continued eating their dinner in comfortable silence once Moka sat down again, just content to be in each others' company.
"Anytime, my love. Oh, I have dessert for you too, afterward" she said with a wink that caused him to furiously blush bright red.
"Oh, okay...thanks" he simply replied, still flushed in his face.
Once the pair eventually finished their dinner, Tsukune helped his blood-mate clear the table and loaded all the dishes in the dishwasher. She then stored all the remaining food away in the refrigerator.
"Tsukune, why don't you go upstairs to your room and make yourself comfortable? I'll bring the dessert up to you in a few minutes, okay?" she asked her mate as they were finally done in the kitchen a few minutes later. Unsure of that unusual request, he happily agreed to do as asked by his fiance' and made his way to his bedroom located upstairs.
…
Once he reached his room, he did as instructed by Moka and made himself cozy on the bed they shared occasionally.
'I wonder what Moka made for dessert?' he quietly asked himself as visions of all types of sweet treats filtered throughout his mind. Several minutes later his query was answered as Moka entered his room wearing nothing but a crimson nighty, with a black, fuzzy trim, that hugged her flawless body.
Tsukune swiftly covered his nose with both hands as he was on the verge of suffering a major nose-bleed. Moka seductively sauntered towards the bed with a huge grin on her lips.
He then noticed she was carrying a white and silver can of chocolate-flavored whipped-cream in her right hand.
"Moka?"
"Yes love?" she replied as she then crawled onto the bed with an adorable smile accompanied with a healthy blush across her features.
"Um, you mentioned dessert downstairs..."
"Yes, I did Tsukune. I'm your dessert" she boldly confessed as her face burned bright pink from her brave declaration.
"Oh. OH!" he said as he finally understood what she meant by her rather cryptic statement.
"But before that...I want to thank you – for everything, Tsukune."
…
The vampiress continued:
"Thank you for coming to my rescue on the first day of our freshman year. Thank you for being my first...I mean the first human that I ever drank blood from, directly. It is true I was quite addicted to your blood at the beginning, but the more I got to know you through my other half, and the way you treated me like a normal girl, even though I was far from 'normal', really meant a lot to me. Thank you for always standing by my side, no matter how impossible the odds were. Thank you for being my very first, true friend and for remaining my very best friend. Thank you for loving me and accepting me for who I am and for never turning your back on me. Thank you for coming to my rescue from Fairy Tale. Thank you for staying by my side, even when I was at death's door. Thank you for saving my life with your blood. Thank you for always being there for me, when nobody else was. Thank you for keeping me from being lonely. Thank you for being my blood-mate and now my fiancee'. And most importantly, thank you for always being yourself" Moka said as she bowed her head out of sincere gratitude. She then hugged him firmly and gently pushed him onto the bed.
Tsukune was for the first time in a very long time, rendered absolutely speechless. He continued to hold her for quite a while, not wanting to end their moment of bonding.
"Moka?" he asked as he attempted to gain her attention a few minutes afterward.
"Yes, Tsukune?" she answered with a bright smile and looked up at him.
"Um, you're welcome" he replied.
"Oh, Tsukune. I meant every word of it. I wouldn't be here today if it weren't for us meeting on the first day of high school" she told him with absolute conviction in her voice. He knew she was being completely truthful through their bond of blood.
"Well, thank you too, Moka. For saving my life countless times, for always being by my side and for being my very best friend, too. And for saying yes when I asked you to marry me. I never dreamed in my life, that I would end up being engaged to the most beautiful woman in the entire world...and I mean it" he replied as he hugged her firmly.
"Oh Tsukune...you're very welcome too my love. I guess we really were meant to be together in more ways than one. So, um...would you like some dessert now?" she asked as they ended their hug.
"Um, sure. There's always room for dessert ", he happily answered as Moka sat up on her knees, removed her red negligee and tossed it on the nightstand to the right of the bed.
She was of course, nude as the day she was born.
Tsukune then got more than an eyeful of her Goddess-like, impressive physique. Large, ample breasts that defied gravity, her sexy, flat abdomen, shapely thighs and very sexy, well-toned legs. Moka Akashiya was without a doubt exceedingly gorgeous.
She proceeded to lie down flat on her back and handed the can of chocolate whipped cream to her one and only mate.
Tsukune then shook the can a few times and proceeded to remove the red, plastic top then set it on the nightstand to the right of the bed.
"Um, okay...now what?" he asked Moka who was all smiles now.
"Um, you can put the whipped cream anywhere you like and then...lick...it off. I read about it in one of those 'woman's' magazines." she bashfully explained, her cheeks now a bright shade of red.
…
"Oh, I see...okay...um...here I go" he said unsure of what was going on, but decided to play along. The then pointed and squeezed the can's nozzle against her nipples, around in tiny circles creating a small mound of frothy, chocolatey, delight on her sensitive flesh.
The cool cream caused her pink erogenous zones to stiffen immediately.
"Ahhhh..." she said from the coldness that covered her areola and now-solid nipples, which were more prominent due to the stimulation.
'Oh Kami...this is so embarrassing...but it kind of feels good', Moka told herself.
Seeing his mate look so 'appetizing' resulted in him becoming very aroused. He then leaned down to her left breast and slowly licked the chocolate cream away.
"Ahhh-nnn...Tsukune...oh Kami!" she bellowed out rather boisterously. She dug her nails into the soft comforter as the sensation was becoming far too great for her to bear any longer. He then focused his attention on her right breast once her left nipple was clean and repeated the erotic action, with his warm tongue.
"Ahhhhh! More Tsukune...oh Kami...more please" she begged, as her voice echoed off the bedroom walls. Tsukune then served a small amount into her belly button and licked it clean.
"Aha...Tsukune...that..haha...tickles!" she clamorously objected as she let out a hearty laugh.
He then moved down to her womanhood and squeezed a generous serving of the sweet-tasting cream onto her flower.
"Ahhhngh...Oh Tsukune...please...lick it off...it's so cold..." she whimpered.
Doing so as asked by his mate, he placed his moist tongue on top of the whipped cream and ever-so slowly licked it off, careful to graze the top of her clitoris which was now solid and begging for a lot more attention. It twitched with approval from his loving gesture.
"OH KAMI! AHHHH! AHHHHHHH! OH TSUKUNE! MORE TSUKUNE!" she shouted obstreperously, as he gently licked her womanhood once again and caused her to experience a rather powerful orgasm that shook throughout her entire body, which also soaked the bedding a bit and caused her toes to curl in her release.
Now panting heavily, she asked for him to cease, momentarily anyway. He then set the half-empty can of cream on the nightstand after replacing its red, plastic top.
Now laying down to her left, he sat up and laid on his right side, head propped up on the palm of his hand. He then gently traced the fingers of his left hand across the top of her flat belly. Moka started to snicker from the tickling sensation that slowly overcame her.
"Hahahaha...hehehehehee...Ts-u-ku-ne...please...that tickles!" she protested.
"Oh you want more?" he asked with a hint of teasing in his voice.
"No...hahahaaaa...more...tickles..." Moka replied between fits of giggles. He then stopped his playful antics, pulled her into his arms and held her very close. He noticed that her body was still warm from all the attention, but realized it was completely normal.
'Oh kami...she feels so good...oh Moka...' he thought silently.
"Sorry about that, but I like your laugh, Moka. It's quite adorable" he told her as her heartbeat and breathing eventually returned to normal levels.
…
"Ah, it's okay...um, thanks. And Um, Tsukune...um, you have quite a talented tongue, I must admit. It felt really good," she told him as she swiftly buried her head in the crook of his neck as she realized what she had said aloud finally sunk in was quite embarrassing to no end, but truthful as well.
Now blushing himself he just simply muttered, "Thanks" and held her even firmer than before. Moka was still feeling quite aroused from Tsukune's affections. She then breathed into his right ear, which shot goosebumps up and down his arms and back.
"Mmmm...you smell so good, love. I can't help myself" she seductively told him as her breath was now coming out in short, labored pants. She then slowly opened her mouth. As her canines tenderly pierced his neck, she drank his sweet, intoxicating blood in short, and steady slurps.
"Moka" he said, as his lover had all her attention focused on satisfying her vampiric desires. As his mind started to fog over, his fangs extended as he then returned the act of intimacy and adoration by drinking her blood is slow, deep slurps, which in turn further cemented their blood-bond.
Once her blood lust was assuaged, Moka then released her mate's neck and quickly licked the small puncture marks clean, which sealed them up.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...oh Kami! Please...I need...you now! Please, Tsukune!" she told him as she was getting considerably aroused even further than she was just minutes ago.
Moka then started to massage his already-erect, throbbing manhood with her free hand through his red and blue boxer shorts, and caused it to pulse madly from the continuous attention. He then retracted his fangs and licked her neck clean of any traces of remaining blood.
Moka then rapidly sat up and pounced on her mate and basically pinned him to the bed. She then placed each of her hands between his boxer and hips and slowly removed the restrictive article of remaining clothing and tossed it aside.
She then saw his manhood. It was twitching energetically, just from her close proximity.
"Oh my. Somebody's looking rather...energetic. I really want to play now" she announced as she gave it one last stroke with her dainty fingers which caused it to throb, even more-so.
Moka then leaned down, sat on his thighs, then placed her huge bosom on top of his manhood and slid it between her soft, yet warm mounds of flesh.
'Oh Kami...that feels so good...Moka' he quietly mentioned to himself. He could not believe what Moka was doing to him and never considered she would do something like this in a thousand years.
…
Tsukune watched his mate as she slowly gave him great pleasure, but was fighting back the urge to release his seed any moment now. Sensing his immediate dilemma, she ceased her ministrations on his manhood, sat on top of it and slid it up and down, against her womanhood which was moist from their half hour of foreplay.
"Tsukune, please. I need you now, inside of me" she pleaded, with an adorable pout that caused his heart-rate to soar and his blood to boil.
"Moka...yes" he simply replied, giving her the go-ahead. She then grabbed his engorged member and slowly slid it into her already soaked flower.
"Oh Tsukune...oh Kami...it's so big...ahhhh ahhhhhh...ah...oh...Tsukune...ahhhh" she stated boldly as she acclimated to the increase in his size and girth. Tsukune noted how warm and inviting she felt.
"Oh Moka...you feel so amazing...oh Kami..." he replied as the vampiress slowly increased her rhythm as she rode his manhood like a professional cowgirl. Her impressively sized 38D breasts bounced to and fro, in accord to her constant pounding of flesh against flesh.
"Ahhhh...ahhhhh...oh Tsukune...oh...ah aha ah ha ah ahhhh ahhhhh...oh Kami...more!" she bellowed as she then leaned back, her hips hammering her mate's fully-erect manhood like a jackhammer. Tsukune had to firmly hold her hands, before she leaned back any further.
Her relentless rocking lasted for quite a while, her voice becoming louder as the minutes slowly ticked by. Tsukune's bed bounced up and down violently off the carpeted floor as the vampiress continued her rapid assault on his manhood.
Moka then leaned forward and placed her generous bosom above Tsukune's face. He released her hands and focused his attention on her nipples that were quite swollen and hard as small, pink pebbles. He then gently grabbed her wobbling breasts and suckled both of her nipples simultaneously. She then bucked her hips even harder, as she was on the brink of a powerful orgasm.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...any...second...more...oh Kami...more...ahhhh ahhhh ahhh ahhhh ahhhh ahhhhh ahh ah ah AHHHHHHHHHHH AAHHHHHHHHH AAHHHHHHHHHHHH!"
Moka slumped forward as she climaxed forcefully, her legs shuddered from the powerful sensation that ultimately left her weak in the knees, and rendered her temporarily immobile for the time being.
"Ah Moka...oh Kami...ahha haa ahh AAhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh!"
Tsukune peaked a few seconds later that caused her body to quiver from his equally intense climax, as he filled her with his warm seed. He continued to hold her in his strong arms for quite a while, so their bodies could recuperate from their hour-long love making that had brought them even closer.
…
"Hey, Moka?" he inquired as he felt her quite down now and was now snuggled on his chest and was using him as a pillow.
She squirmed a bit, not too thrilled with being bothered right now, as she was quite content just being where she truly belonged: in the arms of her fiancee' and blood-mate.
"Um, Tsukune..." she cooed in return a moment later as she finally opened her eyes.
"Yes, beautiful?" he inquired.
"M-mmm, that was incredible" she beamed happily as she was still embraced by her one and only love.
"Yes, I agree. How are you feeling now?" he asked as she then sat up and straddled his lap, still both nude from their intense activity that satisfied their mutual desire to be closer to each other.
"I feel wonderful. Fantastic, actually" she bubbly answered with a cuter-than-usual smile.
"I'm glad to hear that. I feel pretty good myself" he replied as he held her closer.
"Tsukune? I know it's early, but would it be alright if – I slept in here with you tonight? I don't want to be away from you..." she asked with a rather cute pout.
"Of course Moka. I – um would like that too."
"Thank you Tsukune. I love you."
"Anytime Moka. I love you too."
With that the happy couple covered themselves with the soft sheets and snuggled even closer to each other. Whatever the future held, they knew that as long as they had each other, they would face it together.
…..
Author's Notes: I know I was supposed to start the "Hokkaido Vacation" arc but I need to do some more research. It will be similar to the same arc in my original fan-fic which this one is loosely based upon but will be rather different in several areas. I should be starting it soon and will have the first chapter out in about a week from now.
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 11 "Birthday Boy"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for an intense Lemon scene.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka is now 19, and Tsukune is still 18.
…..
A/N: After much debating and putting this chapter off, I decided to do another time-skip. The original idea I had wasn't coming along too well and I had put it off long enough. So I will now be covering Tsukune's birthday. This is my longest chapter ever. 11,300 words.
Plus this fan-fic has passed just over 11,780 views! Thank you everyone so much for the amazing support! :)
…..
Saturday, June 22. Tsukune's Birthday.
Moka awoke rather early today, as it was her fiance's 19th birthday. She wanted to do something unpredicted since he went out of his way to make her birthday in May extra special by not only taking her to Tokyo Disney, but asking for her hand in marriage in such a romantic way on the Ferris Wheel.
Since Moka was now considered family by the elder Aono's, they insisted that she call them 'Mom' and 'Dad', much to the silver-haired vampiress's happiness.
She had decided to wear a unique outfit just for this special event. Embarrassing or not, she consciously decided to wear it for the morning at least. With a little assistance from Tsukune's mom Kasumi, she cooked breakfast, even though her cooking skills were top-notch and she had learned to make several types of new dishes in the time since living with the Aono family.
"Thank you mom, for all your help," she told Kasumi as she placed the items on the wooden bed tray as she made her way out of the kitchen, ready to wake Tsukune up with one of several birthday surprises that she had in store for him. After all, she had promised that he would have a birthday he would soon never forget.
"You're welcome, Moka dear. I'm always more than happy to help you out whenever you need it," Kasumi happily replied as Moka ascended the stairwell.
After setting the tray on the hallway floor, Moka gently tapped on Tsukune's door in order to gain his attention. Even though they had grown much closer since they became engaged, they occasionally slept in their own rooms from time to time. As she heard her blood-mate rustling in his bed, she opened the door then bent down to retrieve the tray with the love-filled breakfast she had prepared for him.
Thankfully, Moka had gradually learned to accept living in the human world and was learning to blend in, despite the fact she could no longer seal up her true form via a Rosary. But Tsukune just told her if anyone asked, that she was simply 'cosplaying', regarding her unusual hair and eye color.
"Good morning, Master," she announced as Tsukune sat up, as he attempted to wipe the sleep from his chocolate brown eyes. Unsure if he was still dreaming or not, he blinked in disbelief upon seeing Moka's remarkable choice of clothing. She was sporting her French Maid cosplay she had bought a while back during Golden Week: black with white trim, the short, frilly skirt showing off her creamy, shapely thighs. The scoop neckline presented her generous bosom without giving too much away.
Tsukune nearly went into cardiac arrest as she slowly approached his bed, as she was grinning happily from ear to ear. Moka's knee-length silver hair was pulled back into a simple pony tail.
'Kami, she looks so beautiful this morning!', the teen thought breathlessly.
His breakfast consisted of homemade French toast, sausage patties, buttermilk pancakes, scrambles eggs, and a tall glass of orange juice.
Tsukune was captivated by her radiant presence and was unable to form a comprehensive response. After setting the tray down on his lap, she leaned over and gave him a peck on his cheek. Once his brain processed the current situation, he finally spoke up, deciding to play along.
"Good morning, Moka. What's all this?"
"This is your breakfast in bed, Master."
"Master?"
"Yes, Master. Today is your birthday. Do you not like my outfit?", she responded as she curtsied, pulling on either side of her thigh-length black frilly skirt, giving him quite the show.
"Uh, yes. You look really cute, Moka."
"Oh, thank you very much, Master," she answered as her cheeks were now tinted pink.
'Oh Tsukune...you are so sweet', the vampiress thought, her blush only deepening.
"Please eat up before your breakfast gets cold, Master."
"Ah, sure. Thanks for the food, Moka. It looks wonderful."
"You're welcome, Master. And thank you," she answered, standing off to the side as he began devouring his breakfast in bed.
"Wow, Moka, the French Toast is amazing. You've really outdone yourself this time."
"Thank you, Master. I'm glad it's to your liking," she replied bowing out of appreciation but still remaining in character, even though she desperately held herself back, wanting to cover him in kisses.
'Wow, Moka looks really cute this morning. Well, cuter than usual. I can't believe she actually wore her Maid cosplay this morning. But I'm really happy right now. And she even made me breakfast in bed...well, she did tell me that she'd make my birthday unforgettable. I wonder what else she has in store for me today?', the birthday boy mused, still enjoying his morning meal his beautiful fiance' made for him today.
After devouring his amazing breakfast, Moka then removed the wooden bed tray and set it down next to the bed on the door. She then slowly walked toward Tsukune, who was still sitting up in his bed, and sat on his right hand side, hugging him rather firmly.
"Thank you, Moka. You really surprised me, and I'm quite happy right now," he told her after they ended their embrace.
"You're welcome, Tsukune...I mean Master," she adorably replied, her cheeks still flush from his heart-felt compliment.
'That's all I ever want, Tsukune…to see you happy and smiling the way you are now…'
"Don't mention it, Moka. I meant every word of it."
"Oh, it's no problem, Master. I'm really happy to hear that. Is there anything else I can get you before I return the dishes to the kitchen?"
Thinking it over for a few seconds, he realized that they haven't sucked each others blood for nearly a month, instead relying on transfusion packets that were safely stored in the locked refrigerator in the basement.
"Um, if it's alright, I could really use some of your sweet blood. Seeing you dressed this way has made me quite thirsty," he boldly admitted as his face grew flush.
'Ugh! I can't believe I actually just said that out loud!', the ebony-haired teen yelled to himself.
Upon hearing his rather forward statement caused the young vampiress to cutely blush in turn.
"Of course, Master. There's really no need to ask. After-all, we are blood mates," Moka tenderly informed him as she stood up. Turning around then, she sat on her knees and crawled on all fours closer to him on his bed, all the while a smile parted her pink lips.
The vampiress then sat on his lap, faced him, and wrapped her arms gently around his shoulders as she leaned her head to the right, giving Tsukune easy access to her tender white flesh.
As he returned her hug, he gently placed his left hand on the back of her head, while his right hand wrapped around to the small of her back. He then sank his extended fangs into her neck, causing Moka's breath to hitch.
'Ah! Tsukune...oh Kami...ah...'
Closing her eyes, her body began to quickly heat up as he lapped her precious blood in short, slow slurps. She attempted to hold back the moans that suddenly escaped her pouty lips, which caused Tsukune to get immediately aroused as he groaned with pleasure upon hearing her tantalizing voice ring in his ears.
"Mmmm...ahhhhhh...Tsukune...anh...aha-nnnhhh...oh...ahhhhnn...", she breathed, moaning lightly in the back of her throat as the tingles of pleasure immediately ran down her spine, causing her toes to curl.
As Tsukune continued to suckle her blood, the young vampires quickly became further aroused. They were interrupted unexpectedly by somebody knocking rather loudly on his bedroom door.
Tsukune quickly retracted his fangs and licked Moka's neck clean, sealing the puncture marks, which vanished in a few seconds due to her vampire powers being unsealed for the past month or so.
"Moka? Are you in there?", came Kasumi's voice from the other side of the door.
"Yes, Mom. Tsukune's just about finished eating. I'll bring the dishes down in a moment," Moka quickly answered.
"Okay, Moka. I'll be going out for a while to do some shopping. I'll be back in an hour or so."
"Thanks, take your time, Mom," Moka replied. She was now standing next to the bed, her face flushed from nearly being caught in a somewhat compromising and very intimate situation.
'How embarrassing!' she thought in humiliation.
After a few awkward moments of silence, Moka walked towards the door, opened it up, and bent down to pick up the tray of dishes.
"Master, please get dressed soon. I will wait for you downstairs."
"Um, okay Moka. Thanks again for breakfast," Tsukune beamed.
"You're welcome, Master. Please take your time. I will see you after you're ready."
Once Moka vanished down the hallway, Tsukune closed his bedroom door, then rummaged through his closet for about ten minutes searching for something comfortable to wear, seeing that today was the first official day of Summer. After picking out a pair of khaki cargo pants and a light aqua green, short-sleeved, cotton shirt he made his way to the restroom to shave and brush his teeth.
He wondered to himself just exactly what other surprises Moka had in store for him, but he really didn't mind, seeing that he would be spending the majority of the day with her. It didn't matter to him where they went, or what they did, as long as they were together.
Roughly twenty minutes later, Tsukune made his way downstairs. He then discovered that his father Koji had already left for the day, most likely having to attend to some unfinished work at his office downtown. It was now barely ten o'clock in the morning. His mother was still absent as well, saying earlier that she had some grocery shopping to attend to.
"Moka? Where are you?" he announced as he wandered into the kitchen, half expecting to find her in there."I'm in the living-room, Tsukune," she cheerily replied.
Moka was sitting on the couch with her legs crossed and was wearing a frilly, white blouse, along with a denim mini skirt that accentuated her amazingly well-toned legs. Seeing that she was no longer dressed in her Maid cosplay, resulted in Tsukune feeling somewhat dejected.
Picking up immediately on his dismay, Moka stood up and hugged him rather firmly.
"I'm sorry Tsukune, but being dressed like that in public would be too embarrassing. But I do have a few surprises for you, though," she told him while still embracing him.
"It's okay, Moka. You looked really adorable wearing it. I was very happy and quite surprised. Thank you, once again," he replied as they continued to bond.
"Thank you, Tsukune, and you're welcome. I'll be taking you somewhere special today, but no hints, okay?" Moka told him.
Curious as he was now, he didn't press the issue any further as he had complete faith in his wonderful fiancé.
"No problem, Moka. I'm really looking forward to spending my birthday with you. So wherever we go, I'm happy to just be with you."
She then pulled back for a moment and gazed into his chocolate brown eyes, then closed the distance between them and kissed him passionately. A few minutes later both teens were begging for oxygen.
"So shall we head out now?", Moka inquired as Tsukune was still reeling from their awe-inspiring kiss.
"Uh, yeah. Sure thing Moka," he happily replied as they made their way to the doorway to put their shoes on.
Moka was now sporting a cute pair of navy blue pumps that matched her denim mini skirt, as well as a color-coordinated purse. Even though Tsukune had grown taller than her, she was now his height while wearing her sexy heels, that showed off her gorgeous legs.
After opening and closing the door behind themselves, Tsukune locked the door and shoved the key into his cargo pants pocket.
After walking for about fifteen minutes, they eventually reached the bullet train station. Moka found the route they needed to take to Akihabara. After purchasing two round trip tickets, the couple sat on a bench off to the side while waiting for the train to arrive.
"So Moka, where are we going exactly?", Tsukune inquired curiously.
"Oh, that's still a surprise, Tsukune. But I will let you know that it's not too far from Tokyo."
"Oh, okay. Well wherever it is, I'm looking forward to it, Moka."
'Honestly, I'm so excited that I can hardly sit still!', the birthday boy screamed in his mind.
Leaning her head on Tsukune's shoulder, the ruby-eyed vampiress just smiled, and then laughed adorably. Moments later, the overhead announcement indicated the train would be arriving shortly.
Once the bullet train slowed to a complete halt, dozens of passengers rushed out onto the platform, going off to who knows where. As soon as the sea of people dispersed, Tsukune slipped his hand into Moka's and made a beeline to the closest window seat.
Thankfully, the train car was not too full. Sitting down now, the young couple sat in blissful silence, admiring the rapidly passing scenery.
Tsukune was quite content knowing that he and Moka had gotten much closer over the past month, especially seeing that they were now engaged to be married, but would decide on a date later in time.
Of course, his parents were somewhat surprised at the sudden announcement, but they agreed to it, seeing that Tsukune and Moka had, indeed, been in love with each other for over two years now.
Roughly thirty-five minutes later, the overhead announcement brought the duo out of their thoughts, indicating they were arriving at their destination.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS: NOW APPROACHING JR WEST AKIHABARA STATION. PLEASE BRING ALL BELONGINGS WITH YOU WHILE EXITING THE TRAIN. ONCE AGAIN, NOW APPROACHING AKIHABARA STATION. THANK YOU."
Once the train slowed down and came to a full stop, Moka and Tsukune rose out of their seats and made their way, hand-in-hand, to the nearest exit. As soon as the automatic door opened, they stepped onto the platform and off to the side, looking for the nearest exit. Upon finding it, Moka told him to follow her, which he happily did without any further petition.
Accompanying Moka through the turnstiles, Tsukune could tell that she was very excited with whatever plans, or schemes, she had in store for him today.
"So Moka, where are we going today?" he inquired.
"That, my dear Tsukune is still a surprise," she told him while wandering down the street as she searched for the address she had made reservations at earlier this week by phone. Wandering along for a few minutes, Moka stopped suddenly, realizing they had arrived at their destination: a karaoke bar.
Once they found the doorway, they walked inside and made their way to the front desk. After talking with the clerk for a few minutes, and giving her name along with the payment, Moka led Tsukune down a long corridor to their private room.
Tsukune was now grinning like an idiot realizing where they were, but still had no clue why she had picked this place out of all the ones in Akihabara.
As they entered their private room, she motioned for Tsukune to have a seat on the long, leather couch. Moka found the song book and then presented the food menu to Tsukune, asking him to pick out anything he liked, seeing that it was now early noon, and that they might like to have a light lunch together.
"So, Moka, I see now what you have planned, but, just to let you know, I can't sing to save my own life," he lightly joked.
"Yes, Tsukune, but this is one of my presents for you," she told him.
"Oh, I see. Well, I'm looking forward to it then," he replied as he gave a big sigh of relief, happy that he just had to watch and listen instead of participating himself.
"Have you decided what you'd like to have for a snack yet?" she asked, sitting down to his left on the sofa.
"Thanks, Moka. Um...how about... a hamburger and some melon soda?"
"You're welcome, love. That sounds like a wonderful idea. I'll place the order right away," she cheerfully announced, as she sat up and made her way to the telephone on the wall next to the door.
"Thanks again Moka."
She simply smiled brightly and adorably waved to him as she placed the order.
While Moka was on the telephone, he wondered to himself how her singing voice was. He always knew she had a lovely speaking voice, but he couldn't help imagine what it would be like to actually hear her sing for him. He just grinned.
Once Moka placed the order, she went over to the control panel, picked up the microphone, and switched it on. She then punched the song number into the karaoke machine and waited for the song to begin.
"This song is dedicated to you, my dear Tsukune. Happy Birthday my love."
The song began with a few guitars and fiddles.
"How Do I Live" by Leann Rimes
...
How do I,
Get through the night without you?
If I had to live without you,
What kind of life would that be?
Oh, I...
I need you in my arms, need you to hold,
You're my world, my heart, my soul,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...good in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever...ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
.
Without you,
There'd be no sun in my sky,
There would be no love in my life,
There'd be no world left for me.
And I...
Baby I don't know what I would do,
I'd be lost if I lost you,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...real in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
Please tell me baby...
How do I go on?
If you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything,
I need you with me,
Baby don't you know that you're everything,
Real in my life?
.
And tell me now,
How do I live without you,
I want to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
How do I live without you?
How do I live without you baby?
...
As the song ended, Tsukune was rendered completely and absolutely speechless.
'Her voice is amazing! Just like an Angel,' the birthday boy thought to himself.
After returning the microphone to its holder, Moka sauntered adorably back to Tsukune's side and sat down, sliding next to him.
"So Tsukune, what did you think?"
"Wow. Your voice is really beautiful. That was incredible. Thank you, Moka. I do love you more than anything."
Now blushing after hearing his compliment, Moka's emotions started to bubble to the surface.
"Thank you, Tsukune. I'm glad you enjoyed it. I'm so madly in love with you, too."
Now leaning against his left shoulder, he pulled Moka into a tight embrace. After hearing her magnificent singing voice, Tsukune felt much closer to the silver-haired vampiress, if that was even remotely possible. He then leaned back onto the large sofa, pulled her on top of himself, and wrapped his strong arms around her slender waist.
Moka just placed her head lovingly against his right shoulder, returned his loving embrace, content that her plan had gone along rather smoothly so far.
Feeling this close to him, Moka began to get aroused at their close proximity.
Words were not needed for either to know where this was leading to. Moka lifted her head up for a moment and gazed into his chocolate-brown eyes lovingly, then secured the short space between them and started to kiss him softly.
He then moved his hands lower and lower ever so gingerly, tracing his fingers lightly across the cottony material of her blouse, then placed them on her voluptuous posterior, which caused the vampiress to moan erotically. He then started to massage her soft, yet firm bottom.
"Uhnnn...ahhnnn...Tsukune..." she replied between kisses, which resulted in her kissing him feverishly, shoving her tongue into his mouth.
The young man's pants suddenly felt two sizes too small, as it was now pressing rather firmly against Moka's inner thighs.
"Ahhh...Moka...", he groaned, feeling quite excited now.
Their impromptu make-out session was quickly derailed, as someone was rapping rather obnoxiously against the large, wooden door. Thankfully Moka had locked it earlier out of sheer habit.
"Sorry, Tsukune, it looks like our food is here now, but we can continue this later if you'd like," the vampiress apologized, seeing that their good mood was brought to an abrupt halt.
"It's okay, Moka. Don't worry about it so much," he replied, as she made her way to unlock and open the door.
Once their lunches were brought in and paid for by Moka, the server left as quickly as she arrived.
"Thanks Moka. It looks really good," Tsukune commented once Moka sat down on the couch next to him.
"It sure does. This is my first time. I mean, eating a hamburger," Moka added, as she held the huge burger in her hands.
Sinking her fangs into it, she just happily hummed with delight
"Yeah, it's really good. Thanks so much for spending my birthday with me; it really means a lot, Moka," he replied, as he dug into his meal.
"Oh, you're quite welcome Tsukune; it's my pleasure," Moka beamed back with her adorable smile.
"Oh my, this melon soda is really good!" she added a few moments later, after taking a few sips of the light green, semi-sweet beverage.
"Yeah, it's one of my favorites," Tsukune explained.
"I can see why; it's really good," Moka gleefully agreed.
While they finished their ginormous hamburgers and melon sodas, Tsukune wondered yet again what other birthday surprises his wonderful girlfriend had in store for him this afternoon; secretly wishing to hear her awe-inspiring, melodious voice for an encore.
After they finished their lunch, Moka set the plates and glasses on the serving tray and placed them in the hallway outside the doorway, in order to avoid any additional, unwarranted intrusions. Just to be safe, she locked the door again, after firmly shutting it closed behind her.
Moka then returned to the karaoke machine and repeated her actions from earlier. Once she switched on the wireless microphone, the music began; this time a slow-rock ballad by Ayumi Hamasaki: 'Rainy Day'.
I calmly feel...
That I never forget...
What I don't want to forget
Even if I don't try to remember it...
It was a cold day...
I kept on waiting
Just for you...
In the hard rain
I was afraid of nothing
I could even think...
That even if it was the last day of my life
I didn't care...
People who were...
Happily smiling together
Passed just close to me
So many times...
.
But I was smiling...
More gently than anyone else
Standing alone...
Without an umbrella
When I shaded my eyes with my freezing hand
And saw you appear...
It wasn't because of sadness
That I was about to cry...
A flash of light
Shone on us...
As if to celebrate
The way we were going on...
Once the music faded, Tsukune was completely and utterly captivated by the emotions he felt while she sung this love song to him. He got up off the sofa and slowly walked over to her side, and hugged her tightly. Tsukune was completely moved to tears, hearing her angelic voice once again.
As she embraced him firmly, Moka kissed him gently, as she attempted to lighten his mood. A few moments later, he was feeling much better and finally had an opportunity to speak.
"Moka, that was...I don't have any words to tell you how much I love you. Thank you, Moka. You've made me very happy today."
Smiling brightly, she held his face tenderly upon hearing his heart-felt declaration of genuine gratitude.
"You're very welcome, Tsukune. I just want you to know how much you mean to me, and how deeply I love you. If it's alright, I have one more song for you before our time is up."
"I love you too, Moka. Um, wow. Okay, sure. I'd love to hear you sing again," he happily answered as he gave her a passionate kiss, that resulted in her knees to buckle slightly.
'Oh Tsukune...why do you have to be such an amazing kisser?' she mentally pleaded to herself, fighting back the irresistible urge to tear his clothes off right then and there.
After their kiss ended, she entered another number into the karaoke control panel, picked up the microphone and closed her eyes, as she attempted to calm her pulsing heart-rate.
Once the piano music started, she slowly opened her ruby-red eyes, awaiting her cue; a slow love song by Ayumi Hamasaki: "Close To You".
You see? Things are -
Certainly changing...
You see? But here remains -
The unchanged thing...
I've come to believe so...
Because you taught it to me -
Everyone walks on...
To meet just one person some day -
I must have walked on -
To meet you...
Let's go along together -
Looking at the same scenery...
Whatever incidents may be to come -
Don't forget...
I will always be by your side -
Though I can do nothing else...
On the days of tears and on the days of smile -
I will be by your side...
Everyone walks on...
To meet just one person some day -
Even if I'm reborn some day -
I will surely find you...
And I will walk on again -
To meet you...
This time Tsukune gave a hearty round of applause as Moka curtsied and bowed, grinning happily this time. After returning the microphone to its home in front of the karaoke machine, she switched the power off, then returned to the sofa and sat next to her Tsukune.
"Wow, Moka. You really surprised me today. I had no idea you could sing like a pro."
"Thanks, Tsukune. It's mostly a hobby of mine. Like I mentioned before, I took singing lessons when I was younger. But really, it's my pleasure. Oh, before we go, I have another present for you."
"Oh really?" he inquired, still smiling happily.
"Yes, love. Close your eyes, please."
After shutting his eyes tightly, Tsukune could only wonder what it could be.
"Okay. They're closed now."
Rummaging through her purse, she found the present she had lovingly wrapped the previous night in a simple metallic blue wrapping paper. She then placed the gift-wrapped item in his open hands.
"Okay, you can open your eyes now, love."
Once he opened his eyes, he saw the present and shook it gently.
"Go on, Tsukune, open it," she lovingly nudged.
Grinning now, he quickly released the gift from its shiny, paper prison. It was a simple black, flocked box. He then opened it along the front, since the back was on a hinge of some sort. When he finally saw what it was, he was quite shocked: a silver Casio men's mechanical watch with luminescent hands and hour markers. The wristband was made from the finest of black leather.
Tsukune was rendered speechless yet again. He then placed it gently on the table in front of them before he got up and tackled Moka back onto the couch, kissing her with more passion than ever before.
She moaned loudly, being caught off guard so suddenly.
Unfortunately, their mood was interrupted by the telephone ringing rather blatantly, causing the couple to nearly fall off the leather sofa. Moka was blushing like an overly ripened tomato as she sat up, fixed her mini skirt, and then walked over to answer the boisterous annoyance.
"Hello?...Yes, speaking...okay...yes, we had a nice time. Thank you."
"Tsukune, we have to go now; it seems as our time is up."
"Oh, okay Moka. I had a lot of today."
"You're welcome, Tsukune. But we're far from done yet," she happily informed him.
"Oh, is that so? Well then, please lead the way then, Moka," he gladly replied.
"Of course; you're the birthday boy!"
After gathering up their belongings, Moka opened the door for themselves, then closed it behind her. Walking hand in hand, the pair found the main exit, returning to the bustling afternoon crowds of Akihabara.
"Tsukune, this way," she announced, as they made their way back to Akihabara Station.
After they made their way to the second-floor train platform, they had a moment to rest before the next train arrived.
"Moka?"
"Hmmm, yes Tsukune?", she lazily replied, her features still tinted pink from earlier.
"I appreciate everything so far, but may I ask where we're heading to next?
After thinking it over for a few seconds, she decided to divulge the next destination and let the cat out of the bag, so to speak, just this once.
"M-mmm...okay. We're heading to Roppongi next. I have a surprise for you there as well," she informed him, as she leaned her head on his shoulder.
"Oh, okay. Sure thing, Moka. I'm with you," Tsukune replied with a contented sigh.
Once the correct train approached the platform, they, once again, stood off to the side to allow the influx of passengers to depart. Once the doorway was clear, Tsukune grabbed Moka's hand and led her to the nearest adjacent seat closest to the exit. Their train ride would be approximately thirty-five minutes.
Upon their arrival in Shibuya, they rode the elevator down to the underground subway station and awaited for the Roppongi Express, which wouldn't take much time. Once the Express arrived, they found a spot to stand near the back wall, due to the early afternoon crowd. Approximately ten minutes later, the overhead announcement came over loud and clear.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS: NOW APPROACHING ROPPONGI STATION. PLEASE BRING ALL BELONGINGS WITH YOU AS YOU DEPART THE TRAIN. ONCE AGAIN: NOW APPROACHING ROPPONGI STATION. THANK YOU."
Once the subway train came to a full stop, Moka and Tsukune held each others hand and made their way to the platform, exiting the car. Noticing the sign pointing to Roppongi, they climbed the stairway up to the main avenue running through the city-within-a-city. Once they rounded the corner off the main avenue, he recalled where he they were now: in front of Moka's condo.
After they arrived inside the lobby of Mid-Town Tower, Moka opened her purse and presented her resident ID card to the front desk. The clerk on duty, in turn, gave her the key-card to the apartment on the top floor.
"Okay, Tsukune, this way," she informed him once he found his bearings inside the massive marble foyer.
Moka then walked up to a row of elevators and pressed the 'up' button, her fiancé' following closely behind her. Soon as the express elevator arrived; the metallic mechanical door slid open and they stepped inside. Moka then passed her key-card in front of the sensor on the control panel, indicating her floor number: eighty.
The door then slid closed and the elevator quickly ascended to the predetermined destination. Tsukune felt somewhat light-headed as the elevator car rapidly accelerated. He had to grab the brass handrail behind himself, so he wouldn't fall over. Moka saw his bewildered dismay, once again, and helped him recover his balance.
"Thanks again Moka," he bashfully replied.
"No problem, Tsukune. It's been a while since we were here last."
The elevator started to gradually slow down about five minutes later, indicating they were nearly at their stop: the penthouse floor.
* ding ding *
As the door swooshed open, Moka made a right turn down the hallway to her apartment. After walking along for what seemed like forever and a day, Moka stopped in front of a large wooded door with an electronic locking mechanism on top of where the door handle should be. She swiped her key-card down through the slot on front; unlocking it. A small green light told her the door was now open.
"Well, here we are, Tsukune. What I wanted to show you is actually outside. This way, love," she explained as she gestured for him to follow behind. She led him down the hallway next to the living room and walked past her bedroom.
There was a large wooden door at the end of the hallway that she stopped in front of. Hesitating to open it, she thought now would be a good time as any to 'let the cat out of the bag'.
"Um, well, Tsukune. Outside is a covered jacuzzi, but the thing is...um...I don't have any trunks for you to wear."
"Wow, really, Moka? I had no idea."
"Um, yeah. We don't have to go in it if you...mm-mmm-mm."
Moka's lips were suddenly closed by Tsukune's own, as he impulsively kissed her, then parted her soft, pink lips with his tongue, which caused her breath to hitch at the sudden jolt of affection as she was caught off guard. That then resulted in her moaning in delight. Allowing her emotions to completely overwhelm her, she started to unbuckle Tsukune's belt, then unzipped his cargo pants, allowing them to fall to the tile floor below.
He, in turn, reached behind her waist and unzipped her denim mini skirt, which fell to the floor to join his pants below. Realizing they were both now halfway dressed caused the couple to cease their embrace, momentarily anyway.
"Um, Tsukune. Let me grab a few towels, then we can go outside to the jacuzzi. Don't worry, the water has already been treated for us. I just have to turn the bubbles on," she explained as they both fetched their displaced articles of clothing.
Moka then turned around and entered the bathroom. Flipping on the light switch, she opened the linen closet and found two over-sized, fluffy, black towels. While still in the bathroom, Moka finished undressing herself. She slowly lifter her frilly, white blouse over her head, folded it neatly, and placed it on top of her mini skirt, which was now placed inside the linen closet. She then opened a small drawer and found a hair clip, which she used to pin her hair up in a bun, so it wouldn't get wet while in the jacuzzi.
Tsukune mimicked her actions by removing his aqua green, cotton shirt, folding it and placing it on top of his cargo pants.
"Uh, Tsukune, could you help me with this, please?" she pleaded as she turned her back to him, pointing at her white bra.
"Sure, Moka. No problem," he replied as he gently reached for the clasp, pulled it to the left, and unhooked it as she held the front of her large bra in place.
"Thank you, Tsukune," she answered as she turned around to face him once again.
He then removed his boxers and stood in front of her as naked as the day he was born. "Uh, sure, Moka."
She then removed her hands holding her bra and folded it in half, placing it next to her other clothing. Tsukune then got an eyeful of her magnificent gravity-defying breasts, causing the young man to get instantly aroused. Seeing her fiancé in such a state caused the red-eyed woman to blush madly. Quickly removing her white cotton panties, she rapidly tossed them into the closet and closed it.
"Here, Tsukune. Use this to cover up while we go outside. Nobody can see us, but..um...you know," she told him as she wrapped the towel around her rather full-figured features, covering herself up as she was now in full-body blush mode.
Picking up on her adorable embarrassment, he did so as instructed.
"Thanks, Moka. After you," he replied as he gestured towards the hallway.
Turning off the light as she left the bathroom, Moka held his hand as she walked towards the wooden door that led to the roof-top spa. Once she walked through the door, she turned to her left and opened a small wall-mounted panel and flipped a switch, which activated the hot-tub's heater and pump. She adjusted the water temperature so it wouldn't be ice cold.
Overhead, Tsukune noticed a silver colored awning that covered the entire roof-top area, causing it to resemble a cabana. A few dark wooden deck chairs surrounded the hot tub, along with several potted plants. There was also a wall that surrounded the area on either side, roughly several meters tall, with a bamboo shade that was pulled down on the opposite side from the door to give a sense of privacy. A few meters in front of that, was the above-ground jacuzzi. As they walked over to it, Tsukune recognized the all-too-familiar lavender scent.
Moka then removed her fluffy towel, tossing it onto the nearest chair. Walking up a few steps, she dipped her right foot into the calming waters, checking the temperature. Noticing that it was comfortable enough to bare, she stepped down into the water and sat down, now facing Tsukune.
"Come on in, Tsukune. The water's fine," she beckoned, motioning for him to join her.
"Um, are you sure nobody can see us Moka?" he hesitantly mumbled.
She stood up and walked to the edge of the jacuzzi and offered her hand to him.
"Of course, Tsukune. This is the tallest building around for several kilometers. Nobody can see us up here, even if it's early afternoon. Trust me," she pleaded.
Now filled with courage from his beautiful fiancé, he removed his towel and tossed it near hers, grabbed her hand, and eventually found himself waist deep in the soothing, bubbly waters. Once he calmed himself down somewhat, he scooted next to Moka. She then stood up and sat down in front of him between his legs. Leaning her back across his broad chest brought a smile to her lips. Taking a silent cue from her, he wrapped his arms around her slender waist and hugged her firmly from behind.
Feeling more relaxed from the bubbling herb-scented water, Tsukune leaned his head on Moka's shoulder and breathed into her left ear, which caused the young woman to shudder.
"Moka?"
"Mmmm...yes Tsukune?"
"I was just thinking about how we met on the first day of school..."
"Mmhm-hmmm."
"It's funny, ya' know. After you knocked me over with your bike, I thought I was really dreaming when I first saw you."
"Oh, really?" she inquired with a quirked brow.
"Well it's true Moka. I'd never seen such a beautiful girl in my life up until then."
"Thank you, Tsukune.," she lovingly replied, her cheeks tinted pink.
"I really mean that, Moka. And when you asked me to be your friend, I thought to myself, even if the school was such a scary place, having you as my friend would be worth it, just to be near you and to attend class with you every day."
"Awww...that's so sweet, Tsukune."
"Well, it's true. Do you think we would've been friends, even if you didn't run me over that day?"
"Of course we'd be friends."
"You really think so, Moka?"
"Oh yes, most definitely."
"I see...and why is that?"
"That's because of the special bond between us, Tsukune."
Unsure of what she meant by that unusual response, he reluctantly released her and looked into her honey-amber eyes.
"Special bond? Back then, Moka?"
"Yes, love. I asked my mother after I was kidnapped by Fairy Tale, why the only person besides my father to be able to remove my Rosary, was you...and she told me...she told me before she disappeared...it was because...it was because you loved me and never wished me any harm."
"Wow, I see. Well, it's true that I cared about you very much, even though we just met. But it took me nearly two years to realize that I'd fallen in love with you. I'm just sorry it took me that long to confess my feelings to you."
"It's alright, Tsukune. Like I told your parents, I fell in love with you also, but I didn't want to ruin our friendship by confessing to you until we were just about to graduate. I guess we're both pretty silly, seeing that you and I are engaged, according to the ancient vampire custom of our blood-bond."
The realization that they were, indeed, destined to be together caused the pair of vampires to hold each other closer. Moka then got up and sat down on Tsukune's lap, and faced him while straddling his legs, and pressed her huge bosom against his scarred chest.
She tenderly wrapped her arms around his neck and closed the small space between them, kissing him passionately. The ebony-haired teen quickly became aroused and placed his hands on her magnificent breasts, tenderly massaging them.
Her breathing and pulse-rate increased dramatically, arousing the young woman to the point of ecstasy as she moaned with desire.
'Oh Moka...I do love you...ah...why do I have to be so turned on right now, out here in the open?', the young man berated himself, growing more aroused by the second.
"Ahhh...Moka...Unghhh..." he groaned, suddenly in a great deal of discomfort.
Sensing his dismay through their blood-bond, Moka released him from their closeness and immediately became concerned. Sensing his agony, she held his face lovingly as she gazed into his hazel-brown eyes, distress clearly written across her brow.
"Tsukune? Are you okay? Is something wrong?" she panicked.
"Ungh...sorry Moka...it hurts...it hurts so much...," he groaned as he tightly shut his eyes, fighting the pain.
Moka blinked in confusion for a moment.
"What hurts, Tsukune? Please, tell me...my love", she pleaded, holding him closer now.
"Down...there...hurts so much...Moka...Uhgn!", he whined out as the chronic aching sensation intensified.
Now understanding what he was referring to, her heart ached with sympathy.
"Oh, Tsukune, it's alright, my love. You don't have to hold yourself back. You know that I love you more than anything in the entire world and will do whatever I can to make you happy. We can...if you want to...I really don't like seeing you in so much pain...", she lovingly hinted as she stood up and turned around, showing Tsukune her amazingly shaped posterior and her creamy white thighs; which caused the poor teen's member to swell to full length and pulsate madly.
"Moka...," he gasped, seeing such a breath-taking sight before his very eyes.
Standing up now, he held her by her shapely hips as she bent over, holding the side of the jacuzzi's wall. She rubbed her clitoris for a few seconds, then spread her flower open, as it was now drenched from their foreplay.
Moka helped guide his engorged manhood slowly into her sex, feeling his fullness reach into her very core. Now moaning with desire, she nearly climaxed from the sensation that seemed to be a hundred times more pleasurable.
"Oh Kami, it's so...big...ooohhhh...ahhh...Tsukune."
Maybe it was from the thrill of being outside. Maybe it was from the way her heart felt when she knew Tsukune was holding himself back all throughout the afternoon. She didn't know, and, quite frankly, she didn't bother to wonder any longer as her wonderful man slowly made love to her from behind.
'Oh Kami...it feels so good!' she mentioned to herself.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...yes, slowly...oh, yes...so hard...Mmm...Unhhh..."
Casually and tenderly the young pair made love for nearly half an hour, their emotions drawing them closer together. Tsukune felt her womanhood tighten as she forcefully climaxed; her juices flowing out like a river. He had to grip her more firmly as her knees buckled due to the intense pleasure that exploded within her with great intensity.
"Moka...any second now...ahhhh..,." he cried out, on the brink of an overwhelming climax.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...it's okay...you...can...ahhhh...yes...please...ahhhh..."
she replied as she gasped for air, on the edge of a second equally powerful orgasm any moment now.
"Aaaahhhhhhhhhh..Moka...Ahhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh hhhhhh!" he hollered as he released his seed into her womanhood, convulsing violently from the substantial climax that had built up inside him for the entire day.
"Ahhhhhhhhhhhhh!" the young lady screamed a second later, arching her back as she substantially peaked once again.
As his senses finally returned to him, he noticed that he was leaning forward, laying on top of Moka's back, who was supporting both of their weight with her arms. He then stood up and withdrew himself from inside her. He noticed that the bubbling action from the jacuzzi's pump had ceased, indicating that the one hour time limit had expired.
"Tsukune...that was...oh my Kami...truly amazing...," Moka commented once they climbed out of the jacuzzi and started to dry themselves off from their hot tub experience.
"Yeah...it was Moka...I'm feeling much better now. Thank you," he replied, still somewhat out of breath.
She then turned to him only wrapped in her towel and smiled adorably.
"There's no need to thank me, love. I really enjoyed it just as much. I guess we should head home now. I told your mom I'd have you back by six o'clock for your birthday party."
As the young couple returned to Moka's apartment to retrieve their clothes and get dressed, she asked to borrow his cellphone. She wanted to avoid the late afternoon trains as it was nearly four-thirty in the afternoon. While Tsukune got himself ready, Moka excused herself for a minute to make her quick phone-call. Once she was finished, she returned Tsukune's cellphone to him.
Moka noticed that he was now wearing the wrist watch she had given him earlier as one of his birthday presents.
"Thanks Tsukune. I had to make a quick call."
"Oh, no problem Moka."
"Um, I called my father. I asked him to send a car to pick us up and drive us back home. He should be here in about ten minutes."
"Oh that's great, Moka. I guess we should head downstairs then."
"Yes, Tsukune. I thought it would be faster than taking several trains."
As they rode the elevator down to the lobby, Tsukune held Moka close to him, smiling like an idiot at the realization of just how blessed he was to have this wonderful woman in his life. He knew that they would be together for a very long time, as they were both immortal.
As the elevator slowed down, Tsukune released her from their embrace. Once the metallic doors slid open, they walked towards the main foyer. As she passed the front desk, Moka opened her tiny, blue purse, retrieved her key-card, and returned it to the clerk on duty.
Once they ambled through the front sliding glass entrance-way, they then spotted a long, shiny, black limousine. The driver was standing next to the rear passenger-side door. Once he spotted Moka, he motioned for them to enter the vehicle. He opened then closed the door for the young couple.
After they slid onto the comfortable all leather seat, the driver started the engine, pulled out of the long driveway, and headed down the expressway, driving west to Tsukune's house. The drive would take approximately an hour and forty minutes or so, and it was nearly four PM.
The pair held hands as they closed their eyes, still feeling the growing bond between themselves. Tsukune was grinning happily, knowing how much effort Moka put into celebrating his birthday. Moka was resting her head on Tsukune's shoulder as she too recalled everything they've experienced together since they became an official couple just two short months ago after graduation.
And here they were: the happiest either has been since their accidental meeting of each other over three years ago. Accident or not, Tsukune now knew in his heart that they were destined to meet; Moka admitted just as much to him earlier while they chatted in the jacuzzi.
"Mmmm...Moka...would it be okay if I lay down for a while? I'm still beat from earlier."
"Sure, Tsukune. I wouldn't mind if you used my lap as a pillow," she lovingly suggested.
He then scooted to the left a bit as he lined his head up with her soft lap. He then lay down, faced her flat belly, and inhaled her natural, intoxicating scent.
Moka smiled happily, seeing her love accept her invitation so quickly.
'Oh, Tsukune...you definitely are very cute', she told herself as she laced her dainty fingers through his spiky, ebony hair.
Tsukune hummed as he felt her fingers gently massage his scalp. Intentional or not, he was very happy to let her do as she pleased. There was no way he was going to say a word as the affectionate sensation helped him to relax.
The next thing Moka heard was him lightly snoring, which caused her to grin even more. She closed her eyes for a while as she peacefully hummed an un-named tune. Before she realized it, they were back in Tsukune's hometown. She then gently shook him, attempting to wake him from his slumber.
"Tsukune, we're almost home," she lightly told him.
"Hmmm? Moka? Huh?" he lazily replied as he stretched his legs and rubbed the sleep from his eyes.
"Hello, sleepy head," she cutely replied as he turned to lay flat on his back.
"Moka."
"Tsukune"
"Moka."
"Oh, we're here Tsukune."
He then got up as the limo slowed to an eventual stop just outside his house. It was nearly six PM. The driver stopped the car, placed it in park, then turned off the engine.
Tsukune opened the door, then got out. He turned and offered Moka his hand, which she took immediately. She stepped out of the limo, then closed the door behind herself. Moka then walked around to the front of the long limousine and thanked the driver personally.
A moment later, the driver started the engine, placed it in drive, and took off for parts unknown. As they walked up the sidewalk, Tsukune silently wished to himself that his parents weren't home. Or if they were, he didn't want a surprise party. As he opened the front door, Moka followed behind, removing their shoes in the entrance-way.
"Hello? Anybody here?" Tsukune announced loudly as the couple walked into the living room. He noticed several green and blue balloons and streamers hung from the ceiling as well as a banner that read "Happy Birthday, Tsukune!"
"Surprise!" his cousin Kyoko shouted, nearly giving him a heart-attack.
He stumbled back and nearly knocked Moka over in the process. His boisterous female cousin then grabbed him by the neck and gave him her patented head lock and hair rub.
"Ack! Kyoko! What the hell!" he bellowed, which caused his parents to finally show up, wanting to see what the sudden ruckus was.
"Kyoko, that's quite enough. Moka is watching you," Kasumi warned the rambunctious teen.
Reluctantly releasing him from her grip, Kyoko skipped over and greeted Moka with great enthusiasm, nearly knocking her over in the process.
"Hey, Moka! What's up? Did my useless cousin cause too much trouble for you today?" she teased, which caused Moka to frown, unsure of whether she was being serious or not.
"Hello, Kyoko. No, he's always a perfect gentleman," Moka firmly informed her.
"Oh, okay. I was only joking, Moka" she shouted, startling the vampiress as she squeezed her ample chest from behind.
"Kyo, what the hell?!", Tsukune yelled as he pried his rowdy cousin off of his fiancé, whose face was beet red from being molested by the rowdy elder, teen.
"Sorry, Tsukie, I was only joking. I'm really sorry, Moka. We're gonna have to have a girl-to-girl-chat soon," Kyoko said as she bowed to the vampire princess, feeling embarrassed for molesting her in front of her relatives.
"It's fine, Kyoko, but please keep your hands to yourself. Only Tsukune is allowed to touch me," Moka boldly informed her, causing everybody to blush madly at hearing her very assertive statement.
"Oh, I'm sorry. I said too much," Moka added, just now realizing she had involuntarily divulged very private information regarding her and Tsukune's relationship. Engaged or not, she blushed crimson upon realizing her accidental blunder.
'Oh, my Kami, I can't believe I actually just said that out loud!', the vampiress thought in mortification.
"It's alright, Moka dear. Everyone makes mistakes, now everybody into the dining room. We're going to have Tsukune's birthday dinner now, followed by cake and ice cream later on," Kasumi informed everyone, attempting to get everyone's minds back on track.
Hearing that caused Moka to grin happily as she held her fiancé's hand, leading him into the dining room. Koji motioned for his son to sit at the head of the table. Moka sat on his right hand side, holding his hand under the table. Kyoko was seated next to Moka, much to her chagrin, but she gladly accepted the situation to avoid any further animosity towards the overly-zealous girl, who only meant well in her own peculiar ways. Koji sat on Tsukune's left, and his mother to the left of her husband.
All the teens were surprised at the meal set before them: steamed lobster tails and prime rib steaks, along with a home-made Caesar salad and fresh rolls.
Tsukune practically drooled all over the table, seeing the food on his plate.
"Wow, Mom, you went all out. Thanks for the food," Tsukune announced, indicating he was, indeed, now starving.
"You're welcome, son. Actually Moka purchased this fine dinner for everyone. Your father and I cooked everything here, while you were out busy with Moka earlier today," Kasumi admitted.
"Moka, this was your idea?"
"Oh yes. Happy birthday, Tsukune. I love you."
"Thank you Moka, for everything. I love you too."
"Awwwwww," everybody replied simultaneously.
"Thanks for the food!" they then said in unison.
"This is really good" Moka blurted out as she tried her lobster tail, dipping the soft seafood into a ramekin of melted butter.
"Yeah, this is great!" Kyoko added between mouthfuls of steak and lobster.
Tsukune hummed in agreement.
Kasumi and Koji smiled at each other, admiring the girls' joyful expressions.
While everyone ate in silence, Moka removed her left slipper with her right foot and rubbed it against Tsukune's foot next to her. He nearly choked on his food, knowing what she was up to. He cleared his throat, silently asking her to behave for now, since everyone was still eating dinner.
Moka then retracted her foot and slid her slipper back on, pouting.
He inwardly sighed, instantly feeling bad for reprimanding her for her behavior. He then removed his right slipper and traced his toes alongside her left thigh, catching her off guard. She then laughed loudly, the tickling sensation becoming overwhelming.
Everyone stopped eating for a moment, wondering what came over Moka so suddenly.
"Sorry, everybody, I just remembered a joke I heard before," she replied, as she suffered a full-body blush.
"It's okay, Moka. No harm," Koji assured her as everybody was nearly done eating.
A short time later, once Moka helped Kasumi and Koji clear the dinner plates, Kyoko sat next to Tsukune in Moka's vacated seat.
"Hey, Tsukie, um, sorry about earlier." she said with her head hung low.
"Kyoko, you don't have to apologize to me. You have to ask Moka to forgive you. I'm not mad anymore, if you're wondering."
"Oh, okay. Um, thanks. I guess I can talk to her whenever about what happened since she looks kinda scary. Unless you two have any plans later on."
"No problem. You know I can't stay mad at you. You're my cousin. Even though you do tend to get on my nerves from time-to-time. By the way, my folks already know about Moka, so there's no need for you to keep it to yourself."
"Thanks, Tsukie. Sorry. I just get too excited...sometimes. I never meant to cause you any harm. I was only playing."
Tsukune was cut off to reply any further as his parents and Moka shut off the dining room light and stated to sing the Birthday song. Once the entered the dining room, Kyoko quickly returned to her original seat and joined in the song. Moka then set the chocolate cake with mint frosting in front of him.
Tsukune thought it over for a second, thinking of a wish. He then took a deep breath and blew out all the candles at once. He was rewarded with a healthy round of applause.
After everyone devoured their cake and ice cream, Kyoko took the initiative and assisted Kasumi in removing the remaining food, plates, and utensils. A few seconds later, his father set a large blue gift wrapped box in front of him with a simple aqua ribbon on top.
"Go on, Son, this is from your mother and I," he said as he gestured for him to go ahead and open it, which Tsukune then did with great speed.
After removing the top of the box, he pulled back the tissue paper and pulled out his presents: two pair of black dress slacks, one plain and one pinstriped. Also inside were two short-sleeved dress shirts, one aqua green, and one a light, sky blue. He replaced his new outfits neatly back into the box and replaced the top on at an odd angle.
He then got up and thanked his parents with a warm hug.
"Thanks mom and dad."
"You're welcome, son. Happy birthday," they replied in unison.
After his parents released him, he returned to Moka's side.
Kyoko then reached down to the floor below her seat and produced a small, white box with a gold ribbon on top. Walking over to Tsukune's side, she set the box in front of him.
"Happy birthday, Tsukie. This is from me and my folks. They send their regards."
"Thanks, Kyo. Please tell them thanks," he replied as he opened the slim box and set the lid off to the side.
Inside was a black leather wallet.
"Open the wallet, too," Kyoko instructed him as she smiled.
Doing so, Tsukune discovered there was money inside. And a lot at that.
100,000 Yen.
"Kyo, I...I don't know what to say," he simply replied, unsure of how to react.
"Um, thanks so much," he added a few moments later.
Kyoko leaned down and lightly hugged him from his left side.
"You're welcome, Tsukie."
She then walked back to her seat and sat down.
Moka then got up and stood behind Tsukune, who was still sitting down. She gave him a small envelope that had 'Happy Birthday, Tsukune', in her handwriting, scribbled on the front.
"Happy birthday, Tsukune," she whispered to him. He then opened the simple envelope and found a small, brass key inside.
"Um, Moka. What's this for?"
"Oh, this is the key to our cottage in Hokkaido. We'll be going there for our week vacation, starting on June 29th. A week from today," she happily informed him.
He gave a wide grin upon hearing that wonderful news.
A vacation with Moka. Alone? In the mountains of Northern Japan? Hell yes!
He slowly got up from his chair, turned to face her, then tackled her to the floor, and embraced her with all his might. The young man was simply overwhelmed with joy. Everyone snickered at their adorable antics.
After bonding for several awkward seconds, Tsukune helped Moka off the floor. They then retired to the living-room. Kasumi told the couple that Koji and Kyoko would help clean up the kitchen and dining room, even though Moka protested, saying that it was her duties as his mate to help out around the house.
Kyoko then shooed her out of the kitchen, threatening the vampiress by pretending to grab her, aiming at her ample breasts.
Moka ran out of the kitchen, yelling "Save me, Tsukune!" as she ran into the living-room, hiding behind him as he sat on the couch. He wondered what spooked the mighty Akashiya vampire so much as to scream like a little girl.
He snickered at her more-than adorable behavior.
"It's not funny, Tsukune. Kyoko tried to grab my boobs again," she pouted as she quickly hugged him from behind.
"Sorry, Moka. That's just the way Kyo is. She can be a pain in the ass sometimes, but I can tell that she likes you as a friend. Maybe you could tease her back? You know just a thought," he told her as she released her death-grip, then smiled weakly.
"Oh, okay. Thank you, Tsukune. I feel a lot better now," she replied as her mood lifted considerably.
"It's not a problem, Moka. Besides, what gives her the right to touch you? That's my privilege," he teased with a wink, just before she knocked her huge breasts firmly against his chest, which nearly resulted in him to topple over from the impetuous impact.
Moka then giggled, seeing him befuddled at the unforeseen collision.
"Sorry, love. I guess I got carried away a little bit."
"Oh, it's okay, Moka. No harm...besides, they are quite spectacular," he replied with a wink, which caused her to blush once again.
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka..."
"Am I interrupting anything?" Kyoko announced as she saw her cousin's fiancee' sitting rather close to him.
"Kyo, um, no. We were just, um...," Tsukune answered bashfully as Moka was practically on top of him suddenly.
"Getting ready to make out?" Kyoko teased.
"No, we were just talking, that's all," Moka huffed out, clearly upset that their mood was ruined by his cousin's unannounced arrival.
"Sorry, Moka. I just came by to let you know I'm heading home now," Kyoko explained as she got off the couch.
"It's alright, Kyoko. After all, I'm sure you're curious why my breasts are so big and firm," Moka joked, which caused Tsukune's cousin to nearly fall over at her rather audacious and embarrassing statement.
"Umm...uh...hmmm," Kyoko replied, unable to form a coherent response.
"It's okay, Kyo. Thanks again for everything," Tsukune replied as she made her way to the front door, her mind still reeling from Moka's bold assertion regarding her mind-boggling physique.
"Uh, sure, Tsukie...um...no problem."
A minute later, she closed the door behind herself as she walked next-door to her house.
Once the door closed behind Kyoko, Tsukune started to laugh like a lunatic.
Moka wondered what he found to be so amusing. She then realized what she told his cousin just a minute ago and joined him in his boisterous reaction.
Once their laughter died down several minutes later, Tsukune hugged Moka once again.
"That was pretty funny, Moka. I thought for a moment that she might cry after what you told her."
"Thank you Tsukune. I thought it'd be best to take your advice and tease her back. Either that, or I would have kicked her into outer space" was her upfront reply.
Tsukune laughed again at Moka's answer. He had to acknowledge that it was quite hilarious and he was happy to see her take it lightly. Even though she said it with a straight face, he had to admit that Moka was developing a pretty good sense of humor and was learning to adjust living with her love in the human world.
Moka slowly leaned against her love and gently pushed him back onto the couch, silently asking him to take her in his arms, which he did without further petition nor hesitation. Now lying down, she scooted against the back of the couch, holding him close as they both shut their eyes and unintentionally dozed off. After all, they had quite a busy day.
Next week would be the start of their vacation in Hokkaido, which would give the pair a chance to be alone without any hindrances or unwanted interruptions. They both smiled, realizing they would have only each other during that time alone in the mountains of Northern Japan.
They could hardly wait!
…..
Author's Notes: I know this chapter seems very familiar, but like I said at the beginning, I had a very difficult time coming up with another chapter for nearly 3 days. I had one idea and it wasn't going well, so I decided to go with this chapter. What can I say? I just moved recently (last Monday) and I'm still adjusting to being in a new place. I know it's not a valid excuse, but it takes me time to get readjusted. Anyway, enough rambling. Next chapter will be out in a week or so. Thanks to every one for their continued support. :)
Chapter 11 "Birthday Boy"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for an intense Lemon scene.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka is now 19, and Tsukune is still 18.
…..
A/N: After much debating and putting this chapter off, I decided to do another time-skip. The original idea I had wasn't coming along too well and I had put it off long enough. So I will now be covering Tsukune's birthday. This is my longest chapter ever. 11,300 words.
Plus this fan-fic has passed just over 11,780 views! Thank you everyone so much for the amazing support! :)
…..
Saturday, June 22. Tsukune's Birthday.
Moka awoke rather early today, as it was her fiance's 19th birthday. She wanted to do something unpredicted since he went out of his way to make her birthday in May extra special by not only taking her to Tokyo Disney, but asking for her hand in marriage in such a romantic way on the Ferris Wheel.
Since Moka was now considered family by the elder Aono's, they insisted that she call them 'Mom' and 'Dad', much to the silver-haired vampiress's happiness.
She had decided to wear a unique outfit just for this special event. Embarrassing or not, she consciously decided to wear it for the morning at least. With a little assistance from Tsukune's mom Kasumi, she cooked breakfast, even though her cooking skills were top-notch and she had learned to make several types of new dishes in the time since living with the Aono family.
"Thank you mom, for all your help," she told Kasumi as she placed the items on the wooden bed tray as she made her way out of the kitchen, ready to wake Tsukune up with one of several birthday surprises that she had in store for him. After all, she had promised that he would have a birthday he would soon never forget.
"You're welcome, Moka dear. I'm always more than happy to help you out whenever you need it," Kasumi happily replied as Moka ascended the stairwell.
After setting the tray on the hallway floor, Moka gently tapped on Tsukune's door in order to gain his attention. Even though they had grown much closer since they became engaged, they occasionally slept in their own rooms from time to time. As she heard her blood-mate rustling in his bed, she opened the door then bent down to retrieve the tray with the love-filled breakfast she had prepared for him.
Thankfully, Moka had gradually learned to accept living in the human world and was learning to blend in, despite the fact she could no longer seal up her true form via a Rosary. But Tsukune just told her if anyone asked, that she was simply 'cosplaying', regarding her unusual hair and eye color.
"Good morning, Master," she announced as Tsukune sat up, as he attempted to wipe the sleep from his chocolate brown eyes. Unsure if he was still dreaming or not, he blinked in disbelief upon seeing Moka's remarkable choice of clothing. She was sporting her French Maid cosplay she had bought a while back during Golden Week: black with white trim, the short, frilly skirt showing off her creamy, shapely thighs. The scoop neckline presented her generous bosom without giving too much away.
Tsukune nearly went into cardiac arrest as she slowly approached his bed, as she was grinning happily from ear to ear. Moka's knee-length silver hair was pulled back into a simple pony tail.
'Kami, she looks so beautiful this morning!', the teen thought breathlessly.
His breakfast consisted of homemade French toast, sausage patties, buttermilk pancakes, scrambles eggs, and a tall glass of orange juice.
Tsukune was captivated by her radiant presence and was unable to form a comprehensive response. After setting the tray down on his lap, she leaned over and gave him a peck on his cheek. Once his brain processed the current situation, he finally spoke up, deciding to play along.
"Good morning, Moka. What's all this?"
"This is your breakfast in bed, Master."
"Master?"
"Yes, Master. Today is your birthday. Do you not like my outfit?", she responded as she curtsied, pulling on either side of her thigh-length black frilly skirt, giving him quite the show.
"Uh, yes. You look really cute, Moka."
"Oh, thank you very much, Master," she answered as her cheeks were now tinted pink.
'Oh Tsukune...you are so sweet', the vampiress thought, her blush only deepening.
"Please eat up before your breakfast gets cold, Master."
"Ah, sure. Thanks for the food, Moka. It looks wonderful."
"You're welcome, Master. And thank you," she answered, standing off to the side as he began devouring his breakfast in bed.
"Wow, Moka, the French Toast is amazing. You've really outdone yourself this time."
"Thank you, Master. I'm glad it's to your liking," she replied bowing out of appreciation but still remaining in character, even though she desperately held herself back, wanting to cover him in kisses.
'Wow, Moka looks really cute this morning. Well, cuter than usual. I can't believe she actually wore her Maid cosplay this morning. But I'm really happy right now. And she even made me breakfast in bed...well, she did tell me that she'd make my birthday unforgettable. I wonder what else she has in store for me today?', the birthday boy mused, still enjoying his morning meal his beautiful fiance' made for him today.
After devouring his amazing breakfast, Moka then removed the wooden bed tray and set it down next to the bed on the door. She then slowly walked toward Tsukune, who was still sitting up in his bed, and sat on his right hand side, hugging him rather firmly.
"Thank you, Moka. You really surprised me, and I'm quite happy right now," he told her after they ended their embrace.
"You're welcome, Tsukune...I mean Master," she adorably replied, her cheeks still flush from his heart-felt compliment.
'That's all I ever want, Tsukune…to see you happy and smiling the way you are now…'
"Don't mention it, Moka. I meant every word of it."
"Oh, it's no problem, Master. I'm really happy to hear that. Is there anything else I can get you before I return the dishes to the kitchen?"
Thinking it over for a few seconds, he realized that they haven't sucked each others blood for nearly a month, instead relying on transfusion packets that were safely stored in the locked refrigerator in the basement.
"Um, if it's alright, I could really use some of your sweet blood. Seeing you dressed this way has made me quite thirsty," he boldly admitted as his face grew flush.
'Ugh! I can't believe I actually just said that out loud!', the ebony-haired teen yelled to himself.
Upon hearing his rather forward statement caused the young vampiress to cutely blush in turn.
"Of course, Master. There's really no need to ask. After-all, we are blood mates," Moka tenderly informed him as she stood up. Turning around then, she sat on her knees and crawled on all fours closer to him on his bed, all the while a smile parted her pink lips.
The vampiress then sat on his lap, faced him, and wrapped her arms gently around his shoulders as she leaned her head to the right, giving Tsukune easy access to her tender white flesh.
As he returned her hug, he gently placed his left hand on the back of her head, while his right hand wrapped around to the small of her back. He then sank his extended fangs into her neck, causing Moka's breath to hitch.
'Ah! Tsukune...oh Kami...ah...'
Closing her eyes, her body began to quickly heat up as he lapped her precious blood in short, slow slurps. She attempted to hold back the moans that suddenly escaped her pouty lips, which caused Tsukune to get immediately aroused as he groaned with pleasure upon hearing her tantalizing voice ring in his ears.
"Mmmm...ahhhhhh...Tsukune...anh...aha-nnnhhh...oh...ahhhhnn...", she breathed, moaning lightly in the back of her throat as the tingles of pleasure immediately ran down her spine, causing her toes to curl.
As Tsukune continued to suckle her blood, the young vampires quickly became further aroused. They were interrupted unexpectedly by somebody knocking rather loudly on his bedroom door.
Tsukune quickly retracted his fangs and licked Moka's neck clean, sealing the puncture marks, which vanished in a few seconds due to her vampire powers being unsealed for the past month or so.
"Moka? Are you in there?", came Kasumi's voice from the other side of the door.
"Yes, Mom. Tsukune's just about finished eating. I'll bring the dishes down in a moment," Moka quickly answered.
"Okay, Moka. I'll be going out for a while to do some shopping. I'll be back in an hour or so."
"Thanks, take your time, Mom," Moka replied. She was now standing next to the bed, her face flushed from nearly being caught in a somewhat compromising and very intimate situation.
'How embarrassing!' she thought in humiliation.
After a few awkward moments of silence, Moka walked towards the door, opened it up, and bent down to pick up the tray of dishes.
"Master, please get dressed soon. I will wait for you downstairs."
"Um, okay Moka. Thanks again for breakfast," Tsukune beamed.
"You're welcome, Master. Please take your time. I will see you after you're ready."
Once Moka vanished down the hallway, Tsukune closed his bedroom door, then rummaged through his closet for about ten minutes searching for something comfortable to wear, seeing that today was the first official day of Summer. After picking out a pair of khaki cargo pants and a light aqua green, short-sleeved, cotton shirt he made his way to the restroom to shave and brush his teeth.
He wondered to himself just exactly what other surprises Moka had in store for him, but he really didn't mind, seeing that he would be spending the majority of the day with her. It didn't matter to him where they went, or what they did, as long as they were together.
Roughly twenty minutes later, Tsukune made his way downstairs. He then discovered that his father Koji had already left for the day, most likely having to attend to some unfinished work at his office downtown. It was now barely ten o'clock in the morning. His mother was still absent as well, saying earlier that she had some grocery shopping to attend to.
"Moka? Where are you?" he announced as he wandered into the kitchen, half expecting to find her in there."I'm in the living-room, Tsukune," she cheerily replied.
Moka was sitting on the couch with her legs crossed and was wearing a frilly, white blouse, along with a denim mini skirt that accentuated her amazingly well-toned legs. Seeing that she was no longer dressed in her Maid cosplay, resulted in Tsukune feeling somewhat dejected.
Picking up immediately on his dismay, Moka stood up and hugged him rather firmly.
"I'm sorry Tsukune, but being dressed like that in public would be too embarrassing. But I do have a few surprises for you, though," she told him while still embracing him.
"It's okay, Moka. You looked really adorable wearing it. I was very happy and quite surprised. Thank you, once again," he replied as they continued to bond.
"Thank you, Tsukune, and you're welcome. I'll be taking you somewhere special today, but no hints, okay?" Moka told him.
Curious as he was now, he didn't press the issue any further as he had complete faith in his wonderful fiancé.
"No problem, Moka. I'm really looking forward to spending my birthday with you. So wherever we go, I'm happy to just be with you."
She then pulled back for a moment and gazed into his chocolate brown eyes, then closed the distance between them and kissed him passionately. A few minutes later both teens were begging for oxygen.
"So shall we head out now?", Moka inquired as Tsukune was still reeling from their awe-inspiring kiss.
"Uh, yeah. Sure thing Moka," he happily replied as they made their way to the doorway to put their shoes on.
Moka was now sporting a cute pair of navy blue pumps that matched her denim mini skirt, as well as a color-coordinated purse. Even though Tsukune had grown taller than her, she was now his height while wearing her sexy heels, that showed off her gorgeous legs.
After opening and closing the door behind themselves, Tsukune locked the door and shoved the key into his cargo pants pocket.
After walking for about fifteen minutes, they eventually reached the bullet train station. Moka found the route they needed to take to Akihabara. After purchasing two round trip tickets, the couple sat on a bench off to the side while waiting for the train to arrive.
"So Moka, where are we going exactly?", Tsukune inquired curiously.
"Oh, that's still a surprise, Tsukune. But I will let you know that it's not too far from Tokyo."
"Oh, okay. Well wherever it is, I'm looking forward to it, Moka."
'Honestly, I'm so excited that I can hardly sit still!', the birthday boy screamed in his mind.
Leaning her head on Tsukune's shoulder, the ruby-eyed vampiress just smiled, and then laughed adorably. Moments later, the overhead announcement indicated the train would be arriving shortly.
Once the bullet train slowed to a complete halt, dozens of passengers rushed out onto the platform, going off to who knows where. As soon as the sea of people dispersed, Tsukune slipped his hand into Moka's and made a beeline to the closest window seat.
Thankfully, the train car was not too full. Sitting down now, the young couple sat in blissful silence, admiring the rapidly passing scenery.
Tsukune was quite content knowing that he and Moka had gotten much closer over the past month, especially seeing that they were now engaged to be married, but would decide on a date later in time.
Of course, his parents were somewhat surprised at the sudden announcement, but they agreed to it, seeing that Tsukune and Moka had, indeed, been in love with each other for over two years now.
Roughly thirty-five minutes later, the overhead announcement brought the duo out of their thoughts, indicating they were arriving at their destination.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS: NOW APPROACHING JR WEST AKIHABARA STATION. PLEASE BRING ALL BELONGINGS WITH YOU WHILE EXITING THE TRAIN. ONCE AGAIN, NOW APPROACHING AKIHABARA STATION. THANK YOU."
Once the train slowed down and came to a full stop, Moka and Tsukune rose out of their seats and made their way, hand-in-hand, to the nearest exit. As soon as the automatic door opened, they stepped onto the platform and off to the side, looking for the nearest exit. Upon finding it, Moka told him to follow her, which he happily did without any further petition.
Accompanying Moka through the turnstiles, Tsukune could tell that she was very excited with whatever plans, or schemes, she had in store for him today.
"So Moka, where are we going today?" he inquired.
"That, my dear Tsukune is still a surprise," she told him while wandering down the street as she searched for the address she had made reservations at earlier this week by phone. Wandering along for a few minutes, Moka stopped suddenly, realizing they had arrived at their destination: a karaoke bar.
Once they found the doorway, they walked inside and made their way to the front desk. After talking with the clerk for a few minutes, and giving her name along with the payment, Moka led Tsukune down a long corridor to their private room.
Tsukune was now grinning like an idiot realizing where they were, but still had no clue why she had picked this place out of all the ones in Akihabara.
As they entered their private room, she motioned for Tsukune to have a seat on the long, leather couch. Moka found the song book and then presented the food menu to Tsukune, asking him to pick out anything he liked, seeing that it was now early noon, and that they might like to have a light lunch together.
"So, Moka, I see now what you have planned, but, just to let you know, I can't sing to save my own life," he lightly joked.
"Yes, Tsukune, but this is one of my presents for you," she told him.
"Oh, I see. Well, I'm looking forward to it then," he replied as he gave a big sigh of relief, happy that he just had to watch and listen instead of participating himself.
"Have you decided what you'd like to have for a snack yet?" she asked, sitting down to his left on the sofa.
"Thanks, Moka. Um...how about... a hamburger and some melon soda?"
"You're welcome, love. That sounds like a wonderful idea. I'll place the order right away," she cheerfully announced, as she sat up and made her way to the telephone on the wall next to the door.
"Thanks again Moka."
She simply smiled brightly and adorably waved to him as she placed the order.
While Moka was on the telephone, he wondered to himself how her singing voice was. He always knew she had a lovely speaking voice, but he couldn't help imagine what it would be like to actually hear her sing for him. He just grinned.
Once Moka placed the order, she went over to the control panel, picked up the microphone, and switched it on. She then punched the song number into the karaoke machine and waited for the song to begin.
"This song is dedicated to you, my dear Tsukune. Happy Birthday my love."
The song began with a few guitars and fiddles.
"How Do I Live" by Leann Rimes
...
How do I,
Get through the night without you?
If I had to live without you,
What kind of life would that be?
Oh, I...
I need you in my arms, need you to hold,
You're my world, my heart, my soul,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...good in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever...ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
.
Without you,
There'd be no sun in my sky,
There would be no love in my life,
There'd be no world left for me.
And I...
Baby I don't know what I would do,
I'd be lost if I lost you,
If you ever leave...
Baby you would take away everything...real in my life,
And tell me now...
How do I live without you?
I want to know...
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
Please tell me baby...
How do I go on?
If you ever leave,
Baby you would take away everything,
I need you with me,
Baby don't you know that you're everything,
Real in my life?
.
And tell me now,
How do I live without you,
I want to know,
How do I breathe without you?
If you ever go...
How do I ever, ever survive?
How do I, how do I, oh how do I live?
How do I live without you?
How do I live without you baby?
...
As the song ended, Tsukune was rendered completely and absolutely speechless.
'Her voice is amazing! Just like an Angel,' the birthday boy thought to himself.
After returning the microphone to its holder, Moka sauntered adorably back to Tsukune's side and sat down, sliding next to him.
"So Tsukune, what did you think?"
"Wow. Your voice is really beautiful. That was incredible. Thank you, Moka. I do love you more than anything."
Now blushing after hearing his compliment, Moka's emotions started to bubble to the surface.
"Thank you, Tsukune. I'm glad you enjoyed it. I'm so madly in love with you, too."
Now leaning against his left shoulder, he pulled Moka into a tight embrace. After hearing her magnificent singing voice, Tsukune felt much closer to the silver-haired vampiress, if that was even remotely possible. He then leaned back onto the large sofa, pulled her on top of himself, and wrapped his strong arms around her slender waist.
Moka just placed her head lovingly against his right shoulder, returned his loving embrace, content that her plan had gone along rather smoothly so far.
Feeling this close to him, Moka began to get aroused at their close proximity.
Words were not needed for either to know where this was leading to. Moka lifted her head up for a moment and gazed into his chocolate-brown eyes lovingly, then secured the short space between them and started to kiss him softly.
He then moved his hands lower and lower ever so gingerly, tracing his fingers lightly across the cottony material of her blouse, then placed them on her voluptuous posterior, which caused the vampiress to moan erotically. He then started to massage her soft, yet firm bottom.
"Uhnnn...ahhnnn...Tsukune..." she replied between kisses, which resulted in her kissing him feverishly, shoving her tongue into his mouth.
The young man's pants suddenly felt two sizes too small, as it was now pressing rather firmly against Moka's inner thighs.
"Ahhh...Moka...", he groaned, feeling quite excited now.
Their impromptu make-out session was quickly derailed, as someone was rapping rather obnoxiously against the large, wooden door. Thankfully Moka had locked it earlier out of sheer habit.
"Sorry, Tsukune, it looks like our food is here now, but we can continue this later if you'd like," the vampiress apologized, seeing that their good mood was brought to an abrupt halt.
"It's okay, Moka. Don't worry about it so much," he replied, as she made her way to unlock and open the door.
Once their lunches were brought in and paid for by Moka, the server left as quickly as she arrived.
"Thanks Moka. It looks really good," Tsukune commented once Moka sat down on the couch next to him.
"It sure does. This is my first time. I mean, eating a hamburger," Moka added, as she held the huge burger in her hands.
Sinking her fangs into it, she just happily hummed with delight
"Yeah, it's really good. Thanks so much for spending my birthday with me; it really means a lot, Moka," he replied, as he dug into his meal.
"Oh, you're quite welcome Tsukune; it's my pleasure," Moka beamed back with her adorable smile.
"Oh my, this melon soda is really good!" she added a few moments later, after taking a few sips of the light green, semi-sweet beverage.
"Yeah, it's one of my favorites," Tsukune explained.
"I can see why; it's really good," Moka gleefully agreed.
While they finished their ginormous hamburgers and melon sodas, Tsukune wondered yet again what other birthday surprises his wonderful girlfriend had in store for him this afternoon; secretly wishing to hear her awe-inspiring, melodious voice for an encore.
After they finished their lunch, Moka set the plates and glasses on the serving tray and placed them in the hallway outside the doorway, in order to avoid any additional, unwarranted intrusions. Just to be safe, she locked the door again, after firmly shutting it closed behind her.
Moka then returned to the karaoke machine and repeated her actions from earlier. Once she switched on the wireless microphone, the music began; this time a slow-rock ballad by Ayumi Hamasaki: 'Rainy Day'.
I calmly feel...
That I never forget...
What I don't want to forget
Even if I don't try to remember it...
It was a cold day...
I kept on waiting
Just for you...
In the hard rain
I was afraid of nothing
I could even think...
That even if it was the last day of my life
I didn't care...
People who were...
Happily smiling together
Passed just close to me
So many times...
.
But I was smiling...
More gently than anyone else
Standing alone...
Without an umbrella
When I shaded my eyes with my freezing hand
And saw you appear...
It wasn't because of sadness
That I was about to cry...
A flash of light
Shone on us...
As if to celebrate
The way we were going on...
Once the music faded, Tsukune was completely and utterly captivated by the emotions he felt while she sung this love song to him. He got up off the sofa and slowly walked over to her side, and hugged her tightly. Tsukune was completely moved to tears, hearing her angelic voice once again.
As she embraced him firmly, Moka kissed him gently, as she attempted to lighten his mood. A few moments later, he was feeling much better and finally had an opportunity to speak.
"Moka, that was...I don't have any words to tell you how much I love you. Thank you, Moka. You've made me very happy today."
Smiling brightly, she held his face tenderly upon hearing his heart-felt declaration of genuine gratitude.
"You're very welcome, Tsukune. I just want you to know how much you mean to me, and how deeply I love you. If it's alright, I have one more song for you before our time is up."
"I love you too, Moka. Um, wow. Okay, sure. I'd love to hear you sing again," he happily answered as he gave her a passionate kiss, that resulted in her knees to buckle slightly.
'Oh Tsukune...why do you have to be such an amazing kisser?' she mentally pleaded to herself, fighting back the irresistible urge to tear his clothes off right then and there.
After their kiss ended, she entered another number into the karaoke control panel, picked up the microphone and closed her eyes, as she attempted to calm her pulsing heart-rate.
Once the piano music started, she slowly opened her ruby-red eyes, awaiting her cue; a slow love song by Ayumi Hamasaki: "Close To You".
You see? Things are -
Certainly changing...
You see? But here remains -
The unchanged thing...
I've come to believe so...
Because you taught it to me -
Everyone walks on...
To meet just one person some day -
I must have walked on -
To meet you...
Let's go along together -
Looking at the same scenery...
Whatever incidents may be to come -
Don't forget...
I will always be by your side -
Though I can do nothing else...
On the days of tears and on the days of smile -
I will be by your side...
Everyone walks on...
To meet just one person some day -
Even if I'm reborn some day -
I will surely find you...
And I will walk on again -
To meet you...
This time Tsukune gave a hearty round of applause as Moka curtsied and bowed, grinning happily this time. After returning the microphone to its home in front of the karaoke machine, she switched the power off, then returned to the sofa and sat next to her Tsukune.
"Wow, Moka. You really surprised me today. I had no idea you could sing like a pro."
"Thanks, Tsukune. It's mostly a hobby of mine. Like I mentioned before, I took singing lessons when I was younger. But really, it's my pleasure. Oh, before we go, I have another present for you."
"Oh really?" he inquired, still smiling happily.
"Yes, love. Close your eyes, please."
After shutting his eyes tightly, Tsukune could only wonder what it could be.
"Okay. They're closed now."
Rummaging through her purse, she found the present she had lovingly wrapped the previous night in a simple metallic blue wrapping paper. She then placed the gift-wrapped item in his open hands.
"Okay, you can open your eyes now, love."
Once he opened his eyes, he saw the present and shook it gently.
"Go on, Tsukune, open it," she lovingly nudged.
Grinning now, he quickly released the gift from its shiny, paper prison. It was a simple black, flocked box. He then opened it along the front, since the back was on a hinge of some sort. When he finally saw what it was, he was quite shocked: a silver Casio men's mechanical watch with luminescent hands and hour markers. The wristband was made from the finest of black leather.
Tsukune was rendered speechless yet again. He then placed it gently on the table in front of them before he got up and tackled Moka back onto the couch, kissing her with more passion than ever before.
She moaned loudly, being caught off guard so suddenly.
Unfortunately, their mood was interrupted by the telephone ringing rather blatantly, causing the couple to nearly fall off the leather sofa. Moka was blushing like an overly ripened tomato as she sat up, fixed her mini skirt, and then walked over to answer the boisterous annoyance.
"Hello?...Yes, speaking...okay...yes, we had a nice time. Thank you."
"Tsukune, we have to go now; it seems as our time is up."
"Oh, okay Moka. I had a lot of today."
"You're welcome, Tsukune. But we're far from done yet," she happily informed him.
"Oh, is that so? Well then, please lead the way then, Moka," he gladly replied.
"Of course; you're the birthday boy!"
After gathering up their belongings, Moka opened the door for themselves, then closed it behind her. Walking hand in hand, the pair found the main exit, returning to the bustling afternoon crowds of Akihabara.
"Tsukune, this way," she announced, as they made their way back to Akihabara Station.
After they made their way to the second-floor train platform, they had a moment to rest before the next train arrived.
"Moka?"
"Hmmm, yes Tsukune?", she lazily replied, her features still tinted pink from earlier.
"I appreciate everything so far, but may I ask where we're heading to next?
After thinking it over for a few seconds, she decided to divulge the next destination and let the cat out of the bag, so to speak, just this once.
"M-mmm...okay. We're heading to Roppongi next. I have a surprise for you there as well," she informed him, as she leaned her head on his shoulder.
"Oh, okay. Sure thing, Moka. I'm with you," Tsukune replied with a contented sigh.
Once the correct train approached the platform, they, once again, stood off to the side to allow the influx of passengers to depart. Once the doorway was clear, Tsukune grabbed Moka's hand and led her to the nearest adjacent seat closest to the exit. Their train ride would be approximately thirty-five minutes.
Upon their arrival in Shibuya, they rode the elevator down to the underground subway station and awaited for the Roppongi Express, which wouldn't take much time. Once the Express arrived, they found a spot to stand near the back wall, due to the early afternoon crowd. Approximately ten minutes later, the overhead announcement came over loud and clear.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS: NOW APPROACHING ROPPONGI STATION. PLEASE BRING ALL BELONGINGS WITH YOU AS YOU DEPART THE TRAIN. ONCE AGAIN: NOW APPROACHING ROPPONGI STATION. THANK YOU."
Once the subway train came to a full stop, Moka and Tsukune held each others hand and made their way to the platform, exiting the car. Noticing the sign pointing to Roppongi, they climbed the stairway up to the main avenue running through the city-within-a-city. Once they rounded the corner off the main avenue, he recalled where he they were now: in front of Moka's condo.
After they arrived inside the lobby of Mid-Town Tower, Moka opened her purse and presented her resident ID card to the front desk. The clerk on duty, in turn, gave her the key-card to the apartment on the top floor.
"Okay, Tsukune, this way," she informed him once he found his bearings inside the massive marble foyer.
Moka then walked up to a row of elevators and pressed the 'up' button, her fiancé' following closely behind her. Soon as the express elevator arrived; the metallic mechanical door slid open and they stepped inside. Moka then passed her key-card in front of the sensor on the control panel, indicating her floor number: eighty.
The door then slid closed and the elevator quickly ascended to the predetermined destination. Tsukune felt somewhat light-headed as the elevator car rapidly accelerated. He had to grab the brass handrail behind himself, so he wouldn't fall over. Moka saw his bewildered dismay, once again, and helped him recover his balance.
"Thanks again Moka," he bashfully replied.
"No problem, Tsukune. It's been a while since we were here last."
The elevator started to gradually slow down about five minutes later, indicating they were nearly at their stop: the penthouse floor.
* ding ding *
As the door swooshed open, Moka made a right turn down the hallway to her apartment. After walking along for what seemed like forever and a day, Moka stopped in front of a large wooded door with an electronic locking mechanism on top of where the door handle should be. She swiped her key-card down through the slot on front; unlocking it. A small green light told her the door was now open.
"Well, here we are, Tsukune. What I wanted to show you is actually outside. This way, love," she explained as she gestured for him to follow behind. She led him down the hallway next to the living room and walked past her bedroom.
There was a large wooden door at the end of the hallway that she stopped in front of. Hesitating to open it, she thought now would be a good time as any to 'let the cat out of the bag'.
"Um, well, Tsukune. Outside is a covered jacuzzi, but the thing is...um...I don't have any trunks for you to wear."
"Wow, really, Moka? I had no idea."
"Um, yeah. We don't have to go in it if you...mm-mmm-mm."
Moka's lips were suddenly closed by Tsukune's own, as he impulsively kissed her, then parted her soft, pink lips with his tongue, which caused her breath to hitch at the sudden jolt of affection as she was caught off guard. That then resulted in her moaning in delight. Allowing her emotions to completely overwhelm her, she started to unbuckle Tsukune's belt, then unzipped his cargo pants, allowing them to fall to the tile floor below.
He, in turn, reached behind her waist and unzipped her denim mini skirt, which fell to the floor to join his pants below. Realizing they were both now halfway dressed caused the couple to cease their embrace, momentarily anyway.
"Um, Tsukune. Let me grab a few towels, then we can go outside to the jacuzzi. Don't worry, the water has already been treated for us. I just have to turn the bubbles on," she explained as they both fetched their displaced articles of clothing.
Moka then turned around and entered the bathroom. Flipping on the light switch, she opened the linen closet and found two over-sized, fluffy, black towels. While still in the bathroom, Moka finished undressing herself. She slowly lifter her frilly, white blouse over her head, folded it neatly, and placed it on top of her mini skirt, which was now placed inside the linen closet. She then opened a small drawer and found a hair clip, which she used to pin her hair up in a bun, so it wouldn't get wet while in the jacuzzi.
Tsukune mimicked her actions by removing his aqua green, cotton shirt, folding it and placing it on top of his cargo pants.
"Uh, Tsukune, could you help me with this, please?" she pleaded as she turned her back to him, pointing at her white bra.
"Sure, Moka. No problem," he replied as he gently reached for the clasp, pulled it to the left, and unhooked it as she held the front of her large bra in place.
"Thank you, Tsukune," she answered as she turned around to face him once again.
He then removed his boxers and stood in front of her as naked as the day he was born. "Uh, sure, Moka."
She then removed her hands holding her bra and folded it in half, placing it next to her other clothing. Tsukune then got an eyeful of her magnificent gravity-defying breasts, causing the young man to get instantly aroused. Seeing her fiancé in such a state caused the red-eyed woman to blush madly. Quickly removing her white cotton panties, she rapidly tossed them into the closet and closed it.
"Here, Tsukune. Use this to cover up while we go outside. Nobody can see us, but..um...you know," she told him as she wrapped the towel around her rather full-figured features, covering herself up as she was now in full-body blush mode.
Picking up on her adorable embarrassment, he did so as instructed.
"Thanks, Moka. After you," he replied as he gestured towards the hallway.
Turning off the light as she left the bathroom, Moka held his hand as she walked towards the wooden door that led to the roof-top spa. Once she walked through the door, she turned to her left and opened a small wall-mounted panel and flipped a switch, which activated the hot-tub's heater and pump. She adjusted the water temperature so it wouldn't be ice cold.
Overhead, Tsukune noticed a silver colored awning that covered the entire roof-top area, causing it to resemble a cabana. A few dark wooden deck chairs surrounded the hot tub, along with several potted plants. There was also a wall that surrounded the area on either side, roughly several meters tall, with a bamboo shade that was pulled down on the opposite side from the door to give a sense of privacy. A few meters in front of that, was the above-ground jacuzzi. As they walked over to it, Tsukune recognized the all-too-familiar lavender scent.
Moka then removed her fluffy towel, tossing it onto the nearest chair. Walking up a few steps, she dipped her right foot into the calming waters, checking the temperature. Noticing that it was comfortable enough to bare, she stepped down into the water and sat down, now facing Tsukune.
"Come on in, Tsukune. The water's fine," she beckoned, motioning for him to join her.
"Um, are you sure nobody can see us Moka?" he hesitantly mumbled.
She stood up and walked to the edge of the jacuzzi and offered her hand to him.
"Of course, Tsukune. This is the tallest building around for several kilometers. Nobody can see us up here, even if it's early afternoon. Trust me," she pleaded.
Now filled with courage from his beautiful fiancé, he removed his towel and tossed it near hers, grabbed her hand, and eventually found himself waist deep in the soothing, bubbly waters. Once he calmed himself down somewhat, he scooted next to Moka. She then stood up and sat down in front of him between his legs. Leaning her back across his broad chest brought a smile to her lips. Taking a silent cue from her, he wrapped his arms around her slender waist and hugged her firmly from behind.
Feeling more relaxed from the bubbling herb-scented water, Tsukune leaned his head on Moka's shoulder and breathed into her left ear, which caused the young woman to shudder.
"Moka?"
"Mmmm...yes Tsukune?"
"I was just thinking about how we met on the first day of school..."
"Mmhm-hmmm."
"It's funny, ya' know. After you knocked me over with your bike, I thought I was really dreaming when I first saw you."
"Oh, really?" she inquired with a quirked brow.
"Well it's true Moka. I'd never seen such a beautiful girl in my life up until then."
"Thank you, Tsukune.," she lovingly replied, her cheeks tinted pink.
"I really mean that, Moka. And when you asked me to be your friend, I thought to myself, even if the school was such a scary place, having you as my friend would be worth it, just to be near you and to attend class with you every day."
"Awww...that's so sweet, Tsukune."
"Well, it's true. Do you think we would've been friends, even if you didn't run me over that day?"
"Of course we'd be friends."
"You really think so, Moka?"
"Oh yes, most definitely."
"I see...and why is that?"
"That's because of the special bond between us, Tsukune."
Unsure of what she meant by that unusual response, he reluctantly released her and looked into her honey-amber eyes.
"Special bond? Back then, Moka?"
"Yes, love. I asked my mother after I was kidnapped by Fairy Tale, why the only person besides my father to be able to remove my Rosary, was you...and she told me...she told me before she disappeared...it was because...it was because you loved me and never wished me any harm."
"Wow, I see. Well, it's true that I cared about you very much, even though we just met. But it took me nearly two years to realize that I'd fallen in love with you. I'm just sorry it took me that long to confess my feelings to you."
"It's alright, Tsukune. Like I told your parents, I fell in love with you also, but I didn't want to ruin our friendship by confessing to you until we were just about to graduate. I guess we're both pretty silly, seeing that you and I are engaged, according to the ancient vampire custom of our blood-bond."
The realization that they were, indeed, destined to be together caused the pair of vampires to hold each other closer. Moka then got up and sat down on Tsukune's lap, and faced him while straddling his legs, and pressed her huge bosom against his scarred chest.
She tenderly wrapped her arms around his neck and closed the small space between them, kissing him passionately. The ebony-haired teen quickly became aroused and placed his hands on her magnificent breasts, tenderly massaging them.
Her breathing and pulse-rate increased dramatically, arousing the young woman to the point of ecstasy as she moaned with desire.
'Oh Moka...I do love you...ah...why do I have to be so turned on right now, out here in the open?', the young man berated himself, growing more aroused by the second.
"Ahhh...Moka...Unghhh..." he groaned, suddenly in a great deal of discomfort.
Sensing his dismay through their blood-bond, Moka released him from their closeness and immediately became concerned. Sensing his agony, she held his face lovingly as she gazed into his hazel-brown eyes, distress clearly written across her brow.
"Tsukune? Are you okay? Is something wrong?" she panicked.
"Ungh...sorry Moka...it hurts...it hurts so much...," he groaned as he tightly shut his eyes, fighting the pain.
Moka blinked in confusion for a moment.
"What hurts, Tsukune? Please, tell me...my love", she pleaded, holding him closer now.
"Down...there...hurts so much...Moka...Uhgn!", he whined out as the chronic aching sensation intensified.
Now understanding what he was referring to, her heart ached with sympathy.
"Oh, Tsukune, it's alright, my love. You don't have to hold yourself back. You know that I love you more than anything in the entire world and will do whatever I can to make you happy. We can...if you want to...I really don't like seeing you in so much pain...", she lovingly hinted as she stood up and turned around, showing Tsukune her amazingly shaped posterior and her creamy white thighs; which caused the poor teen's member to swell to full length and pulsate madly.
"Moka...," he gasped, seeing such a breath-taking sight before his very eyes.
Standing up now, he held her by her shapely hips as she bent over, holding the side of the jacuzzi's wall. She rubbed her clitoris for a few seconds, then spread her flower open, as it was now drenched from their foreplay.
Moka helped guide his engorged manhood slowly into her sex, feeling his fullness reach into her very core. Now moaning with desire, she nearly climaxed from the sensation that seemed to be a hundred times more pleasurable.
"Oh Kami, it's so...big...ooohhhh...ahhh...Tsukune."
Maybe it was from the thrill of being outside. Maybe it was from the way her heart felt when she knew Tsukune was holding himself back all throughout the afternoon. She didn't know, and, quite frankly, she didn't bother to wonder any longer as her wonderful man slowly made love to her from behind.
'Oh Kami...it feels so good!' she mentioned to herself.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...yes, slowly...oh, yes...so hard...Mmm...Unhhh..."
Casually and tenderly the young pair made love for nearly half an hour, their emotions drawing them closer together. Tsukune felt her womanhood tighten as she forcefully climaxed; her juices flowing out like a river. He had to grip her more firmly as her knees buckled due to the intense pleasure that exploded within her with great intensity.
"Moka...any second now...ahhhh..,." he cried out, on the brink of an overwhelming climax.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...it's okay...you...can...ahhhh...yes...please...ahhhh..."
she replied as she gasped for air, on the edge of a second equally powerful orgasm any moment now.
"Aaaahhhhhhhhhh..Moka...Ahhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh hhhhhh!" he hollered as he released his seed into her womanhood, convulsing violently from the substantial climax that had built up inside him for the entire day.
"Ahhhhhhhhhhhhh!" the young lady screamed a second later, arching her back as she substantially peaked once again.
As his senses finally returned to him, he noticed that he was leaning forward, laying on top of Moka's back, who was supporting both of their weight with her arms. He then stood up and withdrew himself from inside her. He noticed that the bubbling action from the jacuzzi's pump had ceased, indicating that the one hour time limit had expired.
"Tsukune...that was...oh my Kami...truly amazing...," Moka commented once they climbed out of the jacuzzi and started to dry themselves off from their hot tub experience.
"Yeah...it was Moka...I'm feeling much better now. Thank you," he replied, still somewhat out of breath.
She then turned to him only wrapped in her towel and smiled adorably.
"There's no need to thank me, love. I really enjoyed it just as much. I guess we should head home now. I told your mom I'd have you back by six o'clock for your birthday party."
As the young couple returned to Moka's apartment to retrieve their clothes and get dressed, she asked to borrow his cellphone. She wanted to avoid the late afternoon trains as it was nearly four-thirty in the afternoon. While Tsukune got himself ready, Moka excused herself for a minute to make her quick phone-call. Once she was finished, she returned Tsukune's cellphone to him.
Moka noticed that he was now wearing the wrist watch she had given him earlier as one of his birthday presents.
"Thanks Tsukune. I had to make a quick call."
"Oh, no problem Moka."
"Um, I called my father. I asked him to send a car to pick us up and drive us back home. He should be here in about ten minutes."
"Oh that's great, Moka. I guess we should head downstairs then."
"Yes, Tsukune. I thought it would be faster than taking several trains."
As they rode the elevator down to the lobby, Tsukune held Moka close to him, smiling like an idiot at the realization of just how blessed he was to have this wonderful woman in his life. He knew that they would be together for a very long time, as they were both immortal.
As the elevator slowed down, Tsukune released her from their embrace. Once the metallic doors slid open, they walked towards the main foyer. As she passed the front desk, Moka opened her tiny, blue purse, retrieved her key-card, and returned it to the clerk on duty.
Once they ambled through the front sliding glass entrance-way, they then spotted a long, shiny, black limousine. The driver was standing next to the rear passenger-side door. Once he spotted Moka, he motioned for them to enter the vehicle. He opened then closed the door for the young couple.
After they slid onto the comfortable all leather seat, the driver started the engine, pulled out of the long driveway, and headed down the expressway, driving west to Tsukune's house. The drive would take approximately an hour and forty minutes or so, and it was nearly four PM.
The pair held hands as they closed their eyes, still feeling the growing bond between themselves. Tsukune was grinning happily, knowing how much effort Moka put into celebrating his birthday. Moka was resting her head on Tsukune's shoulder as she too recalled everything they've experienced together since they became an official couple just two short months ago after graduation.
And here they were: the happiest either has been since their accidental meeting of each other over three years ago. Accident or not, Tsukune now knew in his heart that they were destined to meet; Moka admitted just as much to him earlier while they chatted in the jacuzzi.
"Mmmm...Moka...would it be okay if I lay down for a while? I'm still beat from earlier."
"Sure, Tsukune. I wouldn't mind if you used my lap as a pillow," she lovingly suggested.
He then scooted to the left a bit as he lined his head up with her soft lap. He then lay down, faced her flat belly, and inhaled her natural, intoxicating scent.
Moka smiled happily, seeing her love accept her invitation so quickly.
'Oh, Tsukune...you definitely are very cute', she told herself as she laced her dainty fingers through his spiky, ebony hair.
Tsukune hummed as he felt her fingers gently massage his scalp. Intentional or not, he was very happy to let her do as she pleased. There was no way he was going to say a word as the affectionate sensation helped him to relax.
The next thing Moka heard was him lightly snoring, which caused her to grin even more. She closed her eyes for a while as she peacefully hummed an un-named tune. Before she realized it, they were back in Tsukune's hometown. She then gently shook him, attempting to wake him from his slumber.
"Tsukune, we're almost home," she lightly told him.
"Hmmm? Moka? Huh?" he lazily replied as he stretched his legs and rubbed the sleep from his eyes.
"Hello, sleepy head," she cutely replied as he turned to lay flat on his back.
"Moka."
"Tsukune"
"Moka."
"Oh, we're here Tsukune."
He then got up as the limo slowed to an eventual stop just outside his house. It was nearly six PM. The driver stopped the car, placed it in park, then turned off the engine.
Tsukune opened the door, then got out. He turned and offered Moka his hand, which she took immediately. She stepped out of the limo, then closed the door behind herself. Moka then walked around to the front of the long limousine and thanked the driver personally.
A moment later, the driver started the engine, placed it in drive, and took off for parts unknown. As they walked up the sidewalk, Tsukune silently wished to himself that his parents weren't home. Or if they were, he didn't want a surprise party. As he opened the front door, Moka followed behind, removing their shoes in the entrance-way.
"Hello? Anybody here?" Tsukune announced loudly as the couple walked into the living room. He noticed several green and blue balloons and streamers hung from the ceiling as well as a banner that read "Happy Birthday, Tsukune!"
"Surprise!" his cousin Kyoko shouted, nearly giving him a heart-attack.
He stumbled back and nearly knocked Moka over in the process. His boisterous female cousin then grabbed him by the neck and gave him her patented head lock and hair rub.
"Ack! Kyoko! What the hell!" he bellowed, which caused his parents to finally show up, wanting to see what the sudden ruckus was.
"Kyoko, that's quite enough. Moka is watching you," Kasumi warned the rambunctious teen.
Reluctantly releasing him from her grip, Kyoko skipped over and greeted Moka with great enthusiasm, nearly knocking her over in the process.
"Hey, Moka! What's up? Did my useless cousin cause too much trouble for you today?" she teased, which caused Moka to frown, unsure of whether she was being serious or not.
"Hello, Kyoko. No, he's always a perfect gentleman," Moka firmly informed her.
"Oh, okay. I was only joking, Moka" she shouted, startling the vampiress as she squeezed her ample chest from behind.
"Kyo, what the hell?!", Tsukune yelled as he pried his rowdy cousin off of his fiancé, whose face was beet red from being molested by the rowdy elder, teen.
"Sorry, Tsukie, I was only joking. I'm really sorry, Moka. We're gonna have to have a girl-to-girl-chat soon," Kyoko said as she bowed to the vampire princess, feeling embarrassed for molesting her in front of her relatives.
"It's fine, Kyoko, but please keep your hands to yourself. Only Tsukune is allowed to touch me," Moka boldly informed her, causing everybody to blush madly at hearing her very assertive statement.
"Oh, I'm sorry. I said too much," Moka added, just now realizing she had involuntarily divulged very private information regarding her and Tsukune's relationship. Engaged or not, she blushed crimson upon realizing her accidental blunder.
'Oh, my Kami, I can't believe I actually just said that out loud!', the vampiress thought in mortification.
"It's alright, Moka dear. Everyone makes mistakes, now everybody into the dining room. We're going to have Tsukune's birthday dinner now, followed by cake and ice cream later on," Kasumi informed everyone, attempting to get everyone's minds back on track.
Hearing that caused Moka to grin happily as she held her fiancé's hand, leading him into the dining room. Koji motioned for his son to sit at the head of the table. Moka sat on his right hand side, holding his hand under the table. Kyoko was seated next to Moka, much to her chagrin, but she gladly accepted the situation to avoid any further animosity towards the overly-zealous girl, who only meant well in her own peculiar ways. Koji sat on Tsukune's left, and his mother to the left of her husband.
All the teens were surprised at the meal set before them: steamed lobster tails and prime rib steaks, along with a home-made Caesar salad and fresh rolls.
Tsukune practically drooled all over the table, seeing the food on his plate.
"Wow, Mom, you went all out. Thanks for the food," Tsukune announced, indicating he was, indeed, now starving.
"You're welcome, son. Actually Moka purchased this fine dinner for everyone. Your father and I cooked everything here, while you were out busy with Moka earlier today," Kasumi admitted.
"Moka, this was your idea?"
"Oh yes. Happy birthday, Tsukune. I love you."
"Thank you Moka, for everything. I love you too."
"Awwwwww," everybody replied simultaneously.
"Thanks for the food!" they then said in unison.
"This is really good" Moka blurted out as she tried her lobster tail, dipping the soft seafood into a ramekin of melted butter.
"Yeah, this is great!" Kyoko added between mouthfuls of steak and lobster.
Tsukune hummed in agreement.
Kasumi and Koji smiled at each other, admiring the girls' joyful expressions.
While everyone ate in silence, Moka removed her left slipper with her right foot and rubbed it against Tsukune's foot next to her. He nearly choked on his food, knowing what she was up to. He cleared his throat, silently asking her to behave for now, since everyone was still eating dinner.
Moka then retracted her foot and slid her slipper back on, pouting.
He inwardly sighed, instantly feeling bad for reprimanding her for her behavior. He then removed his right slipper and traced his toes alongside her left thigh, catching her off guard. She then laughed loudly, the tickling sensation becoming overwhelming.
Everyone stopped eating for a moment, wondering what came over Moka so suddenly.
"Sorry, everybody, I just remembered a joke I heard before," she replied, as she suffered a full-body blush.
"It's okay, Moka. No harm," Koji assured her as everybody was nearly done eating.
A short time later, once Moka helped Kasumi and Koji clear the dinner plates, Kyoko sat next to Tsukune in Moka's vacated seat.
"Hey, Tsukie, um, sorry about earlier." she said with her head hung low.
"Kyoko, you don't have to apologize to me. You have to ask Moka to forgive you. I'm not mad anymore, if you're wondering."
"Oh, okay. Um, thanks. I guess I can talk to her whenever about what happened since she looks kinda scary. Unless you two have any plans later on."
"No problem. You know I can't stay mad at you. You're my cousin. Even though you do tend to get on my nerves from time-to-time. By the way, my folks already know about Moka, so there's no need for you to keep it to yourself."
"Thanks, Tsukie. Sorry. I just get too excited...sometimes. I never meant to cause you any harm. I was only playing."
Tsukune was cut off to reply any further as his parents and Moka shut off the dining room light and stated to sing the Birthday song. Once the entered the dining room, Kyoko quickly returned to her original seat and joined in the song. Moka then set the chocolate cake with mint frosting in front of him.
Tsukune thought it over for a second, thinking of a wish. He then took a deep breath and blew out all the candles at once. He was rewarded with a healthy round of applause.
After everyone devoured their cake and ice cream, Kyoko took the initiative and assisted Kasumi in removing the remaining food, plates, and utensils. A few seconds later, his father set a large blue gift wrapped box in front of him with a simple aqua ribbon on top.
"Go on, Son, this is from your mother and I," he said as he gestured for him to go ahead and open it, which Tsukune then did with great speed.
After removing the top of the box, he pulled back the tissue paper and pulled out his presents: two pair of black dress slacks, one plain and one pinstriped. Also inside were two short-sleeved dress shirts, one aqua green, and one a light, sky blue. He replaced his new outfits neatly back into the box and replaced the top on at an odd angle.
He then got up and thanked his parents with a warm hug.
"Thanks mom and dad."
"You're welcome, son. Happy birthday," they replied in unison.
After his parents released him, he returned to Moka's side.
Kyoko then reached down to the floor below her seat and produced a small, white box with a gold ribbon on top. Walking over to Tsukune's side, she set the box in front of him.
"Happy birthday, Tsukie. This is from me and my folks. They send their regards."
"Thanks, Kyo. Please tell them thanks," he replied as he opened the slim box and set the lid off to the side.
Inside was a black leather wallet.
"Open the wallet, too," Kyoko instructed him as she smiled.
Doing so, Tsukune discovered there was money inside. And a lot at that.
100,000 Yen.
"Kyo, I...I don't know what to say," he simply replied, unsure of how to react.
"Um, thanks so much," he added a few moments later.
Kyoko leaned down and lightly hugged him from his left side.
"You're welcome, Tsukie."
She then walked back to her seat and sat down.
Moka then got up and stood behind Tsukune, who was still sitting down. She gave him a small envelope that had 'Happy Birthday, Tsukune', in her handwriting, scribbled on the front.
"Happy birthday, Tsukune," she whispered to him. He then opened the simple envelope and found a small, brass key inside.
"Um, Moka. What's this for?"
"Oh, this is the key to our cottage in Hokkaido. We'll be going there for our week vacation, starting on June 29th. A week from today," she happily informed him.
He gave a wide grin upon hearing that wonderful news.
A vacation with Moka. Alone? In the mountains of Northern Japan? Hell yes!
He slowly got up from his chair, turned to face her, then tackled her to the floor, and embraced her with all his might. The young man was simply overwhelmed with joy. Everyone snickered at their adorable antics.
After bonding for several awkward seconds, Tsukune helped Moka off the floor. They then retired to the living-room. Kasumi told the couple that Koji and Kyoko would help clean up the kitchen and dining room, even though Moka protested, saying that it was her duties as his mate to help out around the house.
Kyoko then shooed her out of the kitchen, threatening the vampiress by pretending to grab her, aiming at her ample breasts.
Moka ran out of the kitchen, yelling "Save me, Tsukune!" as she ran into the living-room, hiding behind him as he sat on the couch. He wondered what spooked the mighty Akashiya vampire so much as to scream like a little girl.
He snickered at her more-than adorable behavior.
"It's not funny, Tsukune. Kyoko tried to grab my boobs again," she pouted as she quickly hugged him from behind.
"Sorry, Moka. That's just the way Kyo is. She can be a pain in the ass sometimes, but I can tell that she likes you as a friend. Maybe you could tease her back? You know just a thought," he told her as she released her death-grip, then smiled weakly.
"Oh, okay. Thank you, Tsukune. I feel a lot better now," she replied as her mood lifted considerably.
"It's not a problem, Moka. Besides, what gives her the right to touch you? That's my privilege," he teased with a wink, just before she knocked her huge breasts firmly against his chest, which nearly resulted in him to topple over from the impetuous impact.
Moka then giggled, seeing him befuddled at the unforeseen collision.
"Sorry, love. I guess I got carried away a little bit."
"Oh, it's okay, Moka. No harm...besides, they are quite spectacular," he replied with a wink, which caused her to blush once again.
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Moka..."
"Am I interrupting anything?" Kyoko announced as she saw her cousin's fiancee' sitting rather close to him.
"Kyo, um, no. We were just, um...," Tsukune answered bashfully as Moka was practically on top of him suddenly.
"Getting ready to make out?" Kyoko teased.
"No, we were just talking, that's all," Moka huffed out, clearly upset that their mood was ruined by his cousin's unannounced arrival.
"Sorry, Moka. I just came by to let you know I'm heading home now," Kyoko explained as she got off the couch.
"It's alright, Kyoko. After all, I'm sure you're curious why my breasts are so big and firm," Moka joked, which caused Tsukune's cousin to nearly fall over at her rather audacious and embarrassing statement.
"Umm...uh...hmmm," Kyoko replied, unable to form a coherent response.
"It's okay, Kyo. Thanks again for everything," Tsukune replied as she made her way to the front door, her mind still reeling from Moka's bold assertion regarding her mind-boggling physique.
"Uh, sure, Tsukie...um...no problem."
A minute later, she closed the door behind herself as she walked next-door to her house.
Once the door closed behind Kyoko, Tsukune started to laugh like a lunatic.
Moka wondered what he found to be so amusing. She then realized what she told his cousin just a minute ago and joined him in his boisterous reaction.
Once their laughter died down several minutes later, Tsukune hugged Moka once again.
"That was pretty funny, Moka. I thought for a moment that she might cry after what you told her."
"Thank you Tsukune. I thought it'd be best to take your advice and tease her back. Either that, or I would have kicked her into outer space" was her upfront reply.
Tsukune laughed again at Moka's answer. He had to acknowledge that it was quite hilarious and he was happy to see her take it lightly. Even though she said it with a straight face, he had to admit that Moka was developing a pretty good sense of humor and was learning to adjust living with her love in the human world.
Moka slowly leaned against her love and gently pushed him back onto the couch, silently asking him to take her in his arms, which he did without further petition nor hesitation. Now lying down, she scooted against the back of the couch, holding him close as they both shut their eyes and unintentionally dozed off. After all, they had quite a busy day.
Next week would be the start of their vacation in Hokkaido, which would give the pair a chance to be alone without any hindrances or unwanted interruptions. They both smiled, realizing they would have only each other during that time alone in the mountains of Northern Japan.
They could hardly wait!
…..
Author's Notes: I know this chapter seems very familiar, but like I said at the beginning, I had a very difficult time coming up with another chapter for nearly 3 days. I had one idea and it wasn't going well, so I decided to go with this chapter. What can I say? I just moved recently (last Monday) and I'm still adjusting to being in a new place. I know it's not a valid excuse, but it takes me time to get readjusted. Anyway, enough rambling. Next chapter will be out in a week or so. Thanks to every one for their continued support. :)
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 10 "Birthday Girl"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for a Lemon toward the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka is now 19, and Tsukune is still 18.
…..
A/N: I know this chapter seems very familiar but the overall plot is somewhat different. :)
…..
Saturday, May 11th.
Two weeks have passed since their first, real date as an official couple.
Keeping to their original promise to his mother Kasumi, they somewhat behaved themselves, although it was rather frustrating for the two young vampires, especially since they were blood-mates.
Sure, they slept in the same rooms on a rotating schedule and continued to regularly share blood between themselves. Luckily, Moka's father sent them a 50 pound box of blood transfusion packets; which Tsukune hid deep in the basement of their house; in a separate refrigerator which was under constant lock and key.
Moka awoke to find that her secret fiance' wasn't lying in bed next to her. She was perplexed as to where he had ran off to at such an ungodly hour, especially on the weekend.
Her clock read [9:15 AM]
She rose out of bed, threw on her pink robe and matching slippers, then wandered into his bedroom; since his door was wide open, and saw no sign of him.
She turned around to leave his room, to see if he was in the restroom or not; only to find him carrying a wooden bed tray up the stairs. It was a western-style breakfast that consisted of scrambled eggs, whole-wheat toast with melted butter and strawberry jam, freshly cooked sausage, along with a glass of chilled tomato juice, along with a single, red, rose in a small glass vase.
"Good morning, Moka," he said, bringing her out of her trance. "I hope you slept well, last night," he continued.
"Oh! Good morning, Tsukune. What's all this?", she inquired; a smile across her plump lips.
"This is your birthday breakfast in bed, Moka. Happy birthday!", Tsukune replied, as he set the tray down after following her to her room, then motioned for her to return to the fluffy bed. She blushed brightly, then kissed him passionately on the lips.
"Thank you my dear Tsukune, for remembering my birthday," she quietly replied, as a tear of pure joy trickled down her soft pink cheek.
"O-oh you're welcome, Moka. Of course I would remember. I love you more than anything in the world" he gladly replied, as he returned her kiss.
Even though she felt somewhat self-conscious as he observed her devouring her breakfast in bed, she was actually very happy. And very surprised to boot.
…
"Mm-mm! That was really good! Thank you so much for breakfast, Tsukune," Moka said, once she was finally finished.
"You're quite welcome, Moka. I'm glad you enjoyed it."
"M-mm..I certainly did. Um, have you had a chance to eat yet, love?", she asked, as her heart started to thump rather loudly against her ample bosom.
"Actually I haven't. I woke up about an hour ago, because I wanted to surprise you, Moka," he told her with a warm smile.
The silver-haired, young woman's face turned crimson upon hearing how much that he was inclined towards making her this happy, on her nineteenth birthday. Still sitting on her bed, she leaned over; pulled him closer, and then enveloped him in her loving arms.
"Thank you so much, Tsukune. Hearing that has made me very happy. I love you so much," she told him, his ear now moist from her heart-felt words. Returning her embrace, he squeezed her a bit tighter.
"Um, if that's the case then, you can, um...you know...," she stated, as she tilted her head to the right ever-so slightly, exposing her porcelain-white neck. Seeing her affectionately offer herself, he held her delicate frame closer, as his fangs extended. Moka tenderly held him firmer.
"Aaaah...ahhhhh...Tsukune...aaahhhhh,"she replied, as his razor-sharp canines gently pierced her tender flesh.
'Oh Kami! That feels soooo good! Ah! I want him now!', she screamed to herself.
As he was now satisfied, he retracted his fangs, then licked her neck, and sealed the puncture marks closed that then resembled a purplish-tinted love-bite.
"Thanks, Moka."
"Anytime, Tsukune. It was my pleasure", she cutely replied, while winking.
"Uh, why don't you get dressed Moka? I have a surprise for you today, but no hints. Make sure you wear something comfortable and I'll meet you downstairs when you're done."
"Really Tsukune?" she asked as her red eyes sparkled with keen interest as she wondered what exactly her wonderful mate had in store for her today since it was her birthday.
"Yep. Make sure to wear some comfortable shoes, too" he said as he stood in her doorway.
"Okay love. I'll be ready shortly" she said as he stepped into the hallway and made his way to his own bedroom to get ready as well.
….
Once Tsukune was finally ready getting dressed and shaved, he wandered downstairs and into the kitchen. His father Koji was reading the morning edition of the local newspaper. His mother was busy cooking breakfast for herself and Koji.
Koji peered over the edge of the paper and smiled. He could tell that his son was still nervous to some extent but knew that he and Moka had gotten a lot closer since he had announced to his parents that he and Moka were "blood-mates".
Once Moka explained to his parents what that entailed, his mother said it sounded 'romantic' and wished that she knew what her own husband was thinking anytime of the day.
"Hey son" Koji said as Tsukune sat at the round, high-top table in the corner of the kitchen. He was dressed in beige cargo pants and a teal, button down cotton shirt.
"Good morning."
"So you're taking Moka to Tokyo Disney today, huh?" his dad asked as he set the newspaper on the table after folding it in half.
"Yeah. I don't think she's ever been there before so I wanna make sure she has a good time. We should be back sometime later tonight."
"I see. So are you going to do what you planned?"
"Um, well that's the idea. Oh by the way I have the map, digital camera to take some pictures of the park and my cellphone in case something comes up" Tsukune explained.
"Well, just have fun and get home whenever you can. You're going to be nineteen soon and we trust you son. I'm sure she will be very surprised, that much I'm certain of, but don't make me a grandfather yet" he said full of fatherly advice in a teasing tone.
"Oh yeah, um. Thanks dad. I'll do my best."
"Dear, please stop harassing my son so much" Kasumi admonished with a slight scowl.
"Sorry son. Sorry dear" he said with his head hung low.
…..
A minute later Moka made her way downstairs and walked into the kitchen looking radiant as always. She was wearing a simple, short-sleeved, white button down blouse along with a red and black gingham skirt that rested just above her knees. Her knee-length silver-hued hair was tied back into a ponytail and held in place with a color-coordinated red and black ribbon, tied into a large bow.
Tsukune nearly passed out once again seeing how breathtakingly beautiful Moka always managed to look. She was without a doubt, perfect in every way.
"Good morning Mister and Misses Aono" she announced as she stood behind Tsukune and wrapped her arms around him from behind.
"Good morning, Moka. Happy birthday" Koji and Kasumi announced once she entered.
"Oh thank you both very much" she replied with a bright smile.
"Here Moka, dear. This is from Koji and myself" Kasumi said as she placed a large box on the table, wrapped in metallic, red paper and tied with a large, white bow.
"Go on Moka. Open it" Koji urged. Moka removed the ribbon and set it on the table. She then tore off the wrapping paper with great speed and opened the plain, white box.
"Oh my – thank you so much!" Moka said when she saw what her birthday present was; a beautiful red dress with black trim. The attached bodice was strapless with a built-in bra. She then walked over to the pair and gave them a warm, thankful embrace. She released the elder Aonos a moment later.
"You're welcome Moka. So you kids ready to go?" Koji asked as he stood up from his chair.
"Oh yeah. All set to go Moka?" Tsukune inquired as he stood up too.
"Oh yes. Let's go then, shall we?" she offered with another smile of her own.
The quartet walked towards the front door to retrieve their shoes. Koji would be driving the couple to the local bullet train station they would be taking to Tokyo and then they would ride a local train to Disneyland. Kasumi admired her son and Moka, seeing just how close they actually had become in the short time they've been a couple.
After locking the front door, they piled into the family car and made their way to the train station.
"Tsukune? Um, where are we going exactly?" the birthday girl asked as she leaned against her mate in a loving fashion while they sat shoulder to shoulder in the back seat.
"Oh that's a secret Moka. But I can promise you one thing. We're going to have a great time" was his ambiguous reply.
"O-okay love. I'm looking forward to it then" she offered in return.
…..
Fifteen minutes later, the pair was on-board the bullet train after waving farewell to the older couple. Much to their embarrassment, Koji added as they pulled away from the sidewalk "don't do anything I wouldn't do" before driving off, leaving two very pink-faced teenagers in the dust.
After purchasing their round trip tickets, Tsukune and Moka entered the train that was waiting to leave eastbound soon, towards the greater Tokyo metropolis area. Once they were seated and buckled in their plush seats, Tsukune held Moka's hand in his own as he leaned back and thought about how he would go about celebrating her birthday at the famous amusement park.
Truthfully, Moka was feeling somewhat anxious, since she had not a clue to where he was taking her today, But she had complete faith in Tsukune and trusted him without question or hesitation. He has never let her down since they first became the very best of friends, just over three years ago.
The silver-haired beauty leaned closer to her mate and fluttered her ruby-red eyes shut, as a small smile graced her lips. She then sighed out of sheer exuberance. Now she was getting quite excited, knowing that whatever he had planned for her birthday would be something she would never expect in a thousand years.
Their first train ride only lasted 25 minutes, since the top speed was over 200 miles per hour.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS. NOW APPROACHING TOKYO JR EAST STATION. PLEASE WAIT UNTIL THE TRAIN COMES TO A COMPLETE STOP BEFORE GATHERING YOUR BELONGINGS. NEXT STOP TOKYO JR EAST. THANK YOU VERY MUCH."
Tsukune and Moka ceased their temporarily closeness as the train eventually reached the JR Tokyo Train Station. A few minutes later they then stood up and made their way to the closest exit and waited for it to gradually slow down to a full stop, hands still firmly linked together in a very affectionate way. manner.
As the doors whooshed open a few moment later, dozens of passengers poured out like a flood onto the platform and went their separate ways.
…..
Tsukune continued to hold Moka's hand, as the path was now clear for their turn to disembark the train.
He then lead her towards the escalator that would take them to the second floor to the local trains. The ride to Disney would take approximately another 30 minutes or so.
Tsukune and Moka fed their JR tickets into the turnstiles and then ambled over to a bench off to the side as they awaited the train that would be arriving soon. Their next stop was Maihama Station which was located directly across from the main entrance of Tokyo Disney.
Once the local train arrived about 5 minutes later, Moka and Tsukune sat up and waited for the mass of bodies to exit then walked inside and found a window seat. The train soon pulled away from the platform and headed south east.
"Hey Moka...since we'll be there soon, I guess I'll tell you now" he said, breaking her out her trance as she watched the passing scenery outside from her window seat. She then faced him and listened intently.
"Oh please do tell me. The suspense is far too much to bare any longer" she said with an adorable pout.
"I'm taking you to – Disneyland" he said with a blush.
"Really Tsukune?!" she shouted, drawing a great deal of unwanted attention in her general direction due to her sudden outburst.
"Uh yeah. I really wanted to do something big for your birthday since we couldn't celebrate it last year – well...you know...why" he sadly replied. Moka knew what he was referring to. She was kidnapped last year by Fairy Tale, just prior to her birthday. And Tsukune's is seven weeks after hers: June 22.
"Oh Tsukune!" she said as she leaned against him as she was suddenly overcome by a torrent of positive emotions and kissed him adoringly. Moka broke their kiss a moment later as she realized they weren't exactly alone.
"Well wait until you see the actual park, Moka. It's pretty cool" he replied after he has composed himself and sat back into his seat.
"So, you've been to Disney before?" she inquired; now curious.
"Yeah, once when I was in primary school. I had to go on the smaller rides all by myself though, as my parents were too old to go on them with me. And I was too young at the time, to go on the bigger rides with them" he replied, with a hint of utter sadness in his voice, as he hung his head low.
Sensing she had unintentionally upset him; she reached out and held his hands in her own.
"I'm very sorry, Tsukune. I just...forgot...I apologize...oh Tsukune..." she said as her heart ached for him though their ever-growing blood-bond.
"It's okay Moka. It was a long time...ago...so...you...don't...ha-ve...to," he said, as a few tears trickled down his cheeks as the sad memories bubbled to the surface. Moka pulled him into her arms, in an attempt to ease his agonizing heartache.
"I'm so, so sorry love. I wasn't thinking and shouldn't have asked. I was just wondering about Disneyland," Moka replied, as her heart went out to him. She held him tighter in her tender embrace.
She continued, as she desired to hold him even more.
"You don't have to be alone anymore. I love you so much, my wonderful mate. I can relate to that isolation you experienced in your past. I was always alienated, as you know...I will always be with you...I just want to make all that pain go away...I promise...I will always love you, and be here for you, forever" Moka affectionately told him, as she too shared his anguish through the special bond that they shared.
Once his mood had largely improved, he returned her gesture of adoration and appreciation.
"Thanks, Moka. I feel better now. I will always love and be here for you too. No matter what happens, you will always be the most important part of my life," he said, as he weakly smiled.
"Aw, you're very welcome, Tsukune. And thank you, too. If you ever need someone to talk to, or need a shoulder to lean on; you know that can always count on me. You know that, right?", she answered in turn, as she winked adorably.
"Oh yes, thanks Moka. And you can count on me to always be here for you too."
"And thank you too, love" she said with a happy smile.
A few minutes later, the train entered the southern area of Chiba prefecture.
…..
'NOW APPROACHING MAIHAMA STATION. NEXT STOP: TOKYO DISNEYLAND. ALL PASSENGERS DEPARTING, PLEASE REMEMBER TO BRING ALL PERSONAL BELONGINGS WITH YOU WHEN LEAVING THE TRAIN. NEXT STOP: TOKYO DISNEYLAND: MAIN ENTRANCE. THANK YOU.'
Moka's face lit up, when she heard the overhead, mechanical, announcement. A minute later, the train eventually slowed down to a complete stop.
As the metallic doors whooshed open, dozens of passengers poured out like oil onto the platform, and went their separate ways.
Tsukune firmly held Moka's hand, as the path was now clear for their turn to disembark the train.
"Moka, this way," he gently instructed, as he pointed to the escalator leading to the ground level.
"Wow! So amazing" she suddenly blurted out of nowhere, as she spotted Cinderella's Castle, which is a world-famous Disney landmark.
The platinum-trussed vampiress made a mad sprint for the escalator, dragging Tsukune behind her like a kite.
"Oi! MOKA! Slow down, Moka!" he yelled out-loud, mostly out of sheer panic.
His pleas of help fell on deaf ears, as they were promptly on the bottom floor of the train station, in three seconds flat.
She stopped suddenly on the corner, wondering what all that commotion was, loudly emanating from her blood-mate who was now hunched over, free hand on knee. He was attempting to catch his breath, which was knocked out of him, due to Moka's breakneck burst of exceptional enthusiasm.
"Are you okay, love?", she turned and asked, as she saw he was somewhat befuddled, as she saw that his face was a lovely shade of blue, and was now fighting to fill his lungs with life-giving air.
"*I'm fine Moka...*wheeze*...no worries...*wheeze*...too fast..." he answered as he gave her a feeble thumbs up.
"Oh my gosh! I'm so sorry! I just got too excited. Are you going to be alright, Tsukune?", she answered apologetically, as she gave him a moment to regain his breath and sanity.
After apologizing for the last five minutes, Tsukune told her he was going to be just fine and asked her politely to slow down; as there was a copious amount of traffic to traverse, while crossing the rather busy intersection.
Once they bisected the street; hand in hand of course; they finally saw the sign perched above the gate.
TOKYO DISNEYLAND. THE HAPPIEST PLACE ON EARTH.
Moka's eyes glittered brilliantly as she spotted a few rides just beyond the border of the wall. They then walked up to the line, that was moving along rather quickly and in an orderly manner.
Tsukune fished out their tickets, which were tucked safely in his cargo pants pocket, zippered tight.
Once they arrive at the actual entrance, they had their tickets collected, and in exchange, received neon green wristbands, with Mickey Mouse emblazoned around the perimeter. Along with the park's name and day of the week: Saturday, May 11th. It was nearly half-past 11AM, Tsukune noted.
…..
The first part Moka observed was called "World Bazaar"; the main entry-way and primary shopping area of Tokyo Disneyland.
Despite the use of the word "World" in its name, the general look and theme of "World Bazaar" is that of early 20th-century America, matching the "Main Street, U.S.A." areas of other Magic Kingdom-style parks.
World Bazaar consists of two "streets": Main Street (the primary corridor running from the main entrance toward Cinderella Castle), and Center Street, which forms a perpendicular line with Main Street and leads to Adventure Land in one direction and Tomorrow Land in the other.
A unique feature of World Bazaar is a permanent canopy covering the Main Street and Center Street areas; designed primarily to protect guests from the elements, especially the blazing springtime sun, and unexpected rain storms that the Tokyo area was very well known for.
"Wow! This is amazing! Thank you for bringing me here Tsukune," Moka said, once all the sights and sounds caused her to feel more adoration towards her more-than-generous mate and best friend.
She also took note that there were several dozen shops, and boutiques which she just had to see, later on today.
Moka then turned and kissed him lightly on his cheek, which in effect, drew a reasonably, unwarranted amount of attention to the happy couple.
"Ah! It's my pleasure, Moka. You're the birthday girl. Here, let's head this way," he gently offered, in order to leave that somewhat embarrassing moment behind.
Their first stop was Adventure Land, which consists of two distinct, yet complimentary areas: A New Orleans-themed area, and a "jungle"-themed area.
They first rode the "Jungle River Cruise", a boat ride that simulates a riverboat cruise down several major rivers of Asia, Africa and South America.
They both laughed at the narrator's story, and pointed at the humorous 'animals' that were throughout the ride. Moka had never seen anything like this in her entire life.
"Tsukune! Look over there! Elephants! Oh! And monkeys too! How cute! Ooh! A zebra too! Amazing!" she happily shouted out, pointing whenever something 'cute' or 'adorable' caught her keen eyesight.
He snickered at her cuter-than-average reactions.
Luckily, Tsukune knew beforehand that it was a 'safe' ride for the two vampires. He marked out on the map he printed last night, which rides and attractions had a water theme, therefore would result in them actually getting wet.
Moka was naturally very apprehensive at first, but he lovingly reassured her that they wouldn't get a drop of water on them. Which was absolutely true. They left the ride bone dry.
…..
After their riverboat adventure, they walked about, and marveled at the intricate details to the 'town' they were in. It seemed to them that they were actually in the middle of a Louisiana Bayou.
It was quite a view.
"Oh Tsukune. Look at all the pretty flowers" she replied as they walked along a shaded pathway.
Of course Tsukune had brought along a small digital camera to take snapshots of the park, and of his gorgeous silver-haired girlfriend, who was for some reason, suddenly camera shy.
But she cutely posed, and beautifully smiled for her mate, who made this wonderful day possible. She posed for him near a large savannah (field), surrounded by beautiful, multicolored flowers and huge weeping willow trees. She awed at the relaxing atmosphere.
"Thank you again love. You've made me quite happy" she said as she bashfully smiled and held his hand in her own as she marveled at the different areas of the world that the park mimicked in precise detail.
They visited South America, China, France and Italy. Of course they took more pictures, this time as a couple. They had to ask a few other park visitors to take the photos for them of course. They were quite grateful for all the assistance. A few people had asked about Moka's strange eye and hair color. Her simple reply is that she was just 'cosplaying'.
…..
Their next stop after a brief rest on a park bench, would be Frontier Land's "Big Thunder Mountain" roller-coaster. It includes inside and outside views of amazing rock formations, a Glowing Cavern Pool and several sharp u-turns and sudden drops.
They were both a little dizzy from their coaster expedition.
"So Moka...what do you think of Disneyland so far?"
"Oh...It's quite fun Tsukune" she said as she quickly hugged him again out of the blue.
"I'm glad to hear it Moka" he replied as they wandered around with no particular destination in mind.
Tsukune had to keep a close watch on the current time as he had another one of several surprises in store for his wonderful girlfriend on her birthday. They wandered around for awhile, taking in the sights of the Magic Kingdom. They even rode the 'Teacups' plus a few other milder rides and both ended up a little dizzy afterward.
….
It was now half past four PM and Tsukune suggested that they get something to eat. Moka said anywhere was fine as long as he was with her. Unknown to the vampire princess, Tsukune had already called ahead with a special surprise in store, just for her, located in Fantasy Land at the "Queen Of Hearts Banquet Hall" which is a buffet-type restaurant.
Once they walked inside, they were greeted by a hostess dressed like Alice in a blue and white dress, with blonde hair and blue eyes, from the classic animated film 'Alice in Wonderland'.
"Welcome to the Queen of Hearts. Follow me please" the hostess told the pair who followed her to a table located in the far corner of the eating establishment.
"So what do you think Moka?" Tsukune asked once they sat down at their table for a moment.
"Oh it's very nice" she said as she inhaled the wonderful scents of the various foods that were lined up, buffet style. The hostess told the pair to help themselves to whatever they would like, since it was "all you can eat" type set-up. They sat up from their chairs and made their way over to the smorgasbord that was easily 15 meters long. The amount of food choices were impressive as well as the desserts, too.
Moka chose fried chicken, pepperoni pizza, Caesar salad, meatloaf and mashed potatoes. Tsukune chose identical choices which she found to be rather cute. Once they returned to their table they dug into their food like the hungry vampires they were.
The hostess walked by their table a few minutes later to check up on the duo. Tsukune nodded to her, giving her a silent signal to go ahead with the plan which he had called in advance for.
"So Moka, how's the food" Tsukune asked breaking the silence.
"Oh it's very good love" she replied with a smile.
"Yeah, it is" was his simple answer. The pair made a few more trips, sampling several types of dishes from around the globe.
Once their appetites were assuaged, the staff walked over to their table carrying a very special dessert. As soon as they were in earshot, they broke out in song with "Happy Birthday" to Moka as they sat a slice of chocolate cake with strawberry ice cream and topped with a lighted, pink, candle in front of the birthday girl.
"Happy Birthday, Moka" Tsukune said as soon as the song was finished. Moka on one hand was completely caught off guard by the impromptu celebration. On the other hand, she then shed a few tears of joy and hugged her mate who had made this exceptional day possible.
"Thank you Tsukune. Nobody has ever held a surprise party for me before" she said once they ceased their embrace.
"You're very welcome Moka. Now make a wish and blow out the candle" he gently suggested.
She thought it over for a brief second and blew it out with one breath, then was awarded a healthy round of applause from the staff, who left a moment later so she could enjoy her birthday treat in peace.
"So Moka, did you make a wish?" Tsukune asked as she took a bite of the sweet confectionery, with great delight.
"I don't have to make a wish, because I already have what I want the most" she replied with a blush.
"Oh is that so? And what might that be?" he inquired with a quirked brow.
"To be with you" she answered honestly as her blush intensified even deeper.
"Oh Moka..." he said as he was nearly moved to tears by her direct response.
"Thank you, again Tsukune. For all this" she said as she was feeling more love towards her one and only mate.
"There's no need Moka. I wanted to surprise you today", he inquired.
The silver-haired vampire fidgeted a little, twiddling with her fingers while looking away with another slight blush.
"Well, thank you anyway, love...this is the first time anybody's ever gone this far to actually make me this happy. It really means a lot to me, especially since it's you, Tsukune", she answered.
"Of course Moka. I wanted to make it up to you since we couldn't celebrate your birthday last year. But, I should really thank you, too," he replied, bringing her thoughts back to the present.
"Why? I haven't done anything. This was your present to me" Moka softly answered, as she placed her right hand atop of his.
"Well, that may be true, but...but just the though of you being here with me, really means so much, you know? The last time I was here, I didn't have this much fun. I rode all those rides...completely by myself; my parents standing off the side, just smiling and waving to me. I mean I wasn't totally alone, but...I guess...I guess what I always wanted, is someone to be with me, as a friend. To do things together. And I want you to know, Moka...that you're my very best friend. And I love you so much, a lot more than I ever thought could be possible," he said, as the sad memories began to surface again.
"Oh Tsukune...you're my best friend too, and so much more. I love you very much. So thank you for today" Moka said, as then she turned to his seat and hungrily kissed him passionately on his lips.
They broke their kiss a few moments later, before Moka's ice cream melted.
"Tsukune, say 'ahhh'."
She then placed a small chunk of the sugary treat on her fork and fed him, much to his embarrassment.
He then reached into one of his many pants pockets and produced a small, silver gift-wrapped box that was tied with a red ribbon, and sat it on the table in front of her.
"Happy birthday Moka. Go on, open it" he urged with a genuine smile.
"Oh Tsukune. You shouldn't have. This is more than enough"
She then gently shook the box, which resulted in a metallic, clinking sound.
She placed it back on the table, then untied the tiny ribbon, and set it off to the side.
Upon opening the tiny box, Moka lightly gasped, then covered her mouth with both hands. She shed a few tears of joy when she saw what her birthday present was: a pair of Stirling silver earrings, in the shape of a cross; each adorned in the center with a bright, red garnet.
They were miniature versions of the Rosary she wore for more than seven years, until the time nearly a year ago after it was obliterated beyond repair, during their battle against Alucard.
She gently placed the box on the table, then got up to personally thank her very best friend and love of her life, for his more-than generous present.
"Oh Tsukune...thank...you...so much" she said between sobs, as she hugged him for all she was worth and held him very firmly.
…..
"You're welcome Moka. I had them custom made for you. I love you very much."
"I love you too Tsukune. Thank you, thank you, thank you!"
As soon as Moka calmed down a few minutes later, he then assisted her in placing the loop-type hook into her earlobes, which were already pierced. After helping her clip them in place, she kissed him square on the lips, as she was overflowing with more love, affection and adoration.
As soon as they were finished bonding, Tsukune called the hostess over and paid the bill along with a generous tip. Moka held his arm between her impressive bosom and lead him out of the cartoon-themed restaurant, smiling the entire time.
Truth be known, Moka was feeling much closer to him and was still shocked to some extent over how much he had gone out of his way for her, just to make sure she had a very memorable birthday.
…..
They then wandered into Toon Town, which was adjacent to Fantasy Land, where Tsukune had spotted the last ride for the day. It was now dark, and the poly-chromatic lights throughout the entire park started to illuminate one by one.
"Oh Tsukune, look at the lights. So pretty!", Moka joyously declared, as her eyes glimmered at the sight before her.
"Yes. I agree," Tsukune replied, as he lead her to the Ferris Wheel which was just a short stroll from their present location.
It rose roughly 100 feet in the air, and each carriage was big enough for a couple.
The vampire duo waited in line for only a few minutes, then entered the enclosed carriage. Tsukune held Moka's hand, as she sat down on the seat across from him; the door was then locked behind them, with a gentle 'click'. The 'Wheel' then started it's round-about trip.
"So Moka, what did you think about the park? Pretty amazing huh?", Tsukune inquired, as she was awestruck at the view below. The entire park was illuminated in every color light imaginable.
"Wow, it's so beautiful" is all she could say once she saw the park below.
"Not as beautiful as you, Moka," he said, as he squeezed her hand, hoping to bring her out of her trance. Her face suddenly turned five shades of crimson from all the emotions she was feeling at this very second. She was still astonished at the fact he had done all of his, just to spend her birthday together.
"Oh Tsukune, thank you *sniff* my love..I really had a lot fun with you today. I...love...you...so, so much...you have truly made me the happiest woman in the entire world...," Moka responded, after a few seconds.
She then leaned forward and closed the short distance between themselves, then kissed him feverishly. Moka quickly got aroused just from their close approximation, and the warm feelings she had experienced at this time, which she didn't want to end anytime, soon.
As the Ferris Wheel made a few more round trips; it quietly stopped for a minute to allow passengers to disembark on the bottom, while Moka and Tsukune were at the very peak of the ride, over 30 meters above the brightly lit, entertainment park.
Tsukune hugged her tight, and kissed her tears away.
"You're very welcome, Moka. I had a great time with you as well. Together. Alone...without any unwanted interruptions. I love you too. You really are everything to me," he told her, still holding hands.
"Oh Tsukune. Thank you once again for a memorable day."
"It's my pleasure Moka. Actually I have something that I want to ask you. I know that we're blood-mates and my folks were kind of surprised at the unusual news, but they accepted it and the way we explained it to them – well...um...I really wanna do the right thing and I know it's kinda sudden...but..." he said as he stood up from his seat and then leaned down onto one knee, then pulled out from another pocket a small, black, velvet-covered box.
"Moka Akashiya...will you do me the honor...and b-be my w-wife?" he asked upon opening the tiny box and removed the small, diamond-studded ring made from white gold.
"Oh Tsukune...yes. Yes! Yes, I will be be your wife, my love" she said with tears in her ruby-red eyes. He slipped the ring onto her left ring-finger and then kissed her hand. It was a perfect fit.
She then leaned forward and kissed him once again. Her mind was positively spinning from such an amazing day. Truth be told, she was completely and utterly speechless and had no idea what else to say. She then broke their kiss and trailed her tongue along the right side of his neck, then gently pierced his flesh with her fangs and drank a small bit of his intoxicating blood for a few moments.
A groan of pleasure bubbled up the young raven-haired vampire's throat as he was becoming aroused in the matter of a single second. When her thirst was appeased, she withdrew her canines and licked his neck with her warm tongue which sealed the small marks closed.
He then returned to his seat across from her and smiled, feeling completely at ease. He actually went ahead and popped the question and she answered yes without hesitation. He was not only happy but relieved as well. Earlier he felt like he was running a marathon through the scorching Sahara desert in the middle of July.
Moka then got up from her seat and sat next to him, as she desired to be much closer. Her face was still flush and couldn't believe that she was now engaged to her blood-mate, even though they were already considered to be "engaged", according to ancient, vampire customs.
As the Ferris Wheel returned to the ground level, the attendant unlocked the car and allowed the couple to be on their way. Moka seemed to be in her own little world as she admired her diamond-studded engagement ring that twinkled brightly as it reflected the various lights in the general vicinity, still holding hands with her groom-to-be.
"It is a lovely ring Tsukune" she said once she realized they were still at Disneyland.
"I'm glad you like it Moka. It was my grandmother's ring. My dad gave it to me after I explained to him in greater detail about us being mates and he told me to do the right thing when the time was perfect, so I thought I would ask you on the Ferris Wheel" he explained.
"Really Tsukune?" she asked as she held him closer as the scene was set in a romantic place after all.
"Yeah. I guess you were surprised, huh?" he said as they walked back towards the entrance, seeing that they had lost track of time.
"Oh yes, love. And you've made me so very happy. Um, I was wondering, if it would be alright...if we didn't go home tonight? I'd like to thank you properly for today" she said with a devilish smirk.
"I'm happy to hear that Moka. And um...if that's what you want, then I don't see why not. What did you have in mind, exactly?" he said as they neared the exit.
"Well, we could um, get a hotel room close by if it's alright with you, love" she admitted as her cheeks grew flush at the very notion.
"Um, okay – sure. Lead the way, Moka" he said as they exited the amusement park and returned to the not-so-busy street. Moka led him by the hand, down the avenue as she searched for overnight lodging with her keen eyesight. She spotted a building not too far away and lead her mate in the proper direction, hands still linked together.
When they finally reach the non-nondescript looking building called "Couple's Inn", a few moments later, Moka attempted to decipher what was printed on a sign adjacent to the entry of the building.
"Look Tsukune. It has different prices for what I'm assuming to be a suite or hotel room of some sorts. What does 'stay' mean? It also says 'sleep'. Isn't that the same thing?", she asked, while she scratched her head, as she was endeavoring to make some sense of the unusual, cryptic way the sign was worded.
"Let's see here. It says 'Sleep 6000 yen, weekdays.' There's no option for 'stay', though. It also says 'on weekends', or 'weekday, early', for that option. Well, what do you think Moka? I hope it's comfortable, at least," he commented once he managed to decode the placard attached to the concrete wall.
"Sure Tsukune. I'm with you" she happily consented.
As they walked through the single, glass door, they entered into a small lobby that seemed to be devoid of a counter person, that you would commonly find at any hotel, located anywhere on the planet.
All they could see was a large automated, mechanical machine; with a huge, glass, panel marked with numerous buttons, and pictures describing the size of the individual rooms themselves, each of which had a different subject of sorts, it would appear.
Some had heart-shaped beds or bath tubs. Several other had either an outer space, castle, or jungle motif, as well.
After decoding the 'machine', Tsukune pressed one of the buttons, and a small window automatically opened, located underneath it. A sign then lit up in green LEDS, which indicated to 'pay here', as a tiny slot opened inside the window. He then reached into his back pocket to retrieve his wallet. He then placed 6, 1000 yen bills into the rectangular opening.
The room he chose was a simple room, with no special design, whatsoever.
The entire window / slot combination then shut itself closed.
Afterward, his money was counted and processed; a pneumatic tube exited out from the ceiling; which shot down a small cylinder inside, which held the key to the room, inside itself. After he removed the key, he placed the cylinder back into the tube, then the whole unit vanished up, into the ceiling, where it popped out a moment ago, with a loud 'oomph'.
That was different" Moka remarked wide-eyed, after the 'show' was finished.
A moment later, a door opened automatically to the right, with a sign that indicated "rooms this way".
They walked down the lighted corridor, and searched for the corresponding room number, which was dangling off the round key fob. At the end of the hallway, they finally found it. Room Seven.
After Tsukune inserted the key into the lock, he turned it, and then unlocked it with a loud 'clunk'.
Tsukune walked in first, as he searched for a light-switch. Moka followed right behind him, and located it on the wall immediately; flipped it up, which in turn illuminated the room.
"Not too bad" Tsukune commented as he scans the "love hotel" room.
It was a decently sized room, with a king-sized bed on the left-hand side in the middle, against the wall. Several pillows with a matching, rich crimson, bedspread covered it. Across from the bed, is a decent-sized, wooden dresser with a big-screen television on top, along with a digital alarm clock. There was also a small restroom, located in the back.
"Yes, I agree, Tsukune," Moka added; then walked over to the fluffy bed; flopped down onto it, and patted the spot next to her, as she quietly invited her fiance to lay down beside her, which he did without further reluctance.
…..
He then turned to her then held her face close and started to French kiss his beautiful, silver-haired blood-mate.
Feeling more relaxed now, she returned his love, and began to moan lustfully inside his mouth, as their tongues wrestle each other madly. Which in turn aroused him even more-so.
As she felt his throbbing manhood up against her firm abdomen, Moka began to rub it with her free hand through his trousers. Tsukune then slowly moved his hands behind her back, and gingerly unzipped her plaid mini-skirt.
Moka then quickly removed it; and allowed it fall to the bed below, while still sitting up on her knees. He then assisted her in removing her white dress shirt a moment later.
Still kissing her beloved, she unbuckled his brown, leather belt; then unfastened his tan cargo pants, which then follow suit.
Panting much heavier, and getting moist; Moka momentarily ceased their embrace and moved briefly so they could continue undressing. A brief second later, all their clothes and undergarments were hastily displaced, scattered all across the carpeted floor below.
Tsukune excused himself off the bed; shut the light off via the switch near the door, and crawled back into the bed with Moka, who was now under the soft, velvety sheets and blankets.
"Tsukune, make love to me, please. I want to make you happy, my wonderful fiance'," she seductively suggested. Lying on top of her naked body, he placed his steel-hard rod against her womanhood; rubbed her clitoris a few times, which caused her to moan even louder.
He then gently massaged her spectacular breasts, which caused her to pant heavier, then suckled her pink nipples, which were solid from his loving caress.
Moka then vocalized even louder as her breathing and heartbeat increased dramatically, all due in fact to her mate's nonstop, affectionate attention.
She then softly gripped his manhood, and slowly inched it inside her sweet honey pot which was soaked from nearly half an hour of foreplay.
….
"Tsukune...ahhh...oh kami...too big...Tsukune...please...more..oh kami more!", Moka bellowed out, as his rhythm gradually increased to match her breathing.
"Oh Moka...you feel so warm...aah..."
"More Tsukune! Oh yes! More! OH YES. MORE!" she beseeched of her blood-mate.
Hearing her lusty voice begging, he augmented his motions, which resulted in the bed to bang to and fro against the wall with extraordinary force.
"Ahhh..ahhh...ahhhngh...Tsukune...Tsu...ku...ne...ahhhhhngn...ah-ahhhh...TSUKUNE!" Moka boisterously screamed, inundated with pleasure, as her voice rattled the small windows of their suite.
Out of pure animal-like instinct, the unsealed yokai wrapped her sexy legs around Tsukune's lower waist, which resulted in him deepening his thrusts, much closer to herself. That in turn caused the bed to bounce up and down violently off the floor. This prolonged on for nearly twenty minutes, as their excessive voices reverberated of the walls of their hotel room.
"Moka...ahhh...so close...ahhhhnn!", Tsukune yelled, on the cusp of climaxing.
His mate then freed him from her legs, as she felt the pleasurable pressure building up inside of her; the head of his manhood quickly enlarged, as he was getting closer to an intense release.
His pounding barrage continued vigorously, which caused Moka to shriek even louder.
The sexually gratified couple then convulsed exactly in accord.
…..
Moka's juices had soaked the bedding from her powerful, sexual, release. Holding her exhausted fiance' close, she started to happily hum a nameless tune with a bright smile across her lovey features.
Tsukune and Moka both just closed their eyes, as they basked in the afterglow of their intense lovemaking. Once they finally came down from their natural high, Tsukune settled down on the pillow to her right.
"That was...amazing. You wore me out, Moka; but in a good way," he gladly complimented his wonderful fiancee; who was now snuggled up to him, her legs intertwined with his own.
"Mmmm...yes it was. You were quite amazing yourself, Tsukune" she answered, still smiling from ear to ear. He pulled her much closer, and could feel her heat radiate forth from her voluptuous body.
'She feels so nice next to me, nude like this' he told himself.
"Sleepy now?," she asked in between yawns, as she was herself, after such a fantastic birthday.
"Yes. Sleep, good" he replied, with a small chuckle.
"Goodnight, Tsukune."
"Good night, Moka."
After their last kiss of the night, the young couple then drifted off to sleep, cuddled next to each other under the silky sheets.
…..
Author's Note:
I worked on this chapter on and off for almost 3 days. I know this is very similar to another chapter from my other R+V fan-fic (which as most of you already know) is based upon but with many changes. I hope that you enjoyed this long chapter as much as I had writing it. :)
Please feel free to leave a short comment, or not. Any and all feedback is welcome and appreciated.
I don't beg or force readers for Follows or Reviews, like a lot of fan-fic writers do. They might even hold a chapter "hostage" until they get a set number of reviews for said chapter. Which I personally think is quite rude to the readers and upsetting to writers like myself, who only write for fun.
I do this for you, the fans. I do not make any financial gain from this, as it's just a hobby of mine.
….. Important news regarding the R + V manga series: Please read! ...
Most of you may or may not know this, but the Rosario + Vampire "Season 2" manga is ending in about a month or so with the next chapter release. Most likely at the end of January or February. I know it's very hard to accept, but it's the truth. Whatever the outcome of the final chapter is, will in no way change my story (I hope so at least, LOL), although I might reference it in a future chapter or two.
And for those asking now about the possibility of a "Season 3" of the manga, there is no news nor proof leading to that. I found out the news two weeks ago from one of my readers. I also checked online and discovered that it was the truth.
Just Google "Rosario Vampire manga ending in February".
I do incorporate story and plot lines from mostly the manga and a few from the anime series into my fan-fiction, as I try to stay very close to the actual source material as much as I can, without changing my overall plot too much.
The next chapter will be out in about a week as I am in fact moving on Dec. 13Th (today) and will do my very best to get moving and unpacking done and out of the way, so I can concentrate on future chapters in uninterrupted peace. :)
A very big thank you once again to all my faithful friends, watchers and followers for your continued support and making this story what it is today.
I wouldn't be here if it weren't for your influence :)
BTW, as of this writing, this story has over 10,000 views!
Chapter 10 "Birthday Girl"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for a Lemon toward the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka is now 19, and Tsukune is still 18.
…..
A/N: I know this chapter seems very familiar but the overall plot is somewhat different. :)
…..
Saturday, May 11th.
Two weeks have passed since their first, real date as an official couple.
Keeping to their original promise to his mother Kasumi, they somewhat behaved themselves, although it was rather frustrating for the two young vampires, especially since they were blood-mates.
Sure, they slept in the same rooms on a rotating schedule and continued to regularly share blood between themselves. Luckily, Moka's father sent them a 50 pound box of blood transfusion packets; which Tsukune hid deep in the basement of their house; in a separate refrigerator which was under constant lock and key.
Moka awoke to find that her secret fiance' wasn't lying in bed next to her. She was perplexed as to where he had ran off to at such an ungodly hour, especially on the weekend.
Her clock read [9:15 AM]
She rose out of bed, threw on her pink robe and matching slippers, then wandered into his bedroom; since his door was wide open, and saw no sign of him.
She turned around to leave his room, to see if he was in the restroom or not; only to find him carrying a wooden bed tray up the stairs. It was a western-style breakfast that consisted of scrambled eggs, whole-wheat toast with melted butter and strawberry jam, freshly cooked sausage, along with a glass of chilled tomato juice, along with a single, red, rose in a small glass vase.
"Good morning, Moka," he said, bringing her out of her trance. "I hope you slept well, last night," he continued.
"Oh! Good morning, Tsukune. What's all this?", she inquired; a smile across her plump lips.
"This is your birthday breakfast in bed, Moka. Happy birthday!", Tsukune replied, as he set the tray down after following her to her room, then motioned for her to return to the fluffy bed. She blushed brightly, then kissed him passionately on the lips.
"Thank you my dear Tsukune, for remembering my birthday," she quietly replied, as a tear of pure joy trickled down her soft pink cheek.
"O-oh you're welcome, Moka. Of course I would remember. I love you more than anything in the world" he gladly replied, as he returned her kiss.
Even though she felt somewhat self-conscious as he observed her devouring her breakfast in bed, she was actually very happy. And very surprised to boot.
…
"Mm-mm! That was really good! Thank you so much for breakfast, Tsukune," Moka said, once she was finally finished.
"You're quite welcome, Moka. I'm glad you enjoyed it."
"M-mm..I certainly did. Um, have you had a chance to eat yet, love?", she asked, as her heart started to thump rather loudly against her ample bosom.
"Actually I haven't. I woke up about an hour ago, because I wanted to surprise you, Moka," he told her with a warm smile.
The silver-haired, young woman's face turned crimson upon hearing how much that he was inclined towards making her this happy, on her nineteenth birthday. Still sitting on her bed, she leaned over; pulled him closer, and then enveloped him in her loving arms.
"Thank you so much, Tsukune. Hearing that has made me very happy. I love you so much," she told him, his ear now moist from her heart-felt words. Returning her embrace, he squeezed her a bit tighter.
"Um, if that's the case then, you can, um...you know...," she stated, as she tilted her head to the right ever-so slightly, exposing her porcelain-white neck. Seeing her affectionately offer herself, he held her delicate frame closer, as his fangs extended. Moka tenderly held him firmer.
"Aaaah...ahhhhh...Tsukune...aaahhhhh,"she replied, as his razor-sharp canines gently pierced her tender flesh.
'Oh Kami! That feels soooo good! Ah! I want him now!', she screamed to herself.
As he was now satisfied, he retracted his fangs, then licked her neck, and sealed the puncture marks closed that then resembled a purplish-tinted love-bite.
"Thanks, Moka."
"Anytime, Tsukune. It was my pleasure", she cutely replied, while winking.
"Uh, why don't you get dressed Moka? I have a surprise for you today, but no hints. Make sure you wear something comfortable and I'll meet you downstairs when you're done."
"Really Tsukune?" she asked as her red eyes sparkled with keen interest as she wondered what exactly her wonderful mate had in store for her today since it was her birthday.
"Yep. Make sure to wear some comfortable shoes, too" he said as he stood in her doorway.
"Okay love. I'll be ready shortly" she said as he stepped into the hallway and made his way to his own bedroom to get ready as well.
….
Once Tsukune was finally ready getting dressed and shaved, he wandered downstairs and into the kitchen. His father Koji was reading the morning edition of the local newspaper. His mother was busy cooking breakfast for herself and Koji.
Koji peered over the edge of the paper and smiled. He could tell that his son was still nervous to some extent but knew that he and Moka had gotten a lot closer since he had announced to his parents that he and Moka were "blood-mates".
Once Moka explained to his parents what that entailed, his mother said it sounded 'romantic' and wished that she knew what her own husband was thinking anytime of the day.
"Hey son" Koji said as Tsukune sat at the round, high-top table in the corner of the kitchen. He was dressed in beige cargo pants and a teal, button down cotton shirt.
"Good morning."
"So you're taking Moka to Tokyo Disney today, huh?" his dad asked as he set the newspaper on the table after folding it in half.
"Yeah. I don't think she's ever been there before so I wanna make sure she has a good time. We should be back sometime later tonight."
"I see. So are you going to do what you planned?"
"Um, well that's the idea. Oh by the way I have the map, digital camera to take some pictures of the park and my cellphone in case something comes up" Tsukune explained.
"Well, just have fun and get home whenever you can. You're going to be nineteen soon and we trust you son. I'm sure she will be very surprised, that much I'm certain of, but don't make me a grandfather yet" he said full of fatherly advice in a teasing tone.
"Oh yeah, um. Thanks dad. I'll do my best."
"Dear, please stop harassing my son so much" Kasumi admonished with a slight scowl.
"Sorry son. Sorry dear" he said with his head hung low.
…..
A minute later Moka made her way downstairs and walked into the kitchen looking radiant as always. She was wearing a simple, short-sleeved, white button down blouse along with a red and black gingham skirt that rested just above her knees. Her knee-length silver-hued hair was tied back into a ponytail and held in place with a color-coordinated red and black ribbon, tied into a large bow.
Tsukune nearly passed out once again seeing how breathtakingly beautiful Moka always managed to look. She was without a doubt, perfect in every way.
"Good morning Mister and Misses Aono" she announced as she stood behind Tsukune and wrapped her arms around him from behind.
"Good morning, Moka. Happy birthday" Koji and Kasumi announced once she entered.
"Oh thank you both very much" she replied with a bright smile.
"Here Moka, dear. This is from Koji and myself" Kasumi said as she placed a large box on the table, wrapped in metallic, red paper and tied with a large, white bow.
"Go on Moka. Open it" Koji urged. Moka removed the ribbon and set it on the table. She then tore off the wrapping paper with great speed and opened the plain, white box.
"Oh my – thank you so much!" Moka said when she saw what her birthday present was; a beautiful red dress with black trim. The attached bodice was strapless with a built-in bra. She then walked over to the pair and gave them a warm, thankful embrace. She released the elder Aonos a moment later.
"You're welcome Moka. So you kids ready to go?" Koji asked as he stood up from his chair.
"Oh yeah. All set to go Moka?" Tsukune inquired as he stood up too.
"Oh yes. Let's go then, shall we?" she offered with another smile of her own.
The quartet walked towards the front door to retrieve their shoes. Koji would be driving the couple to the local bullet train station they would be taking to Tokyo and then they would ride a local train to Disneyland. Kasumi admired her son and Moka, seeing just how close they actually had become in the short time they've been a couple.
After locking the front door, they piled into the family car and made their way to the train station.
"Tsukune? Um, where are we going exactly?" the birthday girl asked as she leaned against her mate in a loving fashion while they sat shoulder to shoulder in the back seat.
"Oh that's a secret Moka. But I can promise you one thing. We're going to have a great time" was his ambiguous reply.
"O-okay love. I'm looking forward to it then" she offered in return.
…..
Fifteen minutes later, the pair was on-board the bullet train after waving farewell to the older couple. Much to their embarrassment, Koji added as they pulled away from the sidewalk "don't do anything I wouldn't do" before driving off, leaving two very pink-faced teenagers in the dust.
After purchasing their round trip tickets, Tsukune and Moka entered the train that was waiting to leave eastbound soon, towards the greater Tokyo metropolis area. Once they were seated and buckled in their plush seats, Tsukune held Moka's hand in his own as he leaned back and thought about how he would go about celebrating her birthday at the famous amusement park.
Truthfully, Moka was feeling somewhat anxious, since she had not a clue to where he was taking her today, But she had complete faith in Tsukune and trusted him without question or hesitation. He has never let her down since they first became the very best of friends, just over three years ago.
The silver-haired beauty leaned closer to her mate and fluttered her ruby-red eyes shut, as a small smile graced her lips. She then sighed out of sheer exuberance. Now she was getting quite excited, knowing that whatever he had planned for her birthday would be something she would never expect in a thousand years.
Their first train ride only lasted 25 minutes, since the top speed was over 200 miles per hour.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS. NOW APPROACHING TOKYO JR EAST STATION. PLEASE WAIT UNTIL THE TRAIN COMES TO A COMPLETE STOP BEFORE GATHERING YOUR BELONGINGS. NEXT STOP TOKYO JR EAST. THANK YOU VERY MUCH."
Tsukune and Moka ceased their temporarily closeness as the train eventually reached the JR Tokyo Train Station. A few minutes later they then stood up and made their way to the closest exit and waited for it to gradually slow down to a full stop, hands still firmly linked together in a very affectionate way. manner.
As the doors whooshed open a few moment later, dozens of passengers poured out like a flood onto the platform and went their separate ways.
…..
Tsukune continued to hold Moka's hand, as the path was now clear for their turn to disembark the train.
He then lead her towards the escalator that would take them to the second floor to the local trains. The ride to Disney would take approximately another 30 minutes or so.
Tsukune and Moka fed their JR tickets into the turnstiles and then ambled over to a bench off to the side as they awaited the train that would be arriving soon. Their next stop was Maihama Station which was located directly across from the main entrance of Tokyo Disney.
Once the local train arrived about 5 minutes later, Moka and Tsukune sat up and waited for the mass of bodies to exit then walked inside and found a window seat. The train soon pulled away from the platform and headed south east.
"Hey Moka...since we'll be there soon, I guess I'll tell you now" he said, breaking her out her trance as she watched the passing scenery outside from her window seat. She then faced him and listened intently.
"Oh please do tell me. The suspense is far too much to bare any longer" she said with an adorable pout.
"I'm taking you to – Disneyland" he said with a blush.
"Really Tsukune?!" she shouted, drawing a great deal of unwanted attention in her general direction due to her sudden outburst.
"Uh yeah. I really wanted to do something big for your birthday since we couldn't celebrate it last year – well...you know...why" he sadly replied. Moka knew what he was referring to. She was kidnapped last year by Fairy Tale, just prior to her birthday. And Tsukune's is seven weeks after hers: June 22.
"Oh Tsukune!" she said as she leaned against him as she was suddenly overcome by a torrent of positive emotions and kissed him adoringly. Moka broke their kiss a moment later as she realized they weren't exactly alone.
"Well wait until you see the actual park, Moka. It's pretty cool" he replied after he has composed himself and sat back into his seat.
"So, you've been to Disney before?" she inquired; now curious.
"Yeah, once when I was in primary school. I had to go on the smaller rides all by myself though, as my parents were too old to go on them with me. And I was too young at the time, to go on the bigger rides with them" he replied, with a hint of utter sadness in his voice, as he hung his head low.
Sensing she had unintentionally upset him; she reached out and held his hands in her own.
"I'm very sorry, Tsukune. I just...forgot...I apologize...oh Tsukune..." she said as her heart ached for him though their ever-growing blood-bond.
"It's okay Moka. It was a long time...ago...so...you...don't...ha-ve...to," he said, as a few tears trickled down his cheeks as the sad memories bubbled to the surface. Moka pulled him into her arms, in an attempt to ease his agonizing heartache.
"I'm so, so sorry love. I wasn't thinking and shouldn't have asked. I was just wondering about Disneyland," Moka replied, as her heart went out to him. She held him tighter in her tender embrace.
She continued, as she desired to hold him even more.
"You don't have to be alone anymore. I love you so much, my wonderful mate. I can relate to that isolation you experienced in your past. I was always alienated, as you know...I will always be with you...I just want to make all that pain go away...I promise...I will always love you, and be here for you, forever" Moka affectionately told him, as she too shared his anguish through the special bond that they shared.
Once his mood had largely improved, he returned her gesture of adoration and appreciation.
"Thanks, Moka. I feel better now. I will always love and be here for you too. No matter what happens, you will always be the most important part of my life," he said, as he weakly smiled.
"Aw, you're very welcome, Tsukune. And thank you, too. If you ever need someone to talk to, or need a shoulder to lean on; you know that can always count on me. You know that, right?", she answered in turn, as she winked adorably.
"Oh yes, thanks Moka. And you can count on me to always be here for you too."
"And thank you too, love" she said with a happy smile.
A few minutes later, the train entered the southern area of Chiba prefecture.
…..
'NOW APPROACHING MAIHAMA STATION. NEXT STOP: TOKYO DISNEYLAND. ALL PASSENGERS DEPARTING, PLEASE REMEMBER TO BRING ALL PERSONAL BELONGINGS WITH YOU WHEN LEAVING THE TRAIN. NEXT STOP: TOKYO DISNEYLAND: MAIN ENTRANCE. THANK YOU.'
Moka's face lit up, when she heard the overhead, mechanical, announcement. A minute later, the train eventually slowed down to a complete stop.
As the metallic doors whooshed open, dozens of passengers poured out like oil onto the platform, and went their separate ways.
Tsukune firmly held Moka's hand, as the path was now clear for their turn to disembark the train.
"Moka, this way," he gently instructed, as he pointed to the escalator leading to the ground level.
"Wow! So amazing" she suddenly blurted out of nowhere, as she spotted Cinderella's Castle, which is a world-famous Disney landmark.
The platinum-trussed vampiress made a mad sprint for the escalator, dragging Tsukune behind her like a kite.
"Oi! MOKA! Slow down, Moka!" he yelled out-loud, mostly out of sheer panic.
His pleas of help fell on deaf ears, as they were promptly on the bottom floor of the train station, in three seconds flat.
She stopped suddenly on the corner, wondering what all that commotion was, loudly emanating from her blood-mate who was now hunched over, free hand on knee. He was attempting to catch his breath, which was knocked out of him, due to Moka's breakneck burst of exceptional enthusiasm.
"Are you okay, love?", she turned and asked, as she saw he was somewhat befuddled, as she saw that his face was a lovely shade of blue, and was now fighting to fill his lungs with life-giving air.
"*I'm fine Moka...*wheeze*...no worries...*wheeze*...too fast..." he answered as he gave her a feeble thumbs up.
"Oh my gosh! I'm so sorry! I just got too excited. Are you going to be alright, Tsukune?", she answered apologetically, as she gave him a moment to regain his breath and sanity.
After apologizing for the last five minutes, Tsukune told her he was going to be just fine and asked her politely to slow down; as there was a copious amount of traffic to traverse, while crossing the rather busy intersection.
Once they bisected the street; hand in hand of course; they finally saw the sign perched above the gate.
TOKYO DISNEYLAND. THE HAPPIEST PLACE ON EARTH.
Moka's eyes glittered brilliantly as she spotted a few rides just beyond the border of the wall. They then walked up to the line, that was moving along rather quickly and in an orderly manner.
Tsukune fished out their tickets, which were tucked safely in his cargo pants pocket, zippered tight.
Once they arrive at the actual entrance, they had their tickets collected, and in exchange, received neon green wristbands, with Mickey Mouse emblazoned around the perimeter. Along with the park's name and day of the week: Saturday, May 11th. It was nearly half-past 11AM, Tsukune noted.
…..
The first part Moka observed was called "World Bazaar"; the main entry-way and primary shopping area of Tokyo Disneyland.
Despite the use of the word "World" in its name, the general look and theme of "World Bazaar" is that of early 20th-century America, matching the "Main Street, U.S.A." areas of other Magic Kingdom-style parks.
World Bazaar consists of two "streets": Main Street (the primary corridor running from the main entrance toward Cinderella Castle), and Center Street, which forms a perpendicular line with Main Street and leads to Adventure Land in one direction and Tomorrow Land in the other.
A unique feature of World Bazaar is a permanent canopy covering the Main Street and Center Street areas; designed primarily to protect guests from the elements, especially the blazing springtime sun, and unexpected rain storms that the Tokyo area was very well known for.
"Wow! This is amazing! Thank you for bringing me here Tsukune," Moka said, once all the sights and sounds caused her to feel more adoration towards her more-than-generous mate and best friend.
She also took note that there were several dozen shops, and boutiques which she just had to see, later on today.
Moka then turned and kissed him lightly on his cheek, which in effect, drew a reasonably, unwarranted amount of attention to the happy couple.
"Ah! It's my pleasure, Moka. You're the birthday girl. Here, let's head this way," he gently offered, in order to leave that somewhat embarrassing moment behind.
Their first stop was Adventure Land, which consists of two distinct, yet complimentary areas: A New Orleans-themed area, and a "jungle"-themed area.
They first rode the "Jungle River Cruise", a boat ride that simulates a riverboat cruise down several major rivers of Asia, Africa and South America.
They both laughed at the narrator's story, and pointed at the humorous 'animals' that were throughout the ride. Moka had never seen anything like this in her entire life.
"Tsukune! Look over there! Elephants! Oh! And monkeys too! How cute! Ooh! A zebra too! Amazing!" she happily shouted out, pointing whenever something 'cute' or 'adorable' caught her keen eyesight.
He snickered at her cuter-than-average reactions.
Luckily, Tsukune knew beforehand that it was a 'safe' ride for the two vampires. He marked out on the map he printed last night, which rides and attractions had a water theme, therefore would result in them actually getting wet.
Moka was naturally very apprehensive at first, but he lovingly reassured her that they wouldn't get a drop of water on them. Which was absolutely true. They left the ride bone dry.
…..
After their riverboat adventure, they walked about, and marveled at the intricate details to the 'town' they were in. It seemed to them that they were actually in the middle of a Louisiana Bayou.
It was quite a view.
"Oh Tsukune. Look at all the pretty flowers" she replied as they walked along a shaded pathway.
Of course Tsukune had brought along a small digital camera to take snapshots of the park, and of his gorgeous silver-haired girlfriend, who was for some reason, suddenly camera shy.
But she cutely posed, and beautifully smiled for her mate, who made this wonderful day possible. She posed for him near a large savannah (field), surrounded by beautiful, multicolored flowers and huge weeping willow trees. She awed at the relaxing atmosphere.
"Thank you again love. You've made me quite happy" she said as she bashfully smiled and held his hand in her own as she marveled at the different areas of the world that the park mimicked in precise detail.
They visited South America, China, France and Italy. Of course they took more pictures, this time as a couple. They had to ask a few other park visitors to take the photos for them of course. They were quite grateful for all the assistance. A few people had asked about Moka's strange eye and hair color. Her simple reply is that she was just 'cosplaying'.
…..
Their next stop after a brief rest on a park bench, would be Frontier Land's "Big Thunder Mountain" roller-coaster. It includes inside and outside views of amazing rock formations, a Glowing Cavern Pool and several sharp u-turns and sudden drops.
They were both a little dizzy from their coaster expedition.
"So Moka...what do you think of Disneyland so far?"
"Oh...It's quite fun Tsukune" she said as she quickly hugged him again out of the blue.
"I'm glad to hear it Moka" he replied as they wandered around with no particular destination in mind.
Tsukune had to keep a close watch on the current time as he had another one of several surprises in store for his wonderful girlfriend on her birthday. They wandered around for awhile, taking in the sights of the Magic Kingdom. They even rode the 'Teacups' plus a few other milder rides and both ended up a little dizzy afterward.
….
It was now half past four PM and Tsukune suggested that they get something to eat. Moka said anywhere was fine as long as he was with her. Unknown to the vampire princess, Tsukune had already called ahead with a special surprise in store, just for her, located in Fantasy Land at the "Queen Of Hearts Banquet Hall" which is a buffet-type restaurant.
Once they walked inside, they were greeted by a hostess dressed like Alice in a blue and white dress, with blonde hair and blue eyes, from the classic animated film 'Alice in Wonderland'.
"Welcome to the Queen of Hearts. Follow me please" the hostess told the pair who followed her to a table located in the far corner of the eating establishment.
"So what do you think Moka?" Tsukune asked once they sat down at their table for a moment.
"Oh it's very nice" she said as she inhaled the wonderful scents of the various foods that were lined up, buffet style. The hostess told the pair to help themselves to whatever they would like, since it was "all you can eat" type set-up. They sat up from their chairs and made their way over to the smorgasbord that was easily 15 meters long. The amount of food choices were impressive as well as the desserts, too.
Moka chose fried chicken, pepperoni pizza, Caesar salad, meatloaf and mashed potatoes. Tsukune chose identical choices which she found to be rather cute. Once they returned to their table they dug into their food like the hungry vampires they were.
The hostess walked by their table a few minutes later to check up on the duo. Tsukune nodded to her, giving her a silent signal to go ahead with the plan which he had called in advance for.
"So Moka, how's the food" Tsukune asked breaking the silence.
"Oh it's very good love" she replied with a smile.
"Yeah, it is" was his simple answer. The pair made a few more trips, sampling several types of dishes from around the globe.
Once their appetites were assuaged, the staff walked over to their table carrying a very special dessert. As soon as they were in earshot, they broke out in song with "Happy Birthday" to Moka as they sat a slice of chocolate cake with strawberry ice cream and topped with a lighted, pink, candle in front of the birthday girl.
"Happy Birthday, Moka" Tsukune said as soon as the song was finished. Moka on one hand was completely caught off guard by the impromptu celebration. On the other hand, she then shed a few tears of joy and hugged her mate who had made this exceptional day possible.
"Thank you Tsukune. Nobody has ever held a surprise party for me before" she said once they ceased their embrace.
"You're very welcome Moka. Now make a wish and blow out the candle" he gently suggested.
She thought it over for a brief second and blew it out with one breath, then was awarded a healthy round of applause from the staff, who left a moment later so she could enjoy her birthday treat in peace.
"So Moka, did you make a wish?" Tsukune asked as she took a bite of the sweet confectionery, with great delight.
"I don't have to make a wish, because I already have what I want the most" she replied with a blush.
"Oh is that so? And what might that be?" he inquired with a quirked brow.
"To be with you" she answered honestly as her blush intensified even deeper.
"Oh Moka..." he said as he was nearly moved to tears by her direct response.
"Thank you, again Tsukune. For all this" she said as she was feeling more love towards her one and only mate.
"There's no need Moka. I wanted to surprise you today", he inquired.
The silver-haired vampire fidgeted a little, twiddling with her fingers while looking away with another slight blush.
"Well, thank you anyway, love...this is the first time anybody's ever gone this far to actually make me this happy. It really means a lot to me, especially since it's you, Tsukune", she answered.
"Of course Moka. I wanted to make it up to you since we couldn't celebrate your birthday last year. But, I should really thank you, too," he replied, bringing her thoughts back to the present.
"Why? I haven't done anything. This was your present to me" Moka softly answered, as she placed her right hand atop of his.
"Well, that may be true, but...but just the though of you being here with me, really means so much, you know? The last time I was here, I didn't have this much fun. I rode all those rides...completely by myself; my parents standing off the side, just smiling and waving to me. I mean I wasn't totally alone, but...I guess...I guess what I always wanted, is someone to be with me, as a friend. To do things together. And I want you to know, Moka...that you're my very best friend. And I love you so much, a lot more than I ever thought could be possible," he said, as the sad memories began to surface again.
"Oh Tsukune...you're my best friend too, and so much more. I love you very much. So thank you for today" Moka said, as then she turned to his seat and hungrily kissed him passionately on his lips.
They broke their kiss a few moments later, before Moka's ice cream melted.
"Tsukune, say 'ahhh'."
She then placed a small chunk of the sugary treat on her fork and fed him, much to his embarrassment.
He then reached into one of his many pants pockets and produced a small, silver gift-wrapped box that was tied with a red ribbon, and sat it on the table in front of her.
"Happy birthday Moka. Go on, open it" he urged with a genuine smile.
"Oh Tsukune. You shouldn't have. This is more than enough"
She then gently shook the box, which resulted in a metallic, clinking sound.
She placed it back on the table, then untied the tiny ribbon, and set it off to the side.
Upon opening the tiny box, Moka lightly gasped, then covered her mouth with both hands. She shed a few tears of joy when she saw what her birthday present was: a pair of Stirling silver earrings, in the shape of a cross; each adorned in the center with a bright, red garnet.
They were miniature versions of the Rosary she wore for more than seven years, until the time nearly a year ago after it was obliterated beyond repair, during their battle against Alucard.
She gently placed the box on the table, then got up to personally thank her very best friend and love of her life, for his more-than generous present.
"Oh Tsukune...thank...you...so much" she said between sobs, as she hugged him for all she was worth and held him very firmly.
…..
"You're welcome Moka. I had them custom made for you. I love you very much."
"I love you too Tsukune. Thank you, thank you, thank you!"
As soon as Moka calmed down a few minutes later, he then assisted her in placing the loop-type hook into her earlobes, which were already pierced. After helping her clip them in place, she kissed him square on the lips, as she was overflowing with more love, affection and adoration.
As soon as they were finished bonding, Tsukune called the hostess over and paid the bill along with a generous tip. Moka held his arm between her impressive bosom and lead him out of the cartoon-themed restaurant, smiling the entire time.
Truth be known, Moka was feeling much closer to him and was still shocked to some extent over how much he had gone out of his way for her, just to make sure she had a very memorable birthday.
…..
They then wandered into Toon Town, which was adjacent to Fantasy Land, where Tsukune had spotted the last ride for the day. It was now dark, and the poly-chromatic lights throughout the entire park started to illuminate one by one.
"Oh Tsukune, look at the lights. So pretty!", Moka joyously declared, as her eyes glimmered at the sight before her.
"Yes. I agree," Tsukune replied, as he lead her to the Ferris Wheel which was just a short stroll from their present location.
It rose roughly 100 feet in the air, and each carriage was big enough for a couple.
The vampire duo waited in line for only a few minutes, then entered the enclosed carriage. Tsukune held Moka's hand, as she sat down on the seat across from him; the door was then locked behind them, with a gentle 'click'. The 'Wheel' then started it's round-about trip.
"So Moka, what did you think about the park? Pretty amazing huh?", Tsukune inquired, as she was awestruck at the view below. The entire park was illuminated in every color light imaginable.
"Wow, it's so beautiful" is all she could say once she saw the park below.
"Not as beautiful as you, Moka," he said, as he squeezed her hand, hoping to bring her out of her trance. Her face suddenly turned five shades of crimson from all the emotions she was feeling at this very second. She was still astonished at the fact he had done all of his, just to spend her birthday together.
"Oh Tsukune, thank you *sniff* my love..I really had a lot fun with you today. I...love...you...so, so much...you have truly made me the happiest woman in the entire world...," Moka responded, after a few seconds.
She then leaned forward and closed the short distance between themselves, then kissed him feverishly. Moka quickly got aroused just from their close approximation, and the warm feelings she had experienced at this time, which she didn't want to end anytime, soon.
As the Ferris Wheel made a few more round trips; it quietly stopped for a minute to allow passengers to disembark on the bottom, while Moka and Tsukune were at the very peak of the ride, over 30 meters above the brightly lit, entertainment park.
Tsukune hugged her tight, and kissed her tears away.
"You're very welcome, Moka. I had a great time with you as well. Together. Alone...without any unwanted interruptions. I love you too. You really are everything to me," he told her, still holding hands.
"Oh Tsukune. Thank you once again for a memorable day."
"It's my pleasure Moka. Actually I have something that I want to ask you. I know that we're blood-mates and my folks were kind of surprised at the unusual news, but they accepted it and the way we explained it to them – well...um...I really wanna do the right thing and I know it's kinda sudden...but..." he said as he stood up from his seat and then leaned down onto one knee, then pulled out from another pocket a small, black, velvet-covered box.
"Moka Akashiya...will you do me the honor...and b-be my w-wife?" he asked upon opening the tiny box and removed the small, diamond-studded ring made from white gold.
"Oh Tsukune...yes. Yes! Yes, I will be be your wife, my love" she said with tears in her ruby-red eyes. He slipped the ring onto her left ring-finger and then kissed her hand. It was a perfect fit.
She then leaned forward and kissed him once again. Her mind was positively spinning from such an amazing day. Truth be told, she was completely and utterly speechless and had no idea what else to say. She then broke their kiss and trailed her tongue along the right side of his neck, then gently pierced his flesh with her fangs and drank a small bit of his intoxicating blood for a few moments.
A groan of pleasure bubbled up the young raven-haired vampire's throat as he was becoming aroused in the matter of a single second. When her thirst was appeased, she withdrew her canines and licked his neck with her warm tongue which sealed the small marks closed.
He then returned to his seat across from her and smiled, feeling completely at ease. He actually went ahead and popped the question and she answered yes without hesitation. He was not only happy but relieved as well. Earlier he felt like he was running a marathon through the scorching Sahara desert in the middle of July.
Moka then got up from her seat and sat next to him, as she desired to be much closer. Her face was still flush and couldn't believe that she was now engaged to her blood-mate, even though they were already considered to be "engaged", according to ancient, vampire customs.
As the Ferris Wheel returned to the ground level, the attendant unlocked the car and allowed the couple to be on their way. Moka seemed to be in her own little world as she admired her diamond-studded engagement ring that twinkled brightly as it reflected the various lights in the general vicinity, still holding hands with her groom-to-be.
"It is a lovely ring Tsukune" she said once she realized they were still at Disneyland.
"I'm glad you like it Moka. It was my grandmother's ring. My dad gave it to me after I explained to him in greater detail about us being mates and he told me to do the right thing when the time was perfect, so I thought I would ask you on the Ferris Wheel" he explained.
"Really Tsukune?" she asked as she held him closer as the scene was set in a romantic place after all.
"Yeah. I guess you were surprised, huh?" he said as they walked back towards the entrance, seeing that they had lost track of time.
"Oh yes, love. And you've made me so very happy. Um, I was wondering, if it would be alright...if we didn't go home tonight? I'd like to thank you properly for today" she said with a devilish smirk.
"I'm happy to hear that Moka. And um...if that's what you want, then I don't see why not. What did you have in mind, exactly?" he said as they neared the exit.
"Well, we could um, get a hotel room close by if it's alright with you, love" she admitted as her cheeks grew flush at the very notion.
"Um, okay – sure. Lead the way, Moka" he said as they exited the amusement park and returned to the not-so-busy street. Moka led him by the hand, down the avenue as she searched for overnight lodging with her keen eyesight. She spotted a building not too far away and lead her mate in the proper direction, hands still linked together.
When they finally reach the non-nondescript looking building called "Couple's Inn", a few moments later, Moka attempted to decipher what was printed on a sign adjacent to the entry of the building.
"Look Tsukune. It has different prices for what I'm assuming to be a suite or hotel room of some sorts. What does 'stay' mean? It also says 'sleep'. Isn't that the same thing?", she asked, while she scratched her head, as she was endeavoring to make some sense of the unusual, cryptic way the sign was worded.
"Let's see here. It says 'Sleep 6000 yen, weekdays.' There's no option for 'stay', though. It also says 'on weekends', or 'weekday, early', for that option. Well, what do you think Moka? I hope it's comfortable, at least," he commented once he managed to decode the placard attached to the concrete wall.
"Sure Tsukune. I'm with you" she happily consented.
As they walked through the single, glass door, they entered into a small lobby that seemed to be devoid of a counter person, that you would commonly find at any hotel, located anywhere on the planet.
All they could see was a large automated, mechanical machine; with a huge, glass, panel marked with numerous buttons, and pictures describing the size of the individual rooms themselves, each of which had a different subject of sorts, it would appear.
Some had heart-shaped beds or bath tubs. Several other had either an outer space, castle, or jungle motif, as well.
After decoding the 'machine', Tsukune pressed one of the buttons, and a small window automatically opened, located underneath it. A sign then lit up in green LEDS, which indicated to 'pay here', as a tiny slot opened inside the window. He then reached into his back pocket to retrieve his wallet. He then placed 6, 1000 yen bills into the rectangular opening.
The room he chose was a simple room, with no special design, whatsoever.
The entire window / slot combination then shut itself closed.
Afterward, his money was counted and processed; a pneumatic tube exited out from the ceiling; which shot down a small cylinder inside, which held the key to the room, inside itself. After he removed the key, he placed the cylinder back into the tube, then the whole unit vanished up, into the ceiling, where it popped out a moment ago, with a loud 'oomph'.
That was different" Moka remarked wide-eyed, after the 'show' was finished.
A moment later, a door opened automatically to the right, with a sign that indicated "rooms this way".
They walked down the lighted corridor, and searched for the corresponding room number, which was dangling off the round key fob. At the end of the hallway, they finally found it. Room Seven.
After Tsukune inserted the key into the lock, he turned it, and then unlocked it with a loud 'clunk'.
Tsukune walked in first, as he searched for a light-switch. Moka followed right behind him, and located it on the wall immediately; flipped it up, which in turn illuminated the room.
"Not too bad" Tsukune commented as he scans the "love hotel" room.
It was a decently sized room, with a king-sized bed on the left-hand side in the middle, against the wall. Several pillows with a matching, rich crimson, bedspread covered it. Across from the bed, is a decent-sized, wooden dresser with a big-screen television on top, along with a digital alarm clock. There was also a small restroom, located in the back.
"Yes, I agree, Tsukune," Moka added; then walked over to the fluffy bed; flopped down onto it, and patted the spot next to her, as she quietly invited her fiance to lay down beside her, which he did without further reluctance.
…..
He then turned to her then held her face close and started to French kiss his beautiful, silver-haired blood-mate.
Feeling more relaxed now, she returned his love, and began to moan lustfully inside his mouth, as their tongues wrestle each other madly. Which in turn aroused him even more-so.
As she felt his throbbing manhood up against her firm abdomen, Moka began to rub it with her free hand through his trousers. Tsukune then slowly moved his hands behind her back, and gingerly unzipped her plaid mini-skirt.
Moka then quickly removed it; and allowed it fall to the bed below, while still sitting up on her knees. He then assisted her in removing her white dress shirt a moment later.
Still kissing her beloved, she unbuckled his brown, leather belt; then unfastened his tan cargo pants, which then follow suit.
Panting much heavier, and getting moist; Moka momentarily ceased their embrace and moved briefly so they could continue undressing. A brief second later, all their clothes and undergarments were hastily displaced, scattered all across the carpeted floor below.
Tsukune excused himself off the bed; shut the light off via the switch near the door, and crawled back into the bed with Moka, who was now under the soft, velvety sheets and blankets.
"Tsukune, make love to me, please. I want to make you happy, my wonderful fiance'," she seductively suggested. Lying on top of her naked body, he placed his steel-hard rod against her womanhood; rubbed her clitoris a few times, which caused her to moan even louder.
He then gently massaged her spectacular breasts, which caused her to pant heavier, then suckled her pink nipples, which were solid from his loving caress.
Moka then vocalized even louder as her breathing and heartbeat increased dramatically, all due in fact to her mate's nonstop, affectionate attention.
She then softly gripped his manhood, and slowly inched it inside her sweet honey pot which was soaked from nearly half an hour of foreplay.
….
"Tsukune...ahhh...oh kami...too big...Tsukune...please...more..oh kami more!", Moka bellowed out, as his rhythm gradually increased to match her breathing.
"Oh Moka...you feel so warm...aah..."
"More Tsukune! Oh yes! More! OH YES. MORE!" she beseeched of her blood-mate.
Hearing her lusty voice begging, he augmented his motions, which resulted in the bed to bang to and fro against the wall with extraordinary force.
"Ahhh..ahhh...ahhhngh...Tsukune...Tsu...ku...ne...ahhhhhngn...ah-ahhhh...TSUKUNE!" Moka boisterously screamed, inundated with pleasure, as her voice rattled the small windows of their suite.
Out of pure animal-like instinct, the unsealed yokai wrapped her sexy legs around Tsukune's lower waist, which resulted in him deepening his thrusts, much closer to herself. That in turn caused the bed to bounce up and down violently off the floor. This prolonged on for nearly twenty minutes, as their excessive voices reverberated of the walls of their hotel room.
"Moka...ahhh...so close...ahhhhnn!", Tsukune yelled, on the cusp of climaxing.
His mate then freed him from her legs, as she felt the pleasurable pressure building up inside of her; the head of his manhood quickly enlarged, as he was getting closer to an intense release.
His pounding barrage continued vigorously, which caused Moka to shriek even louder.
The sexually gratified couple then convulsed exactly in accord.
…..
Moka's juices had soaked the bedding from her powerful, sexual, release. Holding her exhausted fiance' close, she started to happily hum a nameless tune with a bright smile across her lovey features.
Tsukune and Moka both just closed their eyes, as they basked in the afterglow of their intense lovemaking. Once they finally came down from their natural high, Tsukune settled down on the pillow to her right.
"That was...amazing. You wore me out, Moka; but in a good way," he gladly complimented his wonderful fiancee; who was now snuggled up to him, her legs intertwined with his own.
"Mmmm...yes it was. You were quite amazing yourself, Tsukune" she answered, still smiling from ear to ear. He pulled her much closer, and could feel her heat radiate forth from her voluptuous body.
'She feels so nice next to me, nude like this' he told himself.
"Sleepy now?," she asked in between yawns, as she was herself, after such a fantastic birthday.
"Yes. Sleep, good" he replied, with a small chuckle.
"Goodnight, Tsukune."
"Good night, Moka."
After their last kiss of the night, the young couple then drifted off to sleep, cuddled next to each other under the silky sheets.
…..
Author's Note:
I worked on this chapter on and off for almost 3 days. I know this is very similar to another chapter from my other R+V fan-fic (which as most of you already know) is based upon but with many changes. I hope that you enjoyed this long chapter as much as I had writing it. :)
Please feel free to leave a short comment, or not. Any and all feedback is welcome and appreciated.
I don't beg or force readers for Follows or Reviews, like a lot of fan-fic writers do. They might even hold a chapter "hostage" until they get a set number of reviews for said chapter. Which I personally think is quite rude to the readers and upsetting to writers like myself, who only write for fun.
I do this for you, the fans. I do not make any financial gain from this, as it's just a hobby of mine.
….. Important news regarding the R + V manga series: Please read! ...
Most of you may or may not know this, but the Rosario + Vampire "Season 2" manga is ending in about a month or so with the next chapter release. Most likely at the end of January or February. I know it's very hard to accept, but it's the truth. Whatever the outcome of the final chapter is, will in no way change my story (I hope so at least, LOL), although I might reference it in a future chapter or two.
And for those asking now about the possibility of a "Season 3" of the manga, there is no news nor proof leading to that. I found out the news two weeks ago from one of my readers. I also checked online and discovered that it was the truth.
Just Google "Rosario Vampire manga ending in February".
I do incorporate story and plot lines from mostly the manga and a few from the anime series into my fan-fiction, as I try to stay very close to the actual source material as much as I can, without changing my overall plot too much.
The next chapter will be out in about a week as I am in fact moving on Dec. 13Th (today) and will do my very best to get moving and unpacking done and out of the way, so I can concentrate on future chapters in uninterrupted peace. :)
A very big thank you once again to all my faithful friends, watchers and followers for your continued support and making this story what it is today.
I wouldn't be here if it weren't for your influence :)
BTW, as of this writing, this story has over 10,000 views!
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 9, "Golden Week Part 4 – Akihabara"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for some language and a Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
...
A/N: This is part 4 of the 'Golden Week' arc. Saturday May 5th,, Tokyo Japan.
By the way, as of this writing, this story has just reached 8,160 views in just under a month!
Thank you everyone so much for all the Faves, Watches and Reviews! *bows*
…
After spending the entire holiday together while staying at Moka's condominium in Roppongi, just outside of Tokyo, Tsukune and Moka had gotten to know each other better as best friends, which was the main point of their impromptu vacation. Thankfully the weather had remained warm and pleasant. The couple had even gone on a few picnics in a nearby park to admire the Sakura trees which were just beginning to lose their pink and white petals.
Since today was the last, official day of the week-long holiday, they decided to spend most of the day in Akihabara and do some shopping. Moka wanted to visit one of the more well-known book stores in the area, that is very famous for anime, manga, electronics, Maid Cafes', action figures and video-games.
After getting a rather late start and eating breakfast, they rode the local subway westward and arrived at JR Akihabara Station around 11 AM.
…
"So Moka, um where is this store you wanted to visit?" inquired her mate who was holding her hand and doing his best to get ahold of his bearings since he had never actually been to Akihabara before. He marveled at the amount of restaurants and stores in the otaku-centric shopping district.
"Oh it's not too far from here. It's the largest book store in Akiba" she replied as they were walking down the main avenue of ChÅ«Å-dÅri still holding hands, all the while receiving some odd looks from the other shoppers in the immediate vicinity. Well Moka didn't really blend in, per se. If anyone happened to ask about her exotic appearance, they would say she was merely cosplaying, of course.
The silver-haired maiden was dressed in a short, denim mini-skirt that rested a few centimeters above her knees with matching pumps on her feet. Her button-down blouse was a simple one in white that hugged her lithe frame properly without giving too much away. She was also carrying a small, color-coordinated, leather purse slung over her right shoulder on a long strap.
Tsukune was dressed rather simply compared to his girlfriend. Denim blue jeans and a red polo shirt. Moka was receiving far too much attention than she actually needed or deserved. But she didn't mind too much as long as the perverts kept their distance.
…
"Here we are, Tsukune", Moka announced as soon as they arrived at their destination a few minutes later.
Book-Off is the largest book store chain in Tokyo. The one thing that sets this Book-off location apart from others though is that the top two floors are dedicated exclusively to manga. There is a small section for doujinshi (self-published manga) as well, but the selection is rather limited. Prices start at ¥105 and up.
As the pair walked in through the front door, Tsukune was surprised at the number of shelves containing literally thousands of books. And this was just the first floor. Moka gently guided her mate in the direction of the magazine racks located towards the rear corner of the immense store.
'I guess she still likes her fighting magazines' Tsukune thought to himself with a grin, as they wandered through the maze-like shelves inside the book store.
Moka found what she was looking for the minute they reached the magazine section. Tsukune sat on a wooden bench next to Moka who had grabbed a few different type of magazines. She even chose one about cooking as well to polish up on her skills as a cook. He admired her as she browsed through her selections. She looked quite peaceful as she thumbed through each page, reading quietly to herself.
Moka then set the current magazine she was reading, on her lap and placed her left hand on Tsukune's thigh then gave him a loving squeeze. He blushed at her somewhat bold gesture and out in public, nonetheless. He then glanced in Moka's direction and she gave him a wink.
"I'm just about done here, love. We can go anywhere you'd like, okay?" she said with a blush of her own.
"Oh okay Moka. Sure thing" he said as he placed his right hand atop hers and held it there until she was finished.
Approximately fifteen minutes later she closed the magazine then stood up.
"I'm all done here, Tsukune" she said as she was still holding his hand. She then lead him towards the front of the book store so she could pay for her purchases. He just nodded yes in agreement and followed directly behind her.
As she reached the cashier, Moka set her magazines on the counter so the clerk could ring her magazine selections up. Moka opened her small purse and handed the salesperson the correct amount of Yen. The clerk then handed her a simple, black, plastic bag that contained her purchase with the store's name printed on either side in bold, red letters.
…
As soon as the vampire couple reached outside, they noticed that the sky had gotten brighter since they had been in Book-off for nearly an hour it would seem. It was now afternoon and Tsukune hoped that the weather would remain nice for the remainder of the day.
"Hey Moka, how about that store?" he asked as they continued strolling down the main road of Akihabara. It happened to be a cosplay shop. Moka thought it over for a moment as she looked at the window display that consisted of a few mannequins wearing several types of 'cute' costumes.
"Sure Tsukune. It looks like an interesting store" she said with a bashful smile. Upon entering the huge shop, Moka was aghast seeing literally hundreds of costumes from every anime or live-action movie imaginable.
"Wow!" Moka said as she entered said shop. She then grabbed her mate's hand and started dragging him over to a few racks of cute cosplay outfits that she wanted to see for herself.
"So what do you think, Moka?" he asked as she inspected a few different outfits that she was dying to try on for herself. It's true though. Moka loved anything she found to be 'adorable' or 'cute'. She would never admit it out loud as it was something that embarrassed her to no end.
"Oh, this one is nice" she said as she showed Tsukune a classic French Maid's outfit in black and white. Tsukune's face turned bright pink as he fantasized how she would look wearing that while serving him breakfast in bed and calling him 'master'.
"It's cute" he said with a small smile.
"Then it's settled. I'm going to try it on" Moka replied as she looked around for a changing room. She finally spotted them on the far left-hand side of the store. He followed her so she could see if the size was correct.
"Tsukune? Why don't you have a seat while I try this on? I'll be out in a few minutes" she said as she gave him a peck on his cheek.
"Uh sure Moka. Take your time" he answered as he sat on one of the chairs located along the wall across from the fitting rooms.
"Thank you love. I won't be long" she said as she disappeared behind the heavy, black curtain. He just nodded yes as she went about trying on the classic Maid costume.
Tsukune was quite surprised seeing Moka actually try on a cosplay and a slightly revealing one at that.
…
After Moka had removed her clothes, she neatly folded them in half and set them down on the wooden seat inside the changing room. She then unzipped the clear, plastic bag the costume was in and removed each of the parts carefully and gave each one a gentle shake. The actual 'dress' was all black and in one piece. She shimmied the dress over her curvaceous bosom, slid each of her long, slender arms through the sleeves and over then her shapely hips.
The hem of the dress rested several centimeters above her knees. She then tied the white apron around her waist and fastened the snaps behind her back. She set the frilly 'hat' on her head and fastened that in place with the attached hair-clips. The last pieces were white 'cuffs' with black snaps, that were to be worn on each wrist. Once Moka was fully dressed, she then admired her reflection in the full-length mirror on the wall and blushed hard.
'I hope that Tsukune doesn't pass out seeing me dressed like this' she mused as a smile tugged at the corners of her plump lips. Moka had to admit, she looked quite adorable.
She then parted the heavy black curtain and stood about a meter in front of her mate.
"Well, what do you think...master?" she said with a bow and with her hands folded in front of her.
"Ah..um...ahhh..."
*spurt!*
"Tsukune? Oh my...he passed out" she said as she raced to his side. She pulled his head onto her lap and would wait until he eventually recovered. He had fainted due to a massive nose-bleed, all because of her current state of attire.
After several silent minutes later, Tsukune finally opened his eyes wondered where he was and why his head was resting on something very soft. He then looked up to a very concerned Moka.
"Moka?"
She then pulled him into her abundant bosom and hugged him for all he was worth.
"Tsukune! Thank goodness you're okay" she said as she embraced him even firmer.
"Moka...can't – breath!" he gasped out while flailing his arms about in a desperate attempt to not pass out from her near, bone-crushing "hug of doom".
She relaxed her hold on her mate as she had forgotten her strength and had let her emotions get the better of her. Naturally, she was quite worried. It was her fault that he had passed out in the first place even though she had no control over how he would react, seeing her dressed in such an overly adorable cosplay.
"Oh sorry about that love. You passed out from a nosebleed a few minutes ago" she explained, as she stood up and then helped him to his feet.
"Oh yeah...um...I remember now. When I saw you come out...wearing this Maid cosplay, I guess I got too excited seeing you look...so cute..." he replied with a blush of his own.
"Really Tsukune?" she said as she lead him over to the row of chairs and sat down next to him.
"Well, yeah Moka. I told you before haven't I? You're the most beautiful woman I've ever met. No matter what you wear, you always look amazing."
"Oh thank you Tsukune." she said as she hugged him once again, as she was overcome with more love and adoration hearing his honest reply. Moka knew he was being entirely truthful through their ever-growing bond.
"Of course, Moka." he said as she returned the warm hug.
'I'm really lucky to have her all to myself. I know I'm being selfish, but after everything we've been through, she really deserves to be happy too' he thought to himself as she released him so she could return to the dressing room to get changed back into her regular clothes.
"I'm going to get changed and I'll be out in a few minutes, Tsukune" she said as she bent down to his level and gave him a chaste kiss on his lips then returned to the fitting room.
"Oh sure Moka. Take your time and I'll be waiting here for you" he said as she vanished behind the heavy curtains once again. She then poked her head out, winked at him and then blew him a kiss that resulted in him to burn bright crimson yet again.
…
When Moka was redressed she made her way to the cashier to pay for her cosplay which she was planning on wearing for Tsukune when she felt the timing would be perfect. Even though it was quite embarrassing to some extent she wanted to surprise him sometime soon. But seeing his reaction when she wore it was rather adorable, she mused.
"I can carry that for you Moka" Tsukune told her as they exited the cosplay shop and returned to the busy streets of Akihabara. She handed the plastic bag to her mate while furiously blushing at his chivalrous act of thoughtfulness.
"Thank you Tsukune. I was wondering if you'd like to get some lunch now, my treat of course" she asked as she slid her free hand into his and held it firmly.
"You're welcome Moka and uh, yeah. That sounds like a great idea. Seeing you look so cute has made me kinda hungry" he agreed as they wandered about looking for somewhere quiet to enjoy their lunch at.
"Oh um uh yes...uh...thank you um...Tsukune" she sputtered out hearing his confession regarding his reaction to her new Maid costume.
Realizing what he just said out loud so suddenly caused him to become flustered as well.
…
Before the couple became even more rattled than they already were, Tsukune suddenly stopped in front of a restaurant.
"How about here Moka?" he suggested to his mate whose face was still flushed from his bold assertion just a few minutes ago. It was a Pizza Hut.
"Pizza? What's that?" she asked as he held the glass door for her open and allowed her to enter first.
"Oh I think you'll like it. It's really good" he told her as the hostess approached the duo and asked them to follow her to a booth that was located towards the back of the restaurant.
Moka slid into the booth first while Tsukune sat on her left side. He placed both of Moka's shopping bags in the empty seat across from themselves. Moka picked up the menu and browsed through it, trying to grasp a hold of what exactly a 'pizza' was.
"Hey Moka, you've never had pizza before, have you?" he asked seeing the confused look across her face.
"No Tsukune. This is my first time" she said with an adorable pink flush across her cheeks.
"I see. Well it's like – uh – a large round pie made of dough with tomato sauce, cheese and other toppings like pepperoni and other meats or vegetables and baked in a big oven. It's really good. I think you'll like it" he explained to her the best way he could, just from memory.
"Okay Tsukune. It sounds like a good idea. You can pick one and maybe we could – share it" she said as she put the menu back in the wooden stand next to the wall.
"Oh yeah, of course Moka. It's one of my favorites" he said as he placed his menu on the table as the waitress approached the both a moment later.
"Good afternoon. May I take your order please" the cute waitress asked as she looked the couple over and was caught off-guard by Moka's strange appearance, but realized that this area was Akihabara and cosplayers would stop by the restaurant on a daily basis.
"A large pepperoni pizza and two Cokes please" Tsukune answered.
"You got it. Coming right up" she said as she scribbled the order on her pad and made her way to ring up their request.
Moka scooted closer to Tsukune and leaned up against him as a wave of jealousy washed over her. She didn't like how their waitress was ogling her mate and had made her feel some animosity towards her. Tsukune picked up on her mood that was quickly declining. He then placed his right arm around her waist and then kissed her on her neck.
"Ahhnngn...Tsu-ku-ne...ahhhhngh...oh kami..." Moka delightfully moaned as her feelings quickly improved and was now panting as if she were an animal in heat. She then set her left hand on his right thigh and was now gently massaging it. He nearly jumped when he knew what she was doing and they were in public, too.
(No, not that. His thigh, pervert!)
...
Unknown to the couple they were being covertly observed from the opposite side of the pizza-themed restaurant.
"Are you sure that's them?"
"Yeah. According to our information that is most definitely Aono and the daughter of Bloodriver."
"She looks different though in this photo."
"Maybe she's concealing her identity somehow? This is Akihabara after all."
"Whatever. We'll watch them for now and follow them to see where they go after here."
…
"Here you go, two Cokes and a large pepperoni. Enjoy" the server said as she placed their pizza in the center of the table along with their soft drinks and plates.
"Thank you" Tsukune replied. Moka then grabbed his arm and shoved her bosom up against him in a show of possessiveness. The waitress left as quickly as possible as she felt a very strong aura emanating from the silver-haired young woman sitting at her booth.
"Oh sorry Tsukune...um...I uh..."
"It's okay Moka. I could tell you were feeling a little – you know. It's fine, No worries" he said with a smile. Moka released his arm a second later, feeling somewhat anxious to a small degree. She was still getting used to all these new thoughts, feelings, and emotions, knowing very well that it hadn't been easy for her.
Moka silently wished that her Rosary could have been repaired or replaced but it was not possible since her mother was no longer around.
Tsukune reached over to the pizza and placed a slice on a plate and set it in front of Moka. He repeated the action and served himself next. She stared at the unusual looking triangular-shaped slab of food in front of her and sniffed it like a cat. The vampiress then picked it up and took a small bite. Much to her surprise it was quite pleasant-tasting.
"M-mmm. This is really good Tsukune" she happily replied once she swallowed her first bite.
"Yeah. I haven't had any since being at Yokai."
"Well I have to say, I can see why you like it so much."
"Yeah" he agreed seeing she was enjoying it more than as he was.
Moka set down her half-eaten slice and took a sip of the fizzy, sweet beverage.
"Oh this is pretty good too!" she said, as the bubbles tickled her nose.
"Yeah. It's one of my favorites, too."
"I can see why" she happily remarked as she took another sip then set the drink down on the table and took another bite of her first slice of pizza.
...
Before either of them realized, they were both down to their final slices of pepperoni pizza. Moka had called the waitress over to their table so she could pay the bill. The server humbly thanked the pair for their patronage and was left with a generous tip.
"Thanks for lunch Moka" Tsukune said as he slid out of the booth first and offered her his free hand.
"Oh you're very welcome love. It was your idea to come here after all."
Tsukune grabbed her bags and led her out of the eating establishment and back onto the busy sidewalk of Akihabara. She slid her hand into his and ambled about with no particular destination in mind. She then suddenly stopped and nearly caused Tsukune to tumble backwards.
"Moka?"
"We're being followed" she told him.
"Oh yeah. I can sense it too. It's faint but it's there. Two of them."
"Why don't we have a little...fun?" she asked with a devious smirk.
"Moka...no fighting."
"It won't be much of a challenge. This way, Tsukune."
"Alright, but we have to hold back some, okay? We can't do all that...here."
"Of course, love." Moka said as she and Tsukune made a sharp left and walked down a wide alleyway between two buildings. They stopped when their two stalkers made themselves known. The vampire couple placed the shopping bags down on the pavement for now.
Moka turned and faced them first with a slight smirk on her lips.
"Who are you and why are you following us?" Moka demanded as she crossed her arms under her bosom.
"You're Moka Bloodriver, right? And he's Tsukune...Aono? Right?" the tall blonde asked. His cohort was dressed similarly in all black and had reddish-orange hair with freckles on his cheeks and across the bridge of his nose. They both had bright, green eyes.
"Yes. We are...now who are you?" Moka said as she approached the strangers.
"Our names don't matter. All you need to know is that we used to be with Fairy Tale. That was until you two had destroyed everything we worked so hard for" the redhead said as he walked up to Tsukune and glared at him.
"So what do you want? Revenge? Payback?" Tsukune asked as he grabbed his Rosary with his left, ready to pull it off if the need be.
"No. We're here to put you two out of your misery" the blonde said as his body changed and grew a meter taller. His skin turned scaly green and his teeth elongated into long, sharp fangs. His partner transformed as well.
"Lizard-men" Tsukune said as he gave his Rosary a sharp tug, bathing the entire alleyway in a bright, golden light. Moka jumped back about a meter and stood next to Tsukune as he took on a fighting stance.
"What's with this sudden power? Silver hair and red eyes?" the former redhead asked.
"Who the hell cares? We can take 'em!" the onetime blonde said as he rushed forward towards Moka. His partner followed suit and charged at Tsukune with his fangs bared.
"You two have no idea who we really are, do you? Come on...bring it!" Moka taunted as she took her classic pose.
…
Both Lizard men pulled their fists back and punched both vampires at the same time.
Tsukune and Moka had moved so quick, all they hit was their afterimages!
"What the hell? Where are they?" one of the pair yelled.
"First lesson. Never take your eyes of your enemy" Tsukune said as he was standing behind both Lizard men.
"What? How did you get over here?" the other one had inquired and swiftly turned around, unsure of what was happening.
"Second lesson. Know your place!" Moka said as she twisted her body into a powerful roundhouse kick and had knocked the other one towards the brick wall, shattering his ribcage with the force of a freight train.
"What? How the? What the hell?" the last remaining lizard yokai asked as he started throwing random punches at Tsukune, which were all either dodged or blocked.
"Over here...no..over here. Man, how slow can you be? No idiot, over here!" Tsukune teased.
"Stand still runt! Hey! Stop so I can hit ya! Hey knock it off!" the lizard man said as he was becoming short of breath.
'He's toying with me' the lizard man thought. He faked a right punch and caught Tsukune in the jaw with a left hook and knocked him back a few feet.
*CRACK!*
'Damn it. I wasn't paying attention' he said as he spit out a small amount of blood.
"Tsukune!" Moka yelled as she saw her mate fall to the ground. He then stood up and jumped back to where the one who hit him was acting overconfident, just because he had gotten in one lucky punch. Tsukune raised his right hand, silently telling Moka he was fine.
"Nice punch. So are you done yet? Here, let me help you out" Tsukune said with a powerful, upper cut, knocking his so-called 'opponent' up into the air about five meters. He hit the ground a few seconds later, leaving a good sized crater, and was now knocked out cold.
"What a joke" Moka commented as she picked up her bags from the blacktop. Tsukune walked over to rejoin her a moment later.
"Tell me about it. I could've taken care of them with one arm tied behind my back" he joked. He then placed the Rosary on the silver chain wrapped around his wrist and reverted to his brown-haired, human persona.
Moka caught him in her arms and laid him against her soft breasts, as his powers were sealed up due to the Rosary's magic. A couple of moments later, he re-opened his chocolate-brown eyes and regained consciousness.
"Hello sleepyhead. Are you okay?" she said as she brushed her slender fingers through his messy, yet soft, hair. His left cheek would be fine, thanks to his rapid healing.
"Oh hi Moka. Um, thanks...I'm good, we should get out of here before anyone sees these two laying here" he advised and led her out of the alley and back to the main street. He then looked both ways before crossing the street, making certain nobody witnessed the encounter that just transpired, no less than five minutes ago.
…
Once the couple were far enough away form the scene of the crime, Tsukune stopped for a brief second as something one of their assailants said.
"Hey Moka?"
"Yes Tsukune?"
"Um, why did they call you Bloodriver? I thought your last name was Akashiya?"
"Bloodriver is my real mother's last name. Akashiya is just the name I was given."
"I see. Wait a minute. The last name you were given?"
"Yes. It's not a family name at all...it's a made-up name" she sadly replied.
"I don't understand" he said as he held her hand firmer. Moka found a bench near the edge of a park they had walked up to.
"Have a seat Tsukune and I'll tell you the meaning of my last name."
Tsukune sat down on the green park bench and set the shopping bags down on his left.
Moka held his hand in hers and was quiet for quite some time. She could just tell him a lie regarding her last name. But she knew in her heart that deceiving him wasn't right and he had asked her a valid question and knew that he deserved to know the truth, no matter how painful it may be.
"Tsukune. Um, my last name was made-up by my family. My mother and father were never 'married' in the conventional sense. My mother was my father's...lover. But they weren't blood-mates like us, due to her Shinso bloodline. The truth is, Akashiya is a portmanteau, a combination of her first name, Akasha and ayakashi, another word for – yokai" she said as she hung her head low, almost if she were ashamed.
The vampire princess had just shared very private information with her mate and was now feeling as if she had betrayed her own mother who loved her very much. She was the one who had created the Rosary in order to protect Moka from Alucard in the first place when her powers awakened when she was barely ten years old.
"Oh Moka. I'm sorry. I shouldn't have asked. I didn't know" he said as he hugged her lovingly from the side. She returned his warm embrace and felt as if she were all alone again. Her mother was no longer around, due to her being fused with Alucard who was defeated once and for all last year.
"I'm sorry Moka. I know you miss her. I wish she could've been saved but – it was too late. She sacrificed herself so you could live on. I know that she's happy for you and proud of you, too. I know that I'm happy just to be near you everyday. You're my very best friend, Moka. And you'll never be lonely ever again, because...because I love you with all my heart."
"Oh Tsukune...thank you love. I guess...I guess I needed to hear that. Maybe...maybe I could start using her last name, as a way to remember her" Moka said as she was now feeling better thanks to her very best friend being there for her. That's where he knew he belonged.
"It's not a problem Moka. It's the truth though. I'm always gonna be here for you just like I have been since the day we met over three years ago. And if you wanna use her last name I guess you could – if that's what you want. Either way is okay with me as long as I get to see you smile everyday."
"Thank you Tsukune for always being here for me. I do love you with all my heart, as well."
Moka was feeling better and wanted things to return to normal and then this happened.
Seems like some former members of Fairy Tale were following them just to get revenge for destroying the anti-human group that had kidnapped her last year and basically forced her to cooperate against her will. If it weren't for her sister Akua's involvement, Moka would not have made it through that horrible ordeal.
Even though she despised the only daughter of Akasha Bloodriver, she still cared about her in some weird, twisted way.
"Tsukune? Can we head back to my apartment now? I'd like to...thank you...for all your help today" Moka asked with a bright blush.
"Uh yeah. It's not necessary, but if that's what you want Moka. Sure. Let's go then" Tsukune said as he stood up and offered Moka his free hand.
…
Approximately forty minutes later, the vampire couple arrived back at Moka's condominium in Roppongi Hills. Moka asked Tsukune to wait for her in her bedroom as she had a surprise for him. After getting undressed, he crawled under the soft, red, blankets of her queen-sized bed.
'I wonder how Moka wants to thank me?' he quietly wondered to himself. Truth be told he, was somewhat anxious regarding what she had in mind.
A few minutes later Moka returned to her room wearing a powder-blue baby-doll that hugged her voluptuous body. Her firm breasts, slender abdomen and flared hips.
"Hello, handsome. See anything here that you like?" she asked with a timid smile.
"Oh my Kami" Tsukune said, as he quickly covered his nose, when she walked into her room then crawled upon her bed and sat on his lap. He reached around her slender waist and held her firmly.
"Tsukune...I – want you now. Please make love to me" she said as she closed the short space between themselves and kissed him fervently. Moka traced her tongue along his bottom lip, silently asking for permission. The pair French Kissed each other with the intensity of a thousand suns. He became aroused instantaneously.
The building pleasure became nearly unbearable for them as Moka was grinding her hips against his growing arousal which caused her to moan with desire and her toes to curl. Breaking their contact temporarily for air, he then placed his hands under the hem of the thin material of her gown and slid it over her head when she raised her hands above her head.
Moka tossed it to the floor a second later.
"Tsukune...please...touch me" she beseeched as she arched her back, thrusting her large, firm bosom upward. He gently placed his hands on her amazing breasts and began to gently massage them. Her nipples stiffened a moment later as she closed her eyes in her ecstasy. He then suckled each nipple as she continued to rub her other breast at the same moment, taking turns on each one, for several minutes.
He released her several minutes later as she was now breathing heavily and her face was flushed.
"Tsukune, can you make me feel better? Please?" Moka begged cutely, with an adorable pout. She slightly tilted her neck to the left. He knew by that simple act of submission what she so desperately yearned for.
"Ahhhnnnhhggngh" Moka groaned with desire, as his razor-sharp fangs slowly bore down on her alabaster-white flesh. Drinking her blood in steady, deep slurps caused her to become excited instantly. Her breathing came out in shallow, labored pants of hot air against his left ear.
"Oh Tsukune..."
Moka then wrapped her slender arms around her mate and pulled him closer, pressing her awe-inspiring bosom against his broad, scarred, chest.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...oh Kami! Ahhhhhhhnnghhhhhnngh!" she boisterously bellowed in her release. Once they were both satisfied, he retracted his fangs and sealed the puncture marks closed with his tongue which caused Moka to shudder with delight and her toes to curl yet again.
The young couple continued to hold each other very close, the bond that they held was increased in strength yet again by that simple act of intimacy that only vampire mates participated in on a regular basis.
….
Once she recomposed herself, Moka then leaned up and pressed her satiny-soft lips to his own and kissed him passionately. He traced his tongue along her bottom lip which caused her to moan loudly yet again.
"Ahhhh..Tsukune...", she groaned as the heat of pleasure began building up inside of her, on the verge of completely overtaking her.
She held onto him tighter as their petting became more intense. Tsukune slid his hands down to her perfectly proportioned posterior and squeezed it rather firmly, which caused Moka to squeal with absolute delight. He continued to massage her ample rump much to her pleasure.
"Ahhhh! Ahhhh! Tsukune...Ahhhhh...Oh Tsukune!", she bellowed out. He then removed his hands and placed them around her slender waist, holding her firmly.
"Tsukune, make love to me. Please. I need you now" she told him, pressing her lips to his once more, this time with more force.
Their tongues wrestled, eliciting a moan: "Ahhhh...Tsukune...Ahhhhh..."
He then held her huge breasts, as they were now dangling in front of him.
Tsukune placed both of her pink nipples in his mouth, and suckled them simultaneously. He gently massaged her ample bosom from the sides, causing her knees to give way.
"Ahhhhh! Tsukune. No fair! Not..ahhh...same...M-mmm...time!", she beckoned surprised at the sudden act.
"Moka... I know you're excited...sorry...I know. I'll be gentle" he replied.
"Ahhh..it's okay..Tsukune...you caught me...by surprise...that's all," she murmured in return.
They continued to hold and caress one another. Moka began to rub her clitoris along the length of his hard manhood.
She was soaked a minute later, from the overwhelming heat building up inside of herself. Moka felt as if her insides were on fire and wanted the sensation to be placated.
She then sat up on her knees, and straddled Tsukune. She held his titanium-hard shaft in her left hand, then placed it inside her womanhood which was now drenched from their intense foreplay.
"Moka...oh Kami...you feel so good," is all he could reply, while he could see her generous bust begin to sway to and fro, as Moka began to ride her love.
"Tsukune...ahhhhngh...ah-hhhh...oh Tsukune..."
Moka continued to bounce up and down on her lover's shaft. His breathing and heart rate increased. The pleasurable sensation was too becoming much for the young man. He then gently pulled her closer, and wrapped his arms around her waist, as he attempted to slow down her rhythm.
Moka's magnificent bosom was now smashed up against his chest.
Her hips continued to assault his manhood like a jackhammer.
"Moka...oh kami!..I'm going to..ah..any second..oh kami...ahhhhhhhhhhhaaahhhh!"
"Tsukune...ahhhhhh yes...now...yes...ahhhhaahhhhhhhh aha haaahhhahhhaaahh!"
Once they both forcefully climaxed, Tsukune lovingly held Moka in his strong, yet gentle arms. He could still feel her heart pounding madly against his chest. She lay in her love's embrace, both happy, and rather content.
As they eventually quieted down from their natural high, they both dozed off to a peaceful slumber, not only emotionally drained, but physically satisfied, and quite blessed to be next to each other for the remainder of the afternoon.
Whatever the future held for the vampire couple, it would not be boring to say the least. Moka silently wished for a peaceful life with Tsukune and prayed for no more interruptions from outside interferences.
…
...
Author's Notes: Please read regarding future updates!
I worked on this chapter for 2 days and finally got around to finishing it up. I included a fight scene which wasn't easy but I guess it came out pretty good. Thanks to my "adopted" little brother "ColressLawiet" on deviantArt for the assist with that scene :) Thanks!
I would also like to thank everyone for their support. Your reviews, PMs, faves and follows have really surprised me!
Regarding future updates: I have to move by this Friday, January 10th and have not found a place yet. It's a very long story and a lot has happened. When I do move, I have no idea if I'll have internet access or not, so I don't know if and when I can update this fan-fic. I will soon, but just don't know when. Don't worry. It will be in a week at least but like I said, I'm not sure by what date. :) Thanks for understanding!
Chapter 9, "Golden Week Part 4 – Akihabara"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for some language and a Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
...
A/N: This is part 4 of the 'Golden Week' arc. Saturday May 5th,, Tokyo Japan.
By the way, as of this writing, this story has just reached 8,160 views in just under a month!
Thank you everyone so much for all the Faves, Watches and Reviews! *bows*
…
After spending the entire holiday together while staying at Moka's condominium in Roppongi, just outside of Tokyo, Tsukune and Moka had gotten to know each other better as best friends, which was the main point of their impromptu vacation. Thankfully the weather had remained warm and pleasant. The couple had even gone on a few picnics in a nearby park to admire the Sakura trees which were just beginning to lose their pink and white petals.
Since today was the last, official day of the week-long holiday, they decided to spend most of the day in Akihabara and do some shopping. Moka wanted to visit one of the more well-known book stores in the area, that is very famous for anime, manga, electronics, Maid Cafes', action figures and video-games.
After getting a rather late start and eating breakfast, they rode the local subway westward and arrived at JR Akihabara Station around 11 AM.
…
"So Moka, um where is this store you wanted to visit?" inquired her mate who was holding her hand and doing his best to get ahold of his bearings since he had never actually been to Akihabara before. He marveled at the amount of restaurants and stores in the otaku-centric shopping district.
"Oh it's not too far from here. It's the largest book store in Akiba" she replied as they were walking down the main avenue of ChÅ«Å-dÅri still holding hands, all the while receiving some odd looks from the other shoppers in the immediate vicinity. Well Moka didn't really blend in, per se. If anyone happened to ask about her exotic appearance, they would say she was merely cosplaying, of course.
The silver-haired maiden was dressed in a short, denim mini-skirt that rested a few centimeters above her knees with matching pumps on her feet. Her button-down blouse was a simple one in white that hugged her lithe frame properly without giving too much away. She was also carrying a small, color-coordinated, leather purse slung over her right shoulder on a long strap.
Tsukune was dressed rather simply compared to his girlfriend. Denim blue jeans and a red polo shirt. Moka was receiving far too much attention than she actually needed or deserved. But she didn't mind too much as long as the perverts kept their distance.
…
"Here we are, Tsukune", Moka announced as soon as they arrived at their destination a few minutes later.
Book-Off is the largest book store chain in Tokyo. The one thing that sets this Book-off location apart from others though is that the top two floors are dedicated exclusively to manga. There is a small section for doujinshi (self-published manga) as well, but the selection is rather limited. Prices start at ¥105 and up.
As the pair walked in through the front door, Tsukune was surprised at the number of shelves containing literally thousands of books. And this was just the first floor. Moka gently guided her mate in the direction of the magazine racks located towards the rear corner of the immense store.
'I guess she still likes her fighting magazines' Tsukune thought to himself with a grin, as they wandered through the maze-like shelves inside the book store.
Moka found what she was looking for the minute they reached the magazine section. Tsukune sat on a wooden bench next to Moka who had grabbed a few different type of magazines. She even chose one about cooking as well to polish up on her skills as a cook. He admired her as she browsed through her selections. She looked quite peaceful as she thumbed through each page, reading quietly to herself.
Moka then set the current magazine she was reading, on her lap and placed her left hand on Tsukune's thigh then gave him a loving squeeze. He blushed at her somewhat bold gesture and out in public, nonetheless. He then glanced in Moka's direction and she gave him a wink.
"I'm just about done here, love. We can go anywhere you'd like, okay?" she said with a blush of her own.
"Oh okay Moka. Sure thing" he said as he placed his right hand atop hers and held it there until she was finished.
Approximately fifteen minutes later she closed the magazine then stood up.
"I'm all done here, Tsukune" she said as she was still holding his hand. She then lead him towards the front of the book store so she could pay for her purchases. He just nodded yes in agreement and followed directly behind her.
As she reached the cashier, Moka set her magazines on the counter so the clerk could ring her magazine selections up. Moka opened her small purse and handed the salesperson the correct amount of Yen. The clerk then handed her a simple, black, plastic bag that contained her purchase with the store's name printed on either side in bold, red letters.
…
As soon as the vampire couple reached outside, they noticed that the sky had gotten brighter since they had been in Book-off for nearly an hour it would seem. It was now afternoon and Tsukune hoped that the weather would remain nice for the remainder of the day.
"Hey Moka, how about that store?" he asked as they continued strolling down the main road of Akihabara. It happened to be a cosplay shop. Moka thought it over for a moment as she looked at the window display that consisted of a few mannequins wearing several types of 'cute' costumes.
"Sure Tsukune. It looks like an interesting store" she said with a bashful smile. Upon entering the huge shop, Moka was aghast seeing literally hundreds of costumes from every anime or live-action movie imaginable.
"Wow!" Moka said as she entered said shop. She then grabbed her mate's hand and started dragging him over to a few racks of cute cosplay outfits that she wanted to see for herself.
"So what do you think, Moka?" he asked as she inspected a few different outfits that she was dying to try on for herself. It's true though. Moka loved anything she found to be 'adorable' or 'cute'. She would never admit it out loud as it was something that embarrassed her to no end.
"Oh, this one is nice" she said as she showed Tsukune a classic French Maid's outfit in black and white. Tsukune's face turned bright pink as he fantasized how she would look wearing that while serving him breakfast in bed and calling him 'master'.
"It's cute" he said with a small smile.
"Then it's settled. I'm going to try it on" Moka replied as she looked around for a changing room. She finally spotted them on the far left-hand side of the store. He followed her so she could see if the size was correct.
"Tsukune? Why don't you have a seat while I try this on? I'll be out in a few minutes" she said as she gave him a peck on his cheek.
"Uh sure Moka. Take your time" he answered as he sat on one of the chairs located along the wall across from the fitting rooms.
"Thank you love. I won't be long" she said as she disappeared behind the heavy, black curtain. He just nodded yes as she went about trying on the classic Maid costume.
Tsukune was quite surprised seeing Moka actually try on a cosplay and a slightly revealing one at that.
…
After Moka had removed her clothes, she neatly folded them in half and set them down on the wooden seat inside the changing room. She then unzipped the clear, plastic bag the costume was in and removed each of the parts carefully and gave each one a gentle shake. The actual 'dress' was all black and in one piece. She shimmied the dress over her curvaceous bosom, slid each of her long, slender arms through the sleeves and over then her shapely hips.
The hem of the dress rested several centimeters above her knees. She then tied the white apron around her waist and fastened the snaps behind her back. She set the frilly 'hat' on her head and fastened that in place with the attached hair-clips. The last pieces were white 'cuffs' with black snaps, that were to be worn on each wrist. Once Moka was fully dressed, she then admired her reflection in the full-length mirror on the wall and blushed hard.
'I hope that Tsukune doesn't pass out seeing me dressed like this' she mused as a smile tugged at the corners of her plump lips. Moka had to admit, she looked quite adorable.
She then parted the heavy black curtain and stood about a meter in front of her mate.
"Well, what do you think...master?" she said with a bow and with her hands folded in front of her.
"Ah..um...ahhh..."
*spurt!*
"Tsukune? Oh my...he passed out" she said as she raced to his side. She pulled his head onto her lap and would wait until he eventually recovered. He had fainted due to a massive nose-bleed, all because of her current state of attire.
After several silent minutes later, Tsukune finally opened his eyes wondered where he was and why his head was resting on something very soft. He then looked up to a very concerned Moka.
"Moka?"
She then pulled him into her abundant bosom and hugged him for all he was worth.
"Tsukune! Thank goodness you're okay" she said as she embraced him even firmer.
"Moka...can't – breath!" he gasped out while flailing his arms about in a desperate attempt to not pass out from her near, bone-crushing "hug of doom".
She relaxed her hold on her mate as she had forgotten her strength and had let her emotions get the better of her. Naturally, she was quite worried. It was her fault that he had passed out in the first place even though she had no control over how he would react, seeing her dressed in such an overly adorable cosplay.
"Oh sorry about that love. You passed out from a nosebleed a few minutes ago" she explained, as she stood up and then helped him to his feet.
"Oh yeah...um...I remember now. When I saw you come out...wearing this Maid cosplay, I guess I got too excited seeing you look...so cute..." he replied with a blush of his own.
"Really Tsukune?" she said as she lead him over to the row of chairs and sat down next to him.
"Well, yeah Moka. I told you before haven't I? You're the most beautiful woman I've ever met. No matter what you wear, you always look amazing."
"Oh thank you Tsukune." she said as she hugged him once again, as she was overcome with more love and adoration hearing his honest reply. Moka knew he was being entirely truthful through their ever-growing bond.
"Of course, Moka." he said as she returned the warm hug.
'I'm really lucky to have her all to myself. I know I'm being selfish, but after everything we've been through, she really deserves to be happy too' he thought to himself as she released him so she could return to the dressing room to get changed back into her regular clothes.
"I'm going to get changed and I'll be out in a few minutes, Tsukune" she said as she bent down to his level and gave him a chaste kiss on his lips then returned to the fitting room.
"Oh sure Moka. Take your time and I'll be waiting here for you" he said as she vanished behind the heavy curtains once again. She then poked her head out, winked at him and then blew him a kiss that resulted in him to burn bright crimson yet again.
…
When Moka was redressed she made her way to the cashier to pay for her cosplay which she was planning on wearing for Tsukune when she felt the timing would be perfect. Even though it was quite embarrassing to some extent she wanted to surprise him sometime soon. But seeing his reaction when she wore it was rather adorable, she mused.
"I can carry that for you Moka" Tsukune told her as they exited the cosplay shop and returned to the busy streets of Akihabara. She handed the plastic bag to her mate while furiously blushing at his chivalrous act of thoughtfulness.
"Thank you Tsukune. I was wondering if you'd like to get some lunch now, my treat of course" she asked as she slid her free hand into his and held it firmly.
"You're welcome Moka and uh, yeah. That sounds like a great idea. Seeing you look so cute has made me kinda hungry" he agreed as they wandered about looking for somewhere quiet to enjoy their lunch at.
"Oh um uh yes...uh...thank you um...Tsukune" she sputtered out hearing his confession regarding his reaction to her new Maid costume.
Realizing what he just said out loud so suddenly caused him to become flustered as well.
…
Before the couple became even more rattled than they already were, Tsukune suddenly stopped in front of a restaurant.
"How about here Moka?" he suggested to his mate whose face was still flushed from his bold assertion just a few minutes ago. It was a Pizza Hut.
"Pizza? What's that?" she asked as he held the glass door for her open and allowed her to enter first.
"Oh I think you'll like it. It's really good" he told her as the hostess approached the duo and asked them to follow her to a booth that was located towards the back of the restaurant.
Moka slid into the booth first while Tsukune sat on her left side. He placed both of Moka's shopping bags in the empty seat across from themselves. Moka picked up the menu and browsed through it, trying to grasp a hold of what exactly a 'pizza' was.
"Hey Moka, you've never had pizza before, have you?" he asked seeing the confused look across her face.
"No Tsukune. This is my first time" she said with an adorable pink flush across her cheeks.
"I see. Well it's like – uh – a large round pie made of dough with tomato sauce, cheese and other toppings like pepperoni and other meats or vegetables and baked in a big oven. It's really good. I think you'll like it" he explained to her the best way he could, just from memory.
"Okay Tsukune. It sounds like a good idea. You can pick one and maybe we could – share it" she said as she put the menu back in the wooden stand next to the wall.
"Oh yeah, of course Moka. It's one of my favorites" he said as he placed his menu on the table as the waitress approached the both a moment later.
"Good afternoon. May I take your order please" the cute waitress asked as she looked the couple over and was caught off-guard by Moka's strange appearance, but realized that this area was Akihabara and cosplayers would stop by the restaurant on a daily basis.
"A large pepperoni pizza and two Cokes please" Tsukune answered.
"You got it. Coming right up" she said as she scribbled the order on her pad and made her way to ring up their request.
Moka scooted closer to Tsukune and leaned up against him as a wave of jealousy washed over her. She didn't like how their waitress was ogling her mate and had made her feel some animosity towards her. Tsukune picked up on her mood that was quickly declining. He then placed his right arm around her waist and then kissed her on her neck.
"Ahhnngn...Tsu-ku-ne...ahhhhngh...oh kami..." Moka delightfully moaned as her feelings quickly improved and was now panting as if she were an animal in heat. She then set her left hand on his right thigh and was now gently massaging it. He nearly jumped when he knew what she was doing and they were in public, too.
(No, not that. His thigh, pervert!)
...
Unknown to the couple they were being covertly observed from the opposite side of the pizza-themed restaurant.
"Are you sure that's them?"
"Yeah. According to our information that is most definitely Aono and the daughter of Bloodriver."
"She looks different though in this photo."
"Maybe she's concealing her identity somehow? This is Akihabara after all."
"Whatever. We'll watch them for now and follow them to see where they go after here."
…
"Here you go, two Cokes and a large pepperoni. Enjoy" the server said as she placed their pizza in the center of the table along with their soft drinks and plates.
"Thank you" Tsukune replied. Moka then grabbed his arm and shoved her bosom up against him in a show of possessiveness. The waitress left as quickly as possible as she felt a very strong aura emanating from the silver-haired young woman sitting at her booth.
"Oh sorry Tsukune...um...I uh..."
"It's okay Moka. I could tell you were feeling a little – you know. It's fine, No worries" he said with a smile. Moka released his arm a second later, feeling somewhat anxious to a small degree. She was still getting used to all these new thoughts, feelings, and emotions, knowing very well that it hadn't been easy for her.
Moka silently wished that her Rosary could have been repaired or replaced but it was not possible since her mother was no longer around.
Tsukune reached over to the pizza and placed a slice on a plate and set it in front of Moka. He repeated the action and served himself next. She stared at the unusual looking triangular-shaped slab of food in front of her and sniffed it like a cat. The vampiress then picked it up and took a small bite. Much to her surprise it was quite pleasant-tasting.
"M-mmm. This is really good Tsukune" she happily replied once she swallowed her first bite.
"Yeah. I haven't had any since being at Yokai."
"Well I have to say, I can see why you like it so much."
"Yeah" he agreed seeing she was enjoying it more than as he was.
Moka set down her half-eaten slice and took a sip of the fizzy, sweet beverage.
"Oh this is pretty good too!" she said, as the bubbles tickled her nose.
"Yeah. It's one of my favorites, too."
"I can see why" she happily remarked as she took another sip then set the drink down on the table and took another bite of her first slice of pizza.
...
Before either of them realized, they were both down to their final slices of pepperoni pizza. Moka had called the waitress over to their table so she could pay the bill. The server humbly thanked the pair for their patronage and was left with a generous tip.
"Thanks for lunch Moka" Tsukune said as he slid out of the booth first and offered her his free hand.
"Oh you're very welcome love. It was your idea to come here after all."
Tsukune grabbed her bags and led her out of the eating establishment and back onto the busy sidewalk of Akihabara. She slid her hand into his and ambled about with no particular destination in mind. She then suddenly stopped and nearly caused Tsukune to tumble backwards.
"Moka?"
"We're being followed" she told him.
"Oh yeah. I can sense it too. It's faint but it's there. Two of them."
"Why don't we have a little...fun?" she asked with a devious smirk.
"Moka...no fighting."
"It won't be much of a challenge. This way, Tsukune."
"Alright, but we have to hold back some, okay? We can't do all that...here."
"Of course, love." Moka said as she and Tsukune made a sharp left and walked down a wide alleyway between two buildings. They stopped when their two stalkers made themselves known. The vampire couple placed the shopping bags down on the pavement for now.
Moka turned and faced them first with a slight smirk on her lips.
"Who are you and why are you following us?" Moka demanded as she crossed her arms under her bosom.
"You're Moka Bloodriver, right? And he's Tsukune...Aono? Right?" the tall blonde asked. His cohort was dressed similarly in all black and had reddish-orange hair with freckles on his cheeks and across the bridge of his nose. They both had bright, green eyes.
"Yes. We are...now who are you?" Moka said as she approached the strangers.
"Our names don't matter. All you need to know is that we used to be with Fairy Tale. That was until you two had destroyed everything we worked so hard for" the redhead said as he walked up to Tsukune and glared at him.
"So what do you want? Revenge? Payback?" Tsukune asked as he grabbed his Rosary with his left, ready to pull it off if the need be.
"No. We're here to put you two out of your misery" the blonde said as his body changed and grew a meter taller. His skin turned scaly green and his teeth elongated into long, sharp fangs. His partner transformed as well.
"Lizard-men" Tsukune said as he gave his Rosary a sharp tug, bathing the entire alleyway in a bright, golden light. Moka jumped back about a meter and stood next to Tsukune as he took on a fighting stance.
"What's with this sudden power? Silver hair and red eyes?" the former redhead asked.
"Who the hell cares? We can take 'em!" the onetime blonde said as he rushed forward towards Moka. His partner followed suit and charged at Tsukune with his fangs bared.
"You two have no idea who we really are, do you? Come on...bring it!" Moka taunted as she took her classic pose.
…
Both Lizard men pulled their fists back and punched both vampires at the same time.
Tsukune and Moka had moved so quick, all they hit was their afterimages!
"What the hell? Where are they?" one of the pair yelled.
"First lesson. Never take your eyes of your enemy" Tsukune said as he was standing behind both Lizard men.
"What? How did you get over here?" the other one had inquired and swiftly turned around, unsure of what was happening.
"Second lesson. Know your place!" Moka said as she twisted her body into a powerful roundhouse kick and had knocked the other one towards the brick wall, shattering his ribcage with the force of a freight train.
"What? How the? What the hell?" the last remaining lizard yokai asked as he started throwing random punches at Tsukune, which were all either dodged or blocked.
"Over here...no..over here. Man, how slow can you be? No idiot, over here!" Tsukune teased.
"Stand still runt! Hey! Stop so I can hit ya! Hey knock it off!" the lizard man said as he was becoming short of breath.
'He's toying with me' the lizard man thought. He faked a right punch and caught Tsukune in the jaw with a left hook and knocked him back a few feet.
*CRACK!*
'Damn it. I wasn't paying attention' he said as he spit out a small amount of blood.
"Tsukune!" Moka yelled as she saw her mate fall to the ground. He then stood up and jumped back to where the one who hit him was acting overconfident, just because he had gotten in one lucky punch. Tsukune raised his right hand, silently telling Moka he was fine.
"Nice punch. So are you done yet? Here, let me help you out" Tsukune said with a powerful, upper cut, knocking his so-called 'opponent' up into the air about five meters. He hit the ground a few seconds later, leaving a good sized crater, and was now knocked out cold.
"What a joke" Moka commented as she picked up her bags from the blacktop. Tsukune walked over to rejoin her a moment later.
"Tell me about it. I could've taken care of them with one arm tied behind my back" he joked. He then placed the Rosary on the silver chain wrapped around his wrist and reverted to his brown-haired, human persona.
Moka caught him in her arms and laid him against her soft breasts, as his powers were sealed up due to the Rosary's magic. A couple of moments later, he re-opened his chocolate-brown eyes and regained consciousness.
"Hello sleepyhead. Are you okay?" she said as she brushed her slender fingers through his messy, yet soft, hair. His left cheek would be fine, thanks to his rapid healing.
"Oh hi Moka. Um, thanks...I'm good, we should get out of here before anyone sees these two laying here" he advised and led her out of the alley and back to the main street. He then looked both ways before crossing the street, making certain nobody witnessed the encounter that just transpired, no less than five minutes ago.
…
Once the couple were far enough away form the scene of the crime, Tsukune stopped for a brief second as something one of their assailants said.
"Hey Moka?"
"Yes Tsukune?"
"Um, why did they call you Bloodriver? I thought your last name was Akashiya?"
"Bloodriver is my real mother's last name. Akashiya is just the name I was given."
"I see. Wait a minute. The last name you were given?"
"Yes. It's not a family name at all...it's a made-up name" she sadly replied.
"I don't understand" he said as he held her hand firmer. Moka found a bench near the edge of a park they had walked up to.
"Have a seat Tsukune and I'll tell you the meaning of my last name."
Tsukune sat down on the green park bench and set the shopping bags down on his left.
Moka held his hand in hers and was quiet for quite some time. She could just tell him a lie regarding her last name. But she knew in her heart that deceiving him wasn't right and he had asked her a valid question and knew that he deserved to know the truth, no matter how painful it may be.
"Tsukune. Um, my last name was made-up by my family. My mother and father were never 'married' in the conventional sense. My mother was my father's...lover. But they weren't blood-mates like us, due to her Shinso bloodline. The truth is, Akashiya is a portmanteau, a combination of her first name, Akasha and ayakashi, another word for – yokai" she said as she hung her head low, almost if she were ashamed.
The vampire princess had just shared very private information with her mate and was now feeling as if she had betrayed her own mother who loved her very much. She was the one who had created the Rosary in order to protect Moka from Alucard in the first place when her powers awakened when she was barely ten years old.
"Oh Moka. I'm sorry. I shouldn't have asked. I didn't know" he said as he hugged her lovingly from the side. She returned his warm embrace and felt as if she were all alone again. Her mother was no longer around, due to her being fused with Alucard who was defeated once and for all last year.
"I'm sorry Moka. I know you miss her. I wish she could've been saved but – it was too late. She sacrificed herself so you could live on. I know that she's happy for you and proud of you, too. I know that I'm happy just to be near you everyday. You're my very best friend, Moka. And you'll never be lonely ever again, because...because I love you with all my heart."
"Oh Tsukune...thank you love. I guess...I guess I needed to hear that. Maybe...maybe I could start using her last name, as a way to remember her" Moka said as she was now feeling better thanks to her very best friend being there for her. That's where he knew he belonged.
"It's not a problem Moka. It's the truth though. I'm always gonna be here for you just like I have been since the day we met over three years ago. And if you wanna use her last name I guess you could – if that's what you want. Either way is okay with me as long as I get to see you smile everyday."
"Thank you Tsukune for always being here for me. I do love you with all my heart, as well."
Moka was feeling better and wanted things to return to normal and then this happened.
Seems like some former members of Fairy Tale were following them just to get revenge for destroying the anti-human group that had kidnapped her last year and basically forced her to cooperate against her will. If it weren't for her sister Akua's involvement, Moka would not have made it through that horrible ordeal.
Even though she despised the only daughter of Akasha Bloodriver, she still cared about her in some weird, twisted way.
"Tsukune? Can we head back to my apartment now? I'd like to...thank you...for all your help today" Moka asked with a bright blush.
"Uh yeah. It's not necessary, but if that's what you want Moka. Sure. Let's go then" Tsukune said as he stood up and offered Moka his free hand.
…
Approximately forty minutes later, the vampire couple arrived back at Moka's condominium in Roppongi Hills. Moka asked Tsukune to wait for her in her bedroom as she had a surprise for him. After getting undressed, he crawled under the soft, red, blankets of her queen-sized bed.
'I wonder how Moka wants to thank me?' he quietly wondered to himself. Truth be told he, was somewhat anxious regarding what she had in mind.
A few minutes later Moka returned to her room wearing a powder-blue baby-doll that hugged her voluptuous body. Her firm breasts, slender abdomen and flared hips.
"Hello, handsome. See anything here that you like?" she asked with a timid smile.
"Oh my Kami" Tsukune said, as he quickly covered his nose, when she walked into her room then crawled upon her bed and sat on his lap. He reached around her slender waist and held her firmly.
"Tsukune...I – want you now. Please make love to me" she said as she closed the short space between themselves and kissed him fervently. Moka traced her tongue along his bottom lip, silently asking for permission. The pair French Kissed each other with the intensity of a thousand suns. He became aroused instantaneously.
The building pleasure became nearly unbearable for them as Moka was grinding her hips against his growing arousal which caused her to moan with desire and her toes to curl. Breaking their contact temporarily for air, he then placed his hands under the hem of the thin material of her gown and slid it over her head when she raised her hands above her head.
Moka tossed it to the floor a second later.
"Tsukune...please...touch me" she beseeched as she arched her back, thrusting her large, firm bosom upward. He gently placed his hands on her amazing breasts and began to gently massage them. Her nipples stiffened a moment later as she closed her eyes in her ecstasy. He then suckled each nipple as she continued to rub her other breast at the same moment, taking turns on each one, for several minutes.
He released her several minutes later as she was now breathing heavily and her face was flushed.
"Tsukune, can you make me feel better? Please?" Moka begged cutely, with an adorable pout. She slightly tilted her neck to the left. He knew by that simple act of submission what she so desperately yearned for.
"Ahhhnnnhhggngh" Moka groaned with desire, as his razor-sharp fangs slowly bore down on her alabaster-white flesh. Drinking her blood in steady, deep slurps caused her to become excited instantly. Her breathing came out in shallow, labored pants of hot air against his left ear.
"Oh Tsukune..."
Moka then wrapped her slender arms around her mate and pulled him closer, pressing her awe-inspiring bosom against his broad, scarred, chest.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune...oh Kami! Ahhhhhhhnnghhhhhnngh!" she boisterously bellowed in her release. Once they were both satisfied, he retracted his fangs and sealed the puncture marks closed with his tongue which caused Moka to shudder with delight and her toes to curl yet again.
The young couple continued to hold each other very close, the bond that they held was increased in strength yet again by that simple act of intimacy that only vampire mates participated in on a regular basis.
….
Once she recomposed herself, Moka then leaned up and pressed her satiny-soft lips to his own and kissed him passionately. He traced his tongue along her bottom lip which caused her to moan loudly yet again.
"Ahhhh..Tsukune...", she groaned as the heat of pleasure began building up inside of her, on the verge of completely overtaking her.
She held onto him tighter as their petting became more intense. Tsukune slid his hands down to her perfectly proportioned posterior and squeezed it rather firmly, which caused Moka to squeal with absolute delight. He continued to massage her ample rump much to her pleasure.
"Ahhhh! Ahhhh! Tsukune...Ahhhhh...Oh Tsukune!", she bellowed out. He then removed his hands and placed them around her slender waist, holding her firmly.
"Tsukune, make love to me. Please. I need you now" she told him, pressing her lips to his once more, this time with more force.
Their tongues wrestled, eliciting a moan: "Ahhhh...Tsukune...Ahhhhh..."
He then held her huge breasts, as they were now dangling in front of him.
Tsukune placed both of her pink nipples in his mouth, and suckled them simultaneously. He gently massaged her ample bosom from the sides, causing her knees to give way.
"Ahhhhh! Tsukune. No fair! Not..ahhh...same...M-mmm...time!", she beckoned surprised at the sudden act.
"Moka... I know you're excited...sorry...I know. I'll be gentle" he replied.
"Ahhh..it's okay..Tsukune...you caught me...by surprise...that's all," she murmured in return.
They continued to hold and caress one another. Moka began to rub her clitoris along the length of his hard manhood.
She was soaked a minute later, from the overwhelming heat building up inside of herself. Moka felt as if her insides were on fire and wanted the sensation to be placated.
She then sat up on her knees, and straddled Tsukune. She held his titanium-hard shaft in her left hand, then placed it inside her womanhood which was now drenched from their intense foreplay.
"Moka...oh Kami...you feel so good," is all he could reply, while he could see her generous bust begin to sway to and fro, as Moka began to ride her love.
"Tsukune...ahhhhngh...ah-hhhh...oh Tsukune..."
Moka continued to bounce up and down on her lover's shaft. His breathing and heart rate increased. The pleasurable sensation was too becoming much for the young man. He then gently pulled her closer, and wrapped his arms around her waist, as he attempted to slow down her rhythm.
Moka's magnificent bosom was now smashed up against his chest.
Her hips continued to assault his manhood like a jackhammer.
"Moka...oh kami!..I'm going to..ah..any second..oh kami...ahhhhhhhhhhhaaahhhh!"
"Tsukune...ahhhhhh yes...now...yes...ahhhhaahhhhhhhh aha haaahhhahhhaaahh!"
Once they both forcefully climaxed, Tsukune lovingly held Moka in his strong, yet gentle arms. He could still feel her heart pounding madly against his chest. She lay in her love's embrace, both happy, and rather content.
As they eventually quieted down from their natural high, they both dozed off to a peaceful slumber, not only emotionally drained, but physically satisfied, and quite blessed to be next to each other for the remainder of the afternoon.
Whatever the future held for the vampire couple, it would not be boring to say the least. Moka silently wished for a peaceful life with Tsukune and prayed for no more interruptions from outside interferences.
…
...
Author's Notes: Please read regarding future updates!
I worked on this chapter for 2 days and finally got around to finishing it up. I included a fight scene which wasn't easy but I guess it came out pretty good. Thanks to my "adopted" little brother "ColressLawiet" on deviantArt for the assist with that scene :) Thanks!
I would also like to thank everyone for their support. Your reviews, PMs, faves and follows have really surprised me!
Regarding future updates: I have to move by this Friday, January 10th and have not found a place yet. It's a very long story and a lot has happened. When I do move, I have no idea if I'll have internet access or not, so I don't know if and when I can update this fan-fic. I will soon, but just don't know when. Don't worry. It will be in a week at least but like I said, I'm not sure by what date. :) Thanks for understanding!
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 8, "Golden Week Part 3, The Date – Continued"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for a Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
...
A/N: This is part 3 of a 4 part story arc. I decided to continue this 'Golden Week' arc for one more chapter after this one. Takes place during the last weekend of April and into the first week of May. Roppongi, Tokyo Japan.
...
As Tsukune and Moka departure the restaurant known as Tony Roma's, they returned to the busy streets of Roppongi. Moka was quite ecstatic as they were savoring their first, real date as a couple.
"So Moka. Um, do you really know of any all-ages nightclubs around here?" Tsukune asked his wonderful mate who had made this night possible.
"Well, no. Not really. I haven't lived in this area for three years. I do have an idea though" she said as she stood on the edge of the sidewalk and flagged down the first black and yellow checkered taxicab she had spotted with her keen eyesight. Once the cab pulled over, Tsukune opened the rear, passenger-side door for her in a gentlemanly-fashion. Tsukune climbed in after her and closed the door behind himself.
"Driver, please take us to the most well-known, all-ages nightclub, please" Moka asked the cabdriver. He admired the strange looking young woman who had striking red eyes and platinum-colored hair.
'Hm, a cosplayer. I know just the place' he muttered to himself.
"Not a problem, kids" the driver replied with a tease, as he pulled away from the sidewalk and navigated the congested roads of Roppongi and made his way east, heading towards Tokyo.
"Thank you" Moka answered as she leaned against Tsukune who was wondering to himself where they'd actually end up as he'd only been to Tokyo once with his folks, when he was much younger.
"It's quite a nice area, isn't it Tsukune?" Moka asked as she glanced out the window at the passing, nighttime scenery.
"Yeah, lots of stores and big buildings. Maybe we can check some of them out this week" he agreed, surprised at the amount of shops and retail outlets in the general area of midtown Tokyo.
"That would be nice," she replied as she closed her eyes and smiled brighter. They were getting a lot closer and were feeling more at ease around each other, especially out in the world, as a real couple should.
…..
Approximately fifteen minutes later, the driver pulled up – somewhere. It was a rather large building with a long line of people in their late teens to mid-twenties mingling out in front and talking amongst themselves.
"Here we are" the cab driver said. They had arrived at 'Club Asia', located at 1-8 Maruyamacho, Shibuya ku Tokyo, in Tokyo Prefecture.
Most of the patrons waiting outside were dressed in elaborate costumes of some sorts. Moka pulled out the wallet from her purse and paid the cab-fare, along with a tip to the driver. He said thanks and handed his card to the duo, in case they needed another ride at the end of the night. Tsukune exited the taxi first and offered his free hand to Moka too took it with a bright smile.
…..
"Thank you, Tsukune" she said as she closed the door behind herself. The taxi driver then pulled away from the pair and made his way to pick up his next customers of the night.
"You're welcome, my princess" he said as he kissed the back of her right hand which caused her cheeks to tint red at the caring, gallant act. As they made their way towards the rear of the long line to enter the club, Tsukune continued to hold Moka's hand and led her down the alleyway that was located between the actual club and the building next door.
They stopped about ten meters back from the sidewalk.
"Tsukune...we just passed the entrance" Moka said, unsure of why they were here of all places.
"Moka, are you gonna be okay? I can tell through our bond that you're feeling...anxious."
"Of course I'm...okay..." she said as she glanced at the ground and avoided eye contact.
"Moka...there's no need for you to put on this strong sense of pride. I think I know you very well after all these years, and besides, we are blood-mates. I know that you're feeling – you know...out of place, so I was thinking...maybe I'll be unsealed too...so you won't feel so alone."
"But Tsukune...you don't have to do that for me..." she said with tears in her eyes. He then quickly hugged her firmly, then reached for the silver crucifix on his right wrist with his left hand and gave it a sharp pull. The alleyway was quickly illuminated in a bright, golden light as Tsukune unleashed his vampire self. Moka gasped as she could feel his yokai energy come forth and caused her to become weak in the knees.
Tsukune's dark, mahogany-hued hair washed over in silvery white, and his chocolatey-brown eyes became ruby-red, with reptile-like slits. He then ceased their embrace and looked at his mate.
…..
Once his transformation was complete, he shoved the Rosary in his pants pocket.
"Okay, you're right Tsukune. It's just that, well...I really want us to live a life as a real couple, but people still view me as strange. I know I stick out, but...I just want to be myself. I have to be myself...and well, seeing you do this for me, really means a lot. So thank you Tsukune. I do love you so very much, and I apologize for – before."
"It's fine Moka. I understand what you're saying. I've always loved you for yourself. And I just want you to be yourself too, Moka. You don't have to be alone anymore. I'm always gonna be here for you for the rest of my life. And I wouldn't have it any other way" he said with a warm smile.
"Oh Tsukune..." she said as she happily glomped him and gently walked him up to the brick wall behind him. She then kissed her one and only mate passionately as she was moved by his earnest words. It would seem as if Moka was falling in love with him all over again. Tsukune returned the act of adoration as their tongues wrestled for dominance.
"Ah Tsukune...oh Kami...ahhhngh..."
"Moka...mm-hmm..."
A few minutes later the pair ceased their embrace before either one of them passed out from lack of oxygen.
…..
They then made their way to the rear of the long line, waiting their turn to enter the large nightclub. Moka noticed a sign on the wall behind Tsukune, indicating that tonight just so happened to be a theme night.
"Cosplay Party Tonight" the sign had printed on it in bright letters. Seems as if the kind taxi driver had chosen the appropriate place for the pair to blend in, it would seem.
The facade of the club was made from a dark, orange, stained wood of some sorts. On the top part of the two-story building was the club's name in bright, white neon, with a dragon over the name itself.
"Hey, check out that hot chick in the red dress!"
"Oh my god...Look at that banging body!"
"Hey, who's the guy with her? Her brother maybe?
"I dunno. It looks like some kinda cosplay."
"Who the hell cares? He looks like a loser anyway."
"I gotta get her number! She's just my type...hot."
Moka and Tsukune heard the rude comments coming from the front of the line and their anger levels elevated, but they knew that they couldn't do a thing about it and would have to let it slide, for now anyways. Tsukune then realized that he had to be on his toes, just in case anyone of those idiots forgot their place.
Approximately ten minutes later, the vampire pair eventually made it to the front of the line. Tsukune pulled out his wallet from his back pocket and paid the appropriate cover fee much to Moka's chagrin, but he said he wanted to return the favor since she had bought them dinner just a short while ago. She then tanked him for his generosity and held him close by.
…..
As soon as they entered the actual club itself, they were both surprised how nice the interior was. Orange and amber lighted chandeliers hung from the ceiling over the bar that ran along the right-hand side of the club, giving the ambiance a warm, welcoming glow. Huge speakers surrounded the downstairs on all, four sides suspended by steel cables from the ceiling.
On the left-hand side across from the main bar was another room lit up in blues and violets with its own dance floor. In the back half of the 'main' room was an even larger-sized dance floor located in front of the DJ booth and stage that was used for live, musical acts. Several 'disco' lamps that hung down from above, painted the crowd in every color light imaginable.
Located next to the stage was a steel stairwell that led to the upstairs which had its own, separate dance floor and bar lit up in cyan and magenta lights.
"Wow!" the pair said in unison once they took in all the sights and sounds. Moka held Tsukune's hand as they searched for somewhere to have a seat. Tsukune noticed a few small tables off to the side, next to the smaller room alongside the left wall.
Tsukune pulled out Moka's chair for her which resulted her to blush yet again.
"This is pretty nice, Tsukune."
"Yeah. It's my first time, Moka."
"Oh yes...Hmm...mine too, Tsukune."
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Oh Moka..."
"Tsu-ku-ne..."
"*ahem*...welcome to Club Asia. Can I get you two lovebirds something to drink?" the cocktail server asked, seeing the vampire couple gaze lovingly into each others eyes. She was around her mid-twenties in age, with bright green and purple streaked hair, medium height, who was dressed like a fairy with a neon blue, mini dress, along with iridescent 'wings' on her back that reflected the ambient lighting from the surrounding vicinity.
"Oh yes...sorry about that – could we get two glasses of tomato juice please?" Moka said as she was feeling somewhat ashamed, being caught nearly on top to her boyfriend.
"Sure thing. Coming right up" she happily replied as she then turned around and made her way to the Bar to place the pair's drink order.
"How embarrassing!" Moka lamented as she buried her face on her mate's shoulder and grabbed him firmly. Even if she was one of the most powerful vampires on the face of the earth, she still became flustered from time to time.
Moka was still coming to grips with all these new feelings ever since she and Tsukune became a couple just a few days ago, prior to Graduation.
"Moka...it's fine. I'm sure she was only teasing" he reassured her.
"Do you think so, Tsukune?" she said as she glanced up to her mate, cheeks still burning bright pink.
"Yeah. Maybe she was just jealous" he hypothesized.
"Oh well, that makes sense I suppose. You're quite handsome in this form" she said with a wink and a smile.
"Uh yeah. Thanks Moka" he quietly replied. Now he was the one who was embarrassed to some degree. Tsukune was still getting used to being called 'attractive' or 'handsome' but knew through their blood-bond that she was being truthful as always.
…..
Less than five minutes later, the cocktail waitress returned to the vampire's table after fighting her way through the ever-growing crowd by the Bar of the nighttime, entertainment establishment.
"Here you go. That will be 1000 yen, please" she announced after placing the two tall glasses of chilled tomato juice on the duo's table. Tsukune reached into his back pocket to retrieve his wallet but Moka had beaten him, as she swiftly handed the money to the grinning server.
"Please, keep the change miss" Moka said with a smile of her own.
"Oh, thank you very much. If you need anything else, my name is Fumiko" she answered with a polite bow as she left the pair to themselves, for now. A 4000 Yen* tip was quite generous, seeing that most waitresses lived on their tips alone, after tipping out the bartenders at the end of the night.
"Well, um...I'd like to propose a toast. To the sweetest, kindest and most beautiful woman I've ever known...My one and only love, Moka Akashiya." Moka blushed hard once more from her mate's heartfelt declaration and out in public, nonetheless.
"Kampai!" they shouted as they clinked their glasses together then each took a sip of the chilled beverage.
"M-mm, Tsukune...thank you for tonight. You've made me very happy" Moka said as she set her drink on the small wooden table in front of her. She then leaned over and hugged him adoringly. He repeated the expression of devotion and held her very close. He could actually sense her feeling of absolute bliss and her heart that was hammering heavily against her ample bosom.
She released him a few moments later since she could tell that most of the other patrons were staring at them. But she just held his hand under the table and refused to let go for the time being.
"Moka, I should be thanking you for this vacation. There's no other place I'd rather be right now than here with you, by my side. I love you so much Moka. And I will love you forever."
"Oh Tsukune...I do love you so very much. And what you told my Father at our Graduation from Yokai...really meant a lot to me...about you not having any...regrets. You don't have any regrets, do you love?"
"The only regret I have...is not telling you that I've been in love with you from the moment I saw you...Moka" he replied as his positive mood took a sudden nosedive.
"Oh Tsukune. I know it was quite difficult on you. All those other girls surrounding you every single day of the week, trying so damn hard, just to get your attention. I cared about you so much...you were my first, real friend...and...I started to fall in love with you, too. But I was either too shy, too prideful, or too scared to say or do anything about it. But it all worked out for the best. Now we can live a quiet, peaceful life together. So please, look at me Tsukune. Please..." Moka said as she placed her hands on either side of his cheeks and stared into his eyes that mirrored her own.
"Moka..." he said, moved by her sincere speech. He leaned in and closed the short space between themselves and kissed her on her satiny, soft lips. Moka deepened their kiss in front of anyone who was foolish enough to dare watch the vampiress claim her place as his one and only mate. Any remaining pride flew out the proverbial window at that very moment.
'Tsukune...my love...'
'Moka...'
Time seemed to stand still for the couple as they were completely lost in their own little world. They eventually forgot how to properly breathe and were desperately begging for life giving oxygen a few minutes later. Moka grabbed the tall glass that contained the remainder of her tomato juice and drank in one, fell swoop. Tsukune did the same as he too, was parched from such an amazing, impassioned kiss that left his head in a slight daze, and still short of breath.
…..
Once the club started to have a decent crowd, the DJ began playing music. Moka started to lightly tap her left foot to match the electronic beat. She continued holding Tsukune's hand, and started to enjoy herself.
"Moka, would you care to dance now?" he asked as he stood up and offered her his hand.
"Yes, I'd love to, Tsukune," she answered; she then gently took his hand in her own. He then led her to the center of the dance floor that was now just getting packed.
As Moka began swaying her hips to the music, all eyes were focused on her, which she seemed to enjoy a bit. Tsukune copied her moves, as he was paying attention, solely on her.
Ayumi Hamasaki's famous song "Depend On You" started playing overhead:
Anata ga moshi tabidatsu,
sono hi ga itsuka kitara,
soko kara futari de hajimeyou,
Mezashiteta gooru ni todokisou na toki,
hontou wa mada tooi koto kizuita no?
Ittai doko made yukeba ii no ka...
owari no nai hibi wo dou suru no?
zutto tobitsuzukete tsukareta nara
hane yasumete ii kara...
Watashi wa koko ni iru yo
Anata ga moshi tabidatsu
sono hi ga itsuka kitara...
Soko kara futari de hajimeyou
Hitosuji no hikari wo shinjite miru no?
soretomo kurayami ni obieru no?
zutto tobitsuzuketa tsubasa ga mou
habatakezu ni iru nara...
Watashi ga ata tameru yo
Anata no koto hitsuyou to
shiteru hito wa kitto
kanarazu hitori wa iru kara...
Anata ga hitsuyou to suru
hito nara itsumo kitto...
itTonari de waratte iru kara
zutto tobitsuzukete tsukareta nara
hane yasumete ii kara...
Watashi wa koko ni iru yo
Itsuka wa mina tabidatsu
sono hi ga kitto kuru ne
Subete wo sutetemo ii hodo...
Kore kara hajimatte yuku
futari no monogatari wa...
Fuan to kibou ni michiteru
...
Once the song mixed into to the next one, Moka took her mate's hand, and walked back to their table along the far, left-hand wall. She was smiling, yet panting a little bit.
Once she sat down, she had a request for her one and only.
"Tsukune, could you um - get us another drink please? I don't see our waitress Fumiko, anywhere."
"Sure thing, Moka. I'll be right back, okay? I'll get us both another tomato juice," he mentioned to her so he could sit up.
"Thank you, Tsukune. Do hurry back, please" she said with a bashful smile that caused him to blush at her adorableness.
'Moka, you're way too cute for your own good sometimes' he told himself.
As he approached the Bar, the barmaid saw him standing there with a bemused look on his face. She slowly walked up to the strange looking male and was smiling the entire time. She was quite beautiful; aged in her early twenties and was sporting a black and red bustier along with firm fitting, cotton, ebony tights.
The amber lighting made her hair appear bright pinkish in color and her eyes, aquamarine. She somewhat reminded him of somebody else, he noted to himself, but allowed it to pass for now.
"Hi handsome. What can I get you?" she asked with a wink that made him feel somewhat uncomfortable at the flirtatious, visual communication.
"Um, could I get two glasses of tomato juice please?" he said as he reached for his wallet.
"Sure thing, cutie. Coming right up" she replied with another wink, as she went to prepare two tall glasses of the unusual, requested beverage.
'Damn. She kinda looks like...the other Moka...' he thought sadly to himself.
A brief moment later, the attractive barmaid returned with his drink order. He paid the 1000 Yen tab and left as quickly as possible.
"Oh darn it, he left" the pink-haired barkeep said to herself.
…..
After making his way through the packed area surrounding the Bar, Tsukune finally walked back to their table with their drinks in hand.
'Oh boy. This should be interesting' he said to himself as Moka had some unwanted company.
"I said go away. I'm with my boyfriend. Besides, your stench is making my eyes burn!" Moka admonished the man next to her, who was sitting way too close for comfort.
"Aw, come on babe. I can make you very famous. I'm quite well known in Tokyo" replied the tall blonde-haired man, complete with a cheap suit and was wearing tinted sunglasses on his smug face.
"Ah! There he is now!" Moka piped up once she saw Tsukune return to her side.
"Is there a problem here, Moka?" Tsukune replied as he set their drinks on the table in front of him.
"Yes Tsukune. This pervert is bothering me" she said with a slight scowl.
"Go away and mind your own business, runt. Can't you see that I'm working here?" replied the man who then situated his right arm around Moka in a show of dominance. Tsukune's vampire blood was now boiling in his veins. He then reached over the table and grabbed the larger man by his collar and lifted him high in the air.
"Hey! What the hell! Put me down! Do you have any idea who I am?!" he yelled as he attempted to free himself from the enraged vampire's vice-like, iron grip.
"I don't think so. And I really don't care who you are. Who the hell gave you the right to touch my girlfriend?" Tsukune replied as he bared his razor-sharp fangs to the blonde male who was now shaking like a leaf and was ready to relieve himself, right then tossed the befuddled man a good ten feet away into the center of the packed dance floor. Everybody rapidly backed up as he landed in the middle of the floor and was now confused from the unexpected turn of events.
…..
The disoriented older man quickly got up and dashed hastily towards the nearest exit.
The other club-goers saw everything that just conspired a moment ago. Tsukune then sat down next to Moka and was still upset over what he had just done and nearly lost his last bit of self-control.
"Moka, would you like to go somewhere else now? I have a feeling that it's gonna get kinda uncomfortable any minute now," he asked her as he then stood next to her.
"Would it be alright if we went upstairs instead? I'm sure it would be much less crowded there," she suggested as an alternative solution.
Not wanting to ruin their first date, he gladly nodded yes in agreement. They then both grabbed their drink, and found the stairs leading up to the second floor, that overlooked the nightclub from above. Moka held his free hand while they ascended the steel stairway.
When they arrived upstairs, Tsukune was quite surprised that it was in-fact nearly empty, minus a few staff members behind the Bar, of course. The couple found a row of dark red, leather seats and couches, located near the far, right-hand side wall.
Once they had a seat and set their drinks on the rectangular, wooden table in front of them, Tsukune placed his right arm across the back of the seat and draped it over Moka's shoulders. She in turn leaned closer to her blood-mate, then settled her left hand on his inner, right thigh and gave it a gentle squeeze.
"I like seeing that side of you, Tsukune. Even though I'm more than capable of showing him his place, I'm very happy witnessing you defend my honor. Thank you, my love," she told him as she then turned to face him, placed both of her hands on his cheeks and closed the small distance between themselves, then kissed him very passionately. She started to moan softly in delight as a wave of pure bliss washed over her and warmed her up from this simple act of love and devotion.
…..
Once they needed air, they mutually decided to end their ten minute kiss.
The couple then took notice that the pace of the music slowed down to a more tolerable level.
"Moka, would you like to dance again? I promise I'll hold you close by my side," he asked her.
"Yes. I'd love to, Tsukune," she tenderly replied. He held her hand and led her to the mini dance floor, just a few meters away. Moka then looked deep into his eyes; placed her left arm around his waist and held his right hand in her own. He mimicked her actions as he followed her lead and began swaying to the slower music.
"M-mmm...this is really nice," she whispered in his right ear as she leaned her body against his.
"Yeah it is, Moka. We should do this again sometime," he replied likewise.
"Yes, we should. I love you so much, Tsukune. Thank you once again for our first, real date. You've made me very happy," the silver-haired princess told him, as she hugged him closer.
"You're very welcome, Moka. I love you. Spending this time with you has made me quite happy too," he whispered back.
"Oh Tsukune..." she replied, as she was indeed feeling as if she didn't want the night to end, anytime soon at least.
They continued slow dancing for several more love songs, holding each other very close. Tsukune could actually feel Moka's heart pounding steadily against his chest once again.
…..
Mutually deciding to take a short break from dancing for the past hour or so, the couple returned to their seat and finish off their cool beverages. Moka's head was positively spinning from feeling so close to Tsukune. She was quite pleased that their evening had turned out quite well, minus one minor inconvenience, which was promptly resolved all due in thanks to her mate, of course.
He had always been there for her in good times and bad. He was her very best friend, after all.
"Hey Moka?" he asked, bringing her thoughts back to the present.
"M-mmm. Yes Tsukune?" she replied as she looked up to him as she was being held very close in a loving, protective manner.
"Did I um...handle that...situation okay? I mean, when I saw him put his hands on you, I was ready to lose it you know. It's just that...well – after everything we've been through...I guess I can't help myself. I just – want you for myself. Is that being selfish?" he asked with a hint of sadness and uncertainty.
Moka sat up and turned her attention to him, then stared into his ruby-red eyes and smiled brightly.
…..
"Yes, love. You did what you had to do. I'm actually flattered for what you did to that pervert. So you have nothing to apologize for. He had that coming, but I'm glad you held yourself back. I could tell through our blood-bond that you were definitely upset and I don't blame you one bit. If I saw another woman hanging onto you like that, I most likely wouldn't be able to contain my anger and punish them much more sternly, but it's okay now. And no. You're not being selfish...because...I – I feel the same way that you do. I just want you all to myself. You're my very best friend and my mate Tsukune. And I will always love you and be here for you. Forever," Moka told him with absolute conviction in her voice.
She held him firmly and wanted to be much closer than they already were, but would wait until they returned to her condo in Roppongi Hills later on tonight.
Moved by her sincere words, Tsukune was honestly feeling much better. He knew she was being truthful as always and they were learning a lot more about each other, the more time that they spent together. This vacation is something they both deserved and urgently needed to further their relationship along in the proper direction.
…..
As the couple held each other closely, they both ached to be held and touched on a more intimate level. Moka started to rub his right thigh in a provocative manner that caused him to become aroused rather quickly. She then leaned over to him and placed her plump lips up to his right ear, all the while pressing her firm bosom against his chest.
"Tsukune...would it be alright...if we...went back to my apartment now?" she whispered.
"Uh yeah...I'd like that – too Moka. If it's what you want..."
"I know that you want to as well. We both feel the same way, don't we?"
"Uh well, yes. You're right – Moka. Um. Let's go then" he said as she then stood up and offered her mate her hand which he took with great enthusiasm. As he then sat up, he lead Moka down the stairwell and searched for the nearest exit.
Once they were outside in the crisp, nighttime air, Tsukune pulled out his cellphone from his pocket along with the business card from their friendly neighborhood taxi driver. Once he was finished with his brief phone call, he shoved his phone into his pocket.
Tsukune then realized he was still in his vampire form. He was so lost in the moment and had completely forgotten to replace his Rosary onto the chain wrapped around his right wrist. Moka held his hand lovingly and then spoke.
"It's okay Tsukune...you don't have to – right now. Besides...I want to – be with you – like this."
"Okay Moka. Um...thanks" he replied as he held her hand firmer.
The pair waited in front of the nightclub for only a few minutes as their taxi pulled up to the sidewalk, horn honking upon his arrival. The cab driver rolled his window down and saw the two young adults who could easily pass for twins, but let it pass for now.
As Tsukune opened the door for Moka she smiled once again at his act of chivalry. Once they were comfortably seated, Tsukune closed the door behind himself and sat very close to Moka, who placed her left hand on his thigh in a loving manner.
"So, where to kids?" the cab driver asked with a teasing tone.
"Mid-Town Tower, Roppongi Hills, please" Moka replied. The driver smiled in acknowledgment as he started the meter and pulled away from the sidewalk and drove west, towards the ritzier part of midtown Tokyo.
"You got it, miss" was his reply as he weaved in and out of traffic with the skill and elegance of a professional race car driver. Tsukune and Moka relaxed in the back seat, quite content that their first date would be ending on a high note.
…..
Approximately twenty minutes later, the cab driver pulled up to the semi-circular driveway in front of Moka's condominium. She pulled out the wallet from her purse and paid the driver who had brought them back safe and sound rather swiftly. Tsukune offered to tip him, but he happily declined stating it was his pleasure to bring the "two love birds back to their nest," whatever that meant.
Tsukune exited first and offered his hand to Moka once again who still blushed at his act of affection for her safety and overall, well-being. The cab driver left the couple as he went about his business for the remainder of the night.
Five minutes later, the duo arrived at Moka's apartment and were kissing each other feverishly. They stopped every few seconds to remove an article of clothing from each other. A trail of discarded garments ran from the front door all the way to her bedroom every couple of meters or so. As soon as they entered her room that they shared, Tsukune closed the door, picked Moka up like a princess and carried her over to the queen-sized bed.
"Tsukune..." she said as he gently laid her nude form down on the plush bedding. She reached up to him, gently pulled him on top of her and hugged him for all he was worth.
"Oh Moka..."
"Tsukune...make love to me..."
Now lying her head on the squishy pillow, he hovered over her on his knees as she spread her sexy legs apart, inviting him to become one with her. As his throbbing manhood entered her warm flower, Moka gasped as they consummated their love once again.
…..
"Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...ahhh..ahhh..." she whimpered.
Slowly and tenderly the couple made passionate love, growing much closer as the flaming romance of their union burned inside of them. Time seemed to slow down for the pair as they were consumed with complete affection and absolute devotion. Their pounding hearts were in now beating in sync.
"Moka...you feel...so...warm..."Tsukune moaned as he slowed his pace, gently rocking against her as the warm tingles of pleasure continued to tingle down his spine.
Then without further warning he sank his sharp fangs into the tender, white flesh of her neck, causing Moka to experience her first intense orgasm of the afternoon.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...oh Tsukune...so hard...ah...love...ah...ahhnn...ahhhnnhhhghnhhhhh!", Moka bellowed as she arched her back, climaxing forcefully and causing her toes to curl upwards; soaking the bedding with her juices.
Wrapping her arms around him tighter, she silently asked him to cease momentarily as she was reeling from the explosive orgasm that just ran throughout her body and left her legs still spasaming.
Which he did without any further petition.
"Tsukune...that was...oh my God...so good...ahhh...you wore me...out...", she told him as she continued to hold him close, still joined at the hips.
"Uh, thanks Moka. Ummm...sorry, but I'm still...u-mmm..." he murmured in reply, nearly whimpering from restraining himself.
'Ugh! What the hell's wrong with me?! It's like I have no control anymore!', the silver-haired vampire mentally scolded himself.
"You're welcome, Tsukune...I know, love. You're still quite...um...yes...I can feel you inside me...still hmm... hard...ohhh...ahhh...okay...I'm ready now...slowly again..."
'I'm so tired, yet we both want more! Our bond must be getting much stronger... Oh Kami, I want so much more, Tsukune! Oh, yes! Yes!', the vampiress cried to herself as they continued their gentle lovemaking.
Doing as she requested, the pair continued making passionate love for the next hour or so, as Tsukune kept his promise as to keep a steady, yet slow, pace.
The increasing pressure was becoming unbearable for the young man as he held himself back and attempted to prolong their lovemaking even more so.
"Ahhh...Moka...ahhhhhh...I can't...hold out...any more..." he admitted with a blush.
"It's okay, Love...go ahead...it's ahhh...too big...oh KAMI! AHHHHHHHhhhnnnnghhhhhngh!"
"Moka..oh Moka...ahhh ah ahhh...Aahnhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhnnnnnnnhhhhhhhhnnhhh!"
Convulsing from the simultaneous powerful orgasms, they both collapsed from exhaustion. Holding each other closer, the pair felt nearly inseparable. Unable to form a comprehensive response, the vampires just continued to embrace each other as their heart-rates returned somewhat to normal levels several minutes later.
Before either teen had realized, they had fallen asleep, still cuddled up to each other. They both knew in their hearts that the growing bond between themselves had indeed strengthened, and was now completely unbreakable. Whatever the future held for them, they would face it together as not only the very best of friends, but as blood-mates as well.
Their vacation had now officially begun, and it was sure to be an unforgettable time for either of them.
–-
Author's Note:
*4000 Yen = $38.14 in US Dollars.
Oh man. I worked on this chapter for nearly 2 days. I started it on the evening of Jan. 1st with just the basic outline. I had to do some research on nightclubs in the area that was not too far from Moka's condominium, which is an actual place in Roppongi and not too far from midtown Tokyo, Japan.
I described the nightclub "Club Asia" the best I could based upon photos I had found online. I hope that everyone enjoyed this chapter, as I wanted to show that Tsukune and Moka are slowly becoming closer, the more time they spend together, especially out in public as a real couple.
The next chapter will conclude the "Golden Week" arc and they will be doing some exploring and shopping in Akihabara, which is very well known to fans of anime, manga and video games in the heart of Tokyo. Who knows? Moka may very well be singing, too :) I have not decided yet as I'm kind of burnt out from writing all day, LOL.
Thanks to everyone who has enjoyed my new take on my original fan-fic.
Chapter 8, "Golden Week Part 3, The Date – Continued"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for a Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
...
A/N: This is part 3 of a 4 part story arc. I decided to continue this 'Golden Week' arc for one more chapter after this one. Takes place during the last weekend of April and into the first week of May. Roppongi, Tokyo Japan.
...
As Tsukune and Moka departure the restaurant known as Tony Roma's, they returned to the busy streets of Roppongi. Moka was quite ecstatic as they were savoring their first, real date as a couple.
"So Moka. Um, do you really know of any all-ages nightclubs around here?" Tsukune asked his wonderful mate who had made this night possible.
"Well, no. Not really. I haven't lived in this area for three years. I do have an idea though" she said as she stood on the edge of the sidewalk and flagged down the first black and yellow checkered taxicab she had spotted with her keen eyesight. Once the cab pulled over, Tsukune opened the rear, passenger-side door for her in a gentlemanly-fashion. Tsukune climbed in after her and closed the door behind himself.
"Driver, please take us to the most well-known, all-ages nightclub, please" Moka asked the cabdriver. He admired the strange looking young woman who had striking red eyes and platinum-colored hair.
'Hm, a cosplayer. I know just the place' he muttered to himself.
"Not a problem, kids" the driver replied with a tease, as he pulled away from the sidewalk and navigated the congested roads of Roppongi and made his way east, heading towards Tokyo.
"Thank you" Moka answered as she leaned against Tsukune who was wondering to himself where they'd actually end up as he'd only been to Tokyo once with his folks, when he was much younger.
"It's quite a nice area, isn't it Tsukune?" Moka asked as she glanced out the window at the passing, nighttime scenery.
"Yeah, lots of stores and big buildings. Maybe we can check some of them out this week" he agreed, surprised at the amount of shops and retail outlets in the general area of midtown Tokyo.
"That would be nice," she replied as she closed her eyes and smiled brighter. They were getting a lot closer and were feeling more at ease around each other, especially out in the world, as a real couple should.
…..
Approximately fifteen minutes later, the driver pulled up – somewhere. It was a rather large building with a long line of people in their late teens to mid-twenties mingling out in front and talking amongst themselves.
"Here we are" the cab driver said. They had arrived at 'Club Asia', located at 1-8 Maruyamacho, Shibuya ku Tokyo, in Tokyo Prefecture.
Most of the patrons waiting outside were dressed in elaborate costumes of some sorts. Moka pulled out the wallet from her purse and paid the cab-fare, along with a tip to the driver. He said thanks and handed his card to the duo, in case they needed another ride at the end of the night. Tsukune exited the taxi first and offered his free hand to Moka too took it with a bright smile.
…..
"Thank you, Tsukune" she said as she closed the door behind herself. The taxi driver then pulled away from the pair and made his way to pick up his next customers of the night.
"You're welcome, my princess" he said as he kissed the back of her right hand which caused her cheeks to tint red at the caring, gallant act. As they made their way towards the rear of the long line to enter the club, Tsukune continued to hold Moka's hand and led her down the alleyway that was located between the actual club and the building next door.
They stopped about ten meters back from the sidewalk.
"Tsukune...we just passed the entrance" Moka said, unsure of why they were here of all places.
"Moka, are you gonna be okay? I can tell through our bond that you're feeling...anxious."
"Of course I'm...okay..." she said as she glanced at the ground and avoided eye contact.
"Moka...there's no need for you to put on this strong sense of pride. I think I know you very well after all these years, and besides, we are blood-mates. I know that you're feeling – you know...out of place, so I was thinking...maybe I'll be unsealed too...so you won't feel so alone."
"But Tsukune...you don't have to do that for me..." she said with tears in her eyes. He then quickly hugged her firmly, then reached for the silver crucifix on his right wrist with his left hand and gave it a sharp pull. The alleyway was quickly illuminated in a bright, golden light as Tsukune unleashed his vampire self. Moka gasped as she could feel his yokai energy come forth and caused her to become weak in the knees.
Tsukune's dark, mahogany-hued hair washed over in silvery white, and his chocolatey-brown eyes became ruby-red, with reptile-like slits. He then ceased their embrace and looked at his mate.
…..
Once his transformation was complete, he shoved the Rosary in his pants pocket.
"Okay, you're right Tsukune. It's just that, well...I really want us to live a life as a real couple, but people still view me as strange. I know I stick out, but...I just want to be myself. I have to be myself...and well, seeing you do this for me, really means a lot. So thank you Tsukune. I do love you so very much, and I apologize for – before."
"It's fine Moka. I understand what you're saying. I've always loved you for yourself. And I just want you to be yourself too, Moka. You don't have to be alone anymore. I'm always gonna be here for you for the rest of my life. And I wouldn't have it any other way" he said with a warm smile.
"Oh Tsukune..." she said as she happily glomped him and gently walked him up to the brick wall behind him. She then kissed her one and only mate passionately as she was moved by his earnest words. It would seem as if Moka was falling in love with him all over again. Tsukune returned the act of adoration as their tongues wrestled for dominance.
"Ah Tsukune...oh Kami...ahhhngh..."
"Moka...mm-hmm..."
A few minutes later the pair ceased their embrace before either one of them passed out from lack of oxygen.
…..
They then made their way to the rear of the long line, waiting their turn to enter the large nightclub. Moka noticed a sign on the wall behind Tsukune, indicating that tonight just so happened to be a theme night.
"Cosplay Party Tonight" the sign had printed on it in bright letters. Seems as if the kind taxi driver had chosen the appropriate place for the pair to blend in, it would seem.
The facade of the club was made from a dark, orange, stained wood of some sorts. On the top part of the two-story building was the club's name in bright, white neon, with a dragon over the name itself.
"Hey, check out that hot chick in the red dress!"
"Oh my god...Look at that banging body!"
"Hey, who's the guy with her? Her brother maybe?
"I dunno. It looks like some kinda cosplay."
"Who the hell cares? He looks like a loser anyway."
"I gotta get her number! She's just my type...hot."
Moka and Tsukune heard the rude comments coming from the front of the line and their anger levels elevated, but they knew that they couldn't do a thing about it and would have to let it slide, for now anyways. Tsukune then realized that he had to be on his toes, just in case anyone of those idiots forgot their place.
Approximately ten minutes later, the vampire pair eventually made it to the front of the line. Tsukune pulled out his wallet from his back pocket and paid the appropriate cover fee much to Moka's chagrin, but he said he wanted to return the favor since she had bought them dinner just a short while ago. She then tanked him for his generosity and held him close by.
…..
As soon as they entered the actual club itself, they were both surprised how nice the interior was. Orange and amber lighted chandeliers hung from the ceiling over the bar that ran along the right-hand side of the club, giving the ambiance a warm, welcoming glow. Huge speakers surrounded the downstairs on all, four sides suspended by steel cables from the ceiling.
On the left-hand side across from the main bar was another room lit up in blues and violets with its own dance floor. In the back half of the 'main' room was an even larger-sized dance floor located in front of the DJ booth and stage that was used for live, musical acts. Several 'disco' lamps that hung down from above, painted the crowd in every color light imaginable.
Located next to the stage was a steel stairwell that led to the upstairs which had its own, separate dance floor and bar lit up in cyan and magenta lights.
"Wow!" the pair said in unison once they took in all the sights and sounds. Moka held Tsukune's hand as they searched for somewhere to have a seat. Tsukune noticed a few small tables off to the side, next to the smaller room alongside the left wall.
Tsukune pulled out Moka's chair for her which resulted her to blush yet again.
"This is pretty nice, Tsukune."
"Yeah. It's my first time, Moka."
"Oh yes...Hmm...mine too, Tsukune."
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Oh Moka..."
"Tsu-ku-ne..."
"*ahem*...welcome to Club Asia. Can I get you two lovebirds something to drink?" the cocktail server asked, seeing the vampire couple gaze lovingly into each others eyes. She was around her mid-twenties in age, with bright green and purple streaked hair, medium height, who was dressed like a fairy with a neon blue, mini dress, along with iridescent 'wings' on her back that reflected the ambient lighting from the surrounding vicinity.
"Oh yes...sorry about that – could we get two glasses of tomato juice please?" Moka said as she was feeling somewhat ashamed, being caught nearly on top to her boyfriend.
"Sure thing. Coming right up" she happily replied as she then turned around and made her way to the Bar to place the pair's drink order.
"How embarrassing!" Moka lamented as she buried her face on her mate's shoulder and grabbed him firmly. Even if she was one of the most powerful vampires on the face of the earth, she still became flustered from time to time.
Moka was still coming to grips with all these new feelings ever since she and Tsukune became a couple just a few days ago, prior to Graduation.
"Moka...it's fine. I'm sure she was only teasing" he reassured her.
"Do you think so, Tsukune?" she said as she glanced up to her mate, cheeks still burning bright pink.
"Yeah. Maybe she was just jealous" he hypothesized.
"Oh well, that makes sense I suppose. You're quite handsome in this form" she said with a wink and a smile.
"Uh yeah. Thanks Moka" he quietly replied. Now he was the one who was embarrassed to some degree. Tsukune was still getting used to being called 'attractive' or 'handsome' but knew through their blood-bond that she was being truthful as always.
…..
Less than five minutes later, the cocktail waitress returned to the vampire's table after fighting her way through the ever-growing crowd by the Bar of the nighttime, entertainment establishment.
"Here you go. That will be 1000 yen, please" she announced after placing the two tall glasses of chilled tomato juice on the duo's table. Tsukune reached into his back pocket to retrieve his wallet but Moka had beaten him, as she swiftly handed the money to the grinning server.
"Please, keep the change miss" Moka said with a smile of her own.
"Oh, thank you very much. If you need anything else, my name is Fumiko" she answered with a polite bow as she left the pair to themselves, for now. A 4000 Yen* tip was quite generous, seeing that most waitresses lived on their tips alone, after tipping out the bartenders at the end of the night.
"Well, um...I'd like to propose a toast. To the sweetest, kindest and most beautiful woman I've ever known...My one and only love, Moka Akashiya." Moka blushed hard once more from her mate's heartfelt declaration and out in public, nonetheless.
"Kampai!" they shouted as they clinked their glasses together then each took a sip of the chilled beverage.
"M-mm, Tsukune...thank you for tonight. You've made me very happy" Moka said as she set her drink on the small wooden table in front of her. She then leaned over and hugged him adoringly. He repeated the expression of devotion and held her very close. He could actually sense her feeling of absolute bliss and her heart that was hammering heavily against her ample bosom.
She released him a few moments later since she could tell that most of the other patrons were staring at them. But she just held his hand under the table and refused to let go for the time being.
"Moka, I should be thanking you for this vacation. There's no other place I'd rather be right now than here with you, by my side. I love you so much Moka. And I will love you forever."
"Oh Tsukune...I do love you so very much. And what you told my Father at our Graduation from Yokai...really meant a lot to me...about you not having any...regrets. You don't have any regrets, do you love?"
"The only regret I have...is not telling you that I've been in love with you from the moment I saw you...Moka" he replied as his positive mood took a sudden nosedive.
"Oh Tsukune. I know it was quite difficult on you. All those other girls surrounding you every single day of the week, trying so damn hard, just to get your attention. I cared about you so much...you were my first, real friend...and...I started to fall in love with you, too. But I was either too shy, too prideful, or too scared to say or do anything about it. But it all worked out for the best. Now we can live a quiet, peaceful life together. So please, look at me Tsukune. Please..." Moka said as she placed her hands on either side of his cheeks and stared into his eyes that mirrored her own.
"Moka..." he said, moved by her sincere speech. He leaned in and closed the short space between themselves and kissed her on her satiny, soft lips. Moka deepened their kiss in front of anyone who was foolish enough to dare watch the vampiress claim her place as his one and only mate. Any remaining pride flew out the proverbial window at that very moment.
'Tsukune...my love...'
'Moka...'
Time seemed to stand still for the couple as they were completely lost in their own little world. They eventually forgot how to properly breathe and were desperately begging for life giving oxygen a few minutes later. Moka grabbed the tall glass that contained the remainder of her tomato juice and drank in one, fell swoop. Tsukune did the same as he too, was parched from such an amazing, impassioned kiss that left his head in a slight daze, and still short of breath.
…..
Once the club started to have a decent crowd, the DJ began playing music. Moka started to lightly tap her left foot to match the electronic beat. She continued holding Tsukune's hand, and started to enjoy herself.
"Moka, would you care to dance now?" he asked as he stood up and offered her his hand.
"Yes, I'd love to, Tsukune," she answered; she then gently took his hand in her own. He then led her to the center of the dance floor that was now just getting packed.
As Moka began swaying her hips to the music, all eyes were focused on her, which she seemed to enjoy a bit. Tsukune copied her moves, as he was paying attention, solely on her.
Ayumi Hamasaki's famous song "Depend On You" started playing overhead:
Anata ga moshi tabidatsu,
sono hi ga itsuka kitara,
soko kara futari de hajimeyou,
Mezashiteta gooru ni todokisou na toki,
hontou wa mada tooi koto kizuita no?
Ittai doko made yukeba ii no ka...
owari no nai hibi wo dou suru no?
zutto tobitsuzukete tsukareta nara
hane yasumete ii kara...
Watashi wa koko ni iru yo
Anata ga moshi tabidatsu
sono hi ga itsuka kitara...
Soko kara futari de hajimeyou
Hitosuji no hikari wo shinjite miru no?
soretomo kurayami ni obieru no?
zutto tobitsuzuketa tsubasa ga mou
habatakezu ni iru nara...
Watashi ga ata tameru yo
Anata no koto hitsuyou to
shiteru hito wa kitto
kanarazu hitori wa iru kara...
Anata ga hitsuyou to suru
hito nara itsumo kitto...
itTonari de waratte iru kara
zutto tobitsuzukete tsukareta nara
hane yasumete ii kara...
Watashi wa koko ni iru yo
Itsuka wa mina tabidatsu
sono hi ga kitto kuru ne
Subete wo sutetemo ii hodo...
Kore kara hajimatte yuku
futari no monogatari wa...
Fuan to kibou ni michiteru
...
Once the song mixed into to the next one, Moka took her mate's hand, and walked back to their table along the far, left-hand wall. She was smiling, yet panting a little bit.
Once she sat down, she had a request for her one and only.
"Tsukune, could you um - get us another drink please? I don't see our waitress Fumiko, anywhere."
"Sure thing, Moka. I'll be right back, okay? I'll get us both another tomato juice," he mentioned to her so he could sit up.
"Thank you, Tsukune. Do hurry back, please" she said with a bashful smile that caused him to blush at her adorableness.
'Moka, you're way too cute for your own good sometimes' he told himself.
As he approached the Bar, the barmaid saw him standing there with a bemused look on his face. She slowly walked up to the strange looking male and was smiling the entire time. She was quite beautiful; aged in her early twenties and was sporting a black and red bustier along with firm fitting, cotton, ebony tights.
The amber lighting made her hair appear bright pinkish in color and her eyes, aquamarine. She somewhat reminded him of somebody else, he noted to himself, but allowed it to pass for now.
"Hi handsome. What can I get you?" she asked with a wink that made him feel somewhat uncomfortable at the flirtatious, visual communication.
"Um, could I get two glasses of tomato juice please?" he said as he reached for his wallet.
"Sure thing, cutie. Coming right up" she replied with another wink, as she went to prepare two tall glasses of the unusual, requested beverage.
'Damn. She kinda looks like...the other Moka...' he thought sadly to himself.
A brief moment later, the attractive barmaid returned with his drink order. He paid the 1000 Yen tab and left as quickly as possible.
"Oh darn it, he left" the pink-haired barkeep said to herself.
…..
After making his way through the packed area surrounding the Bar, Tsukune finally walked back to their table with their drinks in hand.
'Oh boy. This should be interesting' he said to himself as Moka had some unwanted company.
"I said go away. I'm with my boyfriend. Besides, your stench is making my eyes burn!" Moka admonished the man next to her, who was sitting way too close for comfort.
"Aw, come on babe. I can make you very famous. I'm quite well known in Tokyo" replied the tall blonde-haired man, complete with a cheap suit and was wearing tinted sunglasses on his smug face.
"Ah! There he is now!" Moka piped up once she saw Tsukune return to her side.
"Is there a problem here, Moka?" Tsukune replied as he set their drinks on the table in front of him.
"Yes Tsukune. This pervert is bothering me" she said with a slight scowl.
"Go away and mind your own business, runt. Can't you see that I'm working here?" replied the man who then situated his right arm around Moka in a show of dominance. Tsukune's vampire blood was now boiling in his veins. He then reached over the table and grabbed the larger man by his collar and lifted him high in the air.
"Hey! What the hell! Put me down! Do you have any idea who I am?!" he yelled as he attempted to free himself from the enraged vampire's vice-like, iron grip.
"I don't think so. And I really don't care who you are. Who the hell gave you the right to touch my girlfriend?" Tsukune replied as he bared his razor-sharp fangs to the blonde male who was now shaking like a leaf and was ready to relieve himself, right then tossed the befuddled man a good ten feet away into the center of the packed dance floor. Everybody rapidly backed up as he landed in the middle of the floor and was now confused from the unexpected turn of events.
…..
The disoriented older man quickly got up and dashed hastily towards the nearest exit.
The other club-goers saw everything that just conspired a moment ago. Tsukune then sat down next to Moka and was still upset over what he had just done and nearly lost his last bit of self-control.
"Moka, would you like to go somewhere else now? I have a feeling that it's gonna get kinda uncomfortable any minute now," he asked her as he then stood next to her.
"Would it be alright if we went upstairs instead? I'm sure it would be much less crowded there," she suggested as an alternative solution.
Not wanting to ruin their first date, he gladly nodded yes in agreement. They then both grabbed their drink, and found the stairs leading up to the second floor, that overlooked the nightclub from above. Moka held his free hand while they ascended the steel stairway.
When they arrived upstairs, Tsukune was quite surprised that it was in-fact nearly empty, minus a few staff members behind the Bar, of course. The couple found a row of dark red, leather seats and couches, located near the far, right-hand side wall.
Once they had a seat and set their drinks on the rectangular, wooden table in front of them, Tsukune placed his right arm across the back of the seat and draped it over Moka's shoulders. She in turn leaned closer to her blood-mate, then settled her left hand on his inner, right thigh and gave it a gentle squeeze.
"I like seeing that side of you, Tsukune. Even though I'm more than capable of showing him his place, I'm very happy witnessing you defend my honor. Thank you, my love," she told him as she then turned to face him, placed both of her hands on his cheeks and closed the small distance between themselves, then kissed him very passionately. She started to moan softly in delight as a wave of pure bliss washed over her and warmed her up from this simple act of love and devotion.
…..
Once they needed air, they mutually decided to end their ten minute kiss.
The couple then took notice that the pace of the music slowed down to a more tolerable level.
"Moka, would you like to dance again? I promise I'll hold you close by my side," he asked her.
"Yes. I'd love to, Tsukune," she tenderly replied. He held her hand and led her to the mini dance floor, just a few meters away. Moka then looked deep into his eyes; placed her left arm around his waist and held his right hand in her own. He mimicked her actions as he followed her lead and began swaying to the slower music.
"M-mmm...this is really nice," she whispered in his right ear as she leaned her body against his.
"Yeah it is, Moka. We should do this again sometime," he replied likewise.
"Yes, we should. I love you so much, Tsukune. Thank you once again for our first, real date. You've made me very happy," the silver-haired princess told him, as she hugged him closer.
"You're very welcome, Moka. I love you. Spending this time with you has made me quite happy too," he whispered back.
"Oh Tsukune..." she replied, as she was indeed feeling as if she didn't want the night to end, anytime soon at least.
They continued slow dancing for several more love songs, holding each other very close. Tsukune could actually feel Moka's heart pounding steadily against his chest once again.
…..
Mutually deciding to take a short break from dancing for the past hour or so, the couple returned to their seat and finish off their cool beverages. Moka's head was positively spinning from feeling so close to Tsukune. She was quite pleased that their evening had turned out quite well, minus one minor inconvenience, which was promptly resolved all due in thanks to her mate, of course.
He had always been there for her in good times and bad. He was her very best friend, after all.
"Hey Moka?" he asked, bringing her thoughts back to the present.
"M-mmm. Yes Tsukune?" she replied as she looked up to him as she was being held very close in a loving, protective manner.
"Did I um...handle that...situation okay? I mean, when I saw him put his hands on you, I was ready to lose it you know. It's just that...well – after everything we've been through...I guess I can't help myself. I just – want you for myself. Is that being selfish?" he asked with a hint of sadness and uncertainty.
Moka sat up and turned her attention to him, then stared into his ruby-red eyes and smiled brightly.
…..
"Yes, love. You did what you had to do. I'm actually flattered for what you did to that pervert. So you have nothing to apologize for. He had that coming, but I'm glad you held yourself back. I could tell through our blood-bond that you were definitely upset and I don't blame you one bit. If I saw another woman hanging onto you like that, I most likely wouldn't be able to contain my anger and punish them much more sternly, but it's okay now. And no. You're not being selfish...because...I – I feel the same way that you do. I just want you all to myself. You're my very best friend and my mate Tsukune. And I will always love you and be here for you. Forever," Moka told him with absolute conviction in her voice.
She held him firmly and wanted to be much closer than they already were, but would wait until they returned to her condo in Roppongi Hills later on tonight.
Moved by her sincere words, Tsukune was honestly feeling much better. He knew she was being truthful as always and they were learning a lot more about each other, the more time that they spent together. This vacation is something they both deserved and urgently needed to further their relationship along in the proper direction.
…..
As the couple held each other closely, they both ached to be held and touched on a more intimate level. Moka started to rub his right thigh in a provocative manner that caused him to become aroused rather quickly. She then leaned over to him and placed her plump lips up to his right ear, all the while pressing her firm bosom against his chest.
"Tsukune...would it be alright...if we...went back to my apartment now?" she whispered.
"Uh yeah...I'd like that – too Moka. If it's what you want..."
"I know that you want to as well. We both feel the same way, don't we?"
"Uh well, yes. You're right – Moka. Um. Let's go then" he said as she then stood up and offered her mate her hand which he took with great enthusiasm. As he then sat up, he lead Moka down the stairwell and searched for the nearest exit.
Once they were outside in the crisp, nighttime air, Tsukune pulled out his cellphone from his pocket along with the business card from their friendly neighborhood taxi driver. Once he was finished with his brief phone call, he shoved his phone into his pocket.
Tsukune then realized he was still in his vampire form. He was so lost in the moment and had completely forgotten to replace his Rosary onto the chain wrapped around his right wrist. Moka held his hand lovingly and then spoke.
"It's okay Tsukune...you don't have to – right now. Besides...I want to – be with you – like this."
"Okay Moka. Um...thanks" he replied as he held her hand firmer.
The pair waited in front of the nightclub for only a few minutes as their taxi pulled up to the sidewalk, horn honking upon his arrival. The cab driver rolled his window down and saw the two young adults who could easily pass for twins, but let it pass for now.
As Tsukune opened the door for Moka she smiled once again at his act of chivalry. Once they were comfortably seated, Tsukune closed the door behind himself and sat very close to Moka, who placed her left hand on his thigh in a loving manner.
"So, where to kids?" the cab driver asked with a teasing tone.
"Mid-Town Tower, Roppongi Hills, please" Moka replied. The driver smiled in acknowledgment as he started the meter and pulled away from the sidewalk and drove west, towards the ritzier part of midtown Tokyo.
"You got it, miss" was his reply as he weaved in and out of traffic with the skill and elegance of a professional race car driver. Tsukune and Moka relaxed in the back seat, quite content that their first date would be ending on a high note.
…..
Approximately twenty minutes later, the cab driver pulled up to the semi-circular driveway in front of Moka's condominium. She pulled out the wallet from her purse and paid the driver who had brought them back safe and sound rather swiftly. Tsukune offered to tip him, but he happily declined stating it was his pleasure to bring the "two love birds back to their nest," whatever that meant.
Tsukune exited first and offered his hand to Moka once again who still blushed at his act of affection for her safety and overall, well-being. The cab driver left the couple as he went about his business for the remainder of the night.
Five minutes later, the duo arrived at Moka's apartment and were kissing each other feverishly. They stopped every few seconds to remove an article of clothing from each other. A trail of discarded garments ran from the front door all the way to her bedroom every couple of meters or so. As soon as they entered her room that they shared, Tsukune closed the door, picked Moka up like a princess and carried her over to the queen-sized bed.
"Tsukune..." she said as he gently laid her nude form down on the plush bedding. She reached up to him, gently pulled him on top of her and hugged him for all he was worth.
"Oh Moka..."
"Tsukune...make love to me..."
Now lying her head on the squishy pillow, he hovered over her on his knees as she spread her sexy legs apart, inviting him to become one with her. As his throbbing manhood entered her warm flower, Moka gasped as they consummated their love once again.
…..
"Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...ahhh..ahhh..." she whimpered.
Slowly and tenderly the couple made passionate love, growing much closer as the flaming romance of their union burned inside of them. Time seemed to slow down for the pair as they were consumed with complete affection and absolute devotion. Their pounding hearts were in now beating in sync.
"Moka...you feel...so...warm..."Tsukune moaned as he slowed his pace, gently rocking against her as the warm tingles of pleasure continued to tingle down his spine.
Then without further warning he sank his sharp fangs into the tender, white flesh of her neck, causing Moka to experience her first intense orgasm of the afternoon.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...oh Tsukune...so hard...ah...love...ah...ahhnn...ahhhnnhhhghnhhhhh!", Moka bellowed as she arched her back, climaxing forcefully and causing her toes to curl upwards; soaking the bedding with her juices.
Wrapping her arms around him tighter, she silently asked him to cease momentarily as she was reeling from the explosive orgasm that just ran throughout her body and left her legs still spasaming.
Which he did without any further petition.
"Tsukune...that was...oh my God...so good...ahhh...you wore me...out...", she told him as she continued to hold him close, still joined at the hips.
"Uh, thanks Moka. Ummm...sorry, but I'm still...u-mmm..." he murmured in reply, nearly whimpering from restraining himself.
'Ugh! What the hell's wrong with me?! It's like I have no control anymore!', the silver-haired vampire mentally scolded himself.
"You're welcome, Tsukune...I know, love. You're still quite...um...yes...I can feel you inside me...still hmm... hard...ohhh...ahhh...okay...I'm ready now...slowly again..."
'I'm so tired, yet we both want more! Our bond must be getting much stronger... Oh Kami, I want so much more, Tsukune! Oh, yes! Yes!', the vampiress cried to herself as they continued their gentle lovemaking.
Doing as she requested, the pair continued making passionate love for the next hour or so, as Tsukune kept his promise as to keep a steady, yet slow, pace.
The increasing pressure was becoming unbearable for the young man as he held himself back and attempted to prolong their lovemaking even more so.
"Ahhh...Moka...ahhhhhh...I can't...hold out...any more..." he admitted with a blush.
"It's okay, Love...go ahead...it's ahhh...too big...oh KAMI! AHHHHHHHhhhnnnnghhhhhngh!"
"Moka..oh Moka...ahhh ah ahhh...Aahnhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhnnnnnnnhhhhhhhhnnhhh!"
Convulsing from the simultaneous powerful orgasms, they both collapsed from exhaustion. Holding each other closer, the pair felt nearly inseparable. Unable to form a comprehensive response, the vampires just continued to embrace each other as their heart-rates returned somewhat to normal levels several minutes later.
Before either teen had realized, they had fallen asleep, still cuddled up to each other. They both knew in their hearts that the growing bond between themselves had indeed strengthened, and was now completely unbreakable. Whatever the future held for them, they would face it together as not only the very best of friends, but as blood-mates as well.
Their vacation had now officially begun, and it was sure to be an unforgettable time for either of them.
–-
Author's Note:
*4000 Yen = $38.14 in US Dollars.
Oh man. I worked on this chapter for nearly 2 days. I started it on the evening of Jan. 1st with just the basic outline. I had to do some research on nightclubs in the area that was not too far from Moka's condominium, which is an actual place in Roppongi and not too far from midtown Tokyo, Japan.
I described the nightclub "Club Asia" the best I could based upon photos I had found online. I hope that everyone enjoyed this chapter, as I wanted to show that Tsukune and Moka are slowly becoming closer, the more time they spend together, especially out in public as a real couple.
The next chapter will conclude the "Golden Week" arc and they will be doing some exploring and shopping in Akihabara, which is very well known to fans of anime, manga and video games in the heart of Tokyo. Who knows? Moka may very well be singing, too :) I have not decided yet as I'm kind of burnt out from writing all day, LOL.
Thanks to everyone who has enjoyed my new take on my original fan-fic.
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 7, "Golden Week Part 2, The Date"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for an intense Lemon scene in the beginning.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
This is part 2 of a 3 part story arc. Takes place during the last weekend of April and into the first week of May. Roppongi, Tokyo Japan.
…..
Previously in the last chapter:
"I must say Moka, this is a great apartment. I'm really surprised," he said after the grand tour.
"Well, like I said before; it's all paid for. I just have no use for this place. Lots of sad memories," she said as she quickly hugged him.
"I know, Moka. I'm sorry I didn't know you back then," he told her, as she embraced him firmer. Growing up in the human world for five, solitary years, was in no way easy for her as she never had a true friend who had ever accepted her for who she truly was, up until she met Tsukune.
"But, you can always make new, happy memories," he hinted to her with a wink.
"Really, Tsukune?", she inquired as she looked into his soft, chocolate brown eyes.
"Yes, Moka. Really," he stated as he impulsively kissed her, parting her soft, pink lips with his tongue. That had caused her breath to hitch at the sudden jolt of affection, catching her entirely off guard. She then moaned in absolute delight.
Breaking their kiss for air a few minutes later, Moka looked up to her very best friend. The one person in the entire world who had accepted her, all of her, despite the fact that she was the furthest from being anything but normal, and had fallen madly in love with despite all that. It didn't matter to him anymore since he wasn't exactly normal either.
Besides, being average is severely underrated, as far as he was concerned.
"Tsukune...?"
"Yes Moka?"
"Can we – you know. Please, don't make me say – it out loud" she whispered as she leaned against his chest as she embraced him firmly; suddenly overcome with a warm wave of love and adoration for him. Truthfully, she wanted to much closer to him even though they had already committed their lives to each other through their blood-bond.
"O-of course Moka...if that's what you want" he replied returning her warm hug.
"Please...take good care of me, Tsukune" was her cuter-than-average request.
…..
He then picked her up around her slender waist, lips locked again, then pushed her up against her bedroom door. She then dropped her purse to the carpeted floor below. With her free hand, she turned the door handle, opening it behind her. Taking her silent suggestion, he carried her over like a princess to the queen-sized bed with the crimson velvet blanket, and matching silk sheets. She quickly blushed hard at the sudden act of chivalry.
Gently laying her down, she hastily pulled him on top of herself. Holding her face close, he started to French-kiss his beautiful silver-haired mate.
'Oh Tsukune...being with you makes me so very happy' she thought as she gazed into his kind, mahogany eyes once again.
Feeling more aroused now, she returned his love, and began to moan inside his mouth, as their tongues madly wrestled with each others, which in turn aroused him instantaneously.
Sensing his throbbing manhood up against her firm belly, Moka started to rub it with her free hand. Tsukune then slowly moved his hands behind her back, and gingerly unzipped her sky blue sundress.
Moka then quickly removed it; and allowed it fall to the bed below, while still on her knees. Still kissing her beloved, she unbuckled his belt; then unzipped his cargo pants, which then follow suit. She then unbuttoned his cotton shirt.
Panting heavier, and getting moist; Moka released Tsukune, and moved momentarily so they could continue undressing. A moment later all their clothes and undergarments were hastily displaced, scattered all across the red-carpeted floor below.
Tsukune bore witness to her amazingly sexy physique. Her monumental, perky breasts, her flat, tight abdomen and shapely, well-defined legs. She then pulled him down onto her soft bosom, as he then inhaled her intoxicating, natural scent that reminded him of lavender and strawberries for some odd reason.
'Oh Kami...I feel as though I'm in Heaven...my sweet Moka'
Releasing him so he can breath, he then hovered over her perfect naked form, gently held her soft mounds of flesh and began to gently massage them.
"Ahhhh...Mmmm...Tsukune...Ahhhh...Tsukune...Mmmm...ah-hah more" she repeatedly moaned her lover's name. She tenderly guided him to her huge, pink nipples, he then in turn licked his tongue across each one, and caused them to stiffen immediately.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune! Ahhhh!", she bellowed out. Which resulted in his rock-hard manhood to swell in girth. He then slowly began planting soft, wet kisses across her flat belly, which resulted in her to shudder with delight.
'Ah...oh Kami...more please...Tsukune...lower ah more please!' Moka begged in her mind.
…..
Working his way down to her flower, he tenderly stroked her swollen nub for a few minutes, which was asking for some attention. Tsukune gently licked it up and down. Moka then screamed out in ecstasy as her toes curled; her sweet juices began flowing out like a river.
"Ahhhhhhhhh! Tsukune! AHHHHHH!", she yelled out, echoing on her bedchamber walls.
Tsukune immediately dived in and began drinking his fill, enjoying the sound of his mate's convulsive climax.
Panting heavily now, Moka gently motioned for him to lay down on her right side, patting the spot next to herself. "Tsu-kun-e...that was just...unreal...," she declared, as she attempted to regain her breath and sanity. He just happily grinned from ear to ear, seeing her expression of absolute satisfaction.
A few moments later, once her breathing returned to somewhat normal levels, she adjusted herself to face him and buried her head in the crook of his neck to her right.
"Tsukune. I want you. Now. Take me. I am all yours, my love" she seductively whispered to him, causing his erection to pulse and twitch madly.
Turning over to her left now, and lied on her flat belly, she then leaned forward, with her hands still on her bed, then sat up on her knees, then raised her perfectly peach-shaped posterior above the bed.
Tsukune was in absolute awe. He had never seen such a provocative side of his wonderful mate, but didn't say a word. He traced the amazing curves of her shapely rear with his right hand which caused her to moan loudly.
'Oh my KAMI!'
…..
"Ahhh...Tsukune. Take me. Now. From behind," she alluringly instructed him.
He then got up, and crawled behind her, still on the jumbo-sized bed, and placed each of his hands on the sides of her voluptuous hips. With a firm yet gentle grip, he sat up on his knees, as she slowly spread her sweet honey pot with her left hand, as her right hand supported her weight.
He slowly slid his throbbing manhood inside her warm sex. Carnal moans of ecstasy escaped her pink, pouty lips, as he gradually inched his way inside. He slowly moved back and forth to allow her to acclimate to this new position.
"Tsukune! Oh Kami! Ahhhh! Aahhh...So BIG!", she lustfully stated, as his movements become more intense with every passing second.
"Tsukune! Give it to me HARDER! Ahhh! MORE! HARDER!", she yelled, as she was on the brink of a powerful orgasm. He did as beseeched by his lover. Her massive, bountiful breasts sway to and fro violently, as his thrusts increase in strength.
"Ahhh! Moka! You. Feel. Amazing."
His continuous pounding assault on her womanhood from behind, induced the young woman into experiencing her first explosive major climax of the afternoon.
"AHHHH! TSUKUNE! AHHH AAAAHHH AHHHHHHHHHH! AHHHH! YES OH TSUKUNE! AHHHHHHHHHHHHHHGHHHHHNNHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!"
Moka's orgasm was so powerful, it caused her knees to quickly buckle.
Tsukune remained still for a few moments and barely moved an inch. She moved back and forth of her own accord with the force of a jackhammer, inducing herself into a second, equally compelling orgasm a few moments later.
"AHHHH UHNNNHHH! TSUKUNE!", she bellowed out, as her bedding was now drenched due in fact to her consecutive, double spasms of ecstasy.
Tsukune stopped momentarily, so Moka could catch her breath again. He then pulled out of her flower, as she plopped onto the bed.
Moka was completely speechless, and utterly worn out.
Tsukune laid next to her, as she was flat on the bed with her face in a satiny pillow. Her legs still twitched from her impassioned eruptions of mind-blowing pleasure.
"Moka? Are you okay?", he inquired out of genuine concern.
"M-mm...yes...fine...good...never felt better...", she replied, her voice muffled by her pillow, as she gave him a halfhearted thumbs-up.
A few silent minutes later, she finally turned over to her right, her head propped up on her hand, and looked at Tsukune, who was wearing a ridiculous grin plastered across his face, and still sporting major wood.
"Tsukune. That was...I don't know how to describe it."
"I'll take that as a compliment," he teasingly replied.
"Yes. Um, I can see that you're still, um, healthy down there."
"Oh, this? Yeah. Ready for another round?", he remarked, as Moka gently massaged his rock-like manhood in her delicate hands.
"Yes, I am. But please be more gentle. I'm a little sensitive," the platinum-trussed beauty told him with a warm smile.
"Okay, Moka. I'll be nice and gentle. I promise that you have my word."
"Thank you, Tsukune."
She then laid flat on her back, with a pillow under her head. Tsukune hovered over her, as she began to gently kiss him. He returned her affections, then slowly moved to her right ear and nuzzled it gently. Moka moaned lightly, in delight of his loving adoration.
'Tsukune, you are so wonderful. Thank you for loving me for who I am' she silently told herself.
…..
"Tsukune. I'm ready now. Please, nice and slow."
He nodded yes in understanding, as she gingerly spread her legs that were still shaking to a certain degree, and gave her lover the go-ahead to enter her womanhood and become one with her once again.
"Ahhhh...yes...Tsukune...slowly...my love..."
"Moka...you feel so warm. I love you."
"Oh Tsukune, I love you too. So very much."
Their fingers intertwine together, as Tsukune's rhythm remained constantly steady. They continued to kiss each other devotedly, the flames of their passion building gradually inside their very cores.
"Ooohhh...yes...love...slowly...so big...oh Tsukune...love me forever..." "Moka...Moka...you're so warm...ahhhh...Moka...I'm close...ahhhh..." "Yes, Tsukune...you..can...go...a...little...more...Ah..so hard...and big!"
His pace increased ever-so slowly, until the bed began to lightly rock back and forth matching the duo's movements.
"Tsukune! AHHH AHHHH yes...Oh Kami...more...love...yes yes yes..."
"Moka...any...second...ahhh ahhhhhh ahhhhhhhh ahhhhhhhhhhh!" "Tsukune...now...ahhh ahhhhhhnghnahhhhhhhhhhngnhhhhhhhhh!"
…..
Both Moka and Tsukune were entirely and utterly exhausted from their hour-long love making. Tsukune collapsed on top of Moka. He was completely depleted of all remaining energy. They both dozed off to rest, once Tsukune removed his limp body from the top of her voluptuous bosom which he was happily using as a temporary pillow.
The vampire couple continued to sleep well into the early evening until they were awoken by someone's stomach rumbling rather enthusiastically. Moka snicked once she woke up and saw that it was indeed her mate's rambunctious appetite raising her from her unintentional nap.
Moka then got up and crawled on top of him, then leaned down and kissed his left ear in an erotic fashion. He then opened his heavy eyelids and smiled happily seeing Moka being very affectionate.
"Hm...Moka?"
"Hello sleepyhead."
"Mm...What time is it?" he asked as he wiped the sleep from his eyes.
"It's half-past six PM" she replied.
"Oh I see. Um...I guess I woke us up. Sorry about that. I – uh guess I'm hungry now. You really wore me out earlier – but...in a good way" he said with honesty.
"Oh um- it's not a problem Tsukune. To be honest, you – wore me out too" she remarked with a slight blush across her cheeks. It was something she was adjusting to – being this close to another person on such an intimate level.
Moka loved him with every fiber of her being but was still shy to some extent. She knew that Tsukune was the same way as herself and that they would eventually overcome their hesitation the more time they spent together; hence their impromptu vacation alone in Tokyo.
"Oh okay. I – guess we should get up. I'm kinda hungry – for food. For food." he clarified, lest she get the wrong idea or impression that he wants to stay in and make love all night. She would not object of course, but she knew they had to eat on a regular basis in order to stay healthy.
"Oh yes. Of course. Would you – um – like to join me – for a bath? We are mates and I was wondering if I -um could wash your back – if it's alright with you that is" Moka asked as her blush increased in magnitude. She wanted to get closer to him and what better way than skinship?
"A bath?"
"Yes Tsukune. I thought it - would be nice. You don't have to if -" she was cut off with his forefinger pressed up against her velvet soft lips.
"O-of course I would Moka – if it's okay with you."
"Yes, I would like that. I'll get the herbs for the bathwater."
Moka then got up and hopped off the bed. She walked over to her suitcase and unzipped the lid. She then found what she was searching for immediately: her jar of specially-blended bath herbs that would nullify the purifying effects of the water they would be using for their bathing together.
…..
Tsukune just shook his head yes and followed her to the bathroom which was across the hall, after she retrieved her special blend of bath salts made exclusively for vampires.
The entire bathroom was quite opulent. Black and white marble fixtures with gold accents interlaced in the design itself. The bathtub was round and about two meters in diameter.
After tossing in a handful of the herbs from her glass jar, Moka filled the marble bathtub with warm water. She then turned to Tsukune and held him close against her still-naked body, pressing her generous bosom against his chest again.
"Moka...like I said last night, I'll always be by your side, no matter what."
"Thank you, Tsukune. And I'll always be by your side as well. Forever."
Moved by her sincere words, Tsukune pulled back and gazed into her lovely ruby-red eyes then slowly closed the short space between themselves, kissing her feverishly on her satiny-plump lips. Moka moaned with delight as the feelings she held for him entirely overwhelmed her senses.
Getting lightheaded a few minutes later, the pair reluctantly ceased their embrace, just in time before the bathwater overflowed the large, white porcelain tub.
Tsukune entered the herbal-scented water first and sat against the back of the tub while the silver-haired vampiress sat in front of him. He then lovingly wrapped his strong arms around her waist, pulling her even closer, even if he was still feeling somewhat shy.
Leaning her back against his broad, scarred chest, she let out a sigh of absolute contentment, as she reflected upon the special blood-bonding ceremony they performed, right before Graduation that has in every sense of the word, cemented the special bond they shared ever since the very first day they met at Yokai, just a little over three years ago.
"Tsukune, would it be alright, if...I...um...w-washed your back, like I asked you earlier? It's my duty as your mate, after-all" she hesitantly asked, her blush only deepening.
"I have a better idea. Why don't we wash each other instead?" he suggested with a wink and a blush.
"Oh, Tsukune. That sounds very nice, love."
Retrieving the bar of soap from the holder on the side of the tub, Moka dunked it in the herb-scented water and rubbed it together causing it to become sudsy. She then handed the soap to Tsukune who rubbed it gently across Moka's back.
"Ahh...Tsukune...not so gentle. That tickles," she protested.
Tsukune chuckled lightly, continuing with his subtle teasing.
"Tsukune," she giggled in resistance, trying desperately to prevent the uncontrollable laughter escaping her lips at the ticklish sensations running down her spine.
Tsukune then surprised her by pressing his lips gently to the right side of her neck, causing her to gasp. He continued to tenderly kiss her neck as he washed her, making sure to rinse all the soap off once he was done.
…..
Moka shuddered, her senses still reeling when he finally pulled back. He gave her a shy smile as he turned around, offering his back to her. Biting her lip, the vampiress timidly began to return the favor, smiling in delight when he gave a soft moan of pleasure. Her touch was almost like electricity to his sensitive skin. Once she was done, a contented sigh escaped both of them as they resumed their former position.
"H-hey, Moka?" Tsukune finally asked, hesitantly.
The red-eyed vampiress gave a soft hum of acknowledgment.
Tsukune bit his lip lightly.
"W-would you mind if I washed your hair for you?"
Moka blinked in confusion for a brief moment, caught off guard by the odd request.
"Umm, I-I wouldn't mind," she finally answered, a pink blush rapidly filling her pale cheeks once again.
Tsukune smiled at her adorable behavior.
Once they were both clean and had washed one anothers' hair, the pair gently dried each other off with the white, fluffy towels from the linen closet.
…...
As soon as they decided it was getting late and found a suitable set of clothes to wear, the duo left her apartment after locking the door behind themselves. Moka was dressed in a crimson mini-dress that had a v-neck design with spaghetti straps and a built-in brassiere. The hem of the garment rested several inches above her knees, giving her mate quite a view of her creamy, alabaster thighs and sexy legs. She wore a matching pair of high-heeled pumps along with a small purse, complementing her outfit for the evening. Her makeup was simple yet tasteful, amplifying her natural, otherworldly beauty. Light pink blush on her cheeks, red lipstick on her soft, plump lips and a bit of silver eyeshadow that matched her shiny hair.
Tsukune nearly had a cardiac arrest when she exited her room looking as lovely as ever, as he himself felt under-dressed next to Moka who could easily pass for a model. His outfit was a sharp pair of black cargo pants with matching dress shoes and a simple, navy blue, short sleeved dress shirt.
"Wow" is all he could reply, as he was rendered incoherent by her dazzling charisma.
"You look very nice too, Tsukune" Moka said once they left her condo and made their way to the main avenue that bisected the district known as Roppongi, as they searched for a decent restaurant to have their date at.
"Um, thanks Moka" was his sad reply. She grabbed his hand and pulled him into an unexpected hug in front of everyone that mingled on down the busy avenue.
"M-Moka?" he sputtered out, being embraced so suddenly.
"Listen to me, love. You are very handsome and whatever you wear always looks nice on you, so please...cheer up – for me, okay? Let's just enjoy our first, real date as a couple" she said as she released him a few awkward moments later.
He never really thought of himself to be anything other than an average, Japanese male; dark hair, dark eyes and an ordinary face: the furthest from being considered 'handsome' or 'attractive'. However, he knew through their bond that Moka was being completely honest. And he felt better knowing that she was always truthful to a fault. The raven-haired vampire realized that it was one thing he could count on her for being the way she has always been.
"Thanks Moka. I feel a lot better now" he replied with a small smile.
"You're welcome Tsukune. It's the truth though. I could eat you up right here. Metaphorically speaking of course" she said with a wink and a smile. Now he was the one who was quite embarrassed. This was something else that he would have to grow accustomed to. At least Moka was "coming out of her shell" and opening up to her honest feelings out in public. That's what he silently wished for before Graduations and it would seem as if it were being slowly granted.
They continued on their walk and just enjoyed the nighttime, spring weather. The full moon shone brightly from the cloudless sky above, making Moka appear even more radiant than usual. Dozens of stars twinkled as well making it a truly, perfect evening.
"It really is a beautiful evening isn't it, Tsukune?" she asked her mate whose hand she still held firmly as they wandered down the busy avenue.
"Not as beautiful as you, Moka" he replied as she gave her hand a gentle squeeze.
"Oh stop it, Tsukune. You're embarrassing me" she said with an adorable blush.
"Well it's true Moka. The moon pales in comparison to your breathtaking beauty" he replied.
"Oh Tsukune...oh we're here" she said once she realized where they were.
'Oh, you are going to have a night that you will never forget, my sweet Tsukune' she though to herself with a sly grin.
The pair finally reached their destination: Tony Roma's Famous Ribs, located next to the Hard Rock Cafe. (Yes it's a real place, otherwise I wouldn't have included it)
Once Moka entered the restaurant, all eyes were on her without question. Tsukune held her hand in a loving, protective manner as he felt her uneasiness through their blood-bond.
"Good evening, welcome to Tony Roma's" the hostess said as the couple approached the hostess stand.
"Good evening, A booth for two, please. Somewhere...quiet" Moka asked with a polite bow.
"Yes, this way please" the hostess happily replied as she grabbed two menus and led the pair towards the rear of the overly-crowded, decidedly, American restaurant. Moka and Tsukune followed behind her on the way to a more secluded area. The older woman smiled as she placed the menus on the dark, wooden table and asked the pair to have a seat. Moka slid into the booth first while Tsukune followed suit and sat next to her.
…..
"Your waitress will be along shortly. May I get you something to drink in the meanwhile?" the hostess inquired.
"Two tall glasses of tomato juice, please" Tsukune replied, since Moka had her nose buried behind the extensive menu that focused mostly on barbecued meat of every type imaginable, as well as seafood too.
"Is V-8 juice alright?' the hostess asked in reply to the unusual request.
"Oh yes. That's fine. Thank you very much" Tsukune answered. She bowed as she left to retrieve the couple's beverage order. Tsukune picked up his menu and couldn't make heads nor tales of it as it was printed entirely in English! (Yes, it really is)
"Uh, Moka? I can't read this menu."
"It's okay Tsukune. I can read and speak English fluently" she simply replied, still reading her menu.
"Really? I had no idea" he said, stunned at this new information.
"Yes love. I'm fluent in English, Japanese, and German" she said once she sat her menu on the table.
"That's amazing Moka. I always knew that you were one of the smartest girls in class."
"Oh thank you – um. If it's okay, we can get a combination dinner; chicken, pork, and beef. The side orders include a garden salad and a baked potato. They also have a wide variety of deserts, too. Maybe we could – um even share one. If you like, that is" she said as she turned to face him and scooted closer.
"Uh, sure Moka. That sounds like a good idea. And um...thanks. For all this. I really don't know how I can pay you b -" he said as she leaned in further and kissed him passionately, preventing him from saying anything else that might embarrass either one of them. For once he was actually glad they were isolated in the far end of the restaurant, away from the prying eyes of the public.
…..
"Excuse me?" the hostess said as she returned to their table posthaste, carrying their drinks on a round, wooden serving tray. The couple broke their embrace and profusely apologized for their outward display of affection towards one another. She placed their drinks on their table and left them be for now telling them that it was alright and it "must be nice to be so young and so in love."
"I guess that we'll just have to leave a very generous tip" Moka said that caused Tsukune to nearly choke on his V-8 juice.
Once he recomposed himself, he just smiled seeing that Moka was doing her best to fit in. A few minutes later the actual server appeared and took the pair's dinner order at Moka's suggestion. She returned a few minutes later with freshly made dinner rolls smothered in melted honey butter, which were devoured by two ravenous vampires, in a matter of seconds.
"Moka?"
"Yes Tsukune?"
"I hope our food gets here soon before I pass out from starvation."
"Well, if you want to – you know. But quickly though" Moka replied as she leaned her head to the right, wordlessly telling him it would be alright to drink a small amount of her blood. She didn't want him to pass out, as they still had a lot more to do for their first 'official' date. Taking her silent cue, he embraced her firmly and sunk his fangs into her soft flesh, drawing a gasp from the beautiful vampiress in his arms.
…..
"Ah...Tsukune...oh Kami...ahhhhngh...take me...ahhhhnn" she softly moaned as she became aroused in a split second. She hugged him even firmer as she rubbed her awe-inspiring bosom against him, as her heartbeat and breathing rapidly increased. Sensing her building arousal, he withdrew his fangs and sealed the puncture marks closed with his tongue that would vanish in a minute or so, before she did something, like just taking him right then and there in the back of the restaurant.
Moka continued holding her mate very close as she desperately wanted to return the act of intimacy that only blood-mates shared, but she would have to wait for now, since their dinner would be arriving any moment now. She reluctantly released him as she could smell their dinner being carried by their server.
"Feeling better?" she asked, her cheeks still flush from having her blood consumed in public.
"Ah, yes. Thanks Moka" he replied with a smile that caused her heart-rate to increase again.
"Oh um...of course. Anything for you Tsukune."
'Oh Kami...why does she have to be so damn cute all the time?!' he mentally cursed as the waitress sat their dinner on the long, wooden table.
As they ate their dinner in peace, Tsukune wondered to himself what other plans she had for their first date. He honestly didn't mind, but would have to be on guard since he knew that she was somewhat still hesitant to some extent about walking around in the human world with her vampire abilities being unsealed.
He knew that Moka had much better control over her full strength and would always be there for her to make sure she didn't accidentally show her true nature in front of anyone, since the rest of the world was still blissfully ignorant to the existence of ayashi and yokai, besides his immediate family.
"Wow, Moka. That was really good – well not nearly as good as your cooking of course."
"Oh yes. Um...thank you Tsukune. I was thinking, if it's alright with you maybe we could – go dancing."
"Dancing, Moka? I really don't know how to."
"Sure Tsukune. It'll be fun. And I can show you how – it's actually pretty easy once you get the hang of it."
"Wait. Don't tell me. You took dancing lessons when you were little. Am I right?"
"How did you know Tsukune?" she asked with a quirked brow.
"Lucky guess."
"Well yes, I did. I also took singing lessons when I was younger, before I came to live here in the Tokyo area."
"You can sing too? Is there anything you can't do Moka?"
"Hm-mm...I'm not really sure. I guess you'll have to just wait and see" she teased.
"Well, I'll be looking forward to learning more about you, Moka. It seems to me that you're just full of surprises, aren't you?"
"And I'll be looking forward to know you better as well, Tsukune. And yes, I am."
The waitress returned to their table and placed the bill down, face first. Tsukune went to grab the check, but was no match for Moka's inhuman speed.
"My treat Tsukune. Remember?" she asked with a smirk as she pulled out her wallet from her purse.
"Oh yes. Right. Thank you for dinner Moka" he said as she gave her a quick kiss on her cheek before he slid out of the booth and then stretched his legs. Moka took out the proper amount of Yen from her wallet along with a very generous tip for their server who gave the couple some well deserved privacy for their first date.
"You're very welcome, Tsukune" she said as she took his hand and slid out herself to join him by his side.
...
A/N: I am done! I worked on this chapter for nearly the entire day! I wanted to get it up before the New Year and I actually did it!
I hope everyone enjoyed this chapter. I worked REALLY hard on it and it wasn't easy. But it turned out pretty good. I left it as a cliffhanger since the next chapter will be the final one (maybe) of the "Golden Week" arc. I haven't decided yet and it won't be out until a week from now, at least. I am taking a well deserved break as I knocked out 3 chapters in a week. I am tired! _
Thanks to all my Friends, Followers and Watchers for you generous support throughout 2013. Let's all get along in 2014 as well. ^_^
If you liked this chapter please feel free to leave a brief comment if you like. I'm not asking for a review, just a brief comment asking what you liked about this (or any previous chapter) plus what you, the reader, would like to see in future chapters. I'm not sure how long this 'version' of my original 'Confession and A Vampire' will go on for but I have some good ideas for some future chapters.
And yes, Inner Moka will sing in this story. I'm just not sure when though. Once again thank you for reading my little story which has already hit over 5,000 views in 3 weeks. That's pretty amazing and I thank you for making it possible ^_^
Chapter 7, "Golden Week Part 2, The Date"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated M for an intense Lemon scene in the beginning.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
This is part 2 of a 3 part story arc. Takes place during the last weekend of April and into the first week of May. Roppongi, Tokyo Japan.
…..
Previously in the last chapter:
"I must say Moka, this is a great apartment. I'm really surprised," he said after the grand tour.
"Well, like I said before; it's all paid for. I just have no use for this place. Lots of sad memories," she said as she quickly hugged him.
"I know, Moka. I'm sorry I didn't know you back then," he told her, as she embraced him firmer. Growing up in the human world for five, solitary years, was in no way easy for her as she never had a true friend who had ever accepted her for who she truly was, up until she met Tsukune.
"But, you can always make new, happy memories," he hinted to her with a wink.
"Really, Tsukune?", she inquired as she looked into his soft, chocolate brown eyes.
"Yes, Moka. Really," he stated as he impulsively kissed her, parting her soft, pink lips with his tongue. That had caused her breath to hitch at the sudden jolt of affection, catching her entirely off guard. She then moaned in absolute delight.
Breaking their kiss for air a few minutes later, Moka looked up to her very best friend. The one person in the entire world who had accepted her, all of her, despite the fact that she was the furthest from being anything but normal, and had fallen madly in love with despite all that. It didn't matter to him anymore since he wasn't exactly normal either.
Besides, being average is severely underrated, as far as he was concerned.
"Tsukune...?"
"Yes Moka?"
"Can we – you know. Please, don't make me say – it out loud" she whispered as she leaned against his chest as she embraced him firmly; suddenly overcome with a warm wave of love and adoration for him. Truthfully, she wanted to much closer to him even though they had already committed their lives to each other through their blood-bond.
"O-of course Moka...if that's what you want" he replied returning her warm hug.
"Please...take good care of me, Tsukune" was her cuter-than-average request.
…..
He then picked her up around her slender waist, lips locked again, then pushed her up against her bedroom door. She then dropped her purse to the carpeted floor below. With her free hand, she turned the door handle, opening it behind her. Taking her silent suggestion, he carried her over like a princess to the queen-sized bed with the crimson velvet blanket, and matching silk sheets. She quickly blushed hard at the sudden act of chivalry.
Gently laying her down, she hastily pulled him on top of herself. Holding her face close, he started to French-kiss his beautiful silver-haired mate.
'Oh Tsukune...being with you makes me so very happy' she thought as she gazed into his kind, mahogany eyes once again.
Feeling more aroused now, she returned his love, and began to moan inside his mouth, as their tongues madly wrestled with each others, which in turn aroused him instantaneously.
Sensing his throbbing manhood up against her firm belly, Moka started to rub it with her free hand. Tsukune then slowly moved his hands behind her back, and gingerly unzipped her sky blue sundress.
Moka then quickly removed it; and allowed it fall to the bed below, while still on her knees. Still kissing her beloved, she unbuckled his belt; then unzipped his cargo pants, which then follow suit. She then unbuttoned his cotton shirt.
Panting heavier, and getting moist; Moka released Tsukune, and moved momentarily so they could continue undressing. A moment later all their clothes and undergarments were hastily displaced, scattered all across the red-carpeted floor below.
Tsukune bore witness to her amazingly sexy physique. Her monumental, perky breasts, her flat, tight abdomen and shapely, well-defined legs. She then pulled him down onto her soft bosom, as he then inhaled her intoxicating, natural scent that reminded him of lavender and strawberries for some odd reason.
'Oh Kami...I feel as though I'm in Heaven...my sweet Moka'
Releasing him so he can breath, he then hovered over her perfect naked form, gently held her soft mounds of flesh and began to gently massage them.
"Ahhhh...Mmmm...Tsukune...Ahhhh...Tsukune...Mmmm...ah-hah more" she repeatedly moaned her lover's name. She tenderly guided him to her huge, pink nipples, he then in turn licked his tongue across each one, and caused them to stiffen immediately.
"Ahhhh...Tsukune! Ahhhh!", she bellowed out. Which resulted in his rock-hard manhood to swell in girth. He then slowly began planting soft, wet kisses across her flat belly, which resulted in her to shudder with delight.
'Ah...oh Kami...more please...Tsukune...lower ah more please!' Moka begged in her mind.
…..
Working his way down to her flower, he tenderly stroked her swollen nub for a few minutes, which was asking for some attention. Tsukune gently licked it up and down. Moka then screamed out in ecstasy as her toes curled; her sweet juices began flowing out like a river.
"Ahhhhhhhhh! Tsukune! AHHHHHH!", she yelled out, echoing on her bedchamber walls.
Tsukune immediately dived in and began drinking his fill, enjoying the sound of his mate's convulsive climax.
Panting heavily now, Moka gently motioned for him to lay down on her right side, patting the spot next to herself. "Tsu-kun-e...that was just...unreal...," she declared, as she attempted to regain her breath and sanity. He just happily grinned from ear to ear, seeing her expression of absolute satisfaction.
A few moments later, once her breathing returned to somewhat normal levels, she adjusted herself to face him and buried her head in the crook of his neck to her right.
"Tsukune. I want you. Now. Take me. I am all yours, my love" she seductively whispered to him, causing his erection to pulse and twitch madly.
Turning over to her left now, and lied on her flat belly, she then leaned forward, with her hands still on her bed, then sat up on her knees, then raised her perfectly peach-shaped posterior above the bed.
Tsukune was in absolute awe. He had never seen such a provocative side of his wonderful mate, but didn't say a word. He traced the amazing curves of her shapely rear with his right hand which caused her to moan loudly.
'Oh my KAMI!'
…..
"Ahhh...Tsukune. Take me. Now. From behind," she alluringly instructed him.
He then got up, and crawled behind her, still on the jumbo-sized bed, and placed each of his hands on the sides of her voluptuous hips. With a firm yet gentle grip, he sat up on his knees, as she slowly spread her sweet honey pot with her left hand, as her right hand supported her weight.
He slowly slid his throbbing manhood inside her warm sex. Carnal moans of ecstasy escaped her pink, pouty lips, as he gradually inched his way inside. He slowly moved back and forth to allow her to acclimate to this new position.
"Tsukune! Oh Kami! Ahhhh! Aahhh...So BIG!", she lustfully stated, as his movements become more intense with every passing second.
"Tsukune! Give it to me HARDER! Ahhh! MORE! HARDER!", she yelled, as she was on the brink of a powerful orgasm. He did as beseeched by his lover. Her massive, bountiful breasts sway to and fro violently, as his thrusts increase in strength.
"Ahhh! Moka! You. Feel. Amazing."
His continuous pounding assault on her womanhood from behind, induced the young woman into experiencing her first explosive major climax of the afternoon.
"AHHHH! TSUKUNE! AHHH AAAAHHH AHHHHHHHHHH! AHHHH! YES OH TSUKUNE! AHHHHHHHHHHHHHHGHHHHHNNHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH!"
Moka's orgasm was so powerful, it caused her knees to quickly buckle.
Tsukune remained still for a few moments and barely moved an inch. She moved back and forth of her own accord with the force of a jackhammer, inducing herself into a second, equally compelling orgasm a few moments later.
"AHHHH UHNNNHHH! TSUKUNE!", she bellowed out, as her bedding was now drenched due in fact to her consecutive, double spasms of ecstasy.
Tsukune stopped momentarily, so Moka could catch her breath again. He then pulled out of her flower, as she plopped onto the bed.
Moka was completely speechless, and utterly worn out.
Tsukune laid next to her, as she was flat on the bed with her face in a satiny pillow. Her legs still twitched from her impassioned eruptions of mind-blowing pleasure.
"Moka? Are you okay?", he inquired out of genuine concern.
"M-mm...yes...fine...good...never felt better...", she replied, her voice muffled by her pillow, as she gave him a halfhearted thumbs-up.
A few silent minutes later, she finally turned over to her right, her head propped up on her hand, and looked at Tsukune, who was wearing a ridiculous grin plastered across his face, and still sporting major wood.
"Tsukune. That was...I don't know how to describe it."
"I'll take that as a compliment," he teasingly replied.
"Yes. Um, I can see that you're still, um, healthy down there."
"Oh, this? Yeah. Ready for another round?", he remarked, as Moka gently massaged his rock-like manhood in her delicate hands.
"Yes, I am. But please be more gentle. I'm a little sensitive," the platinum-trussed beauty told him with a warm smile.
"Okay, Moka. I'll be nice and gentle. I promise that you have my word."
"Thank you, Tsukune."
She then laid flat on her back, with a pillow under her head. Tsukune hovered over her, as she began to gently kiss him. He returned her affections, then slowly moved to her right ear and nuzzled it gently. Moka moaned lightly, in delight of his loving adoration.
'Tsukune, you are so wonderful. Thank you for loving me for who I am' she silently told herself.
…..
"Tsukune. I'm ready now. Please, nice and slow."
He nodded yes in understanding, as she gingerly spread her legs that were still shaking to a certain degree, and gave her lover the go-ahead to enter her womanhood and become one with her once again.
"Ahhhh...yes...Tsukune...slowly...my love..."
"Moka...you feel so warm. I love you."
"Oh Tsukune, I love you too. So very much."
Their fingers intertwine together, as Tsukune's rhythm remained constantly steady. They continued to kiss each other devotedly, the flames of their passion building gradually inside their very cores.
"Ooohhh...yes...love...slowly...so big...oh Tsukune...love me forever..." "Moka...Moka...you're so warm...ahhhh...Moka...I'm close...ahhhh..." "Yes, Tsukune...you..can...go...a...little...more...Ah..so hard...and big!"
His pace increased ever-so slowly, until the bed began to lightly rock back and forth matching the duo's movements.
"Tsukune! AHHH AHHHH yes...Oh Kami...more...love...yes yes yes..."
"Moka...any...second...ahhh ahhhhhh ahhhhhhhh ahhhhhhhhhhh!" "Tsukune...now...ahhh ahhhhhhnghnahhhhhhhhhhngnhhhhhhhhh!"
…..
Both Moka and Tsukune were entirely and utterly exhausted from their hour-long love making. Tsukune collapsed on top of Moka. He was completely depleted of all remaining energy. They both dozed off to rest, once Tsukune removed his limp body from the top of her voluptuous bosom which he was happily using as a temporary pillow.
The vampire couple continued to sleep well into the early evening until they were awoken by someone's stomach rumbling rather enthusiastically. Moka snicked once she woke up and saw that it was indeed her mate's rambunctious appetite raising her from her unintentional nap.
Moka then got up and crawled on top of him, then leaned down and kissed his left ear in an erotic fashion. He then opened his heavy eyelids and smiled happily seeing Moka being very affectionate.
"Hm...Moka?"
"Hello sleepyhead."
"Mm...What time is it?" he asked as he wiped the sleep from his eyes.
"It's half-past six PM" she replied.
"Oh I see. Um...I guess I woke us up. Sorry about that. I – uh guess I'm hungry now. You really wore me out earlier – but...in a good way" he said with honesty.
"Oh um- it's not a problem Tsukune. To be honest, you – wore me out too" she remarked with a slight blush across her cheeks. It was something she was adjusting to – being this close to another person on such an intimate level.
Moka loved him with every fiber of her being but was still shy to some extent. She knew that Tsukune was the same way as herself and that they would eventually overcome their hesitation the more time they spent together; hence their impromptu vacation alone in Tokyo.
"Oh okay. I – guess we should get up. I'm kinda hungry – for food. For food." he clarified, lest she get the wrong idea or impression that he wants to stay in and make love all night. She would not object of course, but she knew they had to eat on a regular basis in order to stay healthy.
"Oh yes. Of course. Would you – um – like to join me – for a bath? We are mates and I was wondering if I -um could wash your back – if it's alright with you that is" Moka asked as her blush increased in magnitude. She wanted to get closer to him and what better way than skinship?
"A bath?"
"Yes Tsukune. I thought it - would be nice. You don't have to if -" she was cut off with his forefinger pressed up against her velvet soft lips.
"O-of course I would Moka – if it's okay with you."
"Yes, I would like that. I'll get the herbs for the bathwater."
Moka then got up and hopped off the bed. She walked over to her suitcase and unzipped the lid. She then found what she was searching for immediately: her jar of specially-blended bath herbs that would nullify the purifying effects of the water they would be using for their bathing together.
…..
Tsukune just shook his head yes and followed her to the bathroom which was across the hall, after she retrieved her special blend of bath salts made exclusively for vampires.
The entire bathroom was quite opulent. Black and white marble fixtures with gold accents interlaced in the design itself. The bathtub was round and about two meters in diameter.
After tossing in a handful of the herbs from her glass jar, Moka filled the marble bathtub with warm water. She then turned to Tsukune and held him close against her still-naked body, pressing her generous bosom against his chest again.
"Moka...like I said last night, I'll always be by your side, no matter what."
"Thank you, Tsukune. And I'll always be by your side as well. Forever."
Moved by her sincere words, Tsukune pulled back and gazed into her lovely ruby-red eyes then slowly closed the short space between themselves, kissing her feverishly on her satiny-plump lips. Moka moaned with delight as the feelings she held for him entirely overwhelmed her senses.
Getting lightheaded a few minutes later, the pair reluctantly ceased their embrace, just in time before the bathwater overflowed the large, white porcelain tub.
Tsukune entered the herbal-scented water first and sat against the back of the tub while the silver-haired vampiress sat in front of him. He then lovingly wrapped his strong arms around her waist, pulling her even closer, even if he was still feeling somewhat shy.
Leaning her back against his broad, scarred chest, she let out a sigh of absolute contentment, as she reflected upon the special blood-bonding ceremony they performed, right before Graduation that has in every sense of the word, cemented the special bond they shared ever since the very first day they met at Yokai, just a little over three years ago.
"Tsukune, would it be alright, if...I...um...w-washed your back, like I asked you earlier? It's my duty as your mate, after-all" she hesitantly asked, her blush only deepening.
"I have a better idea. Why don't we wash each other instead?" he suggested with a wink and a blush.
"Oh, Tsukune. That sounds very nice, love."
Retrieving the bar of soap from the holder on the side of the tub, Moka dunked it in the herb-scented water and rubbed it together causing it to become sudsy. She then handed the soap to Tsukune who rubbed it gently across Moka's back.
"Ahh...Tsukune...not so gentle. That tickles," she protested.
Tsukune chuckled lightly, continuing with his subtle teasing.
"Tsukune," she giggled in resistance, trying desperately to prevent the uncontrollable laughter escaping her lips at the ticklish sensations running down her spine.
Tsukune then surprised her by pressing his lips gently to the right side of her neck, causing her to gasp. He continued to tenderly kiss her neck as he washed her, making sure to rinse all the soap off once he was done.
…..
Moka shuddered, her senses still reeling when he finally pulled back. He gave her a shy smile as he turned around, offering his back to her. Biting her lip, the vampiress timidly began to return the favor, smiling in delight when he gave a soft moan of pleasure. Her touch was almost like electricity to his sensitive skin. Once she was done, a contented sigh escaped both of them as they resumed their former position.
"H-hey, Moka?" Tsukune finally asked, hesitantly.
The red-eyed vampiress gave a soft hum of acknowledgment.
Tsukune bit his lip lightly.
"W-would you mind if I washed your hair for you?"
Moka blinked in confusion for a brief moment, caught off guard by the odd request.
"Umm, I-I wouldn't mind," she finally answered, a pink blush rapidly filling her pale cheeks once again.
Tsukune smiled at her adorable behavior.
Once they were both clean and had washed one anothers' hair, the pair gently dried each other off with the white, fluffy towels from the linen closet.
…...
As soon as they decided it was getting late and found a suitable set of clothes to wear, the duo left her apartment after locking the door behind themselves. Moka was dressed in a crimson mini-dress that had a v-neck design with spaghetti straps and a built-in brassiere. The hem of the garment rested several inches above her knees, giving her mate quite a view of her creamy, alabaster thighs and sexy legs. She wore a matching pair of high-heeled pumps along with a small purse, complementing her outfit for the evening. Her makeup was simple yet tasteful, amplifying her natural, otherworldly beauty. Light pink blush on her cheeks, red lipstick on her soft, plump lips and a bit of silver eyeshadow that matched her shiny hair.
Tsukune nearly had a cardiac arrest when she exited her room looking as lovely as ever, as he himself felt under-dressed next to Moka who could easily pass for a model. His outfit was a sharp pair of black cargo pants with matching dress shoes and a simple, navy blue, short sleeved dress shirt.
"Wow" is all he could reply, as he was rendered incoherent by her dazzling charisma.
"You look very nice too, Tsukune" Moka said once they left her condo and made their way to the main avenue that bisected the district known as Roppongi, as they searched for a decent restaurant to have their date at.
"Um, thanks Moka" was his sad reply. She grabbed his hand and pulled him into an unexpected hug in front of everyone that mingled on down the busy avenue.
"M-Moka?" he sputtered out, being embraced so suddenly.
"Listen to me, love. You are very handsome and whatever you wear always looks nice on you, so please...cheer up – for me, okay? Let's just enjoy our first, real date as a couple" she said as she released him a few awkward moments later.
He never really thought of himself to be anything other than an average, Japanese male; dark hair, dark eyes and an ordinary face: the furthest from being considered 'handsome' or 'attractive'. However, he knew through their bond that Moka was being completely honest. And he felt better knowing that she was always truthful to a fault. The raven-haired vampire realized that it was one thing he could count on her for being the way she has always been.
"Thanks Moka. I feel a lot better now" he replied with a small smile.
"You're welcome Tsukune. It's the truth though. I could eat you up right here. Metaphorically speaking of course" she said with a wink and a smile. Now he was the one who was quite embarrassed. This was something else that he would have to grow accustomed to. At least Moka was "coming out of her shell" and opening up to her honest feelings out in public. That's what he silently wished for before Graduations and it would seem as if it were being slowly granted.
They continued on their walk and just enjoyed the nighttime, spring weather. The full moon shone brightly from the cloudless sky above, making Moka appear even more radiant than usual. Dozens of stars twinkled as well making it a truly, perfect evening.
"It really is a beautiful evening isn't it, Tsukune?" she asked her mate whose hand she still held firmly as they wandered down the busy avenue.
"Not as beautiful as you, Moka" he replied as she gave her hand a gentle squeeze.
"Oh stop it, Tsukune. You're embarrassing me" she said with an adorable blush.
"Well it's true Moka. The moon pales in comparison to your breathtaking beauty" he replied.
"Oh Tsukune...oh we're here" she said once she realized where they were.
'Oh, you are going to have a night that you will never forget, my sweet Tsukune' she though to herself with a sly grin.
The pair finally reached their destination: Tony Roma's Famous Ribs, located next to the Hard Rock Cafe. (Yes it's a real place, otherwise I wouldn't have included it)
Once Moka entered the restaurant, all eyes were on her without question. Tsukune held her hand in a loving, protective manner as he felt her uneasiness through their blood-bond.
"Good evening, welcome to Tony Roma's" the hostess said as the couple approached the hostess stand.
"Good evening, A booth for two, please. Somewhere...quiet" Moka asked with a polite bow.
"Yes, this way please" the hostess happily replied as she grabbed two menus and led the pair towards the rear of the overly-crowded, decidedly, American restaurant. Moka and Tsukune followed behind her on the way to a more secluded area. The older woman smiled as she placed the menus on the dark, wooden table and asked the pair to have a seat. Moka slid into the booth first while Tsukune followed suit and sat next to her.
…..
"Your waitress will be along shortly. May I get you something to drink in the meanwhile?" the hostess inquired.
"Two tall glasses of tomato juice, please" Tsukune replied, since Moka had her nose buried behind the extensive menu that focused mostly on barbecued meat of every type imaginable, as well as seafood too.
"Is V-8 juice alright?' the hostess asked in reply to the unusual request.
"Oh yes. That's fine. Thank you very much" Tsukune answered. She bowed as she left to retrieve the couple's beverage order. Tsukune picked up his menu and couldn't make heads nor tales of it as it was printed entirely in English! (Yes, it really is)
"Uh, Moka? I can't read this menu."
"It's okay Tsukune. I can read and speak English fluently" she simply replied, still reading her menu.
"Really? I had no idea" he said, stunned at this new information.
"Yes love. I'm fluent in English, Japanese, and German" she said once she sat her menu on the table.
"That's amazing Moka. I always knew that you were one of the smartest girls in class."
"Oh thank you – um. If it's okay, we can get a combination dinner; chicken, pork, and beef. The side orders include a garden salad and a baked potato. They also have a wide variety of deserts, too. Maybe we could – um even share one. If you like, that is" she said as she turned to face him and scooted closer.
"Uh, sure Moka. That sounds like a good idea. And um...thanks. For all this. I really don't know how I can pay you b -" he said as she leaned in further and kissed him passionately, preventing him from saying anything else that might embarrass either one of them. For once he was actually glad they were isolated in the far end of the restaurant, away from the prying eyes of the public.
…..
"Excuse me?" the hostess said as she returned to their table posthaste, carrying their drinks on a round, wooden serving tray. The couple broke their embrace and profusely apologized for their outward display of affection towards one another. She placed their drinks on their table and left them be for now telling them that it was alright and it "must be nice to be so young and so in love."
"I guess that we'll just have to leave a very generous tip" Moka said that caused Tsukune to nearly choke on his V-8 juice.
Once he recomposed himself, he just smiled seeing that Moka was doing her best to fit in. A few minutes later the actual server appeared and took the pair's dinner order at Moka's suggestion. She returned a few minutes later with freshly made dinner rolls smothered in melted honey butter, which were devoured by two ravenous vampires, in a matter of seconds.
"Moka?"
"Yes Tsukune?"
"I hope our food gets here soon before I pass out from starvation."
"Well, if you want to – you know. But quickly though" Moka replied as she leaned her head to the right, wordlessly telling him it would be alright to drink a small amount of her blood. She didn't want him to pass out, as they still had a lot more to do for their first 'official' date. Taking her silent cue, he embraced her firmly and sunk his fangs into her soft flesh, drawing a gasp from the beautiful vampiress in his arms.
…..
"Ah...Tsukune...oh Kami...ahhhhngh...take me...ahhhhnn" she softly moaned as she became aroused in a split second. She hugged him even firmer as she rubbed her awe-inspiring bosom against him, as her heartbeat and breathing rapidly increased. Sensing her building arousal, he withdrew his fangs and sealed the puncture marks closed with his tongue that would vanish in a minute or so, before she did something, like just taking him right then and there in the back of the restaurant.
Moka continued holding her mate very close as she desperately wanted to return the act of intimacy that only blood-mates shared, but she would have to wait for now, since their dinner would be arriving any moment now. She reluctantly released him as she could smell their dinner being carried by their server.
"Feeling better?" she asked, her cheeks still flush from having her blood consumed in public.
"Ah, yes. Thanks Moka" he replied with a smile that caused her heart-rate to increase again.
"Oh um...of course. Anything for you Tsukune."
'Oh Kami...why does she have to be so damn cute all the time?!' he mentally cursed as the waitress sat their dinner on the long, wooden table.
As they ate their dinner in peace, Tsukune wondered to himself what other plans she had for their first date. He honestly didn't mind, but would have to be on guard since he knew that she was somewhat still hesitant to some extent about walking around in the human world with her vampire abilities being unsealed.
He knew that Moka had much better control over her full strength and would always be there for her to make sure she didn't accidentally show her true nature in front of anyone, since the rest of the world was still blissfully ignorant to the existence of ayashi and yokai, besides his immediate family.
"Wow, Moka. That was really good – well not nearly as good as your cooking of course."
"Oh yes. Um...thank you Tsukune. I was thinking, if it's alright with you maybe we could – go dancing."
"Dancing, Moka? I really don't know how to."
"Sure Tsukune. It'll be fun. And I can show you how – it's actually pretty easy once you get the hang of it."
"Wait. Don't tell me. You took dancing lessons when you were little. Am I right?"
"How did you know Tsukune?" she asked with a quirked brow.
"Lucky guess."
"Well yes, I did. I also took singing lessons when I was younger, before I came to live here in the Tokyo area."
"You can sing too? Is there anything you can't do Moka?"
"Hm-mm...I'm not really sure. I guess you'll have to just wait and see" she teased.
"Well, I'll be looking forward to learning more about you, Moka. It seems to me that you're just full of surprises, aren't you?"
"And I'll be looking forward to know you better as well, Tsukune. And yes, I am."
The waitress returned to their table and placed the bill down, face first. Tsukune went to grab the check, but was no match for Moka's inhuman speed.
"My treat Tsukune. Remember?" she asked with a smirk as she pulled out her wallet from her purse.
"Oh yes. Right. Thank you for dinner Moka" he said as she gave her a quick kiss on her cheek before he slid out of the booth and then stretched his legs. Moka took out the proper amount of Yen from her wallet along with a very generous tip for their server who gave the couple some well deserved privacy for their first date.
"You're very welcome, Tsukune" she said as she took his hand and slid out herself to join him by his side.
...
A/N: I am done! I worked on this chapter for nearly the entire day! I wanted to get it up before the New Year and I actually did it!
I hope everyone enjoyed this chapter. I worked REALLY hard on it and it wasn't easy. But it turned out pretty good. I left it as a cliffhanger since the next chapter will be the final one (maybe) of the "Golden Week" arc. I haven't decided yet and it won't be out until a week from now, at least. I am taking a well deserved break as I knocked out 3 chapters in a week. I am tired! _
Thanks to all my Friends, Followers and Watchers for you generous support throughout 2013. Let's all get along in 2014 as well. ^_^
If you liked this chapter please feel free to leave a brief comment if you like. I'm not asking for a review, just a brief comment asking what you liked about this (or any previous chapter) plus what you, the reader, would like to see in future chapters. I'm not sure how long this 'version' of my original 'Confession and A Vampire' will go on for but I have some good ideas for some future chapters.
And yes, Inner Moka will sing in this story. I'm just not sure when though. Once again thank you for reading my little story which has already hit over 5,000 views in 3 weeks. That's pretty amazing and I thank you for making it possible ^_^
Yes it's true. Rosario + Vampire 'Season 2' manga is ending in February, 2014!
I can't believe it and I'm hoping that it ends on a happy note!!
Source: Rosario + Vampire Manga Ending
The February issue of Shueisha's Jump Square magazine will announce on January 4 that Akihisa Ikeda's Rosario + Vampire Season II manga will end in the March issue on February 4.
Rosario + Vampire Season II is a sequel to Ikeda's 10-volume Rosario + Vampire manga. The story follows Aono Tsukune, an average guy who ends up attending school for monsters. While attending the school, he finds himself in a love triangle with Moka, a vampire, and other monster girls. Ikeda launched the original manga in 2004 followed by Season II in 2007. The 13th compiled volume shipped in Japan in September.
The manga inspired the Rosario + Vampire television anime and its sequel Rosario + Vampire Capu2 in 2008. Viz Media licensed and released both manga series and released the 12th compiled volume in August. FUNimation Entertainment released the anime series on home video in North America.
I can't believe it and I'm hoping that it ends on a happy note!!
Source: Rosario + Vampire Manga Ending
The February issue of Shueisha's Jump Square magazine will announce on January 4 that Akihisa Ikeda's Rosario + Vampire Season II manga will end in the March issue on February 4.
Rosario + Vampire Season II is a sequel to Ikeda's 10-volume Rosario + Vampire manga. The story follows Aono Tsukune, an average guy who ends up attending school for monsters. While attending the school, he finds himself in a love triangle with Moka, a vampire, and other monster girls. Ikeda launched the original manga in 2004 followed by Season II in 2007. The 13th compiled volume shipped in Japan in September.
The manga inspired the Rosario + Vampire television anime and its sequel Rosario + Vampire Capu2 in 2008. Viz Media licensed and released both manga series and released the 12th compiled volume in August. FUNimation Entertainment released the anime series on home video in North America.
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 6 "Golden Week, Part 1"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated T.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
This will be part 1 of a 3 part story arc. Takes place during the last week of April and into the first week of May.
…..
It was now Saturday morning, April 28th; the first "official" day of Golden Week.
Tsukune and Moka were heading to Roppongi Hills near Tokyo for their first day of vacation together as an official couple. His parents would give the pair a ride to the local bullet train station on their way to Osaka to visit Koji's mother.
He glanced over at the clock sitting on his desk and read the time.
[8:05 AM], it glared back with its bright, red face.
'We have to head out in an hour, so I guess I should get up, and see where Moka ran off to,' he mused to himself, seeing that she still wasn't in bed with him. After everything that's happened since they became mates, he was actually relieved that Moka was slowly coming to grips and adjusting to living with him in the human world. He would do whatever he could to make her feel more welcome in his parent's home.
He rose out of bed and then tumbled to the floor as his foot was tangled in is sheets.
'Gravity, thou art a heartless bitch!', he shouted out to nobody in particular. He dusted himself off; then got off the carpet, and shuffled his way to the closet; searching for something comfortable to wear for the trip to Tokyo.
After ransacking his wardrobe for roughly five minutes, he found his clothes for the train ride; a turquoise, button-down polo shirt, and khaki cargo pants. After nearly falling over while putting his britches on, he haphazardly got his head stuck in the neck of the shirt, and struggled to get his melon properly situated through it.
After spending the last ten minutes eventually getting himself dressed, he ambled out of his room, and made his way to the restroom at the end of the hallway, without any further unavoidable mishaps, pratfalls or unfortunate mishaps of any sort.
He also carried his and Moka's luggage downstairs for their week-long vacation.
…..
After brushing his teeth, combing his hair, and shaving, (thankfully without slicing his neck open with the razor), he made his way downstairs to meet up with Moka, and was greeted with the scent of food wafting up the stairwell, which resulted in his stomach rumbling rather rambunctiously, echoing all the way down the stairwell.
Upon entering the kitchen, he saw the vision of a heavenly Angel of absolute radiant beauty: Moka in an apron, cooking breakfast. She was standing over the stove, as his mother Kasumi stood to her left side, and seemed to be giving her instructions of some sort.
He dropped their suitcases off next to the kitchen's doorway before making his way to the table.
"Good morning," he called out, in an attempt to gain their attention.
Upon hearing her son's arrival, his mother divided her overly-sunny disposition in his general direction, as Moka continued preparing breakfast and was happily humming an unnamed tune.
"Good morning, sweetie. How did you sleep?", she asked.
"Um, fine, thanks. By the way, what's going on?", he inquired out of sheer nosiness, while taking a seat at the small, round kitchen table in the corner. His father Koji had his nose buried behind the newspaper and was sipping on his morning cup of coffee.
"Oh, Moka wants to learn how to cook a wide variety of foods for breakfast. So she asked for me to give her some pointers. She also told me that since you two are now dating, that she wants to practice on how to be a perfect wife," she told him with a teasing, yet serious look.
Upon hearing his mother say "wife", Tsukune slammed his head into the wooden table.
WHAM!
"I did not!", Moka spouted out, her cheeks now bright pink from hearing such an outlandish assumption. It is true that she loved Tsukune with every fiber of her being, but was not in a rush to get married anytime soon. They literally had all the time in the world since they were both immortal. Besides, her mother and father were never 'married' in the conventional sense.
His mother Kasumi then laughed boisterously at his befuddled reaction. Koji snickered too at his son's rather obvious embarrassment. Teenagers were so fun to tease, after all.
"Sorry, I couldn't resist! I just wanted to see both of your expressions. How cute!" she answered, as her eyes sparkled brightly.
"Ha ha. Very funny," Tsukune retorted, as he rubbed his forehead with his hands. He loved his mother, but sometimes she acted so childish. Why couldn't she see that he was growing into his own person?
After Moka was finished cooking, she then prepared four plates of freshly-prepared food.
His mother assisted her in carrying them to table.
"Good, morning, Tsukune. I hope that you're hungry," Moka said, trying to get him to perk up, after his mother's teasing.
…..
Upon hearing his mate's greeting, he finally saw what she was wearing under her apron: a cerulean blue sundress; cut just above her knees, with a scoop neck. It fit her perfectly, hugging her curvacious body in all the proper places. Yes, Moka Akashiya undoubtedly had the body of a Goddess, no question about it.
She was perfectly flawless in every sense of the word.
'Oh my Kami! She looks so beautiful this morning!' he screamed in his mind.
Her Rapunzel-length; silver hair was tied back into a ponytail, which was held in place with a color-coordinated ribbon and tied into a simple bow.
"Uh...ah...hm-mm?", he eventually spat out, upon seeing her look more adorable than usual.
"What's wrong, Tsukune? Your face is all red. Are you feeling well?" she asked, as she sat the plate down in front of him. She then bent over and placed her forehead against his own; checking for any signs of a possible fever, even though vampires never get ill unless it's caused by anemia.
Moka had seen a similar scene in one of her shoujo mangas.
Catching an eye-full of her bountiful cleavage, nearly gave the poor young man-turned-vampire a massive nosebleed.
After Moka stood back up, he finally had an opportunity to reply.
"Oh, Good morning, Moka! I slept well too, thank you very much!", he babbled out incoherently.
"Oh...okay then. I hope you're hungry. Part of what your mom said was true, though. I mentioned to you last night that wanted to learn how to cook different types of food. I just really wanted to show her my appreciation for allowing me to stay here with you," she said, after she sat down to his right.
"Oh, that's good. hahaha. yeah, I'm starving," he answered, once his complexion returned to normal. He was also quite surprised at the amount of food she had prepared.
Pancakes, ham and cheese omelets, bacon, sausage patties, and French Toast. She also brought along two tall glasses of tomato juice for themselves. His mother had a cup of coffee, with cream and sugar.
"Itadakimasu!" they called out in unison.
"Moka! OH KAMI! This is amazing! So good!," he complimented her, in-between mouthfuls. She blushed yet again, but this time from his heartfelt gratitude and forthright sincerity.
"Yes, Moka. This is pretty good" Koji added a second later. Kasumi gladly smiled in agreement.
"Oh, thank you very much, everyone. I'm so happy to hear that," she endearingly replied.
"Moka will make such a wonderful wife someday for you son," his mother added. Which in turn, caused the couple's features to glow bright crimson yet again.
…..
"Tsukune, did either of you feel those tremors last night around 2 AM? It felt like aftershocks of an earthquake" Koji asked his son who was enjoying his love-filled breakfast made by his beautiful Moka.
Tsukune glanced over to Moka whose cheeks turned bright crimson once the question she just heard had sunk in. She knew precisely what he was referring to. They had made passionate love in the middle of the night and Tsukune was in his unsealed, vampire form.
The pair may have been a little "too much" into "it" early in the morning and may have "accidentally" caused the entire house to shake back and forth while they were – well, you know. I don't have to spell it out for you, do I? This chapter is Rated T, ya know! And yes, I know I broke the fourth wall, okay?
"Um, nope. I was fast asleep. Did you, Moka?" he asked her with an all-knowing look.
There was no way he could tell his parents any intimate details of their relationship.
"No, Mister Aono. I was – sound asleep too" was her blunt reply. She absolutely despised being deceitful, but she couldn't state the facts, either.
'Oh yes, Tsukune and I have made wild, unbridled love, ever since we became blood-mates. And he's absolutely amazing in bed!' is what she really wanted to say, but followed Tsukune's lead instead.
"Okay, maybe I was imagining it, then" Koji said with a shrug, as he returned to his morning meal.
…..
Once the quartet was finished eating breakfast, Kasumi told the pair to wait in the living-room, since she and Koji had to retrieve their luggage and would be heading out before too long. Tsukune and Moka had carried their baggage from the kitchen and placed them near the front door.
The duo then had a seat in on the beige, microfiber sofa and relaxed for a few minutes while they awaited for his folks to return shortly.
"Hey Moka, thanks again for breakfast. It was really good" he said as she suddenly leaned against him and sighed happily.
"Thank you Tsukune. That really means a lot to me" she said with a bright smile.
"It's no problem. Um and thanks again...for you know...our vacation. I'm actually kinda excited" he admitted with a healthy blush.
"Oh you're welcome, love. Like I told you last night, this is something that I want to do. We're going to have a great time Tsukune. That much I can promise" Moka said as she quickly embraced him then gently pushed him back onto the soft couch, overcome with love and adoration for her one and only mate.
"Oh Moka."
"Tsukune."
"Moka."
"Tsukune...you smell so good...oh...ahhh..."
"Go ahead Moka" he said once he knew what she desired, leaned to the right and offered his neck to her in an affectionate manner.
"Thanks for the meal!" Moka announced as she lovingly licked his neck in an affectionate fashion and slowly pierced his flesh with her razor-sharp canines. He gasped as she began to take her fill of his addictive, sweet blood in small, yet steady slurps. Moka lovingly lapped at the small puncture marks with her tongue and was moaning with wanton desire.
She could sense Tsukune's positive feelings through their ever-growing bond which has tripled in strength since they had become blood-mates just a short, few days ago. He held her much closer as her breath was coming out in small, labored pants.
"Oh my! I guess she really is a vampire!" Kasumi yelped as she saw her son pinned down on the couch by his shoulders and Moka was on top of him in a compromising position with her dress hiked half-way up her thighs.
…..
"I'm so sorry, Misses Aono. You weren't supposed to see...that" Moka said with tears in the corner of her crimson eyes and she was bowing for forgiveness.
The vampire princess was beyond mortified and had not sensed that her fiance's parents had walked in on them and had caught her in an awkward predicament. Moka was completely lost in the moment and had not heard when they had walked into the living-room when she was partaking of her mate's blood.
"It's okay, Moka dear. I guess it's something that we have to get used to. Besides, without drinking blood, you'll most likely die, right?" Kasumi said as she gently placed her hands atop her shoulders and pulled the silver-haired maiden into a warm hug.
"Thank you Misses Aono. Once again, I'm really sorry. And yes. If we don't drink at least a pint per week, we can get very sick and eventually – die" Moka replied as she returned the unexpected gesture.
Tsukune was the one who was just as embarrassed as much if not more than Moka was. He should have been more diligent and had not detected their presence either.
Once the two women finished their hug, they all decided it was getting late and would be heading out since it was now past 9 AM. After Koji locked the front door of their home, they all made their way to the car since they were heading towards the train station shortly. Tsukune carried his and Moka's luggage outside and placed them in the trunk along with his parents'.
"Good morning Auntie!" came a familiar female voice from the down the sidewalk on this beautiful, springtime morning.
"Good morning Kyoko. I really appreciate you picking up our mail while we're on vacation" Kasumi said to the raven-haired young woman. She was simply dressed in a denim mini skirt and red tee-shirt. Her hair was trimmed shorter that usual, since the weather was slowly warming up.
"Ah, it's no problem really. I don't have any plans and it's just nice to stay home and relax for once" Kyoko replied with a warm grin as she saw her cousin was talking to a beautiful young woman with hair the color of the silvery moon.
"Hey Tsukie. It's about time you got a girlfriend!" she teased, then placed him into a headlock, and rubbed his perfectly brushed hair into an impromptu mess. He quickly wiggled his way out of her firm grip, much to her shock at his inhuman display of speed and strength.
'When did Tsukie get so strong? He's never been able to get away from me so easily before!' she though to herself with a slight frown across her features.
"Kyo! What the hell?" he bellowed out as Moka walked up to his female cousin and glared daggers at her. How dare she lay a hand on her blood-mate! She needs to be reminded of her place.
"Hello, Kyoko. Long time, no see" Moka calmly said as she crossed her arms under her abundant bosom. Kasumi and Koji stood back, wondering what was going to happen and decided to remain silent. Thankfully most of their neighbors were not home and had already left for vacations to parts unknown.
…..
"Moka? Is that you?" Kyoko wondered aloud. This girl looked somewhat familiar, but her hair and eye color were completely different than from what she remembered. Then it hit her: this must be the real Moka she had met during the entire 'Lilith Mirror' incident two years ago when she had snuck onto the Yokai Academy grounds to check up on her cousin Tsukune, since his friends and school itself seemed to be rather suspicious.
"Yes, this is the real me, Kyoko. Just so you know, Tsukune has already chosen me as his mate" Moka stated as a matter-of-factually.
"M-mate? As in...his wife?" she sputtered out, trying to pick up on the vampire princess' equivocal colloquialism.
"Not quite, but I suppose you could say that we are somewhat, already engaged. I confessed to him a few days ago, just before Graduation. He also admitted to me that he has been in love with me since the moment we met. So we are now together and I will be living with him from now on" Moka explained in the best way she could on such short notice.
"Yeah, it's true Kyo. Uh, we have to get going now, so, um...we can talk when we get back next week. It was good seeing you Kyo. Let's go, Moka" Tsukune said as he grabbed Moka's hand and lead her back to the car and waved farewell to Kyoko who just stood there glued in place, wondering what the hell was going on exactly. Mates? Engaged!
Everyone finally climbed into the family car and Koji started up the engine, placed the gears in drive and headed down the street towards the local train station.
The entire drive downtown was exceptionally quiet, most likely due to Kyoko's reaction that her younger cousin was now living with a young woman who she knew was without a doubt, a living, breathing vampire. That drinks blood. And has chosen her cousin as her mate.
Tsukune and Moka sat in the back seat and just held hands. He could tell that the little confrontation rattled her nerves to some end, but she would quickly let it pass. Moka would definitely have to sit her down and have a chat once they returned home from their vacation in a weeks' time.
…..
"Moka? Is everything alright?" he said, picking up on her uneasiness through their bond.
"Oh yes, Tsukune. I'm just a little nervous, that's all" she stated as she gave his hand a gentle squeeze. She was indeed uneasy about riding the bullet train, but knew that as long as her mate was by her side, she would be just fine.
"Nervous, Moka?" he asked with concern in his voice.
"Well, yes. This will be my first time, after all" she hesitantly replied.
"First time?" Kasumi asked as she turned around in her seat and looked at Moka who was now blushing from the way she had unknowingly phrased her answer just a second ago.
"Yes. I've never done this before and I'm kind of anxious" Moka said as her blush developed in intensity. Tsukune finally understood what his mother was thinking and quickly interjected, before anybody jumped to a wrong conclusion like they normally would.
"Mom! It's nothing like that! She's just never ridden a train before, that's all! Please tell them Moka" he huffed out clearly exasperated at his mother's sudden conclusion.
"Oh yes. That's what I meant. What did you think I meant?" was the oblivious reply from the platinum-trussed maiden who was clueless to what Tsukune had reacted so harshly to.
"Uh, never mind. Look, we're here" Tsukune said as his dad pulled the car up along the sidewalk in front of the Shinkansen (bullet train) station. After placing the gears in neutral, everyone exited the vehicle to say their proper goodbyes. Tsukune opened the trunk, retrieved his and Moka's luggage and then placed them on the sidewalk adjacent to the car.
"Well, Sweetie. You two have a good time, okay? You can call us if anything comes up. We'll call you when we're on our way back so we can pick you up here at that time" Kasumi said as she gave her only offspring a warm hug. Moka joined in the hug as well.
"Thanks mom, dad. You guys have a good time, too. Tell Grandma I send my best" he replied once they ceased their embrace.
"Of course son. Have some fun for once. You two deserve it" Koji added with a grin.
"Misses Aono, I will take very good care of Tsukune. You have my word" Moka said with a polite bow.
"Thank you Moka dear. Please do. We'll see you two in a week" Kasumi said as she and her husband returned to the family vehicle. He then placed the engine in drive and made their way to head south towards Osaka. They were going to take the Shinkansen, but mutually decided a nice, leisurely drive would suit them just fine since they were in no rush.
"So Moka? All set?" Tsukune asked as he grabbed his suitcase. Moka smiled at and followed behind him into the actual train station itself. They were quite grateful that it was not too packed this morning and there would be a train along every 3 to 5 minutes or so.
The actual train ride to Tokyo would take roughly 25 minutes since the train's top speed was nearly 275 km per hour. Otherwise it would have taken nearly 2 hours via local train.
…..
The duo ambled up to the closest automated ticket machine and found the correct train that they would be traveling on towards the Tokyo-Metropolitan area. From the Tokyo station they decided beforehand to just take a taxicab to Roppongi since it would be quicker than taking two more, local trains instead.
Tsukune pulled out his wallet and inserted the correct amount of Yen into the automatic ticket machine and it issued two adult, one way tickets in exchange.
"Oh, thank you Tsukune" Moka replied as he presented the ticket to her as she held it over her heart.
"You're welcome, Moka. Don't get too attached to it; we have to place them in the slot when we pass through the turnstiles over there" he said as he lead her once again in the proper direction. He fed his ticket into the slot, which disappeared quickly and allowed him to pass through the turnstile with a 'clickity-click-click'. Moka repeated the action and smiled brightly seeing the machine "eat" her ticket up.
"That was neat" she quipped as they wandered over to a row of cushioned seats approximately 5 meters away from the train tracks.
"Um, Tsukune? Before when we were in the car...what did your mother think when I told her that this is my 'first time'?" Moka inquired with a hint of hesitation.
"Oh, well...she thought it meant...something...else" he replied as his face burned red with embarrassment. There was no way he could explain it any further, especially out in public. So he communicated it to her silently as he held her hands in his own, through their blood-bond.
"Oh...OH! Oh, my! How embarrassing!" she shouted as she buried her face in her hands.
"Moka, don't worry about it. I already explained it to her so it's okay. No worries" he said as he squeezed her hands gently.
"Your mother must think I'm a total pervert! Just imagine if I told her that you were my first," she lamented as she released his hands.
"Moka, she doesn't think of you that way. Wait a minute. Well, it's true that I was your first, and you were mine" he explained.
"See? That's not what I meant, Tsukune. You were the first person – I ever – drank blood from" Moka clarified with a whisper, hoping nobody was listening to their semi-private conversation.
"I know that's what you meant, so it's totally fine. No misunderstandings, see?" Tsukune said as he stood up from his seat since the long, silver, train was slowly approaching the platform. He grabbed his suitcase and offered his free hand to Moka who accepted it with a warm smile.
"Let's go Moka" he said as they stood off to the side and the sliding doors opened as a mass of bodies exited the train and on to the platform, heading off in their individual directions. Once the sea of people dispersed, Tsukune lead his wonderful mate into the train car and immediately found a window-side seat, which he offered to Moka so she could have an unobstructed view of the passing vicinity.
He stowed their luggage under their seats for the time being since it would be a fast trip.
"Thank you Tsukune" she warmly replied seeing his chivalrous generosity of offering her a seat first which was the window seat.
"No worries Moka. Let's just relax for a while. And we'll be in Tokyo before we even know it" he replied as he plopped down in the cozy seat beside her. She leaned back in her plush chair and smiled. She was quite excited truth be known. This was her first time, after all. Tsukune then helped her with the seat belt as a safety measure.
…...
The bullet train pulled out of the station and traveled down the tracks as it quickly accelerated to its top, safe speed. The digital odometer above the interconnecting doors read "275 KM/ HR" in blue LEDs.
Tsukune glanced over to his right and admired the young woman sitting next to him; her long, beautiful silver hair raining down her back, porcelain-white skin and piercing, ruby-red eyes. He knew in his heart that they were meant to be together and was actually glad things had eventually worked out in his favor. It wasn't exactly going to be easy, to make a life for themselves but he realized that as long as they had each other, it would somehow work out for the best. It always had somehow.
After everything they've been through since Moka literally came crashing into his life, it had definitely been strange. But in a good way. And now here they were on their way to their first vacation as an honest-to-goodness couple.
"So Moka..." Tsukune said to Moka since she had her face glued to the Plexiglas window and stared outside. "What do you think so far?" he continued.
"A lot of pretty trees" was her simple reply.
"I see. So, um, what are our plans – for tonight?" he asked Moka who was still hypnotized by the rapidly passing scenery. She then turned her attention to him and was smiling brightly. Her cheeks were lightly flush for some reason or other he had noticed.
"Well, I was thinking, maybe we could could - go out into the city and have a – date" was the upfront answer.
"A d-date?" he stuttered out.
"Well, yes. We are 'dating', aren't we Tsukune? I'd like for us to go out like a real couple should. Please Tsukune? We haven't done anything that 'normal' couples do since we left Yokai" she sadly replied.
"Of course we're dating, Moka. I'd like that - too. But you do know that I've never had a girlfriend before I met you. I mean we did go out once while we were still at Yokai, but it ended up being a 'training session' instead, remember?" he sadly answered.
"I see. Well it's true it was to train your senses, but we're together now Tsukune and I want to live a normal, happy life with you. I know that my appearance sticks out like a sore thumb and people have been staring at me all morning, but I frankly don't care about that, Tsukune. As long as you're in my life, none of that matters anymore. You're my everything."
"You're right Moka. I've always loved you for who you are. And it doesn't matter to me if you have pink hair or silver hair. Because...Moka is always Moka and you mean the world to me, too" he said as she leaned over and hugged her firmly.
"Oh Tsukune...thank you. I do love you so very much" she replied as a swell of love in her heart grew and caused her to experience a wave of giddiness to wash over her, from his always-honest answer.
"O-of course Moka...and I love you too."
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS. NOW APPROACHING TOKYO JR EAST STATION. PLEASE WAIT UNTIL THE TRAIN COMES TO A COMPLETE STOP BEFORE GATHERING YOUR BELONGINGS. NEXT STOP TOKYO JR EAST. THANK YOU VERY MUCH."
Tsukune and Moka ceased their embrace temporarily and waited for the bullet train to come to a halt. A few minutes later, Moka assisted her mate in retrieving their luggage from underneath their seats. They then stood up and made their way to the closest exit and waited for the train to gradually slow down as it entered the train station.
As the doors whooshed open a a few moment laters, dozens of passengers poured out like oil onto the platform, and went their separate ways.
Tsukune held Moka's hand, as the path was now clear for their turn to disembark the train.
Once they were eventually off the train, Tsukune took a good look around himself and marveled at the amount of people in the general area. This was without a doubt the metropolis known as Tokyo.
"Tsukune, this way love" Moka politely instructed as she made her way out of the train station when she spotter a sign saying "EXIT TO STREET" and onto the main road and searched for a taxicab. The weather had warmed up a bit and it was indeed a wonderful, spring morning without a cloud in the azure blue sky.
She then spotted a bright yellow checkered cab a few seconds later. She waved it down to the side of the busy road and once the driver pulled over, the duo climbed into the back seat. Moka then gave the driver the address of her former home in Roppongi, which was just a short drive from the JR East Train Station.
…..
Roppongi is a ward in Tokyo that is well known as the city's most popular nightlife district among foreigners, offering a large number of foreigner-friendly bars, restaurants and night clubs. Roppongi and the surrounding districts of Azabu, Hiroo and Akasaka are home to many embassies, and a large refugee community.
Thanks to the appearance of several art museums, Roppongi has also developed a reputation as a cultural center. The National Art Center is Japan's largest art museum, and together with Roppongi Hills' Mori Art Museum and Tokyo Midtown's Suntory Museum of Art forms the "Art Triangle Roppongi".
Approximately 10 minutes later the cab finally arrived in Roppongi. Tsukune was quite surprised to say the very least. He had heard rumors that this was one of the richest areas in all of Tokyo, but had never actually been there before until now.
….
Once all this finally sunk in, he recalled that Moka's family was indeed very wealthy.
Moka asked the driver to drop the pair off on a side road, which was just a short walk to her building. She then pulled out her wallet from her purse and paid the driver his fare along with a very generous tip. Moka exited the cab first followed by Tsukune who pulled their luggage out a moment later. She then grabbed her own with a bright smile.
"Tsukune, this way," she lightly instructed as she tugged on his free hand in the direction of her former home at Roppongi Hills.
"Okay, Moka. Lead the way," he happily replied.
"Wow, Moka. This is a really nice area. So much different than back home," he added a minute later, noticing all the recently-built skyscrapers, and shopping malls.
"Yes, Tsukune. There's several nightclubs and art museums around here as well. It's a very nice area for a date" she told him, as they rounded the corner and were now in front of Moka's former home.
Mid-Town Tower. A massive eighty story building.
"Moka, you lived here?!", he shouted as they make their way to the front entrance.
"Yes, Tsukune. For my five years while I attended school nearby."
Once they arrived inside the massive, marble lobby, Moka opened her purse and presented her resident ID card to the clerk on duty at the front desk. The clerk in turn gave her the key-card to the apartment on the penthouse floor.
"Okay, Tsukune. This way," she informed him once he found his bearings inside the monolithic stone foyer.
Moka then walked up to a row of elevators and pressed the 'up' button, her mate following closely behind her.
…..
Once the express elevator arrived, the silver, metallic, mechanical door slid open, they then stepped inside. Moka then passed her key-card in front of the sensor on the control panel, indicating her floor number. Eighty.
The door then slid closed. The elevator quickly ascended to the predetermined destination. Tsukune felt somewhat disoriented as the elevator car rapidly accelerated upward at a breakneck velocity. He had to grab the brass handrail behind himself, so he wouldn't tumble. Moka saw his bewildered dismay, and helped him to gain his balance.
"Thanks Moka," he sheepishly replied as he nearly toppled to the floor.
"No problem, Tsukune. Sorry, I should've warned you beforehand" she softly told him. He just hugged her warmly as gratitude.
The elevator started to gradually slow down a minute or so later, indicating they were nearly at their stop. The penthouse floor.
* ding ding *
As the doors swooshed open, Moka made a right turn down the hallway to her apartment.
After walking for what seemed like eternity, Moka stopped in front of a large wooden door, with an electronic locking mechanism on top of where the door handle should be. She swiped her key-card down through the slot on front, unlocking it. A small green light indicated to her that the door was now open.
She walked inside and removed her shoes in the entrance way. Tsukune followed behind her, mimicking her actions.
"Oh my Kami!", he bellowed upon seeing the interior of her 'apartment'. Dark wooden floors, a ten-foot ceiling. To his left, there was a huge ceiling to floor window, offering a panoramic view of the surrounding area, including Tokyo Tower, the recently built Sky Tree, and the rest of the city, off in the distance.
"Tsukune. Here, follow me please," she gently suggested.
"Oh, sure thing Moka. Right behind you."
Moka's former apartment was quite impressive to say the very least. It was easily over 2,500 square feet.
"Over here is the kitchen and dining area," she pointed out, indicating the large stainless steel stove, matching sink, and a double-wide refrigerator. He also noticed marble counter tops, with bands of 24 karat gold interlaced throughout the black and white, marbleized design. In the dining room, there was a medium-sized, rectangular-shaped Lucite dining table with four matching red chairs.
"Over here is the living room," she added, as she continued on her tour.
There was a huge "L" shaped black, leather couch, across from a fifty-five inch, high-definition, LED flat-screen TV that hung on the wall. A matching coffee table was in front of the sofa, made of dark-stained Oak. On either end of the couch was a two meter tall lamp with a 'mushroom' shaped top made from frosted glass.
She then walked down a short hallway that ran perpendicular alongside the living-room.
…..
"And here is the bathroom, and here is my bedroom," she announced. There was another bedroom across from her own, which was her former step-mother's, but did not mention.
"I must say Moka, this is a great apartment. I'm really surprised," he said after the grand tour.
"Well, like I said before; it's all paid for. I just have no use for this place. Lots of sad memories," she said as she quickly hugged him.
"I know, Moka. I'm sorry I didn't know you back then," he told her, as she embraced him firmer. Growing up in the human world for five, solitary years, was in no way easy for her as she never had a true friend who had ever accepted her for who she truly was, up until she met Tsukune.
"But, you can always make, new, happy memories," he hinted to her with a wink.
"Really, Tsukune?", she answered as she looked into his soft, chocolate brown eyes.
"Yes, Moka. Really," he stated as he impulsively kissed her, parting her soft, pink lips with his tongue. That had caused her breath to hitch at the sudden jolt of affection, catching her entirely off guard. She then moaned in absolute delight.
Breaking their kiss for air a few minutes later, Moka looked up to her very best friend. The one person in the entire world who had accepted her, all of her, despite the fact that she was the furthest from being anything but normal, and had fallen madly in love with.
"Tsukune...?"
"Yes Moka?"
"Can we – you know. Please, don't make me say – it" she whispered as she leaned against his chest as she embraced him firmly; suddenly overcome with a warm wave of love and adoration for him. Truthfully, she wanted to much closer to him even though they had already committed their lives to each other through their blood-bond.
"O-of course Moka...if that's what you want" he replied returning her warm hug.
"Please...take good care of me, Tsukune" was her cuter-than-average request.
…..
A/N:
I am DONE! I worked on this chapter for most of the day and it took me nearly 10 hours to get it just right. I know it seems similar to chapter 7 from my original R+V fic "Date and a Vampire". I only used it as a general guide...mostly as an outline. This is about 95% all-new material.
I decided to break up the "Golden Week" chapter, as it will most likely continue for at least 2 more chapters. Part 2 will be out soon (in about a week; after New Year's Day) and it will be Rated M, as it will include a Lemon scene towards the beginning. So it will be a complete story arc. :)
Much thanks to my very good friends and Beta Readers for their continued support: Train48, CorlessLawliet, Onyx2589, and edichter from deviantArt.
A big shout out to Kazuki2292 from FF dot net. Thank you very much for your continuous support and your friendship. It really means a lot to me! ^_^ *Hug*
Chapter 6 "Golden Week, Part 1"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated T.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Moka and Tsukune are 18 years old here and recent high school graduates.
This will be part 1 of a 3 part story arc. Takes place during the last week of April and into the first week of May.
…..
It was now Saturday morning, April 28th; the first "official" day of Golden Week.
Tsukune and Moka were heading to Roppongi Hills near Tokyo for their first day of vacation together as an official couple. His parents would give the pair a ride to the local bullet train station on their way to Osaka to visit Koji's mother.
He glanced over at the clock sitting on his desk and read the time.
[8:05 AM], it glared back with its bright, red face.
'We have to head out in an hour, so I guess I should get up, and see where Moka ran off to,' he mused to himself, seeing that she still wasn't in bed with him. After everything that's happened since they became mates, he was actually relieved that Moka was slowly coming to grips and adjusting to living with him in the human world. He would do whatever he could to make her feel more welcome in his parent's home.
He rose out of bed and then tumbled to the floor as his foot was tangled in is sheets.
'Gravity, thou art a heartless bitch!', he shouted out to nobody in particular. He dusted himself off; then got off the carpet, and shuffled his way to the closet; searching for something comfortable to wear for the trip to Tokyo.
After ransacking his wardrobe for roughly five minutes, he found his clothes for the train ride; a turquoise, button-down polo shirt, and khaki cargo pants. After nearly falling over while putting his britches on, he haphazardly got his head stuck in the neck of the shirt, and struggled to get his melon properly situated through it.
After spending the last ten minutes eventually getting himself dressed, he ambled out of his room, and made his way to the restroom at the end of the hallway, without any further unavoidable mishaps, pratfalls or unfortunate mishaps of any sort.
He also carried his and Moka's luggage downstairs for their week-long vacation.
…..
After brushing his teeth, combing his hair, and shaving, (thankfully without slicing his neck open with the razor), he made his way downstairs to meet up with Moka, and was greeted with the scent of food wafting up the stairwell, which resulted in his stomach rumbling rather rambunctiously, echoing all the way down the stairwell.
Upon entering the kitchen, he saw the vision of a heavenly Angel of absolute radiant beauty: Moka in an apron, cooking breakfast. She was standing over the stove, as his mother Kasumi stood to her left side, and seemed to be giving her instructions of some sort.
He dropped their suitcases off next to the kitchen's doorway before making his way to the table.
"Good morning," he called out, in an attempt to gain their attention.
Upon hearing her son's arrival, his mother divided her overly-sunny disposition in his general direction, as Moka continued preparing breakfast and was happily humming an unnamed tune.
"Good morning, sweetie. How did you sleep?", she asked.
"Um, fine, thanks. By the way, what's going on?", he inquired out of sheer nosiness, while taking a seat at the small, round kitchen table in the corner. His father Koji had his nose buried behind the newspaper and was sipping on his morning cup of coffee.
"Oh, Moka wants to learn how to cook a wide variety of foods for breakfast. So she asked for me to give her some pointers. She also told me that since you two are now dating, that she wants to practice on how to be a perfect wife," she told him with a teasing, yet serious look.
Upon hearing his mother say "wife", Tsukune slammed his head into the wooden table.
WHAM!
"I did not!", Moka spouted out, her cheeks now bright pink from hearing such an outlandish assumption. It is true that she loved Tsukune with every fiber of her being, but was not in a rush to get married anytime soon. They literally had all the time in the world since they were both immortal. Besides, her mother and father were never 'married' in the conventional sense.
His mother Kasumi then laughed boisterously at his befuddled reaction. Koji snickered too at his son's rather obvious embarrassment. Teenagers were so fun to tease, after all.
"Sorry, I couldn't resist! I just wanted to see both of your expressions. How cute!" she answered, as her eyes sparkled brightly.
"Ha ha. Very funny," Tsukune retorted, as he rubbed his forehead with his hands. He loved his mother, but sometimes she acted so childish. Why couldn't she see that he was growing into his own person?
After Moka was finished cooking, she then prepared four plates of freshly-prepared food.
His mother assisted her in carrying them to table.
"Good, morning, Tsukune. I hope that you're hungry," Moka said, trying to get him to perk up, after his mother's teasing.
…..
Upon hearing his mate's greeting, he finally saw what she was wearing under her apron: a cerulean blue sundress; cut just above her knees, with a scoop neck. It fit her perfectly, hugging her curvacious body in all the proper places. Yes, Moka Akashiya undoubtedly had the body of a Goddess, no question about it.
She was perfectly flawless in every sense of the word.
'Oh my Kami! She looks so beautiful this morning!' he screamed in his mind.
Her Rapunzel-length; silver hair was tied back into a ponytail, which was held in place with a color-coordinated ribbon and tied into a simple bow.
"Uh...ah...hm-mm?", he eventually spat out, upon seeing her look more adorable than usual.
"What's wrong, Tsukune? Your face is all red. Are you feeling well?" she asked, as she sat the plate down in front of him. She then bent over and placed her forehead against his own; checking for any signs of a possible fever, even though vampires never get ill unless it's caused by anemia.
Moka had seen a similar scene in one of her shoujo mangas.
Catching an eye-full of her bountiful cleavage, nearly gave the poor young man-turned-vampire a massive nosebleed.
After Moka stood back up, he finally had an opportunity to reply.
"Oh, Good morning, Moka! I slept well too, thank you very much!", he babbled out incoherently.
"Oh...okay then. I hope you're hungry. Part of what your mom said was true, though. I mentioned to you last night that wanted to learn how to cook different types of food. I just really wanted to show her my appreciation for allowing me to stay here with you," she said, after she sat down to his right.
"Oh, that's good. hahaha. yeah, I'm starving," he answered, once his complexion returned to normal. He was also quite surprised at the amount of food she had prepared.
Pancakes, ham and cheese omelets, bacon, sausage patties, and French Toast. She also brought along two tall glasses of tomato juice for themselves. His mother had a cup of coffee, with cream and sugar.
"Itadakimasu!" they called out in unison.
"Moka! OH KAMI! This is amazing! So good!," he complimented her, in-between mouthfuls. She blushed yet again, but this time from his heartfelt gratitude and forthright sincerity.
"Yes, Moka. This is pretty good" Koji added a second later. Kasumi gladly smiled in agreement.
"Oh, thank you very much, everyone. I'm so happy to hear that," she endearingly replied.
"Moka will make such a wonderful wife someday for you son," his mother added. Which in turn, caused the couple's features to glow bright crimson yet again.
…..
"Tsukune, did either of you feel those tremors last night around 2 AM? It felt like aftershocks of an earthquake" Koji asked his son who was enjoying his love-filled breakfast made by his beautiful Moka.
Tsukune glanced over to Moka whose cheeks turned bright crimson once the question she just heard had sunk in. She knew precisely what he was referring to. They had made passionate love in the middle of the night and Tsukune was in his unsealed, vampire form.
The pair may have been a little "too much" into "it" early in the morning and may have "accidentally" caused the entire house to shake back and forth while they were – well, you know. I don't have to spell it out for you, do I? This chapter is Rated T, ya know! And yes, I know I broke the fourth wall, okay?
"Um, nope. I was fast asleep. Did you, Moka?" he asked her with an all-knowing look.
There was no way he could tell his parents any intimate details of their relationship.
"No, Mister Aono. I was – sound asleep too" was her blunt reply. She absolutely despised being deceitful, but she couldn't state the facts, either.
'Oh yes, Tsukune and I have made wild, unbridled love, ever since we became blood-mates. And he's absolutely amazing in bed!' is what she really wanted to say, but followed Tsukune's lead instead.
"Okay, maybe I was imagining it, then" Koji said with a shrug, as he returned to his morning meal.
…..
Once the quartet was finished eating breakfast, Kasumi told the pair to wait in the living-room, since she and Koji had to retrieve their luggage and would be heading out before too long. Tsukune and Moka had carried their baggage from the kitchen and placed them near the front door.
The duo then had a seat in on the beige, microfiber sofa and relaxed for a few minutes while they awaited for his folks to return shortly.
"Hey Moka, thanks again for breakfast. It was really good" he said as she suddenly leaned against him and sighed happily.
"Thank you Tsukune. That really means a lot to me" she said with a bright smile.
"It's no problem. Um and thanks again...for you know...our vacation. I'm actually kinda excited" he admitted with a healthy blush.
"Oh you're welcome, love. Like I told you last night, this is something that I want to do. We're going to have a great time Tsukune. That much I can promise" Moka said as she quickly embraced him then gently pushed him back onto the soft couch, overcome with love and adoration for her one and only mate.
"Oh Moka."
"Tsukune."
"Moka."
"Tsukune...you smell so good...oh...ahhh..."
"Go ahead Moka" he said once he knew what she desired, leaned to the right and offered his neck to her in an affectionate manner.
"Thanks for the meal!" Moka announced as she lovingly licked his neck in an affectionate fashion and slowly pierced his flesh with her razor-sharp canines. He gasped as she began to take her fill of his addictive, sweet blood in small, yet steady slurps. Moka lovingly lapped at the small puncture marks with her tongue and was moaning with wanton desire.
She could sense Tsukune's positive feelings through their ever-growing bond which has tripled in strength since they had become blood-mates just a short, few days ago. He held her much closer as her breath was coming out in small, labored pants.
"Oh my! I guess she really is a vampire!" Kasumi yelped as she saw her son pinned down on the couch by his shoulders and Moka was on top of him in a compromising position with her dress hiked half-way up her thighs.
…..
"I'm so sorry, Misses Aono. You weren't supposed to see...that" Moka said with tears in the corner of her crimson eyes and she was bowing for forgiveness.
The vampire princess was beyond mortified and had not sensed that her fiance's parents had walked in on them and had caught her in an awkward predicament. Moka was completely lost in the moment and had not heard when they had walked into the living-room when she was partaking of her mate's blood.
"It's okay, Moka dear. I guess it's something that we have to get used to. Besides, without drinking blood, you'll most likely die, right?" Kasumi said as she gently placed her hands atop her shoulders and pulled the silver-haired maiden into a warm hug.
"Thank you Misses Aono. Once again, I'm really sorry. And yes. If we don't drink at least a pint per week, we can get very sick and eventually – die" Moka replied as she returned the unexpected gesture.
Tsukune was the one who was just as embarrassed as much if not more than Moka was. He should have been more diligent and had not detected their presence either.
Once the two women finished their hug, they all decided it was getting late and would be heading out since it was now past 9 AM. After Koji locked the front door of their home, they all made their way to the car since they were heading towards the train station shortly. Tsukune carried his and Moka's luggage outside and placed them in the trunk along with his parents'.
"Good morning Auntie!" came a familiar female voice from the down the sidewalk on this beautiful, springtime morning.
"Good morning Kyoko. I really appreciate you picking up our mail while we're on vacation" Kasumi said to the raven-haired young woman. She was simply dressed in a denim mini skirt and red tee-shirt. Her hair was trimmed shorter that usual, since the weather was slowly warming up.
"Ah, it's no problem really. I don't have any plans and it's just nice to stay home and relax for once" Kyoko replied with a warm grin as she saw her cousin was talking to a beautiful young woman with hair the color of the silvery moon.
"Hey Tsukie. It's about time you got a girlfriend!" she teased, then placed him into a headlock, and rubbed his perfectly brushed hair into an impromptu mess. He quickly wiggled his way out of her firm grip, much to her shock at his inhuman display of speed and strength.
'When did Tsukie get so strong? He's never been able to get away from me so easily before!' she though to herself with a slight frown across her features.
"Kyo! What the hell?" he bellowed out as Moka walked up to his female cousin and glared daggers at her. How dare she lay a hand on her blood-mate! She needs to be reminded of her place.
"Hello, Kyoko. Long time, no see" Moka calmly said as she crossed her arms under her abundant bosom. Kasumi and Koji stood back, wondering what was going to happen and decided to remain silent. Thankfully most of their neighbors were not home and had already left for vacations to parts unknown.
…..
"Moka? Is that you?" Kyoko wondered aloud. This girl looked somewhat familiar, but her hair and eye color were completely different than from what she remembered. Then it hit her: this must be the real Moka she had met during the entire 'Lilith Mirror' incident two years ago when she had snuck onto the Yokai Academy grounds to check up on her cousin Tsukune, since his friends and school itself seemed to be rather suspicious.
"Yes, this is the real me, Kyoko. Just so you know, Tsukune has already chosen me as his mate" Moka stated as a matter-of-factually.
"M-mate? As in...his wife?" she sputtered out, trying to pick up on the vampire princess' equivocal colloquialism.
"Not quite, but I suppose you could say that we are somewhat, already engaged. I confessed to him a few days ago, just before Graduation. He also admitted to me that he has been in love with me since the moment we met. So we are now together and I will be living with him from now on" Moka explained in the best way she could on such short notice.
"Yeah, it's true Kyo. Uh, we have to get going now, so, um...we can talk when we get back next week. It was good seeing you Kyo. Let's go, Moka" Tsukune said as he grabbed Moka's hand and lead her back to the car and waved farewell to Kyoko who just stood there glued in place, wondering what the hell was going on exactly. Mates? Engaged!
Everyone finally climbed into the family car and Koji started up the engine, placed the gears in drive and headed down the street towards the local train station.
The entire drive downtown was exceptionally quiet, most likely due to Kyoko's reaction that her younger cousin was now living with a young woman who she knew was without a doubt, a living, breathing vampire. That drinks blood. And has chosen her cousin as her mate.
Tsukune and Moka sat in the back seat and just held hands. He could tell that the little confrontation rattled her nerves to some end, but she would quickly let it pass. Moka would definitely have to sit her down and have a chat once they returned home from their vacation in a weeks' time.
…..
"Moka? Is everything alright?" he said, picking up on her uneasiness through their bond.
"Oh yes, Tsukune. I'm just a little nervous, that's all" she stated as she gave his hand a gentle squeeze. She was indeed uneasy about riding the bullet train, but knew that as long as her mate was by her side, she would be just fine.
"Nervous, Moka?" he asked with concern in his voice.
"Well, yes. This will be my first time, after all" she hesitantly replied.
"First time?" Kasumi asked as she turned around in her seat and looked at Moka who was now blushing from the way she had unknowingly phrased her answer just a second ago.
"Yes. I've never done this before and I'm kind of anxious" Moka said as her blush developed in intensity. Tsukune finally understood what his mother was thinking and quickly interjected, before anybody jumped to a wrong conclusion like they normally would.
"Mom! It's nothing like that! She's just never ridden a train before, that's all! Please tell them Moka" he huffed out clearly exasperated at his mother's sudden conclusion.
"Oh yes. That's what I meant. What did you think I meant?" was the oblivious reply from the platinum-trussed maiden who was clueless to what Tsukune had reacted so harshly to.
"Uh, never mind. Look, we're here" Tsukune said as his dad pulled the car up along the sidewalk in front of the Shinkansen (bullet train) station. After placing the gears in neutral, everyone exited the vehicle to say their proper goodbyes. Tsukune opened the trunk, retrieved his and Moka's luggage and then placed them on the sidewalk adjacent to the car.
"Well, Sweetie. You two have a good time, okay? You can call us if anything comes up. We'll call you when we're on our way back so we can pick you up here at that time" Kasumi said as she gave her only offspring a warm hug. Moka joined in the hug as well.
"Thanks mom, dad. You guys have a good time, too. Tell Grandma I send my best" he replied once they ceased their embrace.
"Of course son. Have some fun for once. You two deserve it" Koji added with a grin.
"Misses Aono, I will take very good care of Tsukune. You have my word" Moka said with a polite bow.
"Thank you Moka dear. Please do. We'll see you two in a week" Kasumi said as she and her husband returned to the family vehicle. He then placed the engine in drive and made their way to head south towards Osaka. They were going to take the Shinkansen, but mutually decided a nice, leisurely drive would suit them just fine since they were in no rush.
"So Moka? All set?" Tsukune asked as he grabbed his suitcase. Moka smiled at and followed behind him into the actual train station itself. They were quite grateful that it was not too packed this morning and there would be a train along every 3 to 5 minutes or so.
The actual train ride to Tokyo would take roughly 25 minutes since the train's top speed was nearly 275 km per hour. Otherwise it would have taken nearly 2 hours via local train.
…..
The duo ambled up to the closest automated ticket machine and found the correct train that they would be traveling on towards the Tokyo-Metropolitan area. From the Tokyo station they decided beforehand to just take a taxicab to Roppongi since it would be quicker than taking two more, local trains instead.
Tsukune pulled out his wallet and inserted the correct amount of Yen into the automatic ticket machine and it issued two adult, one way tickets in exchange.
"Oh, thank you Tsukune" Moka replied as he presented the ticket to her as she held it over her heart.
"You're welcome, Moka. Don't get too attached to it; we have to place them in the slot when we pass through the turnstiles over there" he said as he lead her once again in the proper direction. He fed his ticket into the slot, which disappeared quickly and allowed him to pass through the turnstile with a 'clickity-click-click'. Moka repeated the action and smiled brightly seeing the machine "eat" her ticket up.
"That was neat" she quipped as they wandered over to a row of cushioned seats approximately 5 meters away from the train tracks.
"Um, Tsukune? Before when we were in the car...what did your mother think when I told her that this is my 'first time'?" Moka inquired with a hint of hesitation.
"Oh, well...she thought it meant...something...else" he replied as his face burned red with embarrassment. There was no way he could explain it any further, especially out in public. So he communicated it to her silently as he held her hands in his own, through their blood-bond.
"Oh...OH! Oh, my! How embarrassing!" she shouted as she buried her face in her hands.
"Moka, don't worry about it. I already explained it to her so it's okay. No worries" he said as he squeezed her hands gently.
"Your mother must think I'm a total pervert! Just imagine if I told her that you were my first," she lamented as she released his hands.
"Moka, she doesn't think of you that way. Wait a minute. Well, it's true that I was your first, and you were mine" he explained.
"See? That's not what I meant, Tsukune. You were the first person – I ever – drank blood from" Moka clarified with a whisper, hoping nobody was listening to their semi-private conversation.
"I know that's what you meant, so it's totally fine. No misunderstandings, see?" Tsukune said as he stood up from his seat since the long, silver, train was slowly approaching the platform. He grabbed his suitcase and offered his free hand to Moka who accepted it with a warm smile.
"Let's go Moka" he said as they stood off to the side and the sliding doors opened as a mass of bodies exited the train and on to the platform, heading off in their individual directions. Once the sea of people dispersed, Tsukune lead his wonderful mate into the train car and immediately found a window-side seat, which he offered to Moka so she could have an unobstructed view of the passing vicinity.
He stowed their luggage under their seats for the time being since it would be a fast trip.
"Thank you Tsukune" she warmly replied seeing his chivalrous generosity of offering her a seat first which was the window seat.
"No worries Moka. Let's just relax for a while. And we'll be in Tokyo before we even know it" he replied as he plopped down in the cozy seat beside her. She leaned back in her plush chair and smiled. She was quite excited truth be known. This was her first time, after all. Tsukune then helped her with the seat belt as a safety measure.
…...
The bullet train pulled out of the station and traveled down the tracks as it quickly accelerated to its top, safe speed. The digital odometer above the interconnecting doors read "275 KM/ HR" in blue LEDs.
Tsukune glanced over to his right and admired the young woman sitting next to him; her long, beautiful silver hair raining down her back, porcelain-white skin and piercing, ruby-red eyes. He knew in his heart that they were meant to be together and was actually glad things had eventually worked out in his favor. It wasn't exactly going to be easy, to make a life for themselves but he realized that as long as they had each other, it would somehow work out for the best. It always had somehow.
After everything they've been through since Moka literally came crashing into his life, it had definitely been strange. But in a good way. And now here they were on their way to their first vacation as an honest-to-goodness couple.
"So Moka..." Tsukune said to Moka since she had her face glued to the Plexiglas window and stared outside. "What do you think so far?" he continued.
"A lot of pretty trees" was her simple reply.
"I see. So, um, what are our plans – for tonight?" he asked Moka who was still hypnotized by the rapidly passing scenery. She then turned her attention to him and was smiling brightly. Her cheeks were lightly flush for some reason or other he had noticed.
"Well, I was thinking, maybe we could could - go out into the city and have a – date" was the upfront answer.
"A d-date?" he stuttered out.
"Well, yes. We are 'dating', aren't we Tsukune? I'd like for us to go out like a real couple should. Please Tsukune? We haven't done anything that 'normal' couples do since we left Yokai" she sadly replied.
"Of course we're dating, Moka. I'd like that - too. But you do know that I've never had a girlfriend before I met you. I mean we did go out once while we were still at Yokai, but it ended up being a 'training session' instead, remember?" he sadly answered.
"I see. Well it's true it was to train your senses, but we're together now Tsukune and I want to live a normal, happy life with you. I know that my appearance sticks out like a sore thumb and people have been staring at me all morning, but I frankly don't care about that, Tsukune. As long as you're in my life, none of that matters anymore. You're my everything."
"You're right Moka. I've always loved you for who you are. And it doesn't matter to me if you have pink hair or silver hair. Because...Moka is always Moka and you mean the world to me, too" he said as she leaned over and hugged her firmly.
"Oh Tsukune...thank you. I do love you so very much" she replied as a swell of love in her heart grew and caused her to experience a wave of giddiness to wash over her, from his always-honest answer.
"O-of course Moka...and I love you too."
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS. NOW APPROACHING TOKYO JR EAST STATION. PLEASE WAIT UNTIL THE TRAIN COMES TO A COMPLETE STOP BEFORE GATHERING YOUR BELONGINGS. NEXT STOP TOKYO JR EAST. THANK YOU VERY MUCH."
Tsukune and Moka ceased their embrace temporarily and waited for the bullet train to come to a halt. A few minutes later, Moka assisted her mate in retrieving their luggage from underneath their seats. They then stood up and made their way to the closest exit and waited for the train to gradually slow down as it entered the train station.
As the doors whooshed open a a few moment laters, dozens of passengers poured out like oil onto the platform, and went their separate ways.
Tsukune held Moka's hand, as the path was now clear for their turn to disembark the train.
Once they were eventually off the train, Tsukune took a good look around himself and marveled at the amount of people in the general area. This was without a doubt the metropolis known as Tokyo.
"Tsukune, this way love" Moka politely instructed as she made her way out of the train station when she spotter a sign saying "EXIT TO STREET" and onto the main road and searched for a taxicab. The weather had warmed up a bit and it was indeed a wonderful, spring morning without a cloud in the azure blue sky.
She then spotted a bright yellow checkered cab a few seconds later. She waved it down to the side of the busy road and once the driver pulled over, the duo climbed into the back seat. Moka then gave the driver the address of her former home in Roppongi, which was just a short drive from the JR East Train Station.
…..
Roppongi is a ward in Tokyo that is well known as the city's most popular nightlife district among foreigners, offering a large number of foreigner-friendly bars, restaurants and night clubs. Roppongi and the surrounding districts of Azabu, Hiroo and Akasaka are home to many embassies, and a large refugee community.
Thanks to the appearance of several art museums, Roppongi has also developed a reputation as a cultural center. The National Art Center is Japan's largest art museum, and together with Roppongi Hills' Mori Art Museum and Tokyo Midtown's Suntory Museum of Art forms the "Art Triangle Roppongi".
Approximately 10 minutes later the cab finally arrived in Roppongi. Tsukune was quite surprised to say the very least. He had heard rumors that this was one of the richest areas in all of Tokyo, but had never actually been there before until now.
….
Once all this finally sunk in, he recalled that Moka's family was indeed very wealthy.
Moka asked the driver to drop the pair off on a side road, which was just a short walk to her building. She then pulled out her wallet from her purse and paid the driver his fare along with a very generous tip. Moka exited the cab first followed by Tsukune who pulled their luggage out a moment later. She then grabbed her own with a bright smile.
"Tsukune, this way," she lightly instructed as she tugged on his free hand in the direction of her former home at Roppongi Hills.
"Okay, Moka. Lead the way," he happily replied.
"Wow, Moka. This is a really nice area. So much different than back home," he added a minute later, noticing all the recently-built skyscrapers, and shopping malls.
"Yes, Tsukune. There's several nightclubs and art museums around here as well. It's a very nice area for a date" she told him, as they rounded the corner and were now in front of Moka's former home.
Mid-Town Tower. A massive eighty story building.
"Moka, you lived here?!", he shouted as they make their way to the front entrance.
"Yes, Tsukune. For my five years while I attended school nearby."
Once they arrived inside the massive, marble lobby, Moka opened her purse and presented her resident ID card to the clerk on duty at the front desk. The clerk in turn gave her the key-card to the apartment on the penthouse floor.
"Okay, Tsukune. This way," she informed him once he found his bearings inside the monolithic stone foyer.
Moka then walked up to a row of elevators and pressed the 'up' button, her mate following closely behind her.
…..
Once the express elevator arrived, the silver, metallic, mechanical door slid open, they then stepped inside. Moka then passed her key-card in front of the sensor on the control panel, indicating her floor number. Eighty.
The door then slid closed. The elevator quickly ascended to the predetermined destination. Tsukune felt somewhat disoriented as the elevator car rapidly accelerated upward at a breakneck velocity. He had to grab the brass handrail behind himself, so he wouldn't tumble. Moka saw his bewildered dismay, and helped him to gain his balance.
"Thanks Moka," he sheepishly replied as he nearly toppled to the floor.
"No problem, Tsukune. Sorry, I should've warned you beforehand" she softly told him. He just hugged her warmly as gratitude.
The elevator started to gradually slow down a minute or so later, indicating they were nearly at their stop. The penthouse floor.
* ding ding *
As the doors swooshed open, Moka made a right turn down the hallway to her apartment.
After walking for what seemed like eternity, Moka stopped in front of a large wooden door, with an electronic locking mechanism on top of where the door handle should be. She swiped her key-card down through the slot on front, unlocking it. A small green light indicated to her that the door was now open.
She walked inside and removed her shoes in the entrance way. Tsukune followed behind her, mimicking her actions.
"Oh my Kami!", he bellowed upon seeing the interior of her 'apartment'. Dark wooden floors, a ten-foot ceiling. To his left, there was a huge ceiling to floor window, offering a panoramic view of the surrounding area, including Tokyo Tower, the recently built Sky Tree, and the rest of the city, off in the distance.
"Tsukune. Here, follow me please," she gently suggested.
"Oh, sure thing Moka. Right behind you."
Moka's former apartment was quite impressive to say the very least. It was easily over 2,500 square feet.
"Over here is the kitchen and dining area," she pointed out, indicating the large stainless steel stove, matching sink, and a double-wide refrigerator. He also noticed marble counter tops, with bands of 24 karat gold interlaced throughout the black and white, marbleized design. In the dining room, there was a medium-sized, rectangular-shaped Lucite dining table with four matching red chairs.
"Over here is the living room," she added, as she continued on her tour.
There was a huge "L" shaped black, leather couch, across from a fifty-five inch, high-definition, LED flat-screen TV that hung on the wall. A matching coffee table was in front of the sofa, made of dark-stained Oak. On either end of the couch was a two meter tall lamp with a 'mushroom' shaped top made from frosted glass.
She then walked down a short hallway that ran perpendicular alongside the living-room.
…..
"And here is the bathroom, and here is my bedroom," she announced. There was another bedroom across from her own, which was her former step-mother's, but did not mention.
"I must say Moka, this is a great apartment. I'm really surprised," he said after the grand tour.
"Well, like I said before; it's all paid for. I just have no use for this place. Lots of sad memories," she said as she quickly hugged him.
"I know, Moka. I'm sorry I didn't know you back then," he told her, as she embraced him firmer. Growing up in the human world for five, solitary years, was in no way easy for her as she never had a true friend who had ever accepted her for who she truly was, up until she met Tsukune.
"But, you can always make, new, happy memories," he hinted to her with a wink.
"Really, Tsukune?", she answered as she looked into his soft, chocolate brown eyes.
"Yes, Moka. Really," he stated as he impulsively kissed her, parting her soft, pink lips with his tongue. That had caused her breath to hitch at the sudden jolt of affection, catching her entirely off guard. She then moaned in absolute delight.
Breaking their kiss for air a few minutes later, Moka looked up to her very best friend. The one person in the entire world who had accepted her, all of her, despite the fact that she was the furthest from being anything but normal, and had fallen madly in love with.
"Tsukune...?"
"Yes Moka?"
"Can we – you know. Please, don't make me say – it" she whispered as she leaned against his chest as she embraced him firmly; suddenly overcome with a warm wave of love and adoration for him. Truthfully, she wanted to much closer to him even though they had already committed their lives to each other through their blood-bond.
"O-of course Moka...if that's what you want" he replied returning her warm hug.
"Please...take good care of me, Tsukune" was her cuter-than-average request.
…..
A/N:
I am DONE! I worked on this chapter for most of the day and it took me nearly 10 hours to get it just right. I know it seems similar to chapter 7 from my original R+V fic "Date and a Vampire". I only used it as a general guide...mostly as an outline. This is about 95% all-new material.
I decided to break up the "Golden Week" chapter, as it will most likely continue for at least 2 more chapters. Part 2 will be out soon (in about a week; after New Year's Day) and it will be Rated M, as it will include a Lemon scene towards the beginning. So it will be a complete story arc. :)
Much thanks to my very good friends and Beta Readers for their continued support: Train48, CorlessLawliet, Onyx2589, and edichter from deviantArt.
A big shout out to Kazuki2292 from FF dot net. Thank you very much for your continuous support and your friendship. It really means a lot to me! ^_^ *Hug*
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 5: "Secrets"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated K.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
Takes place shortly after Tsukune and Moka's Graduation from Yokai Academy.
Friday, April 27th. Human world, Kanazawa, Japan.
…..
After leaving the yokai realm and saying goodbye to their classmates, the long black limo arrived roughly thirty minutes later in the human world; specifically Tsukune's hometown of Kanazawa, which is the the capital of Ishikawa prefecture, on the main Island of Honshu, Japan. It's located facing the Sea of Japan.
By train it's about 2 to 3 hours west of the Tokyo metropolitan area.
Moka opened the moon-roof, stuck her head out and admired the beautiful, late Springtime weather. Dozens of Sakura trees were still in bloom, painting the background scenery in their soft, pink petals.
Tsukune gave the driver directions to his house, which was only a short drive away.
He then retrieved his cellphone from his jacket pocket and called his folks to expect their imminent arrival.
Kasumi and Koji waited outside their home for their son's return once they finished their brief call.
Approximately ten minutes later, they spotted a twenty-foot long black limousine pull up in front of the two story, pastel blue house. The driver stopped the car, placed it in park, and turned of the engine.
Tsukune opened the passenger-side door, walked up to his parents who were waving rather enthusiastically and smiling the entire time. They both had immediately noticed that their only son had grown up so much over the last two years. He was much taller and not as frail looking as he was during his freshman year.
"Welcome, home sweetie. We missed you so much" his mom said as she shed a few tears of joy. She was happy to be a whole family, once again. His dad Koji was glad to have his boy home, plus he could tease him now that he finally has a girlfriend after all these years!
Moka was emotionally moved, seeing just how much his parents missed her boyfriend / secret fiance'.
…..
After his parents released him from their embrace, he ran back to the limo as Moka was still sitting inside. He opened the door for her so she, as the real Moka could meet his parents. She had met the both of them previously through her 'other self' during summer break of their first year.
Moka exited the limo with great trepidation. She stood behind her mate and did her best to hide the fear of being outright rejected. The silver-haired maiden honestly wished her pink-haired self was still around; she was so much better in these types of situations and wasn't as frightful looking as she was now in her true, unsealed form.
No more Rosary to hide behind.
Koji and Kasumi approached the beautiful, but strange-looking girl with long hair that went down past her knees, the color of the moon; who their son had talked about whenever he would call and had asked for permission to bring her home, since they were now dating. This was Moka? Why did she look so different from what they remembered?
"Um, Mom, dad. You remember Moka Akashiya...she's my girlfriend now. I told you that we were now dating on the phone this morning" Tsukune said as he held her hand firmly. He knew she was feeling quite uneasy through their bond and would do whatever it would take to make sure she felt welcome in his home.
It was something they both knew and today all the secrets would be revealed. Moka forced a weak smile to her lips and did her best to remain calm and composed. But Tsukune assured her earlier that everything would work out for the best. They were more than just mates, but the very best of friends as well and Moka had complete faith in him. After everything they've endured, they both honestly deserved to be happy and live a stress-free life.
…..
Koji examined the young woman in question who seemed to be somewhat on the quiet, shy side. Didn't she have bubble-gum pink hair and eyes the color of emeralds before? Kasumi was stumped as well. This exceptionally attractive, young woman was most definitely Moka, but she looked completely different from when they first met and had gotten to know each other better.
'Maybe she likes to cosplay?' his parents both silently wondered.
"Good afternoon, Mister and Misses Aono" Moka said with a polite bow, her hands folded in front of her.
"Good afternoon, Miss Akashiya. It's good to – see you again" Kasumi replied in a likewise fashion.
"Good afternoon, Miss Akashiya. Welcome to our home" Koji offered with a bow of his own.
"Thank you very much" Moka replied as she stood up.
Once the pleasantries were out of the way, Koji and Tsukune offered to help the chauffeur carry Moka's three, huge trunks into the house.
When they were finished, the driver returned to the limousine, turned the engine back on, placed the gears in drive and headed off to return to Shuzen Castle in the yokai realm.
Moka waited by the front door, mentally cursing at herself thinking this was all a huge mistake. How would her mate's parents react to the truth; knowing that she's a real, live vampire; they had accidentally enrolled their son into a high school for monsters, and was now a vampire himself just because he wanted to stay by her side and be her friend?
"Moka dear, there's no need to be shy. Please, come in. Our home is your home" Kasumi happily offered the vampiress who was still standing outside on the steps, with a warm, welcoming smile.
"Thank you Misses Aono" Moka said as she walked through the threshold and removed her shoes, per the Japanese custom when entering someone's house. Tsukune walked back downstairs once Moka's belongings were brought to the guestroom, which would now be her own bedroom and was next door to Tsukune's room.
"Um, Mom, dad. We would like to have a long talk before anything else" Tsukune said in a calm voice. He held Moka's hand lovingly, quietly telling her everything would somehow work out for the best. That's what he was planning anyway and hoped they wouldn't over-react like they normally do, especially his mom who had a bad habit of fainting!
"Sure thing, sweetie," his mom replied as she and Koji lead the way into the living-room.
….
Tsukune and Moka sat on the beige, microfiber love seat next to the matching couch his parents sat upon with a questioning look across their brows. They both wondered what was going on and why their son was being on the serious side. Maybe it had to do with Moka's 'new look' they secretly speculated between themselves.
"Go ahead, son. We're listening" Koji said, trying to 'get the ball rolling' if it were.
Moka decided to remain silent for the time being and to only speak up when she felt the opportunity would be relevant for her do so. This was not going to be easy, but she and Tsukune came to a mutual agreement; if they were going to spend the rest of their lives together, then the truth had to be told. Every detail revealed regarding the time they first met during their freshman year of high school and the fact that Moka is a vampire plus how Tsukune had become one as well.
No more secrets.
"Well, mom dad...there's something we need to tell you...but you have to promise to relax and have an open mind. What I'm about to tell you is the truth...about Yokai Academy, about Moka, and...myself."
They both looked at each other with an inquisitive look, curious about what was going on and why their son was speaking the way he was. He had undoubtedly matured a lot. They then nodded in agreement for him to go on and say what was on his mind.
"Oh boy...well...Yokai Academy isn't what you thought it was...it's a school for ayashi...like vampires...like Moka. You should've guessed by the name alone. Yokai is another word for 'monster'" he said as looked to his right and gave Moka a knowing nod.
"What are you talking about sweetie? I don't quite understand" Kasumi said with a hint of doubt followed with uncertainty. Koji was just as clueless.
Ayashi?
Yokai?
Monsters?
Moka is a Vampire? That drinks blood?
Monsters only exist in movies, books and ancient myths, right?
"Mister and Misses Aono. What Tsukune said is the truth. When you first met me two years ago, I had pink hair and green eyes. That was only a 'disguise' if it were. A pseudo-personality. I also wore a large, Silver Rosary 'cross' around my neck? Remember, Misses Aono? That Rosary was a magically-enchanted item that was used to 'seal' up my power. That Rosary was created by my mother when I was only a child. The side effect was my other half – my other personality. The Rosary held back the true me you see sitting here right now in front of you. I know it sounds impossible, but it's an absolute fact."
Koji and Kasumi digested what this young woman had just told them a moment ago. It couldn't be true, could it? Vampires actually exist? The scary monsters that would come into someone's room in the middle of the night and drink their blood and turn them into one of them? If it were true, what other monsters were out there that lurked in the darkness, awaiting their next midnight snack?
"Tsukune? This is a joke, right? Monsters really don't exist" his father said, knowing very well that his wife was either about to freak out or faint. He was doing his best best to stay level-headed for both their sakes.
…..
"It's the truth, dad. I had met the 'other' Moka on the first day of school when she ran into me with her bicycle..." Tsukune said as he began to tell the long, story of how he first met Moka. Actually both Mokas. How he had come to her rescue, after he was ready to leave the Academy, once he found out its true, terrifying nature and knew he would never fit in.
He went on to tell them that he nearly died at the hands of the 'Student Police' and that Moka had saved his life with her own blood. How he had eventually turned into a Ghoul, due to receiving more blood from Moka on three other, separate occasions. Moka told his folks that she tried to push him away before all that happened, but being the idiot he was, had stayed at Yokai Academy for her sake since she needed a friend.
Tsukune went on with telling them how 'Outer' Moka had 'died' last year when Alucard attacked and how he had saved her life with his blood once he tore off the Holy Lock which lead to his complete transformation into a vampire. That then lead to the demon's demise when they had both stopped his rampage.
His parents listened intently to the every detail – the looks on their faces changed from mild fascination, to sadness and then to that of absolute horror. And they could see Moka's face as she relived every happy, sad, or painful memory as it played out in her mind, once again.
Moka stayed silent and vigilant for the most part, making sure he didn't leave out any important information or details.
"So...sweetie...you're a...vampire now?" Kasumi said with uncertainty, once she and Koji digested the tale their son told them, which took a few hours and it was already evening once he eventually finished with his story.
"I'm sorry mom, but yes, I'm a vampire now. If it weren't for Moka, I wouldn't be here today and never would have survived my high school years" he said with a regretful tear.
"Misses Aono. You must please understand. I had no other choice than to do what I had to do in order to save his life, even though I knew the consequences of what would have happened to him. He was my very first friend...my best friend! And I couldn't – I couldn't let him die...If there were any other way...I – I... " Moka said as she broke down in tears and sobbed heavily. She did her very best to remain calm, but had failed miserably.
"You did what you had to do. And we thank you, Moka dear. Thank you for saving Tsukune's life. I know if there were another way, you would have...but from what I understand, he was dying...because he had protected you...when you weren't able to...so thank you, Moka..." Kasumi said as she shed some tears as well. Her heart reached out to this beautiful young woman, who had brought her son back from death's door on several occasions over the past few years.
She stood up, walked over to Moka, leaned down to her level, and gave her a heartfelt hug.
"Thank you Moka...and...welcome home" Kasumi told her.
Moka cried even more-so as her soon-to-be mother-in-law embraced her. Moka's shoulders shook heavily, feeling relieved as her mate's parents warmly welcomed her for who she is. Kasumi had not only opened up her heart, but her home to the vampire princess as well. Even though she is the real Moka, Kasumi could see in her red, tear-stained eyes the love she held for her one-and-only son. They had both saved each others lives and Tsukune's parents were very grateful for that.
Koji glanced over to the two women in front of him and actually believed the rather long-winded story and had learned to accept it. Tsukune on the other hand was feeling as if a heavy weight had been lifted from his shoulders. Hopefully his parents would also accept the fact that he and Moka were mates and were pretty much already engaged, but that could wait for another time, he silently told himself. It was a lot of information to digest, after all.
Several awkward minutes later, Kasumi released Moka from their long hug and stood up, motioning for her husband to follow her into the kitchen so dinner could be get started. Besides, a mother knows best when her son needs some time alone with his girlfriend.
…..
"Moka? Are you...feeling better now?" he asked as she reached to his mate and held her hands in her own.
"Yes Tsukune. Thank you...for everything. I'm glad that your parents believed our story and have considered the fact that we're both vampires...I was quite worried earlier, but right now...I'm just really happy...and well, I was wondering if you'd like to...maybe – if it's – not too much to ask" Moka said as she leaned against him and embraced him lovingly. She rubbed her large, firm bosom against his chest as she was feeling quite frisky now, all of a sudden wanting to be much closer to him on an intimate level.
Taking the not-so-subtle hint, he slightly opened his mouth and brushed his wet tongue against her warm flesh which caused her to moan with wanton desire. He then pierced her dainty neck with his fangs and began drinking her sweet, precious blood in small, satisfying slurps.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...oh Kami...hah-hhngh...Mm-mmm...ahhhhnn..." Moka groaned with arousal as she was becoming considerably stimulated and was feeling a hundred times more love towards her blood-mate. She held him even firmer as she gently pushed him off the beige couch and onto the carpeted floor below.
Tsukune was getting rather turned on himself, truth be told, even though they were still in the living-room. He was thankful to his folks for giving them some well-deserved privacy, at least until dinner was ready. He turned her around as he took the dominant position on top of her. She grinned brightly as she basked in her release rather vocally. Tsukune quickly retracted his fangs and kissed her feverishly; preventing her from any further exclamations of ecstasy.
Once the pair had calmed down, Tsukune got off the carpeted floor and offered Moka a hand up, so they could return to the soft love seat and await the time until dinner was ready, which would be anytime soon. The wonderful scent permeated the entire house and had caused their stomachs to rumble with approval.
Kasumi walked back into the living-room and thought she heard something, but wasn't quite sure what it was.
"Tsukune...Moka...why don't you two go upstairs and change out of your school uniforms? Dinner will be ready soon" Kasumi suggested to the pair whose faces were quite red for some odd reason.
"Oh, sure mom. We'll be down shortly" her son replied as the pair stood up from the couch and made their way towards the stairs.
"Not a problem sweetie" his mother replied with a smile. She was quite happy and content knowing that her one and only offspring found such a wonderful young woman like Moka and was quite thankful for everything she had done for him since they had inadvertently sent him off to a high school for monsters of all places. They had no clue at the time and were just relieved to send him to a school that was rather lenient when it came to admitting new students, since Tsukune had failed his high school entrance exam in the first place.
'Well, maybe it was fate that lead him to Yokai Academy after all, even if it was a dangerous place. He may be a vampire as is Moka but he seems to be quite happy I suppose. And Moka does care deeply for him' Kasumi mused as she returned to the kitchen to finish cooking dinner for the family with Koji's assistance.
...
"Moka, I'll see you in a few minutes, okay?" Tsukune told his wonderful girlfriend as they went to their individual rooms to change into something more comfortable.
"Okay love. I'll see you shortly" she replied with an adorable wink that caused him blush furiously.
"Oh yeah, of course" he muttered before closing his door behind himself. Honestly, Moka was to damn cute for her own good and was beginning to act more like her 'Outer' self since they had become blood-mates just two days ago. This was a new side to the real Moka and it would take some time to get used to.
Once he had calmed himself down he made his way over to his closet and rummaged through it to find something decent to wear. After debating for several minutes, he eventually decided on a short-sleeved, cotton dress shirt, aqua in color, along with a pair of tan cargo pants. He then opened his bedroom door and made his way to the restroom to brush out his always-disheveled hair that he let grow out for the past several months and attempted to not look like he had just woken up with a bad case of 'bed head'.
When he was finally satisfied with his hair looking normal for once, he walked down the long hallway to Moka's new bedroom. Then it hit him: he and Moka would be living together in the same house, even though he had already asked his folks permission to do so.
*knock * knock * knock * he tapped on the old, wooden door. As Moka opened the door, Tsukune nearly passed out from a massive nosebleed when she had answered, looking radiant as always.
"Uh, hi Moka. Um...you look - beautiful" he sputtered out. She was wearing a simple, burgundy blouse that fit her in all the proper places and a black skirt that came down to just above her knees. No doubt about it, Moka had an absolutely flawless body that could give the world's top 'super models' a run for their money. She was also wearing a little blush on her cheeks and light, red lip-gloss that made her lips appear even more plump than they actually were.
"Thank you Tsukune. You look very nice yourself" she replied as she gave him a bashful smile.
'Oh Kami...beautiful doesn't even cut it...she looks absolutely gorgeous' the raven-hair teen thought quietly.
"Um...thanks Moka. Um, let's head downstairs before I pass out" he said as she grabbed his hand and made their way downstairs to have their first dinner together with his parents. She snickered at his comment that caused her heart to hammer heavily in her ample chest.
...
As the duo walked down the stairs and into the dining room, Kasumi asked Moka to meet her in the kitchen for a moment as she had something she wanted to ask her, woman to woman. Tsukune took his seat at the long, wooden table and waited for her to return when she was finished speaking with his mother, which worried him to some extent, but had faith in Moka.
"Yes, Misses Aono? You wanted to speak with me?" Moka asked as Kasumi motioned for her to have a seat at the round, high-top table in the far corner of the kitchen. The vampiress noticed that dinner was about finished cooking and the scent was wonderful.
"Moka dear. How do you feel about my son? About Tsukune? Honestly now" Kasumi inquired as she folded her hands together and rested them on the tabletop.
"I love your son Tsukune with all my heart, Misses Aono. He's my everything" Moka replied as she remained unphased by the sudden questioning with complete honesty.
"I can tell Moka. I can see it in your eyes whenever he looks at you, or you at him. I apologize for sounding so serious, but - Tsukune never had a girlfriend all throughout junior high like most boys at that age. He was always alone. Never had any friends. Well, real friends. Even in elementary school. He's an only child as you know. The only other girl his age was my husband's brother's daughter, Kyoko. You met her when you visited here the first time we met. She was always very protective of him while they were growing up, even though she's only two years older than him. So I ask you as a woman, please take care of my boy. I knew the minute he had called this morning asking us to let him bring you home...that you were the one who had won his heart. And thank you again Moka for watching out for him and saving his life. I wasn't too keen on knowing he's...no longer human anymore...but he's still Tsukune. Just knowing that he has you in his life now, means a lot. And I can see that you're still the same sweet, kind and wonderful girl he'd talk about whenever he'd call home and tell us how he was doing in school" Kasumi said to Moka as she shed a few tears of joy.
Moka stood up from her chair and gave her mate's mother a warm embrace, as she was on the verge of tears herself.
"Thank you Misses Aono for accepting me into your home. You have my word, I will take very good care of Tsukune because he means the world to me. And thank you for giving us a chance" Moka said as she released Kasumi a moment later.
"You're welcome, Moka dear. Would you mind giving me a hand and bring the food out to the table?"
"Oh yes. Of course. I'd love to help out, Misses Aono" Moka replied with a warm smile. The vampire princess was actually quite relieved to some extent. Things were definitely improving in her life. She wanted to do her best to blend in and be part of a real, loving family.
As the two women entered the dining room, Koji assisted Kasumi in setting the table while Tsukune helped Moka with the piping hot dinner that was in a casserole type dish. it was a Italian lasagna, made from scratch.
Moka blushed hard when their fingers brushed against each others. Kasumi noticed that immediately and snickered at their adorable antics. The Aono household matriarch knew without a shadow of a doubt that her son had finally found his one, true love.
Hopefully they would do the right thing and get married someday, since they were living in the same house, and all. But she knew that they were just starting out as a young couple in love and were taking their time to really get to know each other. If she had a clue to the true nature of their 'relationship' she'd most likely pass out from shock, due to information overload! Besides, her son is so shy when it comes to the fairer sex? Right?
Yeah, riiiiiiiiight.
...
Dinner was amazing and went on without a hitch. Moka politely asked Kasumi to give her some pointers as she wanted to try out some dishes and desired to share in the household chores, especially when it came to learning new recipes. Tsukune told his mom about the first dinner she had made him just after they became an official couple. His mom was quite impressed to say the least.
Conversation was light and amusing as Moka and Tsukune entertained his folks with wild tales that sounded far-fetched and could be considered fantasy or sci-fi in nature, but the vampire couple assured them that they were indeed the absolute truth. There's no way the stories could be false as neither one of them had that such a wild imagination to make them up on the spot!
Moka insisted on helping Kasumi clean up, but she had shooed the vampiress out of the kitchen and told her she could help out make breakfast tomorrow morning if she took it easy for the remainder of the night and try to relax. Moka then walked into the living-room to see what her mate was up to. Koji had to make a phone-call since him and the misses would be heading out of town tomorrow since it was 'Golden Week' and his office was closed for the official, week-long holiday.
Tsukune was resting on the long, beige couch in the living-room with a remote control clutched in his hand and was trying to find something to watch on the 45 inch plasma TV that hung on the wall on the opposite side of the room.
"Hey Moka"
"Hello Tsukune"
"So, um...you told my mom about wanting to learn some new recipes, huh?"
"Well yes. Since I'm living here now, I thought it would be - fun to learn some new dishes to cook."
"I see. Well, whatever you make will be awesome, no doubt about it."
"Flattery will get you everywhere" she said with a smirk.
"Oh I wasn't trying to - oh. I get it. That's pretty funny."
"Well, I am trying Tsukune. And living here with you will be a learning experience. At least I have you in my life now and I won't be so - alone...anymore" she said with a hint of depression in her voice.
Tsukune picked up on her mood that was quickly deteriorating.
He knew what she went through when she was younger and had attended school in the human world. She was constantly being ridiculed and ostracized for her bizarre appearance and for saying that yokai were indeed very real.
She was called 'freak' and 'idiot' for just being herself and it honestly hurt his heart knowing he couldn't do a damn thing about it.
If only he had met her back then maybe things wouldn't have been as bad as they were for her and she wouldn't have had such a strong hatred against humans, which dissolved the moment she literally came crashing into Tsukune's life. That was no mere coincidental accident. It was meant to happen. And they were both better off for it, in more ways than one.
He then wrapped his strong arms around her waist and embraced her firmly, yet lovingly. He knew all of this when they first performed the blood-bonding of mate-ship just a short, two days ago.
"It's okay Moka. You don't have to be alone anymore" he said with absolute sincerity and kissed her dainty neck.
"Ah...Tsukune...thank you love. It's true. I really don't want to be alone. It's no fun" she said with a slight pout.
"It's not a problem Moka. I know what you mean. I love you and I'll do my best to help you fit in since we're now living together."
"Oh yes, that would be nice, Tsukune. Would it be - okay if - we...slept together tonight?" Moka beseeched with a cuter-than-average blush once they ended their hug while still sitting on the couch.
"Ah...well...um...we'd have to be...quite though" he said with an even harder blush, as he picked up on her equivocal request.
"I understand Tsukune. I just want...to be near you tonight. It is my first time sleeping in your house -"
"Our house Moka. This is your home too, don't ever forget that, okay? Your bedroom is right next to mine, so I'm not that far away" he told her with a warm smile that caused her heart to beat faster than she could recall in recent time. He was genuinely concerned about her overall happiness and well-being.
"Thank you Tsukune, that really means a lot to me. I do love you so very much."
"There's no need Moka. It's really not a big deal. We could go upstairs now if you'd like. I'll tell my folks we're gonna 'unpack'" he said with an all knowing wink.
...
"Oh yes, that's an excellent idea" Moka said with a wink of her own.
"What's an excellent idea?" Kasumi said as she walked into the the living-room and saw that her son and his girlfriend were sitting rather close to each other on the sofa and had that look in their eyes, but let it quickly pass as teenage hormones.
You know what look. *wink wink - nudge nudge *
The "I want to jump your bones" look.
"Oh mom, if it's alright, we're gonna go upstairs and unpack. We had a pretty hectic day and we also might turn in early" Tsukune told his mom as he and Moka stood up from the couch, walked over to her and then gave her a group hug.
"Oh my...that's fine. I understand. You two deserve a break after-all" Kasumi told the pair as she returned the surprise embrace which only lasted a few moments.
"Thanks and goodnight, mom" Tsukune said as she grabbed Moka's right hand and made a swift beeline for the stairs.
"Goodnight, Misses Aono!" Moka said as she was lead up the stairwell and out of sight. Kasumi followed the pair towards the stairs and had one more thing to add.
"Sweetie! I almost forgot...your father and I are going on vacation starting tomorrow! It's Golden Week!" she shouted up the narrow stairway. Tsukune walked halfway down and looked at her with an inquisitive look.
"Golden Week?" he repeated.
"Yes sweetie. I guess you forgot. Your father's office is closed until next week. We're going to visit your grandma in Osaka and we won't be home until next Friday. Will you and Moka be okay?" she asked with a motherly, worried look across her brow. After such an interesting day, it had completely slipped her mind to inform him of their excursion when he came home. Moka heard the entire conversation with her extra-sensitive ears and was by Tsukune's side a few seconds later.
"We'll be fine Misses Aono. As a matter of fact, just gave me a fantastic idea" Moka added once she and her mate walked all the way downstairs once again.
"What kind of idea Moka?" Tsukune wondered. His mother was quite curious as well, truth be told.
"Well, I was thinking, Tsukune. Maybe we could take a little vacation of our own as well, if your parents don't object, that is" Moka answered with a small smile.
"Vacation? Where to?" Tsukune wondered aloud.
"Well, I just so happen to have access to my step-mother's condominium in Roppongi. Mid-Town Tower in Roppongi Hills, actually. It's all paid for and I lived there while I attended school in Tokyo until I was old enough to attend Yokai" Moka explained.
"I see. Well, I don't have any objections and I do trust you two, just be safe - wait. Why am I telling you two to be safe for? I'm pretty sure that you can take care of yourselves after hearing your wild story of punching a hole through a kaiju sized monster that was the oldest vampire. I still can't get over hearing - all that. Anyway, I'll let your father know about your sudden vacation plans. We can drive you two to the train station in the morning, so get plenty of rest. We're heading out at nine AM. Alright now, shoo. Off you go. Pack what you need and we'll see you two in the morning. And no fooling around. Goodnight now" Kasumi said as she turned the pair around and patted their butts in a motherly, teasing manner.
"Goodnight mom" the couple said in unison as they raced up the stairs and into their individual rooms to pack their bags for their unanticipated trip to Tokyo in the morning. Kasumi blushed hearing Moka call her 'mom' even if the silver-trussed vampires was playing along in a teasing manner. Now that it sunk in, she was now thinking how nice it would be for Moka to call her that on a regular basis. Frankly she always wanted to have a daughter, but a daughter-in-law would be just as nice or even better, she now thought.
...
Once the duo reached his room, Tsukune had something he needed to ask of his wonderful girlfriend and her so-called vacation plans.
"Hey Moka? Why did you tell my mom that we're going to Tokyo? I don't have that kind of money even though I saved up of most of what they would send for my monthly allowance while I went to Yokai. I mean I do have quite a lot saved up, but it wouldn't be enough to support us if we go to Roppongi or even anywhere in Tokyo for a week" he said with an exasperated look.
"Well, because it's true Tsukune. You know that I attended school here in the human world after I received my Rosary from my real mother. I was only 10 years old at the time and was sent to live with Gyokuro Shuzen, my sister Kokoa's mother, since my mother was - well you know. And you don't have to worry about any expenses. I receive a monthly allowance as well and I just want to spend more time with you. I know how much being financially stable means to you, but it's not an issue, love. As you are my mate, it's my responsibility to take care of you financially. So you really don't have to work so hard. Besides when I turn 19 next month, I'll inherit my mother's entire fortune that took her well over 200 years to accumulate. You'll never have to worry about anything since you're my mate. I want to do this Tsukune. You've already proven your place by my side. Words are inadequate for how much I love you. So please, let me do this Tsukune. Please my love. I need to be closer to you" Moka said as she quickly glomped him and pushed him onto his bed; overwhelmed with love, adoration and affection towards him.
Tsukune knew Moka's family was wealthy, but had no clue just how well off she actually was. It was something she never really talked about since it was rather embarrassing to to some extent.
"Moka...I - really - don't know what to say...thank you Moka. Let's start our vacation - tomorrow then" he said as he picked up on her honest feelings through her words and their blood-bond. He returned her hug as she gently sobbed into his chest.
Once the waterworks ceased a few minutes later Moka sat up and smiled at Tsukune. She was quite ecstatic once he agreed to her little plan. She may not even be able to sleep tonight, knowing very well that she'll be spending an entire week alone with him.
"Thank you Tsukune. This really means a lot to me. I guess we should get packed for our trip then. Be sure to bring along enough clothes and toiletries for at least a week and I'll see you back here when I'm done packing as well" Moka told him with a chaste kiss on his lips. She then jumped off the soft mattress and made her way to the door. She then opened it and stepped into the hallway so she could could return to her room and prepare herself for their upcoming sabbatical to Tokyo.
"Anytime Moka. I'll see you when you're done" he replied as he hopped of his bed then walked over to his closet and began to pull out various articles of clothing that would be appropriate since it was still early spring and the weather would be getting warmer soon enough. He then made his way to the restroom located at the end of the upstairs hallway to find the toiletries he would need as well. He then returned to his room to pack everything he had decided to bring along to Tokyo.
...
*knock * knock * knock * was heard on his door once he closed his suitcase up.
"Come in, Moka" he replied as he placed his luggage on the carpeted floor at the foot of his bed.
"How'd you know it was me?" she asked once she opened his door then made her way inside and plopped herself on his bed. She was dressed in a cute nightgown, maroon in color with a scoop neckline that offered a generous view of her awe-inspiring cleavage. The hem of the bottom flared outward and rested a few centimeters, just above her knees.
She was holding a pink pillow across her ample bosom from her bedroom as well and then placed it next to his.
"I -uh just knew. I could sense your yokai close by. Um...by the way Moka...you uh - look really nice" he said as his face flushed bright crimson when he saw what she was wearing for the remainder of the night.
"Oh thank you Tsukune. I really want to sleep nude, but I will do my best keep to our promise to your mom" she replied as she placed both of her hands atop her cheeks in an adorable fashion, as she too was quite embarrassed to some extent from his always honest compliment.
"Anytime Moka...I uh, guess we should go to bed soon. It's getting kinda late" he said to Moka as she then crawled under the soft bedding and made herself comfortable.
'Oh man...why do I have to be turned on right now? What the hell's wrong with me? It's like I have no self control!' he mentally scolded himself. He had promised his mother that they would behave themselves and wouldn't 'fool around'. It was not going to be easy but would do his best to hold himself back as well. He then walked over to the door and locked it, just in case either of his parents had the bright idea to peek in on him during the night. It wasn't very likely to happen but would do so in order to avoid any unwarranted visits.
After the ebony-haired male turned off the overhead light, he quickly undressed himself and placed his neatly folded clothes on top of his computer desk near the window. Soon after he climbed into his bed and laid down on Moka's right hand side.
"Goodnight Tsukune. I love you."
"Goodnight Moka. I love you too."
"Um, Tsukune...would you like - a goodnight kiss? If you want to of course. It's okay if you don't."
"Of course Moka. What kind of boyfriend would say no to that?"
"Not a very bright one, I suppose" was her dry reply. He laughed heartily at her impromptu joke.
Yes, Moka was slowly opening up and was showing her cute side more and more.
After their last kiss of the night, the young couple held each other closely and eventually drifted off to sleep.
Tomorrow would be the start of their very first vacation together and thankfully it would go along smoothly.
They could hardly wait!
..........................
A/N:
[color=#9D0A0A]Happy Holidays to my loyal Watchers, Friends and Followers! ^_^[/color]
Did I surprise you with a new chapter and just before Christmas? I know I said this would be out after Christmas but I worked really hard to get it done before. I actually started on this chapter the same day I uploaded the previous one 'Graduation' (Dec. 21st) and worked on it until almost 2 AM, Dec. 24th, 2013.
So here it is. I hope that you enjoyed it and if you did, please leave a brief comment. It would mean a lot to me if you did, since I really worked my butt off to get it up before I said I would. It only takes a second. It's okay if you don't but I would appreciate if you did. All feedback is welcome as long as it stays on topic, LOL.
Much thanks once again to my Beta Readers for their continued support: CorlessLawliet, Train48, Onyx2589 and edicther from deviantArt. You guys rock. ^_^
Chapter 5: "Secrets"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated K.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
Takes place shortly after Tsukune and Moka's Graduation from Yokai Academy.
Friday, April 27th. Human world, Kanazawa, Japan.
…..
After leaving the yokai realm and saying goodbye to their classmates, the long black limo arrived roughly thirty minutes later in the human world; specifically Tsukune's hometown of Kanazawa, which is the the capital of Ishikawa prefecture, on the main Island of Honshu, Japan. It's located facing the Sea of Japan.
By train it's about 2 to 3 hours west of the Tokyo metropolitan area.
Moka opened the moon-roof, stuck her head out and admired the beautiful, late Springtime weather. Dozens of Sakura trees were still in bloom, painting the background scenery in their soft, pink petals.
Tsukune gave the driver directions to his house, which was only a short drive away.
He then retrieved his cellphone from his jacket pocket and called his folks to expect their imminent arrival.
Kasumi and Koji waited outside their home for their son's return once they finished their brief call.
Approximately ten minutes later, they spotted a twenty-foot long black limousine pull up in front of the two story, pastel blue house. The driver stopped the car, placed it in park, and turned of the engine.
Tsukune opened the passenger-side door, walked up to his parents who were waving rather enthusiastically and smiling the entire time. They both had immediately noticed that their only son had grown up so much over the last two years. He was much taller and not as frail looking as he was during his freshman year.
"Welcome, home sweetie. We missed you so much" his mom said as she shed a few tears of joy. She was happy to be a whole family, once again. His dad Koji was glad to have his boy home, plus he could tease him now that he finally has a girlfriend after all these years!
Moka was emotionally moved, seeing just how much his parents missed her boyfriend / secret fiance'.
…..
After his parents released him from their embrace, he ran back to the limo as Moka was still sitting inside. He opened the door for her so she, as the real Moka could meet his parents. She had met the both of them previously through her 'other self' during summer break of their first year.
Moka exited the limo with great trepidation. She stood behind her mate and did her best to hide the fear of being outright rejected. The silver-haired maiden honestly wished her pink-haired self was still around; she was so much better in these types of situations and wasn't as frightful looking as she was now in her true, unsealed form.
No more Rosary to hide behind.
Koji and Kasumi approached the beautiful, but strange-looking girl with long hair that went down past her knees, the color of the moon; who their son had talked about whenever he would call and had asked for permission to bring her home, since they were now dating. This was Moka? Why did she look so different from what they remembered?
"Um, Mom, dad. You remember Moka Akashiya...she's my girlfriend now. I told you that we were now dating on the phone this morning" Tsukune said as he held her hand firmly. He knew she was feeling quite uneasy through their bond and would do whatever it would take to make sure she felt welcome in his home.
It was something they both knew and today all the secrets would be revealed. Moka forced a weak smile to her lips and did her best to remain calm and composed. But Tsukune assured her earlier that everything would work out for the best. They were more than just mates, but the very best of friends as well and Moka had complete faith in him. After everything they've endured, they both honestly deserved to be happy and live a stress-free life.
…..
Koji examined the young woman in question who seemed to be somewhat on the quiet, shy side. Didn't she have bubble-gum pink hair and eyes the color of emeralds before? Kasumi was stumped as well. This exceptionally attractive, young woman was most definitely Moka, but she looked completely different from when they first met and had gotten to know each other better.
'Maybe she likes to cosplay?' his parents both silently wondered.
"Good afternoon, Mister and Misses Aono" Moka said with a polite bow, her hands folded in front of her.
"Good afternoon, Miss Akashiya. It's good to – see you again" Kasumi replied in a likewise fashion.
"Good afternoon, Miss Akashiya. Welcome to our home" Koji offered with a bow of his own.
"Thank you very much" Moka replied as she stood up.
Once the pleasantries were out of the way, Koji and Tsukune offered to help the chauffeur carry Moka's three, huge trunks into the house.
When they were finished, the driver returned to the limousine, turned the engine back on, placed the gears in drive and headed off to return to Shuzen Castle in the yokai realm.
Moka waited by the front door, mentally cursing at herself thinking this was all a huge mistake. How would her mate's parents react to the truth; knowing that she's a real, live vampire; they had accidentally enrolled their son into a high school for monsters, and was now a vampire himself just because he wanted to stay by her side and be her friend?
"Moka dear, there's no need to be shy. Please, come in. Our home is your home" Kasumi happily offered the vampiress who was still standing outside on the steps, with a warm, welcoming smile.
"Thank you Misses Aono" Moka said as she walked through the threshold and removed her shoes, per the Japanese custom when entering someone's house. Tsukune walked back downstairs once Moka's belongings were brought to the guestroom, which would now be her own bedroom and was next door to Tsukune's room.
"Um, Mom, dad. We would like to have a long talk before anything else" Tsukune said in a calm voice. He held Moka's hand lovingly, quietly telling her everything would somehow work out for the best. That's what he was planning anyway and hoped they wouldn't over-react like they normally do, especially his mom who had a bad habit of fainting!
"Sure thing, sweetie," his mom replied as she and Koji lead the way into the living-room.
….
Tsukune and Moka sat on the beige, microfiber love seat next to the matching couch his parents sat upon with a questioning look across their brows. They both wondered what was going on and why their son was being on the serious side. Maybe it had to do with Moka's 'new look' they secretly speculated between themselves.
"Go ahead, son. We're listening" Koji said, trying to 'get the ball rolling' if it were.
Moka decided to remain silent for the time being and to only speak up when she felt the opportunity would be relevant for her do so. This was not going to be easy, but she and Tsukune came to a mutual agreement; if they were going to spend the rest of their lives together, then the truth had to be told. Every detail revealed regarding the time they first met during their freshman year of high school and the fact that Moka is a vampire plus how Tsukune had become one as well.
No more secrets.
"Well, mom dad...there's something we need to tell you...but you have to promise to relax and have an open mind. What I'm about to tell you is the truth...about Yokai Academy, about Moka, and...myself."
They both looked at each other with an inquisitive look, curious about what was going on and why their son was speaking the way he was. He had undoubtedly matured a lot. They then nodded in agreement for him to go on and say what was on his mind.
"Oh boy...well...Yokai Academy isn't what you thought it was...it's a school for ayashi...like vampires...like Moka. You should've guessed by the name alone. Yokai is another word for 'monster'" he said as looked to his right and gave Moka a knowing nod.
"What are you talking about sweetie? I don't quite understand" Kasumi said with a hint of doubt followed with uncertainty. Koji was just as clueless.
Ayashi?
Yokai?
Monsters?
Moka is a Vampire? That drinks blood?
Monsters only exist in movies, books and ancient myths, right?
"Mister and Misses Aono. What Tsukune said is the truth. When you first met me two years ago, I had pink hair and green eyes. That was only a 'disguise' if it were. A pseudo-personality. I also wore a large, Silver Rosary 'cross' around my neck? Remember, Misses Aono? That Rosary was a magically-enchanted item that was used to 'seal' up my power. That Rosary was created by my mother when I was only a child. The side effect was my other half – my other personality. The Rosary held back the true me you see sitting here right now in front of you. I know it sounds impossible, but it's an absolute fact."
Koji and Kasumi digested what this young woman had just told them a moment ago. It couldn't be true, could it? Vampires actually exist? The scary monsters that would come into someone's room in the middle of the night and drink their blood and turn them into one of them? If it were true, what other monsters were out there that lurked in the darkness, awaiting their next midnight snack?
"Tsukune? This is a joke, right? Monsters really don't exist" his father said, knowing very well that his wife was either about to freak out or faint. He was doing his best best to stay level-headed for both their sakes.
…..
"It's the truth, dad. I had met the 'other' Moka on the first day of school when she ran into me with her bicycle..." Tsukune said as he began to tell the long, story of how he first met Moka. Actually both Mokas. How he had come to her rescue, after he was ready to leave the Academy, once he found out its true, terrifying nature and knew he would never fit in.
He went on to tell them that he nearly died at the hands of the 'Student Police' and that Moka had saved his life with her own blood. How he had eventually turned into a Ghoul, due to receiving more blood from Moka on three other, separate occasions. Moka told his folks that she tried to push him away before all that happened, but being the idiot he was, had stayed at Yokai Academy for her sake since she needed a friend.
Tsukune went on with telling them how 'Outer' Moka had 'died' last year when Alucard attacked and how he had saved her life with his blood once he tore off the Holy Lock which lead to his complete transformation into a vampire. That then lead to the demon's demise when they had both stopped his rampage.
His parents listened intently to the every detail – the looks on their faces changed from mild fascination, to sadness and then to that of absolute horror. And they could see Moka's face as she relived every happy, sad, or painful memory as it played out in her mind, once again.
Moka stayed silent and vigilant for the most part, making sure he didn't leave out any important information or details.
"So...sweetie...you're a...vampire now?" Kasumi said with uncertainty, once she and Koji digested the tale their son told them, which took a few hours and it was already evening once he eventually finished with his story.
"I'm sorry mom, but yes, I'm a vampire now. If it weren't for Moka, I wouldn't be here today and never would have survived my high school years" he said with a regretful tear.
"Misses Aono. You must please understand. I had no other choice than to do what I had to do in order to save his life, even though I knew the consequences of what would have happened to him. He was my very first friend...my best friend! And I couldn't – I couldn't let him die...If there were any other way...I – I... " Moka said as she broke down in tears and sobbed heavily. She did her very best to remain calm, but had failed miserably.
"You did what you had to do. And we thank you, Moka dear. Thank you for saving Tsukune's life. I know if there were another way, you would have...but from what I understand, he was dying...because he had protected you...when you weren't able to...so thank you, Moka..." Kasumi said as she shed some tears as well. Her heart reached out to this beautiful young woman, who had brought her son back from death's door on several occasions over the past few years.
She stood up, walked over to Moka, leaned down to her level, and gave her a heartfelt hug.
"Thank you Moka...and...welcome home" Kasumi told her.
Moka cried even more-so as her soon-to-be mother-in-law embraced her. Moka's shoulders shook heavily, feeling relieved as her mate's parents warmly welcomed her for who she is. Kasumi had not only opened up her heart, but her home to the vampire princess as well. Even though she is the real Moka, Kasumi could see in her red, tear-stained eyes the love she held for her one-and-only son. They had both saved each others lives and Tsukune's parents were very grateful for that.
Koji glanced over to the two women in front of him and actually believed the rather long-winded story and had learned to accept it. Tsukune on the other hand was feeling as if a heavy weight had been lifted from his shoulders. Hopefully his parents would also accept the fact that he and Moka were mates and were pretty much already engaged, but that could wait for another time, he silently told himself. It was a lot of information to digest, after all.
Several awkward minutes later, Kasumi released Moka from their long hug and stood up, motioning for her husband to follow her into the kitchen so dinner could be get started. Besides, a mother knows best when her son needs some time alone with his girlfriend.
…..
"Moka? Are you...feeling better now?" he asked as she reached to his mate and held her hands in her own.
"Yes Tsukune. Thank you...for everything. I'm glad that your parents believed our story and have considered the fact that we're both vampires...I was quite worried earlier, but right now...I'm just really happy...and well, I was wondering if you'd like to...maybe – if it's – not too much to ask" Moka said as she leaned against him and embraced him lovingly. She rubbed her large, firm bosom against his chest as she was feeling quite frisky now, all of a sudden wanting to be much closer to him on an intimate level.
Taking the not-so-subtle hint, he slightly opened his mouth and brushed his wet tongue against her warm flesh which caused her to moan with wanton desire. He then pierced her dainty neck with his fangs and began drinking her sweet, precious blood in small, satisfying slurps.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...oh Kami...hah-hhngh...Mm-mmm...ahhhhnn..." Moka groaned with arousal as she was becoming considerably stimulated and was feeling a hundred times more love towards her blood-mate. She held him even firmer as she gently pushed him off the beige couch and onto the carpeted floor below.
Tsukune was getting rather turned on himself, truth be told, even though they were still in the living-room. He was thankful to his folks for giving them some well-deserved privacy, at least until dinner was ready. He turned her around as he took the dominant position on top of her. She grinned brightly as she basked in her release rather vocally. Tsukune quickly retracted his fangs and kissed her feverishly; preventing her from any further exclamations of ecstasy.
Once the pair had calmed down, Tsukune got off the carpeted floor and offered Moka a hand up, so they could return to the soft love seat and await the time until dinner was ready, which would be anytime soon. The wonderful scent permeated the entire house and had caused their stomachs to rumble with approval.
Kasumi walked back into the living-room and thought she heard something, but wasn't quite sure what it was.
"Tsukune...Moka...why don't you two go upstairs and change out of your school uniforms? Dinner will be ready soon" Kasumi suggested to the pair whose faces were quite red for some odd reason.
"Oh, sure mom. We'll be down shortly" her son replied as the pair stood up from the couch and made their way towards the stairs.
"Not a problem sweetie" his mother replied with a smile. She was quite happy and content knowing that her one and only offspring found such a wonderful young woman like Moka and was quite thankful for everything she had done for him since they had inadvertently sent him off to a high school for monsters of all places. They had no clue at the time and were just relieved to send him to a school that was rather lenient when it came to admitting new students, since Tsukune had failed his high school entrance exam in the first place.
'Well, maybe it was fate that lead him to Yokai Academy after all, even if it was a dangerous place. He may be a vampire as is Moka but he seems to be quite happy I suppose. And Moka does care deeply for him' Kasumi mused as she returned to the kitchen to finish cooking dinner for the family with Koji's assistance.
...
"Moka, I'll see you in a few minutes, okay?" Tsukune told his wonderful girlfriend as they went to their individual rooms to change into something more comfortable.
"Okay love. I'll see you shortly" she replied with an adorable wink that caused him blush furiously.
"Oh yeah, of course" he muttered before closing his door behind himself. Honestly, Moka was to damn cute for her own good and was beginning to act more like her 'Outer' self since they had become blood-mates just two days ago. This was a new side to the real Moka and it would take some time to get used to.
Once he had calmed himself down he made his way over to his closet and rummaged through it to find something decent to wear. After debating for several minutes, he eventually decided on a short-sleeved, cotton dress shirt, aqua in color, along with a pair of tan cargo pants. He then opened his bedroom door and made his way to the restroom to brush out his always-disheveled hair that he let grow out for the past several months and attempted to not look like he had just woken up with a bad case of 'bed head'.
When he was finally satisfied with his hair looking normal for once, he walked down the long hallway to Moka's new bedroom. Then it hit him: he and Moka would be living together in the same house, even though he had already asked his folks permission to do so.
*knock * knock * knock * he tapped on the old, wooden door. As Moka opened the door, Tsukune nearly passed out from a massive nosebleed when she had answered, looking radiant as always.
"Uh, hi Moka. Um...you look - beautiful" he sputtered out. She was wearing a simple, burgundy blouse that fit her in all the proper places and a black skirt that came down to just above her knees. No doubt about it, Moka had an absolutely flawless body that could give the world's top 'super models' a run for their money. She was also wearing a little blush on her cheeks and light, red lip-gloss that made her lips appear even more plump than they actually were.
"Thank you Tsukune. You look very nice yourself" she replied as she gave him a bashful smile.
'Oh Kami...beautiful doesn't even cut it...she looks absolutely gorgeous' the raven-hair teen thought quietly.
"Um...thanks Moka. Um, let's head downstairs before I pass out" he said as she grabbed his hand and made their way downstairs to have their first dinner together with his parents. She snickered at his comment that caused her heart to hammer heavily in her ample chest.
...
As the duo walked down the stairs and into the dining room, Kasumi asked Moka to meet her in the kitchen for a moment as she had something she wanted to ask her, woman to woman. Tsukune took his seat at the long, wooden table and waited for her to return when she was finished speaking with his mother, which worried him to some extent, but had faith in Moka.
"Yes, Misses Aono? You wanted to speak with me?" Moka asked as Kasumi motioned for her to have a seat at the round, high-top table in the far corner of the kitchen. The vampiress noticed that dinner was about finished cooking and the scent was wonderful.
"Moka dear. How do you feel about my son? About Tsukune? Honestly now" Kasumi inquired as she folded her hands together and rested them on the tabletop.
"I love your son Tsukune with all my heart, Misses Aono. He's my everything" Moka replied as she remained unphased by the sudden questioning with complete honesty.
"I can tell Moka. I can see it in your eyes whenever he looks at you, or you at him. I apologize for sounding so serious, but - Tsukune never had a girlfriend all throughout junior high like most boys at that age. He was always alone. Never had any friends. Well, real friends. Even in elementary school. He's an only child as you know. The only other girl his age was my husband's brother's daughter, Kyoko. You met her when you visited here the first time we met. She was always very protective of him while they were growing up, even though she's only two years older than him. So I ask you as a woman, please take care of my boy. I knew the minute he had called this morning asking us to let him bring you home...that you were the one who had won his heart. And thank you again Moka for watching out for him and saving his life. I wasn't too keen on knowing he's...no longer human anymore...but he's still Tsukune. Just knowing that he has you in his life now, means a lot. And I can see that you're still the same sweet, kind and wonderful girl he'd talk about whenever he'd call home and tell us how he was doing in school" Kasumi said to Moka as she shed a few tears of joy.
Moka stood up from her chair and gave her mate's mother a warm embrace, as she was on the verge of tears herself.
"Thank you Misses Aono for accepting me into your home. You have my word, I will take very good care of Tsukune because he means the world to me. And thank you for giving us a chance" Moka said as she released Kasumi a moment later.
"You're welcome, Moka dear. Would you mind giving me a hand and bring the food out to the table?"
"Oh yes. Of course. I'd love to help out, Misses Aono" Moka replied with a warm smile. The vampire princess was actually quite relieved to some extent. Things were definitely improving in her life. She wanted to do her best to blend in and be part of a real, loving family.
As the two women entered the dining room, Koji assisted Kasumi in setting the table while Tsukune helped Moka with the piping hot dinner that was in a casserole type dish. it was a Italian lasagna, made from scratch.
Moka blushed hard when their fingers brushed against each others. Kasumi noticed that immediately and snickered at their adorable antics. The Aono household matriarch knew without a shadow of a doubt that her son had finally found his one, true love.
Hopefully they would do the right thing and get married someday, since they were living in the same house, and all. But she knew that they were just starting out as a young couple in love and were taking their time to really get to know each other. If she had a clue to the true nature of their 'relationship' she'd most likely pass out from shock, due to information overload! Besides, her son is so shy when it comes to the fairer sex? Right?
Yeah, riiiiiiiiight.
...
Dinner was amazing and went on without a hitch. Moka politely asked Kasumi to give her some pointers as she wanted to try out some dishes and desired to share in the household chores, especially when it came to learning new recipes. Tsukune told his mom about the first dinner she had made him just after they became an official couple. His mom was quite impressed to say the least.
Conversation was light and amusing as Moka and Tsukune entertained his folks with wild tales that sounded far-fetched and could be considered fantasy or sci-fi in nature, but the vampire couple assured them that they were indeed the absolute truth. There's no way the stories could be false as neither one of them had that such a wild imagination to make them up on the spot!
Moka insisted on helping Kasumi clean up, but she had shooed the vampiress out of the kitchen and told her she could help out make breakfast tomorrow morning if she took it easy for the remainder of the night and try to relax. Moka then walked into the living-room to see what her mate was up to. Koji had to make a phone-call since him and the misses would be heading out of town tomorrow since it was 'Golden Week' and his office was closed for the official, week-long holiday.
Tsukune was resting on the long, beige couch in the living-room with a remote control clutched in his hand and was trying to find something to watch on the 45 inch plasma TV that hung on the wall on the opposite side of the room.
"Hey Moka"
"Hello Tsukune"
"So, um...you told my mom about wanting to learn some new recipes, huh?"
"Well yes. Since I'm living here now, I thought it would be - fun to learn some new dishes to cook."
"I see. Well, whatever you make will be awesome, no doubt about it."
"Flattery will get you everywhere" she said with a smirk.
"Oh I wasn't trying to - oh. I get it. That's pretty funny."
"Well, I am trying Tsukune. And living here with you will be a learning experience. At least I have you in my life now and I won't be so - alone...anymore" she said with a hint of depression in her voice.
Tsukune picked up on her mood that was quickly deteriorating.
He knew what she went through when she was younger and had attended school in the human world. She was constantly being ridiculed and ostracized for her bizarre appearance and for saying that yokai were indeed very real.
She was called 'freak' and 'idiot' for just being herself and it honestly hurt his heart knowing he couldn't do a damn thing about it.
If only he had met her back then maybe things wouldn't have been as bad as they were for her and she wouldn't have had such a strong hatred against humans, which dissolved the moment she literally came crashing into Tsukune's life. That was no mere coincidental accident. It was meant to happen. And they were both better off for it, in more ways than one.
He then wrapped his strong arms around her waist and embraced her firmly, yet lovingly. He knew all of this when they first performed the blood-bonding of mate-ship just a short, two days ago.
"It's okay Moka. You don't have to be alone anymore" he said with absolute sincerity and kissed her dainty neck.
"Ah...Tsukune...thank you love. It's true. I really don't want to be alone. It's no fun" she said with a slight pout.
"It's not a problem Moka. I know what you mean. I love you and I'll do my best to help you fit in since we're now living together."
"Oh yes, that would be nice, Tsukune. Would it be - okay if - we...slept together tonight?" Moka beseeched with a cuter-than-average blush once they ended their hug while still sitting on the couch.
"Ah...well...um...we'd have to be...quite though" he said with an even harder blush, as he picked up on her equivocal request.
"I understand Tsukune. I just want...to be near you tonight. It is my first time sleeping in your house -"
"Our house Moka. This is your home too, don't ever forget that, okay? Your bedroom is right next to mine, so I'm not that far away" he told her with a warm smile that caused her heart to beat faster than she could recall in recent time. He was genuinely concerned about her overall happiness and well-being.
"Thank you Tsukune, that really means a lot to me. I do love you so very much."
"There's no need Moka. It's really not a big deal. We could go upstairs now if you'd like. I'll tell my folks we're gonna 'unpack'" he said with an all knowing wink.
...
"Oh yes, that's an excellent idea" Moka said with a wink of her own.
"What's an excellent idea?" Kasumi said as she walked into the the living-room and saw that her son and his girlfriend were sitting rather close to each other on the sofa and had that look in their eyes, but let it quickly pass as teenage hormones.
You know what look. *wink wink - nudge nudge *
The "I want to jump your bones" look.
"Oh mom, if it's alright, we're gonna go upstairs and unpack. We had a pretty hectic day and we also might turn in early" Tsukune told his mom as he and Moka stood up from the couch, walked over to her and then gave her a group hug.
"Oh my...that's fine. I understand. You two deserve a break after-all" Kasumi told the pair as she returned the surprise embrace which only lasted a few moments.
"Thanks and goodnight, mom" Tsukune said as she grabbed Moka's right hand and made a swift beeline for the stairs.
"Goodnight, Misses Aono!" Moka said as she was lead up the stairwell and out of sight. Kasumi followed the pair towards the stairs and had one more thing to add.
"Sweetie! I almost forgot...your father and I are going on vacation starting tomorrow! It's Golden Week!" she shouted up the narrow stairway. Tsukune walked halfway down and looked at her with an inquisitive look.
"Golden Week?" he repeated.
"Yes sweetie. I guess you forgot. Your father's office is closed until next week. We're going to visit your grandma in Osaka and we won't be home until next Friday. Will you and Moka be okay?" she asked with a motherly, worried look across her brow. After such an interesting day, it had completely slipped her mind to inform him of their excursion when he came home. Moka heard the entire conversation with her extra-sensitive ears and was by Tsukune's side a few seconds later.
"We'll be fine Misses Aono. As a matter of fact, just gave me a fantastic idea" Moka added once she and her mate walked all the way downstairs once again.
"What kind of idea Moka?" Tsukune wondered. His mother was quite curious as well, truth be told.
"Well, I was thinking, Tsukune. Maybe we could take a little vacation of our own as well, if your parents don't object, that is" Moka answered with a small smile.
"Vacation? Where to?" Tsukune wondered aloud.
"Well, I just so happen to have access to my step-mother's condominium in Roppongi. Mid-Town Tower in Roppongi Hills, actually. It's all paid for and I lived there while I attended school in Tokyo until I was old enough to attend Yokai" Moka explained.
"I see. Well, I don't have any objections and I do trust you two, just be safe - wait. Why am I telling you two to be safe for? I'm pretty sure that you can take care of yourselves after hearing your wild story of punching a hole through a kaiju sized monster that was the oldest vampire. I still can't get over hearing - all that. Anyway, I'll let your father know about your sudden vacation plans. We can drive you two to the train station in the morning, so get plenty of rest. We're heading out at nine AM. Alright now, shoo. Off you go. Pack what you need and we'll see you two in the morning. And no fooling around. Goodnight now" Kasumi said as she turned the pair around and patted their butts in a motherly, teasing manner.
"Goodnight mom" the couple said in unison as they raced up the stairs and into their individual rooms to pack their bags for their unanticipated trip to Tokyo in the morning. Kasumi blushed hearing Moka call her 'mom' even if the silver-trussed vampires was playing along in a teasing manner. Now that it sunk in, she was now thinking how nice it would be for Moka to call her that on a regular basis. Frankly she always wanted to have a daughter, but a daughter-in-law would be just as nice or even better, she now thought.
...
Once the duo reached his room, Tsukune had something he needed to ask of his wonderful girlfriend and her so-called vacation plans.
"Hey Moka? Why did you tell my mom that we're going to Tokyo? I don't have that kind of money even though I saved up of most of what they would send for my monthly allowance while I went to Yokai. I mean I do have quite a lot saved up, but it wouldn't be enough to support us if we go to Roppongi or even anywhere in Tokyo for a week" he said with an exasperated look.
"Well, because it's true Tsukune. You know that I attended school here in the human world after I received my Rosary from my real mother. I was only 10 years old at the time and was sent to live with Gyokuro Shuzen, my sister Kokoa's mother, since my mother was - well you know. And you don't have to worry about any expenses. I receive a monthly allowance as well and I just want to spend more time with you. I know how much being financially stable means to you, but it's not an issue, love. As you are my mate, it's my responsibility to take care of you financially. So you really don't have to work so hard. Besides when I turn 19 next month, I'll inherit my mother's entire fortune that took her well over 200 years to accumulate. You'll never have to worry about anything since you're my mate. I want to do this Tsukune. You've already proven your place by my side. Words are inadequate for how much I love you. So please, let me do this Tsukune. Please my love. I need to be closer to you" Moka said as she quickly glomped him and pushed him onto his bed; overwhelmed with love, adoration and affection towards him.
Tsukune knew Moka's family was wealthy, but had no clue just how well off she actually was. It was something she never really talked about since it was rather embarrassing to to some extent.
"Moka...I - really - don't know what to say...thank you Moka. Let's start our vacation - tomorrow then" he said as he picked up on her honest feelings through her words and their blood-bond. He returned her hug as she gently sobbed into his chest.
Once the waterworks ceased a few minutes later Moka sat up and smiled at Tsukune. She was quite ecstatic once he agreed to her little plan. She may not even be able to sleep tonight, knowing very well that she'll be spending an entire week alone with him.
"Thank you Tsukune. This really means a lot to me. I guess we should get packed for our trip then. Be sure to bring along enough clothes and toiletries for at least a week and I'll see you back here when I'm done packing as well" Moka told him with a chaste kiss on his lips. She then jumped off the soft mattress and made her way to the door. She then opened it and stepped into the hallway so she could could return to her room and prepare herself for their upcoming sabbatical to Tokyo.
"Anytime Moka. I'll see you when you're done" he replied as he hopped of his bed then walked over to his closet and began to pull out various articles of clothing that would be appropriate since it was still early spring and the weather would be getting warmer soon enough. He then made his way to the restroom located at the end of the upstairs hallway to find the toiletries he would need as well. He then returned to his room to pack everything he had decided to bring along to Tokyo.
...
*knock * knock * knock * was heard on his door once he closed his suitcase up.
"Come in, Moka" he replied as he placed his luggage on the carpeted floor at the foot of his bed.
"How'd you know it was me?" she asked once she opened his door then made her way inside and plopped herself on his bed. She was dressed in a cute nightgown, maroon in color with a scoop neckline that offered a generous view of her awe-inspiring cleavage. The hem of the bottom flared outward and rested a few centimeters, just above her knees.
She was holding a pink pillow across her ample bosom from her bedroom as well and then placed it next to his.
"I -uh just knew. I could sense your yokai close by. Um...by the way Moka...you uh - look really nice" he said as his face flushed bright crimson when he saw what she was wearing for the remainder of the night.
"Oh thank you Tsukune. I really want to sleep nude, but I will do my best keep to our promise to your mom" she replied as she placed both of her hands atop her cheeks in an adorable fashion, as she too was quite embarrassed to some extent from his always honest compliment.
"Anytime Moka...I uh, guess we should go to bed soon. It's getting kinda late" he said to Moka as she then crawled under the soft bedding and made herself comfortable.
'Oh man...why do I have to be turned on right now? What the hell's wrong with me? It's like I have no self control!' he mentally scolded himself. He had promised his mother that they would behave themselves and wouldn't 'fool around'. It was not going to be easy but would do his best to hold himself back as well. He then walked over to the door and locked it, just in case either of his parents had the bright idea to peek in on him during the night. It wasn't very likely to happen but would do so in order to avoid any unwarranted visits.
After the ebony-haired male turned off the overhead light, he quickly undressed himself and placed his neatly folded clothes on top of his computer desk near the window. Soon after he climbed into his bed and laid down on Moka's right hand side.
"Goodnight Tsukune. I love you."
"Goodnight Moka. I love you too."
"Um, Tsukune...would you like - a goodnight kiss? If you want to of course. It's okay if you don't."
"Of course Moka. What kind of boyfriend would say no to that?"
"Not a very bright one, I suppose" was her dry reply. He laughed heartily at her impromptu joke.
Yes, Moka was slowly opening up and was showing her cute side more and more.
After their last kiss of the night, the young couple held each other closely and eventually drifted off to sleep.
Tomorrow would be the start of their very first vacation together and thankfully it would go along smoothly.
They could hardly wait!
..........................
A/N:
[color=#9D0A0A]Happy Holidays to my loyal Watchers, Friends and Followers! ^_^[/color]
Did I surprise you with a new chapter and just before Christmas? I know I said this would be out after Christmas but I worked really hard to get it done before. I actually started on this chapter the same day I uploaded the previous one 'Graduation' (Dec. 21st) and worked on it until almost 2 AM, Dec. 24th, 2013.
So here it is. I hope that you enjoyed it and if you did, please leave a brief comment. It would mean a lot to me if you did, since I really worked my butt off to get it up before I said I would. It only takes a second. It's okay if you don't but I would appreciate if you did. All feedback is welcome as long as it stays on topic, LOL.
Much thanks once again to my Beta Readers for their continued support: CorlessLawliet, Train48, Onyx2589 and edicther from deviantArt. You guys rock. ^_^
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 4: 'Graduation'
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated T.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
Takes place 2 days after Tsukune and Moka become mates.
Friday, April 27th. Graduation Day, Yokai Academy.
…..
After spending the past two nights getting to better know his mate Moka, Tsukune finally returned to his own dormitory so he could get himself ready for the Graduation ceremony that would begin at Noon, sharp. He was feeling somewhat dejected though since his family wasn't able to attend his special day. They were lead to believe that the monsters-only high school was in a remote mountainous region, located on the northernmost island of Japan.
He had nearly forgotten one important fact though: sine he and Moka were finally a real couple, to ask his folks if she could come home with him. The other girls weren't exactly delighted with his decision, but decided to accept his union with the vampire princess.
If they interjected yet again, they were most likely to incur Moka's wrath and she wouldn't be able hold herself back anymore. They had already accepted the painful truth and honestly wished to never be reminded of their place again!
After leaving his room dressed in his cap and gown over a simple short-sleeved white dress shirt and black slacks along with matching dress shoes, he made his way to the end of the long corridor to the payphones. After depositing the proper amount of change into the coin slot, he dialed the telephone number and waited patiently to speak to his parents.
After what seemed like forever, the other end finally answered.
…..
"Hello? Aono residence."
"Hi, Mom. It's me."
"Hello, sweetie. How are you doing?", his mother Kasumi inquired, with a hint of motherly concern in her voice.
"I'm doing fine, Mom. I'm still at school and the Graduation ceremony is in less than an hour...but I was wondering if it's okay...to um...well the thing is – um, I'd – kind of like to, uh, bring...someone home with me...one of my friends from the Academy...", he shyly wondered.
"Oh...I see...well, would this happen to be a female friend of yours from your 'harem'?", Kasumi inquired in a teasing manner.
"Mom! I don't have a harem! But...she's my very best friend...um...you met her two years ago...you remember Moka Akashiya, right?" he stated, becoming somewhat flustered by the passing second.
"Yes, sweetie. I remember her. Such a beautiful, young woman. She was sweet and very kind. So is Miss Akashiya your girlfriend now?" his mother teased, knowing very well her son gets quite rattled when it comes to members of the feminine persuasion.
Especially when it comes to the exceedingly attractive girls who had followed him home during summer break in his freshman year. It was right after the Newspaper Club had their outing to the human world for their beach side barbeque and his female friends basically broke into this home and caused a huge mess.
Plus on top of that, had used their powers out in the open therefore exposing their true, yokai existence. However, Moka was the exception.
The vampiress had went to his home in a properly, normal manner. When Kasumi answered the door and saw this angelic girl asking for her son, she nearly fainted due to Moka's otherworldly flawless beauty. Frankly, the pink-haired young woman was far too gorgeous for her own good!
Tsukune was reasonably rendered speechless and suddenly caught of guard by his mother's rather bold assertion. She was absolutely right though. Mothers do know best, it would seem. Out of all the girls she had met, Moka was the model of perfection in every sense of the word. She was soft spoken, very polite, kindhearted and genuinely cared for her son.
"Uh...yeah...she...she confessed that she's in love with me just two days ago and I had the chance to finally tell her that I'm in love with her, too...hahaha", he blushingly replied.
"Well, if her family doesn't mind, then I don't see why not. You''ll be nineteen soon and I trust you, sweetie. I'm sure your father won't mind either, but you two will have to be on your best behavior, though."
"Thanks, mom. We'll be home later on this afternoon, once Moka gets permission from her family."
"You're welcome, sweetie. We'll see you when you get back, then. Tell that lovely girl I send my regards. And congratulations on your Graduation. Bye sweetie."
"Okay, we'll see you then...thanks, Mom. We'll see you soon. Bye."
He then hung up the receiver and made a beeline to tell Moka the good news, grinning like an idiot the entire way.
Tsukune was happy his mother got along so well with Moka. Well, the 'Outer' Moka. He would have to explain to his parents about the real Moka, the Academy, and about him now being a vampire. He prayed that they would accept the unusual news with an open heart and not freak out like they normally do.
…..
Once Tsukune exited the boy's dormitory, his mate and girlfriend Moka greeted him, who was also sporting her sea-green colored graduation cap and gown, near the front door with a smile and a hug.
"Good morning, Tsukune."
"Good morning, Moka" he said as he returned her warm embrace.
"You seem like you're in a good mood," Moka told him as they made their way down the worn-out pathway that leads to the school building to join their classmates for the commencement that would take place in less than an hour from now.
"Well, yeah. I um, just called my parents a few minutes ago."
"Oh I see. Did you mention to them about us?" she asked while she slid her hand into his own and held it in a loving gesture.
"Uh, yeah. I told my mom about us dating now and asked if it's alright for you to come home with me," he replied as he gave her hand a gentle squeeze.
"Really Tsukune?" she asked, as she suddenly stopped, quite surprised by the unexpected news.
"Well, of course Moka. Now that we're mates, I can't imagine you not being in my life. I love you very much and I really want us to be together. I don't want to go home without you. You're my everything, Moka" he said as he swiftly wrapped his arms around her and hugged her tightly, overcome with his honest feelings for her.
"Oh Tsukune...I feel the same way about you, my love. I'm sure my Father will allow us to be together. And I know that he approves of you, otherwise you'd be dead already," Moka replied as the love in her chest swelled for her mate and very best friend.
Her feelings for Tsukune were more clear than ever before. She was definitely falling even deeper in love with him, if that were even possible.
Once the couple ended their longer-than-average hug, they mutually decided to head to the gymnasium and join their classmates since it was nearly eleven thirty in the morning.
...
As they arrived a few minutes later, their homeroom teacher, Miss Shizuka Nekonome greeted the duo at the doorway. She was actually dressed normally for once in a conservative, black pants-suit, and not wearing a mini-skirt or revealing blouse of any type.
"Good morning you two, ~nya. We're just about ready to start. Have a seat in the first row. Your names are on you chairs, so please go ahead and find them" she told them with a smile.
"Thank you, Sensei" they said with a bow in unison, which caused the bakeneko to giggle at their adorable behavior like an old, married couple that's been together for 50 years or more.
One half of the gymnasium was set aside for the graduating seniors while the other side was set up for the student's families and friends.
Moka noticed her father and sisters sitting in the crowd. She offered them a wave of her hand. They returned the gesture with a simple nod. Kokoa however, waved heartily to her big sister.
Most of their classmates were already seated according to their last names, a few rows back from the stage. Yukari waved rather energetically at the vampire duo with a bright grin. Mizore offered her friends a small smile as well and Kurumu just glanced at them, doing her best to ignore them.
The Headmaster was seated on the stage next to the majority of the faculty, going over his speech which was written on 3 by 5 index cards. He glanced up for a moment and saw that his two favorite students had finally arrived. Truth be told he'd actually miss them, but he knew they had both been quite the model students and had grown up so much since their first year.
His assistant Ruby sat on his right-hand side, looking peaceful, yet sad. She had made several long-lasting friendships since first coming to the Academy over 2 years ago, after being 'rescued' by Tsukune and his friends in the Newspaper Club. She was honestly going to miss them once they left later today.
'Hold it together...it's a happy, joyous occasion for your friends...don't cry...don't you dare cry...they have their own...lives to live now...oh Tsukune...' Ruby silently told herself. She had to be strong and remain professional. If she broke down now, it would look bad for the Headmaster who had helped her change her life around for the better. She had a purpose now and thoroughly enjoyed her job at Yokai Academy.
Tsukune thanked his lucky stars and his 'Guardian Angel', Moka for keeping watch over him when he first arrived at the yokai high school hidden away from the human world by a magical, invisible barrier. On top of that, they were actually seated next to each other, no doubt the handiwork of the creepy-as-always Headmaster.
"Tsukune? Is everything alright?" Moka asked once they sat down and mentally prepared themselves for the actual commencement to start any time now. She knew through their blood-bond that something was deeply troubling him.
…..
"Well, yeah. I just wish...my family could be here today to see this" he said with a hint of sadness in his voice. Moka's heart immediately went out to him, as she shared his pain and uneasiness. She then reached over to him, placed her left hand on top of his and squeezed it affectionately.
"I know that they're proud of you love...because I'm very proud of you myself" she told him with a warm, loving smile.
"Thanks, Moka. That really means a lot to me" he replied, feeling somewhat better now.
"You're welcome Tsukune. You know that you can always count on me to be here for you, no matter what...because I love you so very much."
"I know Moka...and you can count on me, because I love you too."
"Thank you Tsukune."
"You're welcome Moka" he replied with a warm smile as he already felt better. He knew that as long as Moka was in his life, everything would work out somehow.
While the students talked among themselves, the Headmaster approached the podium, ready to begin the commencement ceremony for the graduating students.
"Ladies and gentlemen, students, faculty and honored guests. Welcome to Yokai Academy's Graduation Ceremony for the class of 20XX."
A generous round of applause was rewarded as the excitement grew, mainly from the student's side of the gymnasium.
"It gives me great pleasure to welcome you today. But before we begin, I would like to extend an invitation to the following students, who if not for their bravery and sacrifice, this Academy would not remain standing, along with the entire planet. With their help, the terrorist group known as 'Fairy Tale' and the demon Alucard was defeated, once and for all nearly a year ago. Aono Tsukune, Akashiya Moka, Kurono Kurumu, Shirayuki Mizore and Sendo Yukari. Please make your way up to the stage at this time." the Headmaster announced, drawing a collective gasp of astonishment from the five students, just mentioned a moment ago. They were left completely clueless due to the sudden request wondering exactly what the Headmaster was up to this time, knowing his checkered history of under-handedness and deceit.
…..
Moka, Tsukune, Kurumu, Mizore and Yukari excused themselves from their seats and made their way to the stage as asked by the Chairman of the Academy, unsure of why the sudden revelation. They were all feeling somewhat put on the spot if it were. Ruby stood up and gave her friends a warm group hug as she shed a few, stray tears of happiness. She was very proud of them and would definitely miss them when they returned to their homes across the globe.
Once the embrace was finished, she politely asked each of them to have a seat on her left-hand side in a row of chairs, set up for the 'guests of honor'. Moka sat next to Tsukune of course. To his left immediate left sat Yukari, much to her delight, followed next by Mizore and finally Kurumu at the end of the row.
"As I was saying..." Headmaster Mikogami continued.
"If it were not for these five, brave souls, the demon Alucard would have destroyed everything in his path. I should know as I was there alongside a fellow Dark Lord: Touho Fuhai. Unfortunately, he could not attend today, due to family business. I am quite proud of each and every one of you for your selfless act of valor in the name of what this Academy stands for: to get along and blend in with the human world. If it weren't for your sacrifices, this school would no longer stand. So I thank you, all of you for accomplishing the near-impossible."
Another round of applause erupted from not only the faculty and students, but their friends and family as well. Tsukune and his friends weren't expecting this in a thousand years. They just stood up from their seats and took a deep bow of appreciation.
Once the noise settled to a low roar, Mikogami continued.
"So let's get on with this, shall we? When I call your name, please make your way to the stage to receive your diploma. Akashiya Moka" the Chairman announced. Moka stood up and approached the Headmaster. She held out her left hand to receive her diploma and shook his hand with her right.
"Thank you, Headmaster" Moka offered with a small bow. He returned her gesture likewise.
"Aono Tsukune."
Tsukune followed Moka's example and obtained his diploma as well.
"Thank you Headmaster" Tsukune muttered with a bow. Mikogami repeated in a similar manner.
Headmaster Mikogami called the other girls up to acquire theirs, one after the other.
"Since the five of you have now achieved your high school diplomas, you may now go and meet your families" Mikogami told Moka and her fellow graduates. As they stood up, their homeroom teacher for the past three years offered each of them a warm congratulatory hug, tears in her always-closed eyes.
"~Nya! Akashiya! Aono! I'm going to miss you two the most!" she wailed as she embraced the vampire duo in a heartfelt hug. Moka and Tsukune returned the warm gesture.
…..
"Thank you Sensei. For everything." Moka said first, on the cusp of crying herself.
"Yes, Sensei. We're really going to miss you" Tsukune added a second later.
"~Nya! You two were my favorite students. I wish you both a very happy and healthy life together...and I'm so very proud of you" the cat yokai told the pair as she completely lost her composure and started to sob even more-so. Mizore, Yukari and Kurumu came over to the trio and joined in another group hug.
"We're gonna miss you too, Sensei!" Yukari said as she broke down in a puddle of tears.
"Yes Sensei. I will miss you too" the Snow Faerie, Mizore replied with tears in the corner of her aura-colored eyes.
Kurumu was left utterly speechless as she was going over the past three years in her mind. Even if she wasn't the top-rated student, she tried her best and barely made a passing grade. Miss Nekonome gave her an even heartier hug as the other four walked over to Ruby to say their farewells.
"Tsukune! Moka! I'm really going to miss you so much!" Ruby lamented as she gave the couple quite a firm hug. She too was overwhelmed with emotions. It's true she cared very deeply about Tsukune. Even though she knew he was now Moka's mate, she still secretly wished just to be his 'toy'. Whatever that meant!
"I shall miss you, Ruby" Moka added as she returned her dear friend's embrace. Tsukune didn't have a clue of what to say. It's also true that he knew about Ruby's 'secret crush' on him, but did his best to not take too much notice of how kind and attractive she really was, even though she was only a few years older than himself. How her womanly scent always reminded him of fresh sunflowers.
…..
"Yeah, I'll miss you too, Ruby" is all it took for her to lose the last remaining bit of her professional self-control. She glomped Tsukune and nearly knocked him to the floor of the stage in front of the entire crowd of onlookers.
Thankfully he was half-expecting something like that to happen, like a sixth sense if it were. After being surrounded by the most attractive females he had ever met in three years, he somehow knew when that might happen. Moka glared daggers at her older Witch friend with suspicious eyes, but let it slide just this once since it was indeed the last official day of high school.
Once Moka had pried Tsukune away from Ruby, the other girls walked over to say their goodbyes. Ruby apologized to Moka and she waved it off so she could go and find her father. It would definitely be an interesting meeting, that was for sure.
Issa Shuzen and his daughters Akua and Kokoa waited off the far side of stage right. The elder vampire lord was very proud of Moka, who had graduated with the second-highest marks in the senior class.
Yukari Sendo was nominated class valedictorian. She gave a short speech, thanking all her teachers and friends for standing by her side, especially Tsukune and Moka whom she had declared her undying love for, much to the shock of the entire school. Which had resulted in the vampire pair to blush bright crimson.
Moka shook off her embarrassment quickly as she and Tsukune walked down the steps to meet her family.
"Hello father, Akua and Kokoa. It's good to see you" Moka said with the air of a true princess. Well, she was the only daughter of the 'Queen of the Vampires', Akasha Bloodriver, so it's only natural for her to 'play the part' in front of her immediate family.
"Hello, daughter. Congratulations are in order it would seem" Issa replied. Akua remained silent for some odd reason. Even though she never really got along with Moka, she still secretly wished she would have been the one to inherit the Shinso bloodline instead of her. But she just wore a plastic smile on her face and did her best to just get through with the charade and head home as quickly as possible.
"Thank you, Father" Moka said with a bow. Kokoa held her tongue for now, but was grinning like an idiot, patiently waiting her turn to praise her big sister's achievement.
"And congratulations to you as well, Mister Aono" the vampire lord offered.
"Thank you very much sir" he replied with a bow of honor and respect.
"Father, may we have a private word with you, somewhere less...crowded?" Moka asked once the formalities were out of the way.
"Yes, daughter. Come, follow me then" Issa suggested, as he wondered what his daughter needed to speak to him about. Kokoa knew what was going on as she was already privy to that private information. Yukari, Mizore and Kurumu met up with their individual families and had taken notice of Tsukune and Moka leave the building rather hastily without saying a proper goodbye to them.
So naturally being the nosy girls they are, they followed the quartet out the side exit.
Once they were near the parking lot, Lord Shuzen stopped and faced his middle daughter with fatherly concern across his features. He knew what she wanted to say, but realized she was being hesitant suddenly.
"Well, daughter? What is it? Come on now, don't be shy" he teased in a paternal manner.
"Father, well the thing is...I...that is to say...I - have chosen...a mate" Moka said with a healthy blush across her cheeks. Embarrassing or not, she had to be truthfully honest about every detail and leaving nothing out.
"I see. So who is this mate of yours? Wait. Don't tell me. It's Mister Aono, am I correct?" he inquired with a raised brow.
"Yes Father. Tsukune is my very best friend and now – my blood-mate. He has even devoted himself entirely to me with a kiss on my...thigh. He has put his own life on the line countless times and came to my rescue when I was still sealed inside the Rosary. He was the only one besides you, who was able to remove my Rosary, ever since the first day we met. And the reason he was able to is because – because he loves me Father and never wished me any harm. That's what Mother told me when I first received the Rosary from her. She told me when the day comes, the man who will love me will be able to release me from the Rosary. She told me to find a happy life with him. It took me over two years to realize that. And now I can't imagine my life where he's not a part of it. He was the one who saved my life last year when I was severely injured by Alucard. I was dying, Father. And now that I'm in love with him, I simply can't live without him. He's my world." Moka told her father and sisters.
Kokoa knew most of the details, but was shocked hearing the real reason WHY Tsukune could release her from the Rosary before.
…..
'But I love big sis, too' she sadly thought. She only wanted her big sister to come back. Her real big sis, who was now standing a short, meter away. Then it hit her: she was being selfish and wanted to fight with her like they used to when they were growing up together. That's nothing like love, is it now? Kokoa only wanted Moka back for her own, personal reasons.
Tsukune was stunned at Moka's bold confession to her Father of all people. The strongest vampire on the planet, second only to his wonderful Moka.
"Sir, with all due respect, I do love and care about your daughter very much. I have been in love with her since the moment we met. I know it sounds cliched, but it's true sir. When I first found out Yokai Academy's true purpose...I was honestly scared. I was weak and afraid sir. I wanted to leave this place and never look back. But Moka – I mean your daughter, she was my very first friend as well. After I met the real Moka, I wanted to stay. I knew that she needed a friend, more than anyone I had ever met. So I decided to stay, only for her sake. That's where my place is, sir" Tsukune said with a respectful bow.
"I see. Then it is true. You are human, aren't you Mister Aono?" Lord Shuzen asked with a slight scowl.
"I was sir. Your daughter saved my life after I was sentenced to death by the Public Safety Commission. The head of the Student Police, Kyuou had attacked Moka after she and my other friends had rescued me, just before I was to be executed in front of the entire school. We found out much later on, that he was in fact a member of Fairy Tale spying on the Academy. I was going to be put to death, just because I was human at the time. I knew I was weak, but I couldn't allow Moka to suffer for my sake. So the fool like I am, blocked his fireball attack. I knew it was stupid of me to do so, but I couldn't let anything happen to her."
Tsukune took a deep breath and held Moka's hand.
"I knew I was going to die right then and there. My life was going to end - before it even began. As Moka held me in her arms, I had accidentally removed her Rosary as I fell to the ground. When the real Moka saw what was happening, she took it upon herself to save my life the only way she knew: by injecting her Shinso vampire blood into me. Moka knew the risks. She knew what she was doing, but she explained to me later on that she didn't want to lose me; her very first friend. So after a few more close-calls and blood injections from her, I had turned into a Ghoul. Moka took it upon herself to put me down for good, before I killed anyone, but the Headmaster and his assistant, Ruby Toujo came just in time and placed a Holy Lock around my right wrist."
…..
Tsukune continued his tale yet again as Moka held his hand firmer.
"That helped me to learn to control the power in my veins that I had received from Moka. So during the entire Fairy Tale thing last year, Alucard had gravely injured Moka and in the process had destroyed her Rosary. Moka was dying. Akua tried her best to save her sister's life by injecting her own blood into her. But it wasn't enough and Moka was slowly weakening to the point of no return. I told Akua to use my blood, but she said I was a nothing but a "worthless human" who was trying to be something I wasn't at the time: a true vampire. I knew I just couldn't allow her die like that. After all the times she had saved me from the brink of death. I didn't want to lose Moka...so I did something even more idiotic...call it a last minute gamble. I had...removed my Holy Lock. I knew the danger in doing so. I knew what would happen if I ever did that. But I thought, what's the worse that could happen? I'm glad I was wrong, though. Moka's blood had brought out the vampire blood in me. I was changed into a Shinso, just like Moka. So I did what she had done for me several times – I injected MY blood into her. And it worked. I wasn't about to lose my first love."
"Mister Aono, do you have any regrets?" the head of the Shuzen clan asked the young, human-male-turned vampire in front of him.
"No sir. I regret nothing" Tsukune replied with absolute conviction, his voice remaining calm and confident.
Lord Shuzen remained quite for a few minutes, as he digested this new information. He then turned to his eldest a minute later and had a query for her.
…..
"Akua, is this true? He saved Moka's life?"
"Yes Father. Every word. He is a Shinso...like her," she sadly replied.
"Moka, daughter. If this is indeed the truth, then do you wish to be with him, even though you have already performed the blood-bonding ceremony?" Issa asked his most favored offspring.
Still holding Tsukune's hand, she simply shook her head yes, tears streaming down her beautiful face as the memories from that painful experience resurfaced once again.
"I would also like to accompany him to...the human world, Father. His parents are expecting us...before...this evening" Moka added a moment later, detecting his hesitation through their blood-bond that has doubled in endurance during the past few days.
"I see. So be it. You are old enough to make your own decisions" Issa said with a warm smile.
Tsukune breathed a huge sigh of relief. Lord Shuzen approved of their union and he was still alive! Could this day get any better? Things were finally going his way for once.
"Mister Aono...please take good care of my daughter and since you are her mate, make her your wife when the time is right" he told the raven-haired young man who had taken a great liking to his daughter, who had accepted her, all of her and has treated her like a normal, teenaged girl.
"Sir! Yes sir! Thank you sir! Please give me your daughter's hand in marriage!" he blurted out, not recognizing what he had said in the heat of the moment until the words escaped his mouth. Moka threw herself on top of Tsukune and passionately kissed him for his earnest declaration of love.
…...
"Yes Tsukune, I'll marry you!. I love you so much!" Moka replied excitedly, which the other three girls saw from behind a parked car, several meters away. They had heard everything and were quite aghast at the unforeseen development. Their friends were hoping they wouldn't have to attend a funeral today and had seen a marriage proposal as an alternative to that possible, grim conclusion.
"Moka, daughter...If you wish to go with him, I suggest you return to the castle and prepare yourself to live in the human world. I am sure his parents will be thrilled with your arrival. You may tell them about your true nature, since you can no longer conceal yourself via a Rosary. Now, let's head out. We can stop by your dormitories and pick up your belongings on the way there. I will also have a driver return you to your hometown, Son once Moka is set to head back with you. But heed my warning, boy. Do not make her cry. If you do, I will take it upon myself to make sure you do not make it to your next birthday. Am I understood, Mister Aono?" the vampire lord said with absolute sincerity.
He then gestured for his eldest daughter, Akua to enter the twenty foot-long black, limousine first.
"Yes sir! You have my word, sir!" Tsukune nervously answered once Moka had helped him up from the ground a moment later.
"Thank you Father for giving Tsukune a chance" Moka said with genuine sincerity. She then walked over to Kokoa and gave her a loving, sisterly hug.
"Kokoa, please give my Tsukune a chance too. It would mean the world to me if you allowed us to get along from now on" Moka said once she ended their embrace.
"O-of course big sis. I do wish you guys the best. I have to head back to school now. Um, Father, I will see you soon" Kokoa said as she gave her Father a quick hug, much to his mortification. He was never keen on physical interaction, unless it came to the other women in his life.
"Very well. Take care daughter. I will send your allowance next week, as usual" Issa said as the youngest made her way back towards the main, school building.
"Tsukune, let's go shall we?" Moka asked with an outstretched hand, as she entered the rear, passenger-side seat of the black car so she could pack her belongings to bring along with her to the human world.
With a bright grin, he followed behind his blood-mate and took a seat next to her. Akua was seated across from Moka and Lord Shuzen entered lastly and sat directly across from his future son-in-law, who was holding his favorite daughter's hand in a familiar fashion.
It was definitely going to be a very long and uncomfortable car ride back, that much was certain to one Tsukune Aono. Well, at least he would be starting a new life with Moka this afternoon. He was also silently praying that his parents would lovingly accept her with an open heart and into their humble abode.
After making a quick stop by the dormitories, Moka and Tsukune made their way to their individual rooms and gathered their already-packed bags and quickly changed into their standard school uniforms then returned to the parked limo waiting for them outside in under 10 minutes flat.
The trip to Shuzen Castle was rather uncomfortably silent for the passengers.
Tsukune recalled his first time visiting the antiquated home of the Vampire Lord. It was to retrieve a replacement Rosary for Moka since she had to sacrifice her original one so the barrier surrounding the Academy could be repaired before it dissolved. He nearly died when Issa challenged his unannounced arrival into his household.
Thankfully Tsukune had somehow survived, all thanks to Moka's blood that still pumped through his veins and this was long before he had transformed into a mindless Ghoul.
Once they finally arrived at their destination, they were greeted by a small army of Maids and Butlers awaiting their master to return home. Lord Shuzen exited the vehicle first and instructed his staff to aid his daughter in packing whatever she will need for her excursion to the human world to live with her blood-mate. Tsukune was asked to wait in the limousine since Moka would be out very soon.
"I'll be out soon, Tsukune. Please try to relax, alright?" Moka said after she gave him a chaste kiss on his cheek. She then followed her Father and sister into her soon-to-be former home to retrieve her belongings.
"Okay, Moka. I'll see you soon" he replied with a slight blush as she waved to him and then walked up the stairs and into the ancient mansion that looked as though it belonged in a horror movie. Compared to its façade, the inside of the building was actually quite modern, with all the latest in home furnishings and conveniences; completely opposite from what one would think from viewing it from the outside, alone.
…..
Moka's return to the limo was quite swift. A few Butlers had carried three, huge trunks full of her worldly possessions downstairs and outside, then stuffed them into the trunk of the black vehicle. Tsukune wondered to himself where it would all fit once they made it to his home in the human world.
Moka opened the rear passenger-side door and slid across the long, leather seat and leaned against her mate, whom she had missed somewhat, even though she was only gone for approximately 15 minutes, or so.
Once the door closed behind her, the black-clad Chauffeur started the engine, placed the gears in drive and drove down the private road and headed towards the closest inter-dimensional tunnel that would return them to the human world. Moka closed her eyes for a moment as she dreamed of a happy, stress-free life with her very best friend and blood-mate.
Truthfully, Tsukune was somewhat nervous, unsure of whether or not his parents would welcome the news of him not only being engaged to the girl they believed was anything but a normal, human girl, but of everything they've been lead to think was a normal high school. Not only that, but he was now a vampire because Moka had saved his life on several occasions.
Moka could detect his hesitation through their bond. She herself was the one who was supposed to be nervous, not him. After all, she was the the one responsible for turning him into one of her kind. But she had no other viable options at the time. And she had no regrets, whatsoever.
If she could do it all over again, she most certainly would without question nor hesitation.
This afternoon was a new beginning for Moka and she would do her absolute best to convince his parents otherwise. She couldn't be separated from Tsukune ever again.
…..
A/N:
I worked on this chapter most of the day yesterday (Dec. 20) and started it on the 18th. This was quite a learning experience I must say, but it came out pretty good and I hope that you enjoyed reading it just as much I did in writing it. I really wanted to have this chapter in my original 'Confession' but since it was supposed to be a one-shot, decided against it. So I chose to include their Graduation in this 'Reboot' which will follow the plot to some extent of the first 'Confession'.
Any and all reviews are welcome as long as they stay on topic and spoiler free, about any upcoming chapters. The real Moka will meet Tsukune's parents in the next chapter but it won't be out until BEFORE Christmas. Don't worry - it will be really good! ^_^
Much thanks to my Beta Readers from DeviantArt: CorlessLawiet, Onyx2589, Train48 and edichter! Thanks for your continued support!
Chapter 4: 'Graduation'
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Pairing: 'Inner' Moka Akashiya and Tsukune Aono.
Rated T.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
Takes place 2 days after Tsukune and Moka become mates.
Friday, April 27th. Graduation Day, Yokai Academy.
…..
After spending the past two nights getting to better know his mate Moka, Tsukune finally returned to his own dormitory so he could get himself ready for the Graduation ceremony that would begin at Noon, sharp. He was feeling somewhat dejected though since his family wasn't able to attend his special day. They were lead to believe that the monsters-only high school was in a remote mountainous region, located on the northernmost island of Japan.
He had nearly forgotten one important fact though: sine he and Moka were finally a real couple, to ask his folks if she could come home with him. The other girls weren't exactly delighted with his decision, but decided to accept his union with the vampire princess.
If they interjected yet again, they were most likely to incur Moka's wrath and she wouldn't be able hold herself back anymore. They had already accepted the painful truth and honestly wished to never be reminded of their place again!
After leaving his room dressed in his cap and gown over a simple short-sleeved white dress shirt and black slacks along with matching dress shoes, he made his way to the end of the long corridor to the payphones. After depositing the proper amount of change into the coin slot, he dialed the telephone number and waited patiently to speak to his parents.
After what seemed like forever, the other end finally answered.
…..
"Hello? Aono residence."
"Hi, Mom. It's me."
"Hello, sweetie. How are you doing?", his mother Kasumi inquired, with a hint of motherly concern in her voice.
"I'm doing fine, Mom. I'm still at school and the Graduation ceremony is in less than an hour...but I was wondering if it's okay...to um...well the thing is – um, I'd – kind of like to, uh, bring...someone home with me...one of my friends from the Academy...", he shyly wondered.
"Oh...I see...well, would this happen to be a female friend of yours from your 'harem'?", Kasumi inquired in a teasing manner.
"Mom! I don't have a harem! But...she's my very best friend...um...you met her two years ago...you remember Moka Akashiya, right?" he stated, becoming somewhat flustered by the passing second.
"Yes, sweetie. I remember her. Such a beautiful, young woman. She was sweet and very kind. So is Miss Akashiya your girlfriend now?" his mother teased, knowing very well her son gets quite rattled when it comes to members of the feminine persuasion.
Especially when it comes to the exceedingly attractive girls who had followed him home during summer break in his freshman year. It was right after the Newspaper Club had their outing to the human world for their beach side barbeque and his female friends basically broke into this home and caused a huge mess.
Plus on top of that, had used their powers out in the open therefore exposing their true, yokai existence. However, Moka was the exception.
The vampiress had went to his home in a properly, normal manner. When Kasumi answered the door and saw this angelic girl asking for her son, she nearly fainted due to Moka's otherworldly flawless beauty. Frankly, the pink-haired young woman was far too gorgeous for her own good!
Tsukune was reasonably rendered speechless and suddenly caught of guard by his mother's rather bold assertion. She was absolutely right though. Mothers do know best, it would seem. Out of all the girls she had met, Moka was the model of perfection in every sense of the word. She was soft spoken, very polite, kindhearted and genuinely cared for her son.
"Uh...yeah...she...she confessed that she's in love with me just two days ago and I had the chance to finally tell her that I'm in love with her, too...hahaha", he blushingly replied.
"Well, if her family doesn't mind, then I don't see why not. You''ll be nineteen soon and I trust you, sweetie. I'm sure your father won't mind either, but you two will have to be on your best behavior, though."
"Thanks, mom. We'll be home later on this afternoon, once Moka gets permission from her family."
"You're welcome, sweetie. We'll see you when you get back, then. Tell that lovely girl I send my regards. And congratulations on your Graduation. Bye sweetie."
"Okay, we'll see you then...thanks, Mom. We'll see you soon. Bye."
He then hung up the receiver and made a beeline to tell Moka the good news, grinning like an idiot the entire way.
Tsukune was happy his mother got along so well with Moka. Well, the 'Outer' Moka. He would have to explain to his parents about the real Moka, the Academy, and about him now being a vampire. He prayed that they would accept the unusual news with an open heart and not freak out like they normally do.
…..
Once Tsukune exited the boy's dormitory, his mate and girlfriend Moka greeted him, who was also sporting her sea-green colored graduation cap and gown, near the front door with a smile and a hug.
"Good morning, Tsukune."
"Good morning, Moka" he said as he returned her warm embrace.
"You seem like you're in a good mood," Moka told him as they made their way down the worn-out pathway that leads to the school building to join their classmates for the commencement that would take place in less than an hour from now.
"Well, yeah. I um, just called my parents a few minutes ago."
"Oh I see. Did you mention to them about us?" she asked while she slid her hand into his own and held it in a loving gesture.
"Uh, yeah. I told my mom about us dating now and asked if it's alright for you to come home with me," he replied as he gave her hand a gentle squeeze.
"Really Tsukune?" she asked, as she suddenly stopped, quite surprised by the unexpected news.
"Well, of course Moka. Now that we're mates, I can't imagine you not being in my life. I love you very much and I really want us to be together. I don't want to go home without you. You're my everything, Moka" he said as he swiftly wrapped his arms around her and hugged her tightly, overcome with his honest feelings for her.
"Oh Tsukune...I feel the same way about you, my love. I'm sure my Father will allow us to be together. And I know that he approves of you, otherwise you'd be dead already," Moka replied as the love in her chest swelled for her mate and very best friend.
Her feelings for Tsukune were more clear than ever before. She was definitely falling even deeper in love with him, if that were even possible.
Once the couple ended their longer-than-average hug, they mutually decided to head to the gymnasium and join their classmates since it was nearly eleven thirty in the morning.
...
As they arrived a few minutes later, their homeroom teacher, Miss Shizuka Nekonome greeted the duo at the doorway. She was actually dressed normally for once in a conservative, black pants-suit, and not wearing a mini-skirt or revealing blouse of any type.
"Good morning you two, ~nya. We're just about ready to start. Have a seat in the first row. Your names are on you chairs, so please go ahead and find them" she told them with a smile.
"Thank you, Sensei" they said with a bow in unison, which caused the bakeneko to giggle at their adorable behavior like an old, married couple that's been together for 50 years or more.
One half of the gymnasium was set aside for the graduating seniors while the other side was set up for the student's families and friends.
Moka noticed her father and sisters sitting in the crowd. She offered them a wave of her hand. They returned the gesture with a simple nod. Kokoa however, waved heartily to her big sister.
Most of their classmates were already seated according to their last names, a few rows back from the stage. Yukari waved rather energetically at the vampire duo with a bright grin. Mizore offered her friends a small smile as well and Kurumu just glanced at them, doing her best to ignore them.
The Headmaster was seated on the stage next to the majority of the faculty, going over his speech which was written on 3 by 5 index cards. He glanced up for a moment and saw that his two favorite students had finally arrived. Truth be told he'd actually miss them, but he knew they had both been quite the model students and had grown up so much since their first year.
His assistant Ruby sat on his right-hand side, looking peaceful, yet sad. She had made several long-lasting friendships since first coming to the Academy over 2 years ago, after being 'rescued' by Tsukune and his friends in the Newspaper Club. She was honestly going to miss them once they left later today.
'Hold it together...it's a happy, joyous occasion for your friends...don't cry...don't you dare cry...they have their own...lives to live now...oh Tsukune...' Ruby silently told herself. She had to be strong and remain professional. If she broke down now, it would look bad for the Headmaster who had helped her change her life around for the better. She had a purpose now and thoroughly enjoyed her job at Yokai Academy.
Tsukune thanked his lucky stars and his 'Guardian Angel', Moka for keeping watch over him when he first arrived at the yokai high school hidden away from the human world by a magical, invisible barrier. On top of that, they were actually seated next to each other, no doubt the handiwork of the creepy-as-always Headmaster.
"Tsukune? Is everything alright?" Moka asked once they sat down and mentally prepared themselves for the actual commencement to start any time now. She knew through their blood-bond that something was deeply troubling him.
…..
"Well, yeah. I just wish...my family could be here today to see this" he said with a hint of sadness in his voice. Moka's heart immediately went out to him, as she shared his pain and uneasiness. She then reached over to him, placed her left hand on top of his and squeezed it affectionately.
"I know that they're proud of you love...because I'm very proud of you myself" she told him with a warm, loving smile.
"Thanks, Moka. That really means a lot to me" he replied, feeling somewhat better now.
"You're welcome Tsukune. You know that you can always count on me to be here for you, no matter what...because I love you so very much."
"I know Moka...and you can count on me, because I love you too."
"Thank you Tsukune."
"You're welcome Moka" he replied with a warm smile as he already felt better. He knew that as long as Moka was in his life, everything would work out somehow.
While the students talked among themselves, the Headmaster approached the podium, ready to begin the commencement ceremony for the graduating students.
"Ladies and gentlemen, students, faculty and honored guests. Welcome to Yokai Academy's Graduation Ceremony for the class of 20XX."
A generous round of applause was rewarded as the excitement grew, mainly from the student's side of the gymnasium.
"It gives me great pleasure to welcome you today. But before we begin, I would like to extend an invitation to the following students, who if not for their bravery and sacrifice, this Academy would not remain standing, along with the entire planet. With their help, the terrorist group known as 'Fairy Tale' and the demon Alucard was defeated, once and for all nearly a year ago. Aono Tsukune, Akashiya Moka, Kurono Kurumu, Shirayuki Mizore and Sendo Yukari. Please make your way up to the stage at this time." the Headmaster announced, drawing a collective gasp of astonishment from the five students, just mentioned a moment ago. They were left completely clueless due to the sudden request wondering exactly what the Headmaster was up to this time, knowing his checkered history of under-handedness and deceit.
…..
Moka, Tsukune, Kurumu, Mizore and Yukari excused themselves from their seats and made their way to the stage as asked by the Chairman of the Academy, unsure of why the sudden revelation. They were all feeling somewhat put on the spot if it were. Ruby stood up and gave her friends a warm group hug as she shed a few, stray tears of happiness. She was very proud of them and would definitely miss them when they returned to their homes across the globe.
Once the embrace was finished, she politely asked each of them to have a seat on her left-hand side in a row of chairs, set up for the 'guests of honor'. Moka sat next to Tsukune of course. To his left immediate left sat Yukari, much to her delight, followed next by Mizore and finally Kurumu at the end of the row.
"As I was saying..." Headmaster Mikogami continued.
"If it were not for these five, brave souls, the demon Alucard would have destroyed everything in his path. I should know as I was there alongside a fellow Dark Lord: Touho Fuhai. Unfortunately, he could not attend today, due to family business. I am quite proud of each and every one of you for your selfless act of valor in the name of what this Academy stands for: to get along and blend in with the human world. If it weren't for your sacrifices, this school would no longer stand. So I thank you, all of you for accomplishing the near-impossible."
Another round of applause erupted from not only the faculty and students, but their friends and family as well. Tsukune and his friends weren't expecting this in a thousand years. They just stood up from their seats and took a deep bow of appreciation.
Once the noise settled to a low roar, Mikogami continued.
"So let's get on with this, shall we? When I call your name, please make your way to the stage to receive your diploma. Akashiya Moka" the Chairman announced. Moka stood up and approached the Headmaster. She held out her left hand to receive her diploma and shook his hand with her right.
"Thank you, Headmaster" Moka offered with a small bow. He returned her gesture likewise.
"Aono Tsukune."
Tsukune followed Moka's example and obtained his diploma as well.
"Thank you Headmaster" Tsukune muttered with a bow. Mikogami repeated in a similar manner.
Headmaster Mikogami called the other girls up to acquire theirs, one after the other.
"Since the five of you have now achieved your high school diplomas, you may now go and meet your families" Mikogami told Moka and her fellow graduates. As they stood up, their homeroom teacher for the past three years offered each of them a warm congratulatory hug, tears in her always-closed eyes.
"~Nya! Akashiya! Aono! I'm going to miss you two the most!" she wailed as she embraced the vampire duo in a heartfelt hug. Moka and Tsukune returned the warm gesture.
…..
"Thank you Sensei. For everything." Moka said first, on the cusp of crying herself.
"Yes, Sensei. We're really going to miss you" Tsukune added a second later.
"~Nya! You two were my favorite students. I wish you both a very happy and healthy life together...and I'm so very proud of you" the cat yokai told the pair as she completely lost her composure and started to sob even more-so. Mizore, Yukari and Kurumu came over to the trio and joined in another group hug.
"We're gonna miss you too, Sensei!" Yukari said as she broke down in a puddle of tears.
"Yes Sensei. I will miss you too" the Snow Faerie, Mizore replied with tears in the corner of her aura-colored eyes.
Kurumu was left utterly speechless as she was going over the past three years in her mind. Even if she wasn't the top-rated student, she tried her best and barely made a passing grade. Miss Nekonome gave her an even heartier hug as the other four walked over to Ruby to say their farewells.
"Tsukune! Moka! I'm really going to miss you so much!" Ruby lamented as she gave the couple quite a firm hug. She too was overwhelmed with emotions. It's true she cared very deeply about Tsukune. Even though she knew he was now Moka's mate, she still secretly wished just to be his 'toy'. Whatever that meant!
"I shall miss you, Ruby" Moka added as she returned her dear friend's embrace. Tsukune didn't have a clue of what to say. It's also true that he knew about Ruby's 'secret crush' on him, but did his best to not take too much notice of how kind and attractive she really was, even though she was only a few years older than himself. How her womanly scent always reminded him of fresh sunflowers.
…..
"Yeah, I'll miss you too, Ruby" is all it took for her to lose the last remaining bit of her professional self-control. She glomped Tsukune and nearly knocked him to the floor of the stage in front of the entire crowd of onlookers.
Thankfully he was half-expecting something like that to happen, like a sixth sense if it were. After being surrounded by the most attractive females he had ever met in three years, he somehow knew when that might happen. Moka glared daggers at her older Witch friend with suspicious eyes, but let it slide just this once since it was indeed the last official day of high school.
Once Moka had pried Tsukune away from Ruby, the other girls walked over to say their goodbyes. Ruby apologized to Moka and she waved it off so she could go and find her father. It would definitely be an interesting meeting, that was for sure.
Issa Shuzen and his daughters Akua and Kokoa waited off the far side of stage right. The elder vampire lord was very proud of Moka, who had graduated with the second-highest marks in the senior class.
Yukari Sendo was nominated class valedictorian. She gave a short speech, thanking all her teachers and friends for standing by her side, especially Tsukune and Moka whom she had declared her undying love for, much to the shock of the entire school. Which had resulted in the vampire pair to blush bright crimson.
Moka shook off her embarrassment quickly as she and Tsukune walked down the steps to meet her family.
"Hello father, Akua and Kokoa. It's good to see you" Moka said with the air of a true princess. Well, she was the only daughter of the 'Queen of the Vampires', Akasha Bloodriver, so it's only natural for her to 'play the part' in front of her immediate family.
"Hello, daughter. Congratulations are in order it would seem" Issa replied. Akua remained silent for some odd reason. Even though she never really got along with Moka, she still secretly wished she would have been the one to inherit the Shinso bloodline instead of her. But she just wore a plastic smile on her face and did her best to just get through with the charade and head home as quickly as possible.
"Thank you, Father" Moka said with a bow. Kokoa held her tongue for now, but was grinning like an idiot, patiently waiting her turn to praise her big sister's achievement.
"And congratulations to you as well, Mister Aono" the vampire lord offered.
"Thank you very much sir" he replied with a bow of honor and respect.
"Father, may we have a private word with you, somewhere less...crowded?" Moka asked once the formalities were out of the way.
"Yes, daughter. Come, follow me then" Issa suggested, as he wondered what his daughter needed to speak to him about. Kokoa knew what was going on as she was already privy to that private information. Yukari, Mizore and Kurumu met up with their individual families and had taken notice of Tsukune and Moka leave the building rather hastily without saying a proper goodbye to them.
So naturally being the nosy girls they are, they followed the quartet out the side exit.
Once they were near the parking lot, Lord Shuzen stopped and faced his middle daughter with fatherly concern across his features. He knew what she wanted to say, but realized she was being hesitant suddenly.
"Well, daughter? What is it? Come on now, don't be shy" he teased in a paternal manner.
"Father, well the thing is...I...that is to say...I - have chosen...a mate" Moka said with a healthy blush across her cheeks. Embarrassing or not, she had to be truthfully honest about every detail and leaving nothing out.
"I see. So who is this mate of yours? Wait. Don't tell me. It's Mister Aono, am I correct?" he inquired with a raised brow.
"Yes Father. Tsukune is my very best friend and now – my blood-mate. He has even devoted himself entirely to me with a kiss on my...thigh. He has put his own life on the line countless times and came to my rescue when I was still sealed inside the Rosary. He was the only one besides you, who was able to remove my Rosary, ever since the first day we met. And the reason he was able to is because – because he loves me Father and never wished me any harm. That's what Mother told me when I first received the Rosary from her. She told me when the day comes, the man who will love me will be able to release me from the Rosary. She told me to find a happy life with him. It took me over two years to realize that. And now I can't imagine my life where he's not a part of it. He was the one who saved my life last year when I was severely injured by Alucard. I was dying, Father. And now that I'm in love with him, I simply can't live without him. He's my world." Moka told her father and sisters.
Kokoa knew most of the details, but was shocked hearing the real reason WHY Tsukune could release her from the Rosary before.
…..
'But I love big sis, too' she sadly thought. She only wanted her big sister to come back. Her real big sis, who was now standing a short, meter away. Then it hit her: she was being selfish and wanted to fight with her like they used to when they were growing up together. That's nothing like love, is it now? Kokoa only wanted Moka back for her own, personal reasons.
Tsukune was stunned at Moka's bold confession to her Father of all people. The strongest vampire on the planet, second only to his wonderful Moka.
"Sir, with all due respect, I do love and care about your daughter very much. I have been in love with her since the moment we met. I know it sounds cliched, but it's true sir. When I first found out Yokai Academy's true purpose...I was honestly scared. I was weak and afraid sir. I wanted to leave this place and never look back. But Moka – I mean your daughter, she was my very first friend as well. After I met the real Moka, I wanted to stay. I knew that she needed a friend, more than anyone I had ever met. So I decided to stay, only for her sake. That's where my place is, sir" Tsukune said with a respectful bow.
"I see. Then it is true. You are human, aren't you Mister Aono?" Lord Shuzen asked with a slight scowl.
"I was sir. Your daughter saved my life after I was sentenced to death by the Public Safety Commission. The head of the Student Police, Kyuou had attacked Moka after she and my other friends had rescued me, just before I was to be executed in front of the entire school. We found out much later on, that he was in fact a member of Fairy Tale spying on the Academy. I was going to be put to death, just because I was human at the time. I knew I was weak, but I couldn't allow Moka to suffer for my sake. So the fool like I am, blocked his fireball attack. I knew it was stupid of me to do so, but I couldn't let anything happen to her."
Tsukune took a deep breath and held Moka's hand.
"I knew I was going to die right then and there. My life was going to end - before it even began. As Moka held me in her arms, I had accidentally removed her Rosary as I fell to the ground. When the real Moka saw what was happening, she took it upon herself to save my life the only way she knew: by injecting her Shinso vampire blood into me. Moka knew the risks. She knew what she was doing, but she explained to me later on that she didn't want to lose me; her very first friend. So after a few more close-calls and blood injections from her, I had turned into a Ghoul. Moka took it upon herself to put me down for good, before I killed anyone, but the Headmaster and his assistant, Ruby Toujo came just in time and placed a Holy Lock around my right wrist."
…..
Tsukune continued his tale yet again as Moka held his hand firmer.
"That helped me to learn to control the power in my veins that I had received from Moka. So during the entire Fairy Tale thing last year, Alucard had gravely injured Moka and in the process had destroyed her Rosary. Moka was dying. Akua tried her best to save her sister's life by injecting her own blood into her. But it wasn't enough and Moka was slowly weakening to the point of no return. I told Akua to use my blood, but she said I was a nothing but a "worthless human" who was trying to be something I wasn't at the time: a true vampire. I knew I just couldn't allow her die like that. After all the times she had saved me from the brink of death. I didn't want to lose Moka...so I did something even more idiotic...call it a last minute gamble. I had...removed my Holy Lock. I knew the danger in doing so. I knew what would happen if I ever did that. But I thought, what's the worse that could happen? I'm glad I was wrong, though. Moka's blood had brought out the vampire blood in me. I was changed into a Shinso, just like Moka. So I did what she had done for me several times – I injected MY blood into her. And it worked. I wasn't about to lose my first love."
"Mister Aono, do you have any regrets?" the head of the Shuzen clan asked the young, human-male-turned vampire in front of him.
"No sir. I regret nothing" Tsukune replied with absolute conviction, his voice remaining calm and confident.
Lord Shuzen remained quite for a few minutes, as he digested this new information. He then turned to his eldest a minute later and had a query for her.
…..
"Akua, is this true? He saved Moka's life?"
"Yes Father. Every word. He is a Shinso...like her," she sadly replied.
"Moka, daughter. If this is indeed the truth, then do you wish to be with him, even though you have already performed the blood-bonding ceremony?" Issa asked his most favored offspring.
Still holding Tsukune's hand, she simply shook her head yes, tears streaming down her beautiful face as the memories from that painful experience resurfaced once again.
"I would also like to accompany him to...the human world, Father. His parents are expecting us...before...this evening" Moka added a moment later, detecting his hesitation through their blood-bond that has doubled in endurance during the past few days.
"I see. So be it. You are old enough to make your own decisions" Issa said with a warm smile.
Tsukune breathed a huge sigh of relief. Lord Shuzen approved of their union and he was still alive! Could this day get any better? Things were finally going his way for once.
"Mister Aono...please take good care of my daughter and since you are her mate, make her your wife when the time is right" he told the raven-haired young man who had taken a great liking to his daughter, who had accepted her, all of her and has treated her like a normal, teenaged girl.
"Sir! Yes sir! Thank you sir! Please give me your daughter's hand in marriage!" he blurted out, not recognizing what he had said in the heat of the moment until the words escaped his mouth. Moka threw herself on top of Tsukune and passionately kissed him for his earnest declaration of love.
…...
"Yes Tsukune, I'll marry you!. I love you so much!" Moka replied excitedly, which the other three girls saw from behind a parked car, several meters away. They had heard everything and were quite aghast at the unforeseen development. Their friends were hoping they wouldn't have to attend a funeral today and had seen a marriage proposal as an alternative to that possible, grim conclusion.
"Moka, daughter...If you wish to go with him, I suggest you return to the castle and prepare yourself to live in the human world. I am sure his parents will be thrilled with your arrival. You may tell them about your true nature, since you can no longer conceal yourself via a Rosary. Now, let's head out. We can stop by your dormitories and pick up your belongings on the way there. I will also have a driver return you to your hometown, Son once Moka is set to head back with you. But heed my warning, boy. Do not make her cry. If you do, I will take it upon myself to make sure you do not make it to your next birthday. Am I understood, Mister Aono?" the vampire lord said with absolute sincerity.
He then gestured for his eldest daughter, Akua to enter the twenty foot-long black, limousine first.
"Yes sir! You have my word, sir!" Tsukune nervously answered once Moka had helped him up from the ground a moment later.
"Thank you Father for giving Tsukune a chance" Moka said with genuine sincerity. She then walked over to Kokoa and gave her a loving, sisterly hug.
"Kokoa, please give my Tsukune a chance too. It would mean the world to me if you allowed us to get along from now on" Moka said once she ended their embrace.
"O-of course big sis. I do wish you guys the best. I have to head back to school now. Um, Father, I will see you soon" Kokoa said as she gave her Father a quick hug, much to his mortification. He was never keen on physical interaction, unless it came to the other women in his life.
"Very well. Take care daughter. I will send your allowance next week, as usual" Issa said as the youngest made her way back towards the main, school building.
"Tsukune, let's go shall we?" Moka asked with an outstretched hand, as she entered the rear, passenger-side seat of the black car so she could pack her belongings to bring along with her to the human world.
With a bright grin, he followed behind his blood-mate and took a seat next to her. Akua was seated across from Moka and Lord Shuzen entered lastly and sat directly across from his future son-in-law, who was holding his favorite daughter's hand in a familiar fashion.
It was definitely going to be a very long and uncomfortable car ride back, that much was certain to one Tsukune Aono. Well, at least he would be starting a new life with Moka this afternoon. He was also silently praying that his parents would lovingly accept her with an open heart and into their humble abode.
After making a quick stop by the dormitories, Moka and Tsukune made their way to their individual rooms and gathered their already-packed bags and quickly changed into their standard school uniforms then returned to the parked limo waiting for them outside in under 10 minutes flat.
The trip to Shuzen Castle was rather uncomfortably silent for the passengers.
Tsukune recalled his first time visiting the antiquated home of the Vampire Lord. It was to retrieve a replacement Rosary for Moka since she had to sacrifice her original one so the barrier surrounding the Academy could be repaired before it dissolved. He nearly died when Issa challenged his unannounced arrival into his household.
Thankfully Tsukune had somehow survived, all thanks to Moka's blood that still pumped through his veins and this was long before he had transformed into a mindless Ghoul.
Once they finally arrived at their destination, they were greeted by a small army of Maids and Butlers awaiting their master to return home. Lord Shuzen exited the vehicle first and instructed his staff to aid his daughter in packing whatever she will need for her excursion to the human world to live with her blood-mate. Tsukune was asked to wait in the limousine since Moka would be out very soon.
"I'll be out soon, Tsukune. Please try to relax, alright?" Moka said after she gave him a chaste kiss on his cheek. She then followed her Father and sister into her soon-to-be former home to retrieve her belongings.
"Okay, Moka. I'll see you soon" he replied with a slight blush as she waved to him and then walked up the stairs and into the ancient mansion that looked as though it belonged in a horror movie. Compared to its façade, the inside of the building was actually quite modern, with all the latest in home furnishings and conveniences; completely opposite from what one would think from viewing it from the outside, alone.
…..
Moka's return to the limo was quite swift. A few Butlers had carried three, huge trunks full of her worldly possessions downstairs and outside, then stuffed them into the trunk of the black vehicle. Tsukune wondered to himself where it would all fit once they made it to his home in the human world.
Moka opened the rear passenger-side door and slid across the long, leather seat and leaned against her mate, whom she had missed somewhat, even though she was only gone for approximately 15 minutes, or so.
Once the door closed behind her, the black-clad Chauffeur started the engine, placed the gears in drive and drove down the private road and headed towards the closest inter-dimensional tunnel that would return them to the human world. Moka closed her eyes for a moment as she dreamed of a happy, stress-free life with her very best friend and blood-mate.
Truthfully, Tsukune was somewhat nervous, unsure of whether or not his parents would welcome the news of him not only being engaged to the girl they believed was anything but a normal, human girl, but of everything they've been lead to think was a normal high school. Not only that, but he was now a vampire because Moka had saved his life on several occasions.
Moka could detect his hesitation through their bond. She herself was the one who was supposed to be nervous, not him. After all, she was the the one responsible for turning him into one of her kind. But she had no other viable options at the time. And she had no regrets, whatsoever.
If she could do it all over again, she most certainly would without question nor hesitation.
This afternoon was a new beginning for Moka and she would do her absolute best to convince his parents otherwise. She couldn't be separated from Tsukune ever again.
…..
A/N:
I worked on this chapter most of the day yesterday (Dec. 20) and started it on the 18th. This was quite a learning experience I must say, but it came out pretty good and I hope that you enjoyed reading it just as much I did in writing it. I really wanted to have this chapter in my original 'Confession' but since it was supposed to be a one-shot, decided against it. So I chose to include their Graduation in this 'Reboot' which will follow the plot to some extent of the first 'Confession'.
Any and all reviews are welcome as long as they stay on topic and spoiler free, about any upcoming chapters. The real Moka will meet Tsukune's parents in the next chapter but it won't be out until BEFORE Christmas. Don't worry - it will be really good! ^_^
Much thanks to my Beta Readers from DeviantArt: CorlessLawiet, Onyx2589, Train48 and edichter! Thanks for your continued support!
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 3 "Blood-mates, Part 2"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Complete alternate version of my fan-fic 'A Confession and A Vampire'
Inner Moka & Tsukune
Rated M for a Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Somewhat OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Shout-out to "Onixx" from , for the chapter idea! Thank you for the assistance ^_^
…..
Takes place the morning after Tsukune and Moka become mates.
…..
Wednesday morning, April 25.
After a peaceful night's slumber, the newly-mated couple awoke at six AM sharp, thanks to Moka's brilliant idea of Tsukune having enough time to return to his dormitory in order to prepare himself for the last day of final exams, since Graduation would be on Friday, the 27th of April.
"Tsukune...wake up love. It's six o'clock..." Moka said as she gently shook her sleepy boyfriend in a futile attempt to have him face the day.
"M-mmm...five more minutes, mom" he lazily replied. Moka blushed when she heard him accidentally call her 'mom'. She then smiled seeing just how cute he was while he slept.
Moka leaned down and breathed into his ear while she straddled his hips. He then embraced her firmly, as he slowly opened his heavy eyelids and saw who it was and what she was doing. Tsukune took notice that it was indeed Moka and she wasn't exactly wearing any clothes, whatsoever. Not even a nightgown or undergarments of any type.
He then recalled what happened last night once his half-asleep brain finally woke up a bit.
…..
"Good morning, sleepy head" the silver-haired maiden said with a bright grin as she ran her slender fingers through his always messy hair.
"Good morning, beautiful" he replied followed by a loud yawn.
"Sleep well?" Moka inquired.
"Uh, yeah – thanks Moka" Tsukune answered with a blush of his own, once he realized that Moka was completely nude; her impressive bosom pressed against his bare chest.
"If you're wondering, yes; I sleep in the nude all the time," she told her mate with a wicked smirk.
"Oh, is that so?" Tsukune said as he attempted to sit straight up, but was failing miserably. Moka had pinned him to the bed by sitting on top of him and was now inhaling his wonderful scent that she admired the most.
"M-mm, Tsukune? Would it be all right if I had a sip of your blood before you head back to your dorm? I'm still feeling a little tired from last night."
Tsukune found it to be rather unorthodox for Moka to plead for his blood in this way, but found it to be genuinely adorable of her to do so.
"Of course Moka. You really don't have to ask. We are mates and everything I am belongs to you."
"Tsukune..." she whispered, feeling his genuine sincerity for her through his honest response.
Taking his cue, the blushing, silver-haired vampiress leaned down to the crook of his neck and licked a spot on his skin with her hot tongue, sending shivers of delight down his spine. He didn't even feel when her fangs pierced his flesh, whatsoever.
While he held his gorgeous mate in his arms, he could sense that she was enjoying this ritual with great exuberance, more-so than last night when they first became blood-mates.
"M-mmm...delicious" she said a few moments later when she was satisfied, licking her full, plump lips in a provocative manner.
"Feeling better?" he asked Moka who was still blushing.
"Oh yes. Thank you love. Um, it's getting late. I really don't want you to leave, but you should head back now, before anyone else wakes up. I'll meet you at our usual spot on the way to school, okay?" she said once she had released Tsukune from her embrace so he could finally get out of bed and get himself ready for the day.
"Oh, it's not problem Moka. Uh, yeah, I guess I should head back now. But I -uh – really – uh...don't want anyone to see me this early, either. So um, I'll meet you on the way to school in a while" he said as he nearly stumbled out of her bed as he attempted to track down his missing articles of clothing that were scattered all across Moka's room.
He then asked to borrow her restroom to make himself presentable for the time being.
Even though they were a real couple, he was still shy to some degree to be sans-clothes in front of her.
…..
A few minutes later, he was finally redressed and ready to head back to his own dorm that was located across the courtyard from the female dormitory. As a matter fact, his room faced Moka's.
"I'm all set Moka," he said as he walked over to give her a hug farewell, for now.
"Oh, um...sure Tsukune" she said as she just wrapped her pink, fuzzy robe with black trim around herself so she could see him to the door like a proper girlfriend should. Moka returned his hug, followed with a soft, chaste kiss on his lips.
As Moka escorted him to the door, she then unlocked it and was shocked to see her younger sister on the other side, getting ready to knock. 'What the hell is she doing here so early?' Moka mentally cursed, shocked at her stepsister's unannounced appearance at such an ungodly hour.
"Good morning big sis" Kokoa greeted, with a sour expression on her face.
Moka quickly pushed Tsukune aside, concealing him behind her door in a desperate endeavor to hide him. There was no way she was going to allow her overly protective pest of a sister to ruin her morning. She would have to keep the current string of events from yesterday a secret, for now.
"Oh good morning Kokoa; what brings you here so early in the morning?" the platinum-trussed vampire princess inquired with her arms crossed under her abundant bosom.
"Well, I was just checking up on you, big sis. See, I happened to hear something quite peculiar last night. Some of the girls here in the dorm, mainly on your floor, claimed they saw you inviting a BOY into your room last night. Now, knowing you so well like I do, I figured it had to be a lie. Ya' know. Just a big misunderstanding or rumor. So I came by this morning to see if it was true or not. It's not true, is it big sis?" Kokoa asked with a hint of anger and betrayal.
She knew her big sister Moka was perfect in every way. She had to be sure of what she heard was just hearsay or sick joke. It had to be a mistake of some sort, right? Just gossip amongst the female residents who had nothing better to do than to stir up some trouble or cause a huge fight to break out for their own amusement.
"Well, Kokoa. I don't know who started that rumor, but I have a good idea of who it was. What I do in my free time outside of school is nobody's business, especially yours Kokoa. You're my sister and I do love you. But you have to let me live my life, for myself. I'm old enough to make my own decisions and if I had a boy here last night or not, shouldn't be anyone's concern, specifically that damned stalker and her succubus cohort. You need to grow up and let go of your obsession with me...because...because – I have already chosen a mate" Moka told Kokoa whose expression changed from sadness to absolute horror, from what her perfect, older sister just admitted out loud with absolute honesty, even if it was very embarrassing.
This wasn't the way it was supposed to go. Not like this. But the cat was now out of the bag and truth be told, Moka actually felt somewhat relieved.
…..
"What!" Kokoa yelled as she forced the door back, slamming it into Tsukune, and knocking him over.
"Ow!" he yelped as he tumbled backwards to the carpeted floor of Moka's room.
"Tsukune! Are you okay?" Moka said as she knelt to the floor and noticed her mate had a small bump on his forehead, due to her little sister's uncalled-for outburst.
Kokoa was beyond upset! She was royally pissed!
"What the hell is HE doing here?" she bellowed, her face as red as her fiery-hued hair; all the while pointing an accusing finger to the bewildered male sprawled out on the floor of her sister's dorm room.
While Moka helped Tsukune to his feet, she ignored the irate vampiress's incessant ranting.
"Kokoa back off, now! You just injured my blood-mate," Moka sharply warned as her eyes burned red with furious rage.
"B-blood-mate? But big sis, you can't take HIM as your mate! He's a damn half-breed!" she boisterously yelled, waking up the other young women in the dormitory.
Moka continued ignoring Kokoa as she walked Tsukune over to her bed and had him sit down for a minute, so he could recuperate from the sudden blunt trauma to his forehead that nearly knocked him out cold.
"Yes Kokoa. Tsukune is MY blood-mate. And I will NOT idly sit by while you mock or injure him. He is a good, decent man. He has saved my life more times than I can count. Who do you think was the one who saved my life last year with his own blood? Well, do you!?" Moka shouted back, deeply disturbed over this sudden turn of events.
"B-but big sis! No...he can't be..." Kokoa protested.
"That is ENOUGH! No buts, Kokoa. I have been in love with Tsukune for as long as I can remember. He has always been there for me, protecting me, even when I was still sealed in my Rosary. He has NEVER turned his back on me. Not once! Even while he was still human, he always did his best. Always. He means more to me than anything in the entire world. He saved my life last year, Kokoa. I was dying! I wouldn't be here today if it were not for him. Tsukune even saved my life on the very first day of our freshman year. If he hadn't come to my rescue when he did – I would – I would've been killed, or far, far, worse! He's my very best friend, Kokoa. And he loves me just as much as I love him or even more-so" Moka said as she broke down from the somber memories, all brought to light once again, this time by her sister's sudden arrival.
"Big sis...I didn't know" the redhead replied, seeing her idol break down like this. This was definitely a first. She had never seen Moka ever cry. Not even when Tsukune had nearly lost his life, protecting her big sis Moka.
…..
Once he was feeling better, Tsukune dropped to his knees, pulled Moka into his strong, caring arms, and embraced her lovingly yet firmly.
"It's okay Moka. I'm here for you...shhh...Everything's going to be just fine..." he whispered softly, attempting to quiet her down somewhat.
Even though Moka was an "S" Class 'Super Vampire', she was still a young woman who was experiencing romantic love for the first time and was trying her absolute best to get a grip on all these new thoughts, feelings, and emotions that's she been experiencing since becoming mates with her very best friend, in less than 12 hours ago.
"I'm sorry Tsukune. I – uh – didn't know. But just be warned, Father won't take this news as well as I am. He'll be here for Graduation on Friday. So if I were you, I'd get my affairs in order. I - uh, have to be going now to get ready for school" Kokoa said as she excused herself and left Moka's room as swiftly as possible.
A few minutes later, Moka eventually calmed herself down and Tsukune helped her to her feet.
"Feeling better now?" Tsukune asked as she was still clinging to him.
"Oh yes. Thank you love. I'm okay now," she answered with a small smile.
"That's good to hear. I - um, want to thank you Moka. You know, for what you told Kokoa."
"Oh it's really no problem Tsukune. It's the truth though. She'll have to learn to accept you into our family someday soon. And one thing she needs to know is that we vampires are very protective of our mates. If anyone gets in the way or causes them harm, they would be put down without hesitation. Even family. It may seem harsh, but that's just how things are with us vampires" Moka said as she gave him a quick hug, and then walked him back towards the door.
Tsukune gulped hard gearing his girlfriend Moka say something as unpleasant as putting them permanently in their place for coming in-between them since they were now mates. Vampires were indeed quite the scary lot, he surmised!
"I see. Uh. Okay then. I'm going to go and change for class. I'll see you in a while at our usual spot, okay?"
"Of course, Tsukune. I'll see you soon, but don't keep me waiting too long. I love you," Moka said with a wink and a smile that caused Tsukune to blush furiously.
"Uh yeah of course. I'll see you shortly, Moka. I love you, too" he said as he walked through her door, out into the hallway and headed towards the nearest exit. He knew that it would be a very interesting day and he honestly couldn't wait until Friday. They were finally graduating and was ready to start a new life with his beautiful mate, Moka Akashiya.
…..
He'd have to ask her later on today what Kokoa meant about her saying that her Father wouldn't be taking the good news so well about them becoming mates.
Tsukune raced back to his dorm so he could get ready for the day. He would take a quick bath (with help from the special herbs Moka had made for him, since he could no longer bathe or shower with regular water), and get changed into a fresh uniform to face anybody else who didn't accept the good news so well.
He knew that information tends to spread across the yokai campus like a wildfire.
Approximately an hour later, Tsukune was ready to head to school for the last day of exams. Once he closed and locked his door, he made his way out of the boy's dorm and started down the long, worn out pathway that leads to the school.
Tsukune then realized something quite important.
He had met Moka three years ago, on this very day.
"Damn it!" he yelled out as he neared the location where he was supposed to meet her at any second now. Now he felt like a real idiot. He knew she was already there through their blood-bond waiting patiently for his imminent arrival.
As he rounded the corner, he saw his one and only, smiling brightly and dressed in her standard school uniform. Once she spotted him, she waved rather energetically and started to meet him halfway.
"Good morning, Tsukune."
"Good morning, Moka" he replied with a warm smile and pulled her into a quick embrace. Several other students passed the pair on their way to the ancient school building and were making some rather unnecessary comments, which the vampires managed to somehow tune out and ignore.
"Tsukune? What's wrong? I can sense that something's bothering you" Moka stated when they finished their hug and started towards the Academy. He then sighed heavily. He knew he couldn't hide anything from Moka and realized that she'd get him to tell her, one way or another.
"It's nothing, really. Would you mind coming with me for a few minutes?"
"What's wrong, Tsukune?" she asked with a half-worried look across her features.
"Nothing's wrong...it's just that, well...it's just better to show you. Trust me Moka, okay?"
"Alright Tsukune, I do trust you. We can't dally too much though. Homeroom starts in fifteen minutes, and we can't afford to be late" she said as she walked beside him, heading in the opposite direction, away from the Academy.
"It won't take long Moka. I just want to show you something" he replied with an outstretched hand, which she took immediately without any further questions or hesitation.
"Okay Tsukune. Lead the way."
...
About five minutes later, they were about a hundred meters from the edge of the spooky, old forest that lead towards the inter-dimensional tunnel that connected the yokai realm to the human world. Skulls of various creatures littered the area along with dead, fallen tree branches along with half-decayed leaves.
He then stopped, knowing this was the place where he met her, that fateful day three years ago.
"Tsukune? Why are we here? What is it that you wanted to show me?" Moka asked as she looked around briefly, unsure of why he had brought her here of all places. It wasn't exactly the most romantic area, for starters.
He then held her hands in his own as he searched for the proper words to say without sounding like a complete fool.
"Well, Moka...this place is very special to me..." he began.
"Special?" she repeated, unsure of what he meant by the cryptic way he stated it.
"Yes, right here actually" he said referring to their current location alongside the pathway.
"How so, Tsukune?" she asked with a hint of curiosity, while she furrowed her brow.
"Well, the thing is...I met you here, three years ago today when you ran into me with your bicycle."
Then it hit her like a ton of bricks, as the fond memory finally sunk in.
She then embraced him and held him for all he was worth as tears of absolute joy trickled down her cheeks, soaking into his green, school jacket.
Moka was at a total loss of words. Every memory from her other half resurfaced when she recalled that this was indeed a very special place for the both of them. That this was the place they first met and became friends through her pink-haired side.
"Oh Tsukune...I don't know what to say" she said after a few moments of awkward silence.
"I know Moka. But one thing I do know, meeting you changed my life that day. I never really had any friends either before coming here to Yokai. And when you asked me to be your friend, not only was I very surprised but really happy too. I thought I was dreaming when I opened my eyes and saw you standing over me. I'd never seen such a beautiful girl in my entire life up until that point. Thank you for being the most important woman in my life. I love you Moka."
More tears streamed down her face as his honest words hit her heart, further breaking down the stone wall she had erected around it, so she wouldn't feel the loneliness that she had experienced while growing up.
…..
"Tsukune...thank you too for being my very best friend and always being here for me. I know I wasn't exactly the best friend to you at first, but the more I had gotten to know you through my other half, I began to see you differently. That's why I saved your life with my blood. Even though I knew the risks involved, I didn't want to lose you. I couldn't lose you. So thank you Tsukune. Thank you for loving me and accepting me for who I am. I love you so, so very much."
Tsukune was very happy. Actually more like relieved. Moka had remembered meeting him here!
Their good mood was rudely interrupted, unfortunately. Seems as though they had lost all track of time.
*Ding dong – dong dong - ding dong ding doo-oong* rang the school bell, indicating the five-minute warning.
The couple ceased their embrace, made a mad dash for the Academy and barely made it just in time.
"Sorry we're late, Miss Nekonome" Tsukune apologized as he and his mate arrived at their homeroom at warp speed.
"It's alright, ~ just made it. Please, take your seats so I can take roll call now, ~nya" the cat yokai said as she smiled at the two vampires who just barely made it.
"Thank you, Sensei" Moka replied as she followed Tsukune and took her seat behind him in the very last row, next to the windows towards the rear of the classroom. The entire class were murmuring something, but the pair had somehow managed to ignore for the time being.
As Miss Nekonome took roll call, Moka found it rather difficult to remain focused. Not only was her heart still beating rather loudly inside her ribcage as she recalled every moment she had spent with Tsukune since the day they met, but she was smiling the entire time.
"Akashiya? Akashiya? ~Nya!"
"Oh, here Sensei" Moka replied once she heard her name being called by her bakeneko teacher.
Tsukune turned around briefly and saw that Moka seemed to be daydreaming, which was rather unusual for her since she was always one of the brightest students in his class.
"Moka? Are you alright?" he asked in a concerned tone.
…..
"Oh yes, I'm fine Tsukune. Thank you for being concerned" she said with an adorable wink that caused the young man of her affections to blush madly once again.
"Oh uh, that's good to hear, Moka" he answered as he quickly turned around and attempted to pay attention to his homeroom teacher.
'Why does Moka have to look so damn cute this morning?' he mentally swore to himself. Mizore noticed his behavior and silently wished that he would look at her that way or at least show her some affection or kindness.
Kurumu on the other hand was swearing like a Sailor in her mind, debating whether or not to try to just take what she wanted and force the vampire to give up on him altogether. She had one more trick up her sleeve. One thing she had promised never to use on him since he had saved her from the real Moka's wrath during their first year. She tried it once again before the Fairy Tale incident, when she was desperate for his attentions. He played along of course, which naturally made her very happy and content.
'Oh well. All is fair in love and war' she mused with a devious smirk that nobody took notice of besides the Snow Faerie.
As the homeroom bell rung indicating first period was next, Tsukune waited for Moka so they could head to their class together. He was silently praying that nothing would go wrong today, which in all realism never really went according to plan. Something would always happen and he knew he'd have to be on his toes for the remainder of the day.
"All set Moka?"
"Oh yes. Let's just get through the day as quickly as possible" Moka answered.
"That's one of the best ideas I've heard all morning. Let's go then" he said with an outstretched hand which she warmly accepted as they exited homeroom and walked down the overly-crowded hallway to first period. Thankfully there were only a total of four tests today: two in the morning then two after lunch. Tomorrow would be their day off, then Graduation on Friday at 12 noon.
"Damn him! How did he get a hot babe like Akashiya?" one jealous male asked, all the while his friends looked on at the vampire duo that walked past them a moment ago.
"Haven't you heard? Aono is a vampire and she's the one who turned him!"
"What? No way! I heard that he's just her lowly familiar" another one retorted.
"Man, you're an idiot. I heard that Aono defeated Alucard last year and had saved Akashiya's life!"
"You're the moron! Do you know how stupid that sounds? Look at him. So weak. How pathetic!"
"Well if he's a vampire, he must be pretty strong then. I heard that he and Akashiya are now mates!"
"What? Oh man if that's true, then she'd most likely kill anyone who gets in her way!" another replied.
"I heard that Aono almost killed sixteen students early last year when the Outcasts had kidnapped that vampire chick!"
"What? That's crazy just talk! I heard it was more like twenty!" the last one added with an all-knowing nod.
They all hummed yes in agreement and came to a rapid conclusion: don't bother Akashiya or Aono, not unless you had a death-wish!
…..
Thankfully the majority of the more challenging tests were out of the way. Even though he wasn't the sharpest tool in the shed, Tsukune somehow managed to not get too far behind in his studies. Even though he, along with his fellow Newspaper Club-mates, had missed out on three months of school, due to the entire Fairy Tale issue last year that was extremely trying on them all, especially Tsukune himself.
The morning had come and gone in the short span of four hours. It was now lunchtime, so Tsukune and Moka made their way to the cafeteria for a well-deserved break from their tests. The couple had half an hour to unwind and get mentally prepared for the remainder of their afternoon exams.
Once they had purchased their lunches, the pair decided to sit outside in the courtyard that was located behind the actual cafeteria building, since it was a warm, spring day. They found an empty table under a huge tree that would allow them to just enjoy each others company until they had to head to their afternoon finals. Luckily to the duo, the other girls let them be for now.
"So Moka, how do you think you did on your tests so far?" Tsukune asked as he sat down across from her on his side of the table.
"Oh, I'm pretty confident I passed with flying colors. How about you, Tsukune?"
"Well, they weren't all that hard, I guess. I feel pretty good about it, too."
"I see. Well, thankfully nothing unusual has happened so far today. And it would seem the other girls finally know their place. Otherwise I will have to show them once again."
"I guess you have a point. But our afternoon tests will be in different classrooms. I'll just have to be careful, knowing that one of them might try something."
Moka just glared at him, unsure if he was serious or not while she tried to eat her lunch in peace.
…...
"You don't have to worry Moka. I can handle myself. Trust me" he said with a warm smile and reached over and gave her free hand a gentle squeeze.
"You're right Tsukune. Just be careful, okay?" she replied as she returned the caring gesture.
"Thanks Moka. I'll be just fine. No worries" he said as he released her hand so he could finish his lunch and do his best to relax. No point in stressing out if something happens or not, right?
When they finally finished their lunch and returned the dishes to the cafeteria, Moka led him back outside next to the tree where they had ate their lunch at. They still had approximately ten minutes remaining of their free period to enjoy.
"Tsukune? Would you like...um...you know. Please?" she pleaded with puppy-dog eyes.
"Sure Moka. Like I said before, you really don't have to ask" he said as she leaned back against the large tree, wrapped her arms around him and embraced him firmly. She then rested her body against his right shoulder and inhaled his intoxicating scent.
"Tsukune...please...take my blood" she asked. He shook his head yes and licked her neck in a loving manner which caused her breath to hitch. Once his fangs pierced her neck, she repeated the affectionate gesture and partook of his sweet ambrosia. The blood-bonding took effect once again, this time the connection seemed to be even stronger than last night. Their hearts beat in complete unison.
'Ahhh...ah-hhh...Tsukune...oh kami...ahhhh-hngh...' Moka said silently through their bond. She was actually becoming aroused from her blood being consumed in such a loving fashion. Her knees then buckled from the intense pleasure she was receiving from her one and only blood-mate.
Tsukune had to hold her even firmer around her slender waist before she fell to the ground!
'Moka...my sweet Moka...I love you so much...' he replied back, quietly.
'T-tsukune...I love you too...so, so very much...' she wordlessly replied.
Moka was the one who had released her better-half first as she cleaned his neck with her tongue, sealing the puncture marks up that would vanish before the end of the school day.
She just stood there, feet firmly glued in place while her mate took his fill of her blood for another minute or so.
Once his thirst was assuaged, he removed his fangs from her tender flesh and sealed the marks closed with his tongue that would disappear shortly. Moka just held him lovingly and felt as though she were much closer to him, thanks to the bond they shared that was now twice as powerful as last night when they first performed the ceremony.
Moka was still panting heavily, feeling quite satisfied from being so close to her Tsukune. She desperately wished she was in the same classes as him, but knew that he would be fine on his own until school let out at four-thirty PM.
"Um, Tsukune?" she asked as she still hugged him close, pressing her ample bosom against him as she attempted to be much closer to him than she already was.
…..
"Yes, Moka?" he replied as he gave her a firm squeeze.
"Do you...have any plans...after school?"
"Well, no not really. I was kinda hoping we could spend, uh, some more time together, though. If it's okay with you Moka" he answered with a slight blush. Even though it was extremely difficult and quite embarrassing to say it aloud, he was at least being completely sincere about his feelings towards Moka and wanted to get to know her much better as a friend, lover, and mate.
"Oh...I see...I would like that as well...Tsukune" the red-eyed vampiress responded with a slight blush as she buried her face in his jacket.
"Oh...okay then. I'll meet you by your classroom after the last bell rings for the day."
"I'd like that, Tsukune" she said as she pried her face from his jacket and looked into his chocolate-brown eyes with an overly adorable smile.
"I guess we should head back, since lunch is about over" he told Moka who seemed to be in her own little world.
"Oh yes. You're right. Let's head back then, shall we?" Moka asked as she stood straight up, slid her hand into his own, and made their way back to the main building.
Once they were inside, Tsukune walked Moka down the long corridor to her next class, gave her a quick hug, and wished her luck. She returned the warm gesture in a similar fashion.
"I'll see you after school Moka, just like I promised" he said as he turned around to head to his first of two afternoon classes.
"Of course, Tsukune. I'll see you then" she replied with a warm smile of her own. He waved farewell to her for now and would see her in about four hours or so. He would do his very best to get through the remainder of the day without any further problems or interruptions.
…..
Once he arrived at his classroom, he was greeted in a familiar way from none other than Kurumu.
"Oh Tsukune! I didn't see you there!" she said as he crashed into her massive bosom.
"M-rmhm – mhmff – hmmffmm!" he muffled against the soft, cottony material of her classic, yellow sweater.
"What was that, Tsukune? You want to make out with me? Oh, how very bold of you!"
With all his might he pushed himself out of her grip and was gasping for air. He actually thought he was going to really die this time from lack of oxygen to his brain. Tsukune needed all the oxygen he could muster, just to make it through the rest of the day of tests, for crying out loud!
…..
"Kurumu? What the hell? You can't go around saying things that aren't true!" he sharply admonished.
"But Tsukune...I – I was only saying hello" she sadly pouted as she fluttered her long eyelashes at him, and using her Charm ability.
"Kurumu...sorry about that. It's...been a very stressful day and I just want it to be over with as soon as possible" he said as he closed his eyes and shook his head, knowing very well what she was trying to do and wanted to get to his desk on the opposite side of the classroom, so he could clear out his thoughts from his fogged-up mind.
"It's okay Tsukune. Once again, I'm really sorry. I wouldn't want your mate to kill me for just saying hello to you" she said with an entrancing wink as she sat down at her own desk, two rows adjacent from him.
'Damn it, Kurumu. Get out of my head!' he mentally screamed. He was half-tempted to tear his Rosary off and let his vampire side out. But he knew it was against Academy policy to show your yokai while in school. Moka was exempt from the strict rule by the Headmaster himself, since her Rosary was completely destroyed last year by the demon, Alucard.
"Alright class, settle down. You have 90 minutes to finish your final exam. Once you're done, please drop them on my desk and then return to your seat. And you can begin...now" the teacher instructed as she glanced at the clock, noting the time.
'Wish me luck Moka' Tsukune thought to himself. Even though math was his worse subject, he knew he'd manage to somehow succeed with the minimum passing score.
On the other side of the building, Moka was in the same predicament as her mate as well as nearly one-third of the student population. She quietly wished the day would be over with as swiftly as possible. The vampiress was actually starting to miss being by his side, where she knew she belonged. It felt right to her and she knew it was without question. Moka Akashiya had finally found her place.
...
As soon as the final bell of the day rung, both vampires searched for the other, their blood-bond leading them in the proper direction. The pulling sensation was quite powerful, fueled by their desire to be with their one and only mate. As soon as Moka spotted Tsukune, she dashed through the crowded hallway and jumped into his arms.
The force of the impact knocked him to the floor as the sea of students rapidly dispersed to give the pair of vampires plenty of room. He hugged Moka quite firmly as she sank her fangs into his neck and began drinking his blood in front of anyone who was bold enough to witness the act of vampire intimacy.
…..
"Geez Moka, haven't you sucked Tsukune's blood enough today?"
"Yeah Moka. Take your love slave to your room already and take what you want."
"Can I come and join you guys? I don't take up very much room and I'd be happy to just watch you do it."
Moka released Tsukune and cleaned his neck with her tongue to seal the puncture marks closed. Once she was done, she stood up and glared daggers at the three idiots who dared interrupt her special time with her blood-mate.
"What do you three want? Haven't I given you enough warning not to come in-between Tsukune and myself? He is MY mate. If you need to be reminded of that, then so be it. But this time, I won't hold myself back" Moka told Kurumu, Mizore and Yukari as she stood in the center of them.
Tsukune got up from the tiled floor and walked over to a very pissed-off Moka. Her yokai was going berserk and she had murder in her eyes. He pulled gently on her arm and hugged her suddenly from behind, catching her off guard before she caused any permanent damage to either the school or their friends.
"Moka...I'm sure they didn't mean what they said" he told her as he tightened his grip around her waist and attempted to have her calm down before she did something that she would regret later on. Like kill someone.
He knew that she was more than upset, and he didn't blame her. The other girls would have to let go of him, once and for all; no matter how painful it would be for any one of them.
He didn't want to hurt his friends anymore than he already had, but he finally made his decision, as did Moka. They were more than friends. They were mates in every sense of the word, bound by their deep connection through their blood.
As she attempted to wiggle her way out of her boyfriend's embrace, he then lovingly kissed her right ear which caused her to softly moan. The other girls watched in utter disbelief as the real Moka's expression changed from murderous intent to one of complete ecstasy in the matter of a few, passing seconds.
"Moka? Are you going to relax now?" Tsukune inquired as he could detect that her anger had subsided somewhat.
"Yes love. Sorry about that but, they still need to know their place."
"I'm pretty sure they know their place, Moka. Don't you girls?" he said as he looked at his three friends. They all shook their heads yes and bowed with heads hung low. Tsukune then loosened his hold on Moka and she looked at her so-called friends.
"Listen up girls, you should all be grateful to Tsukune once more for his foolishness in stopping me, yet again. We are not only blood-mates, but mates as well. You may not want to hear this, but it's the absolute, honest truth. I'm his first as he is mine. We had sealed our relationship in a very intimate manner last night. We'll all be Graduating on Friday, so let's just get along until then. I really don't wish to waste my time showing you three your place anymore, to be completely honest. So just be thankful. But if any of you try get in my way ever again, I will not hold myself back and he won't stop me. I'm quite grateful for your help last year for coming to my rescue, but Tsukune was the one who had saved my life. I will never forget that for as long as I live. And it's true that I was the one to confess that I've been in love with him for as long as I can remember. It took me a very long time to realize that, and well, now we are together. So please, I'm asking you as my friends; allow us to live in peace from now on. Come Tsukune. Let's head back now," Moka said with a bow as she turned around, grabbed his hand and made her way to the closest exit, dragging a bewildered Tsukune behind herself the entire way.
Mizore, Kurumu and Yukari were left standing there utterly speechless, with their mouths agape.
"What the hell just happened?" Kurumu asked her two friends, who were just as clueless as she was. She was quite certain she would be on the floor, left in a bruised heap, or far worse! Maybe Moka had softened up somewhat.
...
As soon as Moka and Tsukune reached the female dormitory a few minutes later, several of its residents had heard the rumor about her and that Aono boy. It would seem that the rumor was indeed true as they saw her pulling him back towards her room on the third floor.
Once they were in the privacy of her room, Moka bowed deeply for her behavior just a few minutes ago. She didn't want to be the bad guy and didn't want her mate to despise her for her brash attitude towards their friends. At least she held herself back and kept her promise.
Moka knew she was being on the selfish side, but all she wanted was to be closer to him. She desired to be closer to him in any way. And now that final exams were over once and for all, she could spend more time with him. And tomorrow (Thursday) was their day off, since Friday was their Graduation commencement ceremony.
"Moka, please, stop bowing. I'm not upset, okay?" Tsukune told her as he gently placed his hands on her shoulders and pulled her into his warm embrace.
"You're not mad, are you?" she asked as she returned the gesture.
"No, I'm actually happy that you held yourself back. I'm proud of you Moka."
"Really, Tsukune? It – it was quite difficult. But – but what I told the girls is the truth though. You feel the same way about me, don't you Tsukune?" she asked with slight apprehension and trepidation.
"Yes, Moka. I know it wasn't easy for you, but I think they finally got the picture. And yes, I feel the same way about you. I've always been in love with you. And I'll always be here for you, no matter what."
"Thank you love. I – I love you too. So very much. And, I'll always be here right by your side. That's where my place is."
Once the pair finished their hug, Moka removed his jacket and tie, then led him to her bed and asked him to lay down with her for a while. She just wanted things to return to somewhat normal. Well, normal would be an understatement. Things have never been normal for either one of them, but the vampire princess just wanted to spend her life with her one and only blood-mate.
It wouldn't be exactly easy, but she'd do her damnedest to make sure that Tsukune had a stress-free life. He honestly deserved it. After all, he's always been there for her. In the very best of times and the worst.
…..
"Hey Moka?" he said, breaking her out if her thoughts.
"Yes Tsukune?" she replied as she looked up to him.
"What did Kokoa mean by what she said this morning? About your Father not accepting me as your mate?" he asked with a hint of worry.
"She was just trying to scare you, Tsukune. My Father already knows that you were the one who had saved me from death last year when – when – you know" Moka answered with sadness.
"I see. Well, uh – I know it won't be easy Moka, but I want to do the right thing. I mean, we are mates now. And uh, I really don't know much about vampire laws and customs, besides what you already told me."
"You have nothing to worry about, Tsukune. This was both our decision to make. Since I'm of age, it's my choice who I want to take as a mate. And I have chosen you, Tsukune. Truth be told, I can't imagine my life where you're not in it. I love you so very much" she replied as she held him closer.
"Oh Moka...I feel the same way. You complete me," he told her as he hugged her tighter, wanting to be much closer than they already were. He leaned down and gently kissed her neck, which caused her breath to hitch at the affectionate gesture.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...ah-hah...oh Kami...I missed you today...so much" Moka whispered, as her breathing came out in short pants. She was already aroused and wanted more, a lot more truth be told.
"I missed you too, Moka...um...would it be okay...if I...um...spent the night with...you? There's no class tomorrow" he asked.
"Of course, Tsukune. I'd like that, too...I really don't want to be alone tonight...please...take care of me, my love..." she said as she turned to kiss him passionately on his lips. She deepened her kisses as she became further aroused. Her body was absolutely burning up and she felt as though her heart would burst out from her chest. Oh Kami, she wanted much, much more.
"Tsukune, please...make love to me...I need you now...it hurts...so much" Moka said with sincerity in her voice.
"O-of course Moka."
Temporarily breaking their closeness, the couple assisted each other in removing their clothes and neatly folded their garments in half, then placed them on the chair next to her desk by the window.
…..
Once they were comfortable under the soft bedding, Moka looked up to Tsukune and smiled before suckling on the sensitive spot just below his ear, where she had marked him as her blood-mate, murmuring in pleasure as she gently sunk her fangs into his flesh once again. Drinking his delectable blood in slow, deep slurps caused him to groan with pleasure from the act of affection and intimacy that only they shared with each other.
Moka moaned softly with wanton desire as he lightly squeezed her plump derriere, causing her fangs to bury deeper into his flesh. She couldn't help her voice anymore as she was becoming even further stimulated, brought on by her lover's gentle touch. She then retracted her canines a moment later and licked his neck in an erotic manner, sealing the small puncture marks closed which caused a shiver of delight, down to his very core.
As Moka laid on top of her blood-mate, her large breasts dangled over his broad chest. He lightly grabbed the voluptuous mounds of flesh and gently massaged them in between his strong, caring hands. Moka moaned even more-so, her angelic voice furthering his building arousal. Without warning he suckled both of her already erect, pink nipples in his mouth, causing her knees to buckle and her toes to curl, from the intense pleasure that resulted in her first compelling climax of the late afternoon.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...ahhhngh...no fair" she breathed out as she was gasping for air.
"Sorry Moka...I'll be more gentle" he replied.
"It's...okay Tsukune...you just...surprised me..." she said, as she laid down against his bare chest.
Moka knew through their deep bond that he craved her touch, just as much as she desired his caress. She desperately yearned-for this act of love and adoration throughout the entire day, as the hours slowly ticked by, which only fueled the insatiable craving to be closer to her one and only.
Wordlessly, she held his throbbing hot flesh in her hand as she tenderly guided his fulness into her warm flower that was already soaked from foreplay. Tsukune held her tighter as their bodies became as one.
Slowly and tenderly the vampire couple made passionate love well into the evening, as their bond deepened through their union once again. Moka was on cloud nine as she felt their connection strengthen, as they came closer to a mutual climax.
Moka eventually slowed her ministrations while she continued to straddle her lover. She honestly wished for this to continue on even longer, but she could sense that Tsukune was holding himself back; he was on the cusp of an exceedingly powerful climax himself; the pressure becoming nearly unbearable as his powers were sealed by the Silver Rosary wrapped around his right wrist.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...it's okay...you can...oh Kami...now...ah-ahhhh" Moka breathed out.
"Moka...ahhh...any...ahhhhhh..." he replied as his breathing became shallower.
…..
With the power of a thousand suns, the couple peaked simultaneously; their louder than usual voices echoing off the thin walls of Moka's dorm room. Tsukune held Moka tight as her body convulsed rather forcefully from the aftershocks of their intense lovemaking.
Moka remained in place for several minutes, still lying on top of Tsukune, unable to move nor speak. He gently held her around her slender waist and kissed her dainty neck. They were both trying their best to regain their composure since they were now feeling sexually fulfilled.
"M-mmm...Tsukune...that was...amazing" she finally said once her heart-beat and breathing returned to somewhat normalcy. He just hugged her and gladly hummed in agreement. Frankly, he was rather worn out. He had to remember to be unsealed the next time they made love, so he'd have the stamina and the willpower to go on for another hour or two.
At least they had the day off from school tomorrow and could sleep in until 9 AM or so. But knowing this new side of Moka, she'd most likely want to spend the entire day in bed with him, without a care in the world. He came to the realization that she was slowly changing, even though she was still a prideful and powerful vampire. She was learning to accept her new feelings and knew that she was maturing.
Tsukune enjoyed seeing this sweet, caring side of Moka and silently wished that she would show it more often, especially out in public. He would do whatever he could to have her lighten up somewhat and knew it would be a long, difficult journey. But he'd do his best to support and assist her in any way he could. After all, Moka is still Moka.
…..
A/N:
Well here's another chapter out sooner than I said I would :)
Just an early present for all my faithful followers. I hope that you enjoyed this long chapter.
It wasn't easy to write, but did my best to get it out way before Christmas.
The next chapter (4) will be their Graduation and a one day time skip, since this takes place on a Wednesday and their Graduation ceremony will be on a Friday.
I already have that chapter pretty much planned out, as well as the follow-up chapter when Tsukune and Moka return to the human world. And yes, the real Moka will meet his parents. LOL. Meet the parents.
Yes, and he will tell them the truth about EVERYTHING. Including Yokai Academy, him being Moka's mate, (as in Engaged) and him being a Vampire! *shock!*
That's going to be very interesting to even write but I don't know when it will happen. That's just the very basic outline. If anyone has a good idea how that will happen, please let me know. I will always give due credit to anyone who helps me out with GOOD plots or ideas. ^_^
Chapter 3 "Blood-mates, Part 2"
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Complete alternate version of my fan-fic 'A Confession and A Vampire'
Inner Moka & Tsukune
Rated M for a Lemon towards the end.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
Somewhat OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
Shout-out to "Onixx" from , for the chapter idea! Thank you for the assistance ^_^
…..
Takes place the morning after Tsukune and Moka become mates.
…..
Wednesday morning, April 25.
After a peaceful night's slumber, the newly-mated couple awoke at six AM sharp, thanks to Moka's brilliant idea of Tsukune having enough time to return to his dormitory in order to prepare himself for the last day of final exams, since Graduation would be on Friday, the 27th of April.
"Tsukune...wake up love. It's six o'clock..." Moka said as she gently shook her sleepy boyfriend in a futile attempt to have him face the day.
"M-mmm...five more minutes, mom" he lazily replied. Moka blushed when she heard him accidentally call her 'mom'. She then smiled seeing just how cute he was while he slept.
Moka leaned down and breathed into his ear while she straddled his hips. He then embraced her firmly, as he slowly opened his heavy eyelids and saw who it was and what she was doing. Tsukune took notice that it was indeed Moka and she wasn't exactly wearing any clothes, whatsoever. Not even a nightgown or undergarments of any type.
He then recalled what happened last night once his half-asleep brain finally woke up a bit.
…..
"Good morning, sleepy head" the silver-haired maiden said with a bright grin as she ran her slender fingers through his always messy hair.
"Good morning, beautiful" he replied followed by a loud yawn.
"Sleep well?" Moka inquired.
"Uh, yeah – thanks Moka" Tsukune answered with a blush of his own, once he realized that Moka was completely nude; her impressive bosom pressed against his bare chest.
"If you're wondering, yes; I sleep in the nude all the time," she told her mate with a wicked smirk.
"Oh, is that so?" Tsukune said as he attempted to sit straight up, but was failing miserably. Moka had pinned him to the bed by sitting on top of him and was now inhaling his wonderful scent that she admired the most.
"M-mm, Tsukune? Would it be all right if I had a sip of your blood before you head back to your dorm? I'm still feeling a little tired from last night."
Tsukune found it to be rather unorthodox for Moka to plead for his blood in this way, but found it to be genuinely adorable of her to do so.
"Of course Moka. You really don't have to ask. We are mates and everything I am belongs to you."
"Tsukune..." she whispered, feeling his genuine sincerity for her through his honest response.
Taking his cue, the blushing, silver-haired vampiress leaned down to the crook of his neck and licked a spot on his skin with her hot tongue, sending shivers of delight down his spine. He didn't even feel when her fangs pierced his flesh, whatsoever.
While he held his gorgeous mate in his arms, he could sense that she was enjoying this ritual with great exuberance, more-so than last night when they first became blood-mates.
"M-mmm...delicious" she said a few moments later when she was satisfied, licking her full, plump lips in a provocative manner.
"Feeling better?" he asked Moka who was still blushing.
"Oh yes. Thank you love. Um, it's getting late. I really don't want you to leave, but you should head back now, before anyone else wakes up. I'll meet you at our usual spot on the way to school, okay?" she said once she had released Tsukune from her embrace so he could finally get out of bed and get himself ready for the day.
"Oh, it's not problem Moka. Uh, yeah, I guess I should head back now. But I -uh – really – uh...don't want anyone to see me this early, either. So um, I'll meet you on the way to school in a while" he said as he nearly stumbled out of her bed as he attempted to track down his missing articles of clothing that were scattered all across Moka's room.
He then asked to borrow her restroom to make himself presentable for the time being.
Even though they were a real couple, he was still shy to some degree to be sans-clothes in front of her.
…..
A few minutes later, he was finally redressed and ready to head back to his own dorm that was located across the courtyard from the female dormitory. As a matter fact, his room faced Moka's.
"I'm all set Moka," he said as he walked over to give her a hug farewell, for now.
"Oh, um...sure Tsukune" she said as she just wrapped her pink, fuzzy robe with black trim around herself so she could see him to the door like a proper girlfriend should. Moka returned his hug, followed with a soft, chaste kiss on his lips.
As Moka escorted him to the door, she then unlocked it and was shocked to see her younger sister on the other side, getting ready to knock. 'What the hell is she doing here so early?' Moka mentally cursed, shocked at her stepsister's unannounced appearance at such an ungodly hour.
"Good morning big sis" Kokoa greeted, with a sour expression on her face.
Moka quickly pushed Tsukune aside, concealing him behind her door in a desperate endeavor to hide him. There was no way she was going to allow her overly protective pest of a sister to ruin her morning. She would have to keep the current string of events from yesterday a secret, for now.
"Oh good morning Kokoa; what brings you here so early in the morning?" the platinum-trussed vampire princess inquired with her arms crossed under her abundant bosom.
"Well, I was just checking up on you, big sis. See, I happened to hear something quite peculiar last night. Some of the girls here in the dorm, mainly on your floor, claimed they saw you inviting a BOY into your room last night. Now, knowing you so well like I do, I figured it had to be a lie. Ya' know. Just a big misunderstanding or rumor. So I came by this morning to see if it was true or not. It's not true, is it big sis?" Kokoa asked with a hint of anger and betrayal.
She knew her big sister Moka was perfect in every way. She had to be sure of what she heard was just hearsay or sick joke. It had to be a mistake of some sort, right? Just gossip amongst the female residents who had nothing better to do than to stir up some trouble or cause a huge fight to break out for their own amusement.
"Well, Kokoa. I don't know who started that rumor, but I have a good idea of who it was. What I do in my free time outside of school is nobody's business, especially yours Kokoa. You're my sister and I do love you. But you have to let me live my life, for myself. I'm old enough to make my own decisions and if I had a boy here last night or not, shouldn't be anyone's concern, specifically that damned stalker and her succubus cohort. You need to grow up and let go of your obsession with me...because...because – I have already chosen a mate" Moka told Kokoa whose expression changed from sadness to absolute horror, from what her perfect, older sister just admitted out loud with absolute honesty, even if it was very embarrassing.
This wasn't the way it was supposed to go. Not like this. But the cat was now out of the bag and truth be told, Moka actually felt somewhat relieved.
…..
"What!" Kokoa yelled as she forced the door back, slamming it into Tsukune, and knocking him over.
"Ow!" he yelped as he tumbled backwards to the carpeted floor of Moka's room.
"Tsukune! Are you okay?" Moka said as she knelt to the floor and noticed her mate had a small bump on his forehead, due to her little sister's uncalled-for outburst.
Kokoa was beyond upset! She was royally pissed!
"What the hell is HE doing here?" she bellowed, her face as red as her fiery-hued hair; all the while pointing an accusing finger to the bewildered male sprawled out on the floor of her sister's dorm room.
While Moka helped Tsukune to his feet, she ignored the irate vampiress's incessant ranting.
"Kokoa back off, now! You just injured my blood-mate," Moka sharply warned as her eyes burned red with furious rage.
"B-blood-mate? But big sis, you can't take HIM as your mate! He's a damn half-breed!" she boisterously yelled, waking up the other young women in the dormitory.
Moka continued ignoring Kokoa as she walked Tsukune over to her bed and had him sit down for a minute, so he could recuperate from the sudden blunt trauma to his forehead that nearly knocked him out cold.
"Yes Kokoa. Tsukune is MY blood-mate. And I will NOT idly sit by while you mock or injure him. He is a good, decent man. He has saved my life more times than I can count. Who do you think was the one who saved my life last year with his own blood? Well, do you!?" Moka shouted back, deeply disturbed over this sudden turn of events.
"B-but big sis! No...he can't be..." Kokoa protested.
"That is ENOUGH! No buts, Kokoa. I have been in love with Tsukune for as long as I can remember. He has always been there for me, protecting me, even when I was still sealed in my Rosary. He has NEVER turned his back on me. Not once! Even while he was still human, he always did his best. Always. He means more to me than anything in the entire world. He saved my life last year, Kokoa. I was dying! I wouldn't be here today if it were not for him. Tsukune even saved my life on the very first day of our freshman year. If he hadn't come to my rescue when he did – I would – I would've been killed, or far, far, worse! He's my very best friend, Kokoa. And he loves me just as much as I love him or even more-so" Moka said as she broke down from the somber memories, all brought to light once again, this time by her sister's sudden arrival.
"Big sis...I didn't know" the redhead replied, seeing her idol break down like this. This was definitely a first. She had never seen Moka ever cry. Not even when Tsukune had nearly lost his life, protecting her big sis Moka.
…..
Once he was feeling better, Tsukune dropped to his knees, pulled Moka into his strong, caring arms, and embraced her lovingly yet firmly.
"It's okay Moka. I'm here for you...shhh...Everything's going to be just fine..." he whispered softly, attempting to quiet her down somewhat.
Even though Moka was an "S" Class 'Super Vampire', she was still a young woman who was experiencing romantic love for the first time and was trying her absolute best to get a grip on all these new thoughts, feelings, and emotions that's she been experiencing since becoming mates with her very best friend, in less than 12 hours ago.
"I'm sorry Tsukune. I – uh – didn't know. But just be warned, Father won't take this news as well as I am. He'll be here for Graduation on Friday. So if I were you, I'd get my affairs in order. I - uh, have to be going now to get ready for school" Kokoa said as she excused herself and left Moka's room as swiftly as possible.
A few minutes later, Moka eventually calmed herself down and Tsukune helped her to her feet.
"Feeling better now?" Tsukune asked as she was still clinging to him.
"Oh yes. Thank you love. I'm okay now," she answered with a small smile.
"That's good to hear. I - um, want to thank you Moka. You know, for what you told Kokoa."
"Oh it's really no problem Tsukune. It's the truth though. She'll have to learn to accept you into our family someday soon. And one thing she needs to know is that we vampires are very protective of our mates. If anyone gets in the way or causes them harm, they would be put down without hesitation. Even family. It may seem harsh, but that's just how things are with us vampires" Moka said as she gave him a quick hug, and then walked him back towards the door.
Tsukune gulped hard gearing his girlfriend Moka say something as unpleasant as putting them permanently in their place for coming in-between them since they were now mates. Vampires were indeed quite the scary lot, he surmised!
"I see. Uh. Okay then. I'm going to go and change for class. I'll see you in a while at our usual spot, okay?"
"Of course, Tsukune. I'll see you soon, but don't keep me waiting too long. I love you," Moka said with a wink and a smile that caused Tsukune to blush furiously.
"Uh yeah of course. I'll see you shortly, Moka. I love you, too" he said as he walked through her door, out into the hallway and headed towards the nearest exit. He knew that it would be a very interesting day and he honestly couldn't wait until Friday. They were finally graduating and was ready to start a new life with his beautiful mate, Moka Akashiya.
…..
He'd have to ask her later on today what Kokoa meant about her saying that her Father wouldn't be taking the good news so well about them becoming mates.
Tsukune raced back to his dorm so he could get ready for the day. He would take a quick bath (with help from the special herbs Moka had made for him, since he could no longer bathe or shower with regular water), and get changed into a fresh uniform to face anybody else who didn't accept the good news so well.
He knew that information tends to spread across the yokai campus like a wildfire.
Approximately an hour later, Tsukune was ready to head to school for the last day of exams. Once he closed and locked his door, he made his way out of the boy's dorm and started down the long, worn out pathway that leads to the school.
Tsukune then realized something quite important.
He had met Moka three years ago, on this very day.
"Damn it!" he yelled out as he neared the location where he was supposed to meet her at any second now. Now he felt like a real idiot. He knew she was already there through their blood-bond waiting patiently for his imminent arrival.
As he rounded the corner, he saw his one and only, smiling brightly and dressed in her standard school uniform. Once she spotted him, she waved rather energetically and started to meet him halfway.
"Good morning, Tsukune."
"Good morning, Moka" he replied with a warm smile and pulled her into a quick embrace. Several other students passed the pair on their way to the ancient school building and were making some rather unnecessary comments, which the vampires managed to somehow tune out and ignore.
"Tsukune? What's wrong? I can sense that something's bothering you" Moka stated when they finished their hug and started towards the Academy. He then sighed heavily. He knew he couldn't hide anything from Moka and realized that she'd get him to tell her, one way or another.
"It's nothing, really. Would you mind coming with me for a few minutes?"
"What's wrong, Tsukune?" she asked with a half-worried look across her features.
"Nothing's wrong...it's just that, well...it's just better to show you. Trust me Moka, okay?"
"Alright Tsukune, I do trust you. We can't dally too much though. Homeroom starts in fifteen minutes, and we can't afford to be late" she said as she walked beside him, heading in the opposite direction, away from the Academy.
"It won't take long Moka. I just want to show you something" he replied with an outstretched hand, which she took immediately without any further questions or hesitation.
"Okay Tsukune. Lead the way."
...
About five minutes later, they were about a hundred meters from the edge of the spooky, old forest that lead towards the inter-dimensional tunnel that connected the yokai realm to the human world. Skulls of various creatures littered the area along with dead, fallen tree branches along with half-decayed leaves.
He then stopped, knowing this was the place where he met her, that fateful day three years ago.
"Tsukune? Why are we here? What is it that you wanted to show me?" Moka asked as she looked around briefly, unsure of why he had brought her here of all places. It wasn't exactly the most romantic area, for starters.
He then held her hands in his own as he searched for the proper words to say without sounding like a complete fool.
"Well, Moka...this place is very special to me..." he began.
"Special?" she repeated, unsure of what he meant by the cryptic way he stated it.
"Yes, right here actually" he said referring to their current location alongside the pathway.
"How so, Tsukune?" she asked with a hint of curiosity, while she furrowed her brow.
"Well, the thing is...I met you here, three years ago today when you ran into me with your bicycle."
Then it hit her like a ton of bricks, as the fond memory finally sunk in.
She then embraced him and held him for all he was worth as tears of absolute joy trickled down her cheeks, soaking into his green, school jacket.
Moka was at a total loss of words. Every memory from her other half resurfaced when she recalled that this was indeed a very special place for the both of them. That this was the place they first met and became friends through her pink-haired side.
"Oh Tsukune...I don't know what to say" she said after a few moments of awkward silence.
"I know Moka. But one thing I do know, meeting you changed my life that day. I never really had any friends either before coming here to Yokai. And when you asked me to be your friend, not only was I very surprised but really happy too. I thought I was dreaming when I opened my eyes and saw you standing over me. I'd never seen such a beautiful girl in my entire life up until that point. Thank you for being the most important woman in my life. I love you Moka."
More tears streamed down her face as his honest words hit her heart, further breaking down the stone wall she had erected around it, so she wouldn't feel the loneliness that she had experienced while growing up.
…..
"Tsukune...thank you too for being my very best friend and always being here for me. I know I wasn't exactly the best friend to you at first, but the more I had gotten to know you through my other half, I began to see you differently. That's why I saved your life with my blood. Even though I knew the risks involved, I didn't want to lose you. I couldn't lose you. So thank you Tsukune. Thank you for loving me and accepting me for who I am. I love you so, so very much."
Tsukune was very happy. Actually more like relieved. Moka had remembered meeting him here!
Their good mood was rudely interrupted, unfortunately. Seems as though they had lost all track of time.
*Ding dong – dong dong - ding dong ding doo-oong* rang the school bell, indicating the five-minute warning.
The couple ceased their embrace, made a mad dash for the Academy and barely made it just in time.
"Sorry we're late, Miss Nekonome" Tsukune apologized as he and his mate arrived at their homeroom at warp speed.
"It's alright, ~ just made it. Please, take your seats so I can take roll call now, ~nya" the cat yokai said as she smiled at the two vampires who just barely made it.
"Thank you, Sensei" Moka replied as she followed Tsukune and took her seat behind him in the very last row, next to the windows towards the rear of the classroom. The entire class were murmuring something, but the pair had somehow managed to ignore for the time being.
As Miss Nekonome took roll call, Moka found it rather difficult to remain focused. Not only was her heart still beating rather loudly inside her ribcage as she recalled every moment she had spent with Tsukune since the day they met, but she was smiling the entire time.
"Akashiya? Akashiya? ~Nya!"
"Oh, here Sensei" Moka replied once she heard her name being called by her bakeneko teacher.
Tsukune turned around briefly and saw that Moka seemed to be daydreaming, which was rather unusual for her since she was always one of the brightest students in his class.
"Moka? Are you alright?" he asked in a concerned tone.
…..
"Oh yes, I'm fine Tsukune. Thank you for being concerned" she said with an adorable wink that caused the young man of her affections to blush madly once again.
"Oh uh, that's good to hear, Moka" he answered as he quickly turned around and attempted to pay attention to his homeroom teacher.
'Why does Moka have to look so damn cute this morning?' he mentally swore to himself. Mizore noticed his behavior and silently wished that he would look at her that way or at least show her some affection or kindness.
Kurumu on the other hand was swearing like a Sailor in her mind, debating whether or not to try to just take what she wanted and force the vampire to give up on him altogether. She had one more trick up her sleeve. One thing she had promised never to use on him since he had saved her from the real Moka's wrath during their first year. She tried it once again before the Fairy Tale incident, when she was desperate for his attentions. He played along of course, which naturally made her very happy and content.
'Oh well. All is fair in love and war' she mused with a devious smirk that nobody took notice of besides the Snow Faerie.
As the homeroom bell rung indicating first period was next, Tsukune waited for Moka so they could head to their class together. He was silently praying that nothing would go wrong today, which in all realism never really went according to plan. Something would always happen and he knew he'd have to be on his toes for the remainder of the day.
"All set Moka?"
"Oh yes. Let's just get through the day as quickly as possible" Moka answered.
"That's one of the best ideas I've heard all morning. Let's go then" he said with an outstretched hand which she warmly accepted as they exited homeroom and walked down the overly-crowded hallway to first period. Thankfully there were only a total of four tests today: two in the morning then two after lunch. Tomorrow would be their day off, then Graduation on Friday at 12 noon.
"Damn him! How did he get a hot babe like Akashiya?" one jealous male asked, all the while his friends looked on at the vampire duo that walked past them a moment ago.
"Haven't you heard? Aono is a vampire and she's the one who turned him!"
"What? No way! I heard that he's just her lowly familiar" another one retorted.
"Man, you're an idiot. I heard that Aono defeated Alucard last year and had saved Akashiya's life!"
"You're the moron! Do you know how stupid that sounds? Look at him. So weak. How pathetic!"
"Well if he's a vampire, he must be pretty strong then. I heard that he and Akashiya are now mates!"
"What? Oh man if that's true, then she'd most likely kill anyone who gets in her way!" another replied.
"I heard that Aono almost killed sixteen students early last year when the Outcasts had kidnapped that vampire chick!"
"What? That's crazy just talk! I heard it was more like twenty!" the last one added with an all-knowing nod.
They all hummed yes in agreement and came to a rapid conclusion: don't bother Akashiya or Aono, not unless you had a death-wish!
…..
Thankfully the majority of the more challenging tests were out of the way. Even though he wasn't the sharpest tool in the shed, Tsukune somehow managed to not get too far behind in his studies. Even though he, along with his fellow Newspaper Club-mates, had missed out on three months of school, due to the entire Fairy Tale issue last year that was extremely trying on them all, especially Tsukune himself.
The morning had come and gone in the short span of four hours. It was now lunchtime, so Tsukune and Moka made their way to the cafeteria for a well-deserved break from their tests. The couple had half an hour to unwind and get mentally prepared for the remainder of their afternoon exams.
Once they had purchased their lunches, the pair decided to sit outside in the courtyard that was located behind the actual cafeteria building, since it was a warm, spring day. They found an empty table under a huge tree that would allow them to just enjoy each others company until they had to head to their afternoon finals. Luckily to the duo, the other girls let them be for now.
"So Moka, how do you think you did on your tests so far?" Tsukune asked as he sat down across from her on his side of the table.
"Oh, I'm pretty confident I passed with flying colors. How about you, Tsukune?"
"Well, they weren't all that hard, I guess. I feel pretty good about it, too."
"I see. Well, thankfully nothing unusual has happened so far today. And it would seem the other girls finally know their place. Otherwise I will have to show them once again."
"I guess you have a point. But our afternoon tests will be in different classrooms. I'll just have to be careful, knowing that one of them might try something."
Moka just glared at him, unsure if he was serious or not while she tried to eat her lunch in peace.
…...
"You don't have to worry Moka. I can handle myself. Trust me" he said with a warm smile and reached over and gave her free hand a gentle squeeze.
"You're right Tsukune. Just be careful, okay?" she replied as she returned the caring gesture.
"Thanks Moka. I'll be just fine. No worries" he said as he released her hand so he could finish his lunch and do his best to relax. No point in stressing out if something happens or not, right?
When they finally finished their lunch and returned the dishes to the cafeteria, Moka led him back outside next to the tree where they had ate their lunch at. They still had approximately ten minutes remaining of their free period to enjoy.
"Tsukune? Would you like...um...you know. Please?" she pleaded with puppy-dog eyes.
"Sure Moka. Like I said before, you really don't have to ask" he said as she leaned back against the large tree, wrapped her arms around him and embraced him firmly. She then rested her body against his right shoulder and inhaled his intoxicating scent.
"Tsukune...please...take my blood" she asked. He shook his head yes and licked her neck in a loving manner which caused her breath to hitch. Once his fangs pierced her neck, she repeated the affectionate gesture and partook of his sweet ambrosia. The blood-bonding took effect once again, this time the connection seemed to be even stronger than last night. Their hearts beat in complete unison.
'Ahhh...ah-hhh...Tsukune...oh kami...ahhhh-hngh...' Moka said silently through their bond. She was actually becoming aroused from her blood being consumed in such a loving fashion. Her knees then buckled from the intense pleasure she was receiving from her one and only blood-mate.
Tsukune had to hold her even firmer around her slender waist before she fell to the ground!
'Moka...my sweet Moka...I love you so much...' he replied back, quietly.
'T-tsukune...I love you too...so, so very much...' she wordlessly replied.
Moka was the one who had released her better-half first as she cleaned his neck with her tongue, sealing the puncture marks up that would vanish before the end of the school day.
She just stood there, feet firmly glued in place while her mate took his fill of her blood for another minute or so.
Once his thirst was assuaged, he removed his fangs from her tender flesh and sealed the marks closed with his tongue that would disappear shortly. Moka just held him lovingly and felt as though she were much closer to him, thanks to the bond they shared that was now twice as powerful as last night when they first performed the ceremony.
Moka was still panting heavily, feeling quite satisfied from being so close to her Tsukune. She desperately wished she was in the same classes as him, but knew that he would be fine on his own until school let out at four-thirty PM.
"Um, Tsukune?" she asked as she still hugged him close, pressing her ample bosom against him as she attempted to be much closer to him than she already was.
…..
"Yes, Moka?" he replied as he gave her a firm squeeze.
"Do you...have any plans...after school?"
"Well, no not really. I was kinda hoping we could spend, uh, some more time together, though. If it's okay with you Moka" he answered with a slight blush. Even though it was extremely difficult and quite embarrassing to say it aloud, he was at least being completely sincere about his feelings towards Moka and wanted to get to know her much better as a friend, lover, and mate.
"Oh...I see...I would like that as well...Tsukune" the red-eyed vampiress responded with a slight blush as she buried her face in his jacket.
"Oh...okay then. I'll meet you by your classroom after the last bell rings for the day."
"I'd like that, Tsukune" she said as she pried her face from his jacket and looked into his chocolate-brown eyes with an overly adorable smile.
"I guess we should head back, since lunch is about over" he told Moka who seemed to be in her own little world.
"Oh yes. You're right. Let's head back then, shall we?" Moka asked as she stood straight up, slid her hand into his own, and made their way back to the main building.
Once they were inside, Tsukune walked Moka down the long corridor to her next class, gave her a quick hug, and wished her luck. She returned the warm gesture in a similar fashion.
"I'll see you after school Moka, just like I promised" he said as he turned around to head to his first of two afternoon classes.
"Of course, Tsukune. I'll see you then" she replied with a warm smile of her own. He waved farewell to her for now and would see her in about four hours or so. He would do his very best to get through the remainder of the day without any further problems or interruptions.
…..
Once he arrived at his classroom, he was greeted in a familiar way from none other than Kurumu.
"Oh Tsukune! I didn't see you there!" she said as he crashed into her massive bosom.
"M-rmhm – mhmff – hmmffmm!" he muffled against the soft, cottony material of her classic, yellow sweater.
"What was that, Tsukune? You want to make out with me? Oh, how very bold of you!"
With all his might he pushed himself out of her grip and was gasping for air. He actually thought he was going to really die this time from lack of oxygen to his brain. Tsukune needed all the oxygen he could muster, just to make it through the rest of the day of tests, for crying out loud!
…..
"Kurumu? What the hell? You can't go around saying things that aren't true!" he sharply admonished.
"But Tsukune...I – I was only saying hello" she sadly pouted as she fluttered her long eyelashes at him, and using her Charm ability.
"Kurumu...sorry about that. It's...been a very stressful day and I just want it to be over with as soon as possible" he said as he closed his eyes and shook his head, knowing very well what she was trying to do and wanted to get to his desk on the opposite side of the classroom, so he could clear out his thoughts from his fogged-up mind.
"It's okay Tsukune. Once again, I'm really sorry. I wouldn't want your mate to kill me for just saying hello to you" she said with an entrancing wink as she sat down at her own desk, two rows adjacent from him.
'Damn it, Kurumu. Get out of my head!' he mentally screamed. He was half-tempted to tear his Rosary off and let his vampire side out. But he knew it was against Academy policy to show your yokai while in school. Moka was exempt from the strict rule by the Headmaster himself, since her Rosary was completely destroyed last year by the demon, Alucard.
"Alright class, settle down. You have 90 minutes to finish your final exam. Once you're done, please drop them on my desk and then return to your seat. And you can begin...now" the teacher instructed as she glanced at the clock, noting the time.
'Wish me luck Moka' Tsukune thought to himself. Even though math was his worse subject, he knew he'd manage to somehow succeed with the minimum passing score.
On the other side of the building, Moka was in the same predicament as her mate as well as nearly one-third of the student population. She quietly wished the day would be over with as swiftly as possible. The vampiress was actually starting to miss being by his side, where she knew she belonged. It felt right to her and she knew it was without question. Moka Akashiya had finally found her place.
...
As soon as the final bell of the day rung, both vampires searched for the other, their blood-bond leading them in the proper direction. The pulling sensation was quite powerful, fueled by their desire to be with their one and only mate. As soon as Moka spotted Tsukune, she dashed through the crowded hallway and jumped into his arms.
The force of the impact knocked him to the floor as the sea of students rapidly dispersed to give the pair of vampires plenty of room. He hugged Moka quite firmly as she sank her fangs into his neck and began drinking his blood in front of anyone who was bold enough to witness the act of vampire intimacy.
…..
"Geez Moka, haven't you sucked Tsukune's blood enough today?"
"Yeah Moka. Take your love slave to your room already and take what you want."
"Can I come and join you guys? I don't take up very much room and I'd be happy to just watch you do it."
Moka released Tsukune and cleaned his neck with her tongue to seal the puncture marks closed. Once she was done, she stood up and glared daggers at the three idiots who dared interrupt her special time with her blood-mate.
"What do you three want? Haven't I given you enough warning not to come in-between Tsukune and myself? He is MY mate. If you need to be reminded of that, then so be it. But this time, I won't hold myself back" Moka told Kurumu, Mizore and Yukari as she stood in the center of them.
Tsukune got up from the tiled floor and walked over to a very pissed-off Moka. Her yokai was going berserk and she had murder in her eyes. He pulled gently on her arm and hugged her suddenly from behind, catching her off guard before she caused any permanent damage to either the school or their friends.
"Moka...I'm sure they didn't mean what they said" he told her as he tightened his grip around her waist and attempted to have her calm down before she did something that she would regret later on. Like kill someone.
He knew that she was more than upset, and he didn't blame her. The other girls would have to let go of him, once and for all; no matter how painful it would be for any one of them.
He didn't want to hurt his friends anymore than he already had, but he finally made his decision, as did Moka. They were more than friends. They were mates in every sense of the word, bound by their deep connection through their blood.
As she attempted to wiggle her way out of her boyfriend's embrace, he then lovingly kissed her right ear which caused her to softly moan. The other girls watched in utter disbelief as the real Moka's expression changed from murderous intent to one of complete ecstasy in the matter of a few, passing seconds.
"Moka? Are you going to relax now?" Tsukune inquired as he could detect that her anger had subsided somewhat.
"Yes love. Sorry about that but, they still need to know their place."
"I'm pretty sure they know their place, Moka. Don't you girls?" he said as he looked at his three friends. They all shook their heads yes and bowed with heads hung low. Tsukune then loosened his hold on Moka and she looked at her so-called friends.
"Listen up girls, you should all be grateful to Tsukune once more for his foolishness in stopping me, yet again. We are not only blood-mates, but mates as well. You may not want to hear this, but it's the absolute, honest truth. I'm his first as he is mine. We had sealed our relationship in a very intimate manner last night. We'll all be Graduating on Friday, so let's just get along until then. I really don't wish to waste my time showing you three your place anymore, to be completely honest. So just be thankful. But if any of you try get in my way ever again, I will not hold myself back and he won't stop me. I'm quite grateful for your help last year for coming to my rescue, but Tsukune was the one who had saved my life. I will never forget that for as long as I live. And it's true that I was the one to confess that I've been in love with him for as long as I can remember. It took me a very long time to realize that, and well, now we are together. So please, I'm asking you as my friends; allow us to live in peace from now on. Come Tsukune. Let's head back now," Moka said with a bow as she turned around, grabbed his hand and made her way to the closest exit, dragging a bewildered Tsukune behind herself the entire way.
Mizore, Kurumu and Yukari were left standing there utterly speechless, with their mouths agape.
"What the hell just happened?" Kurumu asked her two friends, who were just as clueless as she was. She was quite certain she would be on the floor, left in a bruised heap, or far worse! Maybe Moka had softened up somewhat.
...
As soon as Moka and Tsukune reached the female dormitory a few minutes later, several of its residents had heard the rumor about her and that Aono boy. It would seem that the rumor was indeed true as they saw her pulling him back towards her room on the third floor.
Once they were in the privacy of her room, Moka bowed deeply for her behavior just a few minutes ago. She didn't want to be the bad guy and didn't want her mate to despise her for her brash attitude towards their friends. At least she held herself back and kept her promise.
Moka knew she was being on the selfish side, but all she wanted was to be closer to him. She desired to be closer to him in any way. And now that final exams were over once and for all, she could spend more time with him. And tomorrow (Thursday) was their day off, since Friday was their Graduation commencement ceremony.
"Moka, please, stop bowing. I'm not upset, okay?" Tsukune told her as he gently placed his hands on her shoulders and pulled her into his warm embrace.
"You're not mad, are you?" she asked as she returned the gesture.
"No, I'm actually happy that you held yourself back. I'm proud of you Moka."
"Really, Tsukune? It – it was quite difficult. But – but what I told the girls is the truth though. You feel the same way about me, don't you Tsukune?" she asked with slight apprehension and trepidation.
"Yes, Moka. I know it wasn't easy for you, but I think they finally got the picture. And yes, I feel the same way about you. I've always been in love with you. And I'll always be here for you, no matter what."
"Thank you love. I – I love you too. So very much. And, I'll always be here right by your side. That's where my place is."
Once the pair finished their hug, Moka removed his jacket and tie, then led him to her bed and asked him to lay down with her for a while. She just wanted things to return to somewhat normal. Well, normal would be an understatement. Things have never been normal for either one of them, but the vampire princess just wanted to spend her life with her one and only blood-mate.
It wouldn't be exactly easy, but she'd do her damnedest to make sure that Tsukune had a stress-free life. He honestly deserved it. After all, he's always been there for her. In the very best of times and the worst.
…..
"Hey Moka?" he said, breaking her out if her thoughts.
"Yes Tsukune?" she replied as she looked up to him.
"What did Kokoa mean by what she said this morning? About your Father not accepting me as your mate?" he asked with a hint of worry.
"She was just trying to scare you, Tsukune. My Father already knows that you were the one who had saved me from death last year when – when – you know" Moka answered with sadness.
"I see. Well, uh – I know it won't be easy Moka, but I want to do the right thing. I mean, we are mates now. And uh, I really don't know much about vampire laws and customs, besides what you already told me."
"You have nothing to worry about, Tsukune. This was both our decision to make. Since I'm of age, it's my choice who I want to take as a mate. And I have chosen you, Tsukune. Truth be told, I can't imagine my life where you're not in it. I love you so very much" she replied as she held him closer.
"Oh Moka...I feel the same way. You complete me," he told her as he hugged her tighter, wanting to be much closer than they already were. He leaned down and gently kissed her neck, which caused her breath to hitch at the affectionate gesture.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...ah-hah...oh Kami...I missed you today...so much" Moka whispered, as her breathing came out in short pants. She was already aroused and wanted more, a lot more truth be told.
"I missed you too, Moka...um...would it be okay...if I...um...spent the night with...you? There's no class tomorrow" he asked.
"Of course, Tsukune. I'd like that, too...I really don't want to be alone tonight...please...take care of me, my love..." she said as she turned to kiss him passionately on his lips. She deepened her kisses as she became further aroused. Her body was absolutely burning up and she felt as though her heart would burst out from her chest. Oh Kami, she wanted much, much more.
"Tsukune, please...make love to me...I need you now...it hurts...so much" Moka said with sincerity in her voice.
"O-of course Moka."
Temporarily breaking their closeness, the couple assisted each other in removing their clothes and neatly folded their garments in half, then placed them on the chair next to her desk by the window.
…..
Once they were comfortable under the soft bedding, Moka looked up to Tsukune and smiled before suckling on the sensitive spot just below his ear, where she had marked him as her blood-mate, murmuring in pleasure as she gently sunk her fangs into his flesh once again. Drinking his delectable blood in slow, deep slurps caused him to groan with pleasure from the act of affection and intimacy that only they shared with each other.
Moka moaned softly with wanton desire as he lightly squeezed her plump derriere, causing her fangs to bury deeper into his flesh. She couldn't help her voice anymore as she was becoming even further stimulated, brought on by her lover's gentle touch. She then retracted her canines a moment later and licked his neck in an erotic manner, sealing the small puncture marks closed which caused a shiver of delight, down to his very core.
As Moka laid on top of her blood-mate, her large breasts dangled over his broad chest. He lightly grabbed the voluptuous mounds of flesh and gently massaged them in between his strong, caring hands. Moka moaned even more-so, her angelic voice furthering his building arousal. Without warning he suckled both of her already erect, pink nipples in his mouth, causing her knees to buckle and her toes to curl, from the intense pleasure that resulted in her first compelling climax of the late afternoon.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...ahhhngh...no fair" she breathed out as she was gasping for air.
"Sorry Moka...I'll be more gentle" he replied.
"It's...okay Tsukune...you just...surprised me..." she said, as she laid down against his bare chest.
Moka knew through their deep bond that he craved her touch, just as much as she desired his caress. She desperately yearned-for this act of love and adoration throughout the entire day, as the hours slowly ticked by, which only fueled the insatiable craving to be closer to her one and only.
Wordlessly, she held his throbbing hot flesh in her hand as she tenderly guided his fulness into her warm flower that was already soaked from foreplay. Tsukune held her tighter as their bodies became as one.
Slowly and tenderly the vampire couple made passionate love well into the evening, as their bond deepened through their union once again. Moka was on cloud nine as she felt their connection strengthen, as they came closer to a mutual climax.
Moka eventually slowed her ministrations while she continued to straddle her lover. She honestly wished for this to continue on even longer, but she could sense that Tsukune was holding himself back; he was on the cusp of an exceedingly powerful climax himself; the pressure becoming nearly unbearable as his powers were sealed by the Silver Rosary wrapped around his right wrist.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...it's okay...you can...oh Kami...now...ah-ahhhh" Moka breathed out.
"Moka...ahhh...any...ahhhhhh..." he replied as his breathing became shallower.
…..
With the power of a thousand suns, the couple peaked simultaneously; their louder than usual voices echoing off the thin walls of Moka's dorm room. Tsukune held Moka tight as her body convulsed rather forcefully from the aftershocks of their intense lovemaking.
Moka remained in place for several minutes, still lying on top of Tsukune, unable to move nor speak. He gently held her around her slender waist and kissed her dainty neck. They were both trying their best to regain their composure since they were now feeling sexually fulfilled.
"M-mmm...Tsukune...that was...amazing" she finally said once her heart-beat and breathing returned to somewhat normalcy. He just hugged her and gladly hummed in agreement. Frankly, he was rather worn out. He had to remember to be unsealed the next time they made love, so he'd have the stamina and the willpower to go on for another hour or two.
At least they had the day off from school tomorrow and could sleep in until 9 AM or so. But knowing this new side of Moka, she'd most likely want to spend the entire day in bed with him, without a care in the world. He came to the realization that she was slowly changing, even though she was still a prideful and powerful vampire. She was learning to accept her new feelings and knew that she was maturing.
Tsukune enjoyed seeing this sweet, caring side of Moka and silently wished that she would show it more often, especially out in public. He would do whatever he could to have her lighten up somewhat and knew it would be a long, difficult journey. But he'd do his best to support and assist her in any way he could. After all, Moka is still Moka.
…..
A/N:
Well here's another chapter out sooner than I said I would :)
Just an early present for all my faithful followers. I hope that you enjoyed this long chapter.
It wasn't easy to write, but did my best to get it out way before Christmas.
The next chapter (4) will be their Graduation and a one day time skip, since this takes place on a Wednesday and their Graduation ceremony will be on a Friday.
I already have that chapter pretty much planned out, as well as the follow-up chapter when Tsukune and Moka return to the human world. And yes, the real Moka will meet his parents. LOL. Meet the parents.
Yes, and he will tell them the truth about EVERYTHING. Including Yokai Academy, him being Moka's mate, (as in Engaged) and him being a Vampire! *shock!*
That's going to be very interesting to even write but I don't know when it will happen. That's just the very basic outline. If anyone has a good idea how that will happen, please let me know. I will always give due credit to anyone who helps me out with GOOD plots or ideas. ^_^
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 2: 'Blood-Mates'
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Complete alternate version of my fan-fic 'A Confession and A Vampire'
Inner Moka X Tsukune
Rated M for an intense Lemon.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
Takes place right after Moka confesses her love to Tsukune.
...
As Moka and Tsukune walked down the old, worn pathway towards the female dormitory, they both felt as though they were being followed. Moka stopped suddenly and looked behind at the source of her irritation. Sure enough, the silver-haired beauty was correct. They were being stalked by their younger female Witch friend, Yukari.
"Um, hey guys" she nervously said as she slowly approached them, as they neared the front entrance of the dorm.
"Good evening, Yukari" Moka calmly replied as she was still firmly holding Tsukune's hand.
"Um, what's going on Tsukune? You two seem to be awfully close all of a sudden. Well, much closer than usual" the teen Witch stated a matter-of-factually.
Tsukune decided to remain quiet as he could detect that Moka was getting somewhat annoyed after being followed all the way from the Academy building. Maybe Yukari needed to be reminded of her place once again she hypothesized.
"I'm making dinner for Tsukune this evening. And we are now...dating" Moka said as she released Tsukune's hand momentarily and came nose-to-nose with her classmate.
"Really Moka? That's great! It's about time you two got together. Now we can finally become a threesome. But I wonder how Kurumu and Mizore will take the news?" Yukari replied, barely containing her own exuberance while she blushed madly, lost in her own perverted fantasies yet again.
"Yes, we are. And they didn't take the news too well. I had confessed to Tsukune just a short while ago. He has already dedicated his life to me and me alone, with a kiss on my thigh. Those other two will be reminded of their places if they ever forget again. As will you, Yukari. There is no room in our bed for anyone else. I personally do not believe in polygamy and neither does Tsukune. We never meant to hurt you, but we won't apologize. Come, Tsukune. It's getting late and I'm getting hungry" Moka said as she continued walking towards the dorm's front entrance-way just a meter or so away.
Tsukune opened the door for Moka and followed her inside. Yukari just remained glued in place outside in utter shock, awe and disbelief.
Her dream of becoming the meat in a vampire sandwich was never going to happen now, it would seem.
Yukari knew better than to debate with the real Moka, even if she had softened up to some extent over the past year since the entire 'Fairy Tale' fiasco.
It would be far too painful otherwise, she swiftly remembered.
…...
As Tsukune walked alongside Moka down the long corridor to her room, he was feeling slightly gloomy. It's true that he cared about Yukari as a close friend, just as he did Mizore and Kurumu, but never intended to hurt either one of them. He knew that had brought this on himself for being so indecisive for three, long years. They had been through so much together and had all nearly come close to dying several times.
"Tsukune? We're here" Moka told him after she had unlocked and opened the door to her room.
"Oh sorry about that Moka. I was just thinking" he sadly replied as he followed behind her and automatically removed his shoes once he was inside and then closed the door behind himself.
He had immediately noticed that it looked exactly the same, just before Outer Moka had 'passed on'.
"It's alright, Tsukune. I know that you haven't been here in quite a while...since..." she answered as she gestured for him to make himself at home for the time being.
"Yeah, it's been a while, I guess" he simply replied as he sat down next to the low table alongside her bed.
The last time he had visited was early last year when he and Outer Moka were studying for a math test, just before the Fairy Tale incident. If it weren't for her helpful tutoring, he most likely would've had to repeat the class all over again. And considering who the teacher was, he wasn't going to go down that path, no matter what.
Moka sat down on his left and gave him a warm hug from the side.
"I know that you miss her Tsukune. And truth be told...I miss her...as well" Moka honestly said. He returned her hug and held her very close.
"You do know that her and I both have had a very deep appreciation for you Tsukune. Your kindness, bravery and thoughtfulness of always putting us first. That is something nobody had ever shown either one of us before we met you. And I know for a fact that she loved you just as much as I do. Even though she's no longer around, she's still a part of me, Tsukune. And I promise you, for as long as my heart beats, it will only beat for you" Moka told him as a solitary tear trickled down her cheek.
…..
"I know Moka. Thank you. I guess I just needed to hear that" he replied as he wiped her salty, stray tear away.
"You're welcome Tsukune. You know, you've matured so much since we first met. And have become very strong. But no matter how much you've changed, you're still the same sweet, kind, and compassionate young man I first met. Now, why don't you make yourself comfortable while I prepare dinner for us, okay?" Moka told him as she ceased their embrace and stood up once again.
"Oh, sure thing, Moka. Um, would you like any help?" he asked as he sat up and stretched his arms over his head, working out the kinks in his back from sitting at an awkward position on her carpeted, dorm room, floor.
"Thank you for offering, but I can manage. I've actually practiced cooking several types of traditional Japanese dishes, so I'm sure I can manage just fine without burning the dormitory down to the ground. But if you really want to help out, you can set the table when I'm done cooking" Moka said with mischievous smirk.
Tsukune snickered at Moka's little joke at her own expense then stood up and gave her another warm embrace.
"Sure thing Moka. I just know whatever you cook will be great" he said with a wink and a smile once he released her so she could make her way into the kitchenette to get their dinner prepared. Moka blushed hard and muttered a quick thank you to him.
She then made herself scarce to change out of her school uniform.
A few minutes later she reappeared dressed in a simple pair of dark, denim jeans and a burgundy short-sleeved, v-necked, tee-shirt that fit her in all the proper places. She then covered herself with an apron to avoid getting her clothes dirty from cooking.
'Wow, she looks amazing in jeans' he though to himself.
It's true though. Moka was the absolute pinnacle of beauty and grace with the physique of a Greek Goddess.
Moka then gave her new boyfriend a warm, genuine smile as she went about preparing their dinner.
Tsukune leaned back against her bed and wondered to himself just how much her cooking had improved. He remembered the time when Inner Moka first baked a pumpkin pie for him in her baking class. When she first failed by burning the crust, she exhibited obvious, severe depression. Shortly afterward, her cold personality vanished when Tsukune praised how good it tasted. He devoured the entire pie in one sitting, much to her surprise.
As the raven-haired vampire reminisced about the past, a detectible scent permeated his nostrils and caused him to nearly drool. He reopened his eyes and saw a vision of loveliness cooking for him and him alone.
…..
Tsukune then stood up and waked over to where Moka had her attention focused on the task at hand. He then gently wrapped his arms around her waist from behind, leaned his head on her right shoulder and breathed in her womanly scent. Moka shivered when his warm breath had tickled her sensitive ear.
"Tsukune...please...not when I'm cooking. That tickles" she begged as she attempted to worm her way out of his arms but was failing miserably. Her knees nearly buckled when he kissed her on her delicate neck and sent goosebumps up and down her spine.
"Sorry Moka, but you smell really good" he told her which caused her breath to come out in short, labored pants.
"You're not being fair, Tsukune" she protested as she shut the stove off and turned to face him; her ruby red eyes sparkled with a keen interest as she closed the short space between themselves and kissed him passionately on his lips with great fervor.
Moka slowly walked him in reverse as she quickly removed his green, school jacket and loosened the tie around his collar. The next thing the couple knew is that they were on top of Moka's bed.
Breaking their kiss for life-giving oxygen, they just stared lovingly at each other. Moka had bared her canines in the heat of the moment and was fighting against her base instincts. She had taken one good whiff of his scent that caused her fangs to ache with a dull, throbbing sensation.
"M-mm...Tsukune...you smell so intoxicating" Moka breathed into his left ear.
Sensing where this was going, he simply nodded yes and leaned his head slightly to the left so she had easy access to what she so desperately wanted. He then remembered that Inner Moka had only drank his blood one time prior, nearly over a year ago.
She then licked his flesh with her hot, wet tongue in an erotic fashion that caused his heart-rate to skyrocket. He closed his eyes as she slowly opened her mouth and bore her fangs gently into his skin.
Tsukune held her much closer as she drank his sweet blood in slow, steady slurps; her impressive bosom smashing into his chest. Moka couldn't help the purr of appreciation that bubbled up the back of her throat that tickled his neck to a certain degree.
"Moka...I love you" he whispered.
"I...love...you...Tsukune...so much" she replied in-between slurps.
Once her thirst was quenched a few moments later, she retracted her fangs, licked his neck clean with her tongue and sealed the puncture marks that dulled to a purplish bruise, resembling a love-bite, which would disappear in a short time.
….
"M-mmm, so yummy" Moka said with a dreamy look in her eyes. Tsukune just remained still for a moment as she then sat up from her bed and walked back to the kitchenette to serve their dinner which had been done for a while now.
He then rose up from his lying position and then followed Moka to retrieve the plates and utensils they would be needing for their dinner.
"Thank you, Tsukune" she replied as she handed the plates to her so she could serve themselves. Dinner consisted of steamed brown rice, fresh mixed vegetables and Mahi-mahi.
"No problem Moka. This looks and smells amazing" he replied as she handed a plate to him.
"Oh, thank you, Tsukune. I hope it's to your liking" she said as they walked over to the short table next to her bed. He just smiled that smile that she loved the most. They then sat down adjacent to each other in typical, Japanese fashion.
"Itadakimasu!" they said in unison as they dug into their evening meals like the hungry vampires they were.
"Wow, Moka! This is fantastic! I am definitely impressed" Tsukune said that caused her to become embarrassed immediately. She placed both of her hands over her already pink cheeks in an adorable manner.
"Thank you Tsukune. That really means a lot to me. Like I mentioned earlier, I've been practicing cooking different types of meals...just for you" Moka admitted as her face glowed bright red.
Now Tsukune was the one who was embarrassed. He thought he heard Moka say that she had practiced cooking...just for him? He had to be hearing things, right? The real, inner Moka said that?
"Oh, uh...not a problem Moka" he said as he continued eating the wonderful meal she had made, just for him and him alone.
The vampire couple remained silent throughout the remainder of their dinner time, most likely due to not knowing what to say to each other without becoming flustered anymore than they already were. Tsukune knew that he and Moka would be spending a lot more time together since they had admitted to one another their true feelings and it wouldn't be easy since they both were still shy to a certain extent.
Once Tsukune was finished eating, he leaned back against her bed, patted his full stomach and released a deep breath that he didn't even know he was holding in.
"Hey Moka..."
"Yes Tsukune..."
"That was by far the best home-cooked meal I've had in years"
"Really Tsukune?" she asked as she scooted to her right and stared at him in his chocolate-brown eyes.
"Well, yeah. I had no idea that you were – practicing, for me. But thank you Moka. Hearing that has made me really happy."
Moka was quite happy herself. She really wanted to get closer to Tsukune, but had no idea how. Since her Outer self was no longer around, she had summoned all her courage and did her very best to learn how to become a better cook. After all, the way to a man's heart is through his stomach, she had heard in her Home Economics class.
Moka then pushed the table back a bit from where Tsukune was sitting and then crawled onto his lap. He was caught off guard by her sudden chutzpah and had no idea what had come over her so suddenly. She then wrapped her arms around his shoulders and hugged him firmly. Tsukune returned her embrace and held her for all he was worth.
"Thank you Tsukune. Thank you so much. You have no idea how happy I am to hear that" she said as she held him closer, not wanting him to leave anytime soon. She was definitely madly in love with him, that much she was positive of. Another wave of pure happiness and adoration washed over her and she started to softly cry once again.
Thinking he had unintentionally upset her somehow, Tsukune began to panic profusely.
"Moka? Are you okay?" he asked out of genuine sincerity. She silently shook her head 'yes' and held him firmer.
"I'm fine, love. Thank you for loving me and accepting me for who I am" she said between sobs.
"Oh Moka...like I told you on the roof earlier, I've always loved you, since the moment I first met you. And I will continue to love you forever" he said as she leaned back for a moment and looked at him, searching his features for any signs of deceit.
"Really Tsukune? You mean that you want to be with me forever?" she asked once the waterworks ceased a few moments later.
…..
"Of course, Moka. After everything we've been through, I can't imagine living without you."
"Oh Tsukune..." she said as she quickly kissed him once again. Moka was on cloud nine. She also knew that she wanted to be with him for the remainder of her life. And since he was now an immortal much like herself, there was one thing left to do: perform the blood-bonding of mate-ship. It was the one ceremony that would cement their relationship for all of eternity.
Once she realized she had forgotten how to breath properly, she had ceased their longer-than-usual kiss momentarily, anyway. Her head was positively spinning from the flood of emotions she was experiencing since she had first kissed him earlier on the roof of the school.
Still sitting in his lap, Moka had the brightest smile that Tsukune had seen in quite some time.
"Tsukune...can I ask you something?"
"Sure Moka. What is it?"
"Well, since you said that you want to be with me – forever, there is once thing we can do to make sure that we'll always be together" Moka said with a slight blush.
'God, she looks so cute tonight' he thought.
"Uh, of course Moka. I do love you more than anything. So what is it?"
…..
"It's a ceremony that involves us drinking each others' blood simultaneously. It's called the blood-bonding of mate-ship. It can be seen as a type of union between us...you could say that it's similar to being engaged in the human world" Moka told him, her cheeks still bright pink from telling him so much.
Honestly, could she be anymore embarrassed than she already was?
"E-engaged?" he stuttered, unsure of what to make of all this new information.
"You do want to be with me forever, Tsukune? That's what you said...or don't you love me as much as you claim you do?" she inquired with a hint of agitation and sadness.
"Moka, of course I love you. I'm just not sure how my parents will react when I tell them that we're engaged. Well, I'm planning on telling them everything. I mean the truth. About me, you and the Academy. If we're going to be together, then they need to know everything. No more secrets" he said with absolute conviction in his voice.
Moka eyeballed him for a moment, thinking over what he said. It was true that his parents would be meeting the real Moka soon enough. And they would definitely see that she wasn't exactly 'normal'. But that didn't concern her anymore than what her Father would say once he found out that she was now blood-mates with a human. Well, former human. Plus Tsukune was the one who had basically saved her life last year when she was at death's door by injecting his Shinso vampire blood into her. That had to account for something, right?
"Sorry Tsukune, but I want to make sure this is what you want, just as much as I do. Once we perform the ceremony, there's no turning back. We will become bound by our blood. It will also allow us to sense each others thoughts, feelings and emotions, as well as know where the other is, even if either one of us is halfway around the world, hidden off somewhere isolated" Moka explained the best that she could with what little she actually knew of the ceremony.
"I see. Well that would've come in really handy before, but I understand. Yes Moka. I want this too" he said with absolute certainty. She stood up and pulled him to his feet then gestured for him to lay down on her soft bed once more. He did as requested by the vampire princess. She laid down on top of him while he then held her around her slender waist.
"Thank you love" she said as she closed her eyes.
Piercing the base of each others necks in unison, both vampires gasped as the blood-bonding began to take effect.
…..
As they each closed their eyes, they could see visions of the past when they first met each other. Every memory from the other was shared between themselves. Nothing was hidden as the blood-bonding took effect.
Closing her eyes even more-so, Moka's mind could see every moment they spent together since they met on that fateful day, nearly three years ago. Every happy time. As well as sad, played through her mind as the wave of memories caused her heart to overflow and swell with emotions. His emotions.
The only person who truly accepted her for who she was and never saw her for anything other than a normal, teenaged girl. Tsukune Aono.
'My sweet Tsukune...'
As Tsukune closed his eyes, he experienced everything she did, memories that seemed as though they were happening at this very special moment. He smiled inwardly remembering how they met. How he felt the first time she had saved his life. How incredibly cute and amazingly sexy she was.
And how she was his very first friend.
He was saddened though when he observed Moka through her memories, while she was in junior high school. The other kids in her class would make fun of and tease her on a daily basis, just because she claimed to believe in yokai and happened to have bright, pink hair at the time. That's what hurt the most. Tsukune wished he could go back in time and help her through those three, lonely years.
'My dear Moka...'
A few minutes later, which seemed as if hours had passed, they each released their fangs and licked each others neck clean, sealing the puncture marks that would vanish before the end of the night. Tsukune held Moka much firmer and felt a lot closer to her, whom he had been in love with for as long as he could remember. Moka on the other hand was quite happy and felt as though she had known him for her entire life.
"Wow Moka. That was really something else. I had no idea it would be that – intense" Tsukune admitted as she sighed with happiness and leaned her head on his chest as he continued holding her. It was now evening and her room was growing dark, reflecting the setting 'sun' over the yokai realm. Where had all the time gone so suddenly?
"Yes it was Tsukune. Thank you. I feel much closer to you now" Moka quietly said.
"Uh, of course Moka. I feel a lot closer to you too" he replied as she began planting soft, wet kisses on his neck in the very same spot she had bitten him previously when they became blood-mates. He was swiftly becoming aroused and couldn't help the groan of pleasure building inside of himself.
…..
Moka on the other hand started to pant heavily as she was becoming more and more affectionate with the passing second.
"Tsukune...I...want you" she said between kisses.
"Moka?" he asked as she sat up on his lap, momentarily breaking their closeness. She then started to unbutton his white dress shirt and parted the cloth that was covering his broad, scarred chest. To be honest, he wasn't exactly proud of all the injuries he had been inflicted with, especially the large 'X' shaped one that had covered most of his bare skin.
"It's okay, love. I don't mind your scars, because I know they are the result of your bravery, always putting yourself in harm's way, and from protecting my other half when I wasn't able to" Moka said as a few tears streamed down her face and landed on his warm flesh. She then leaned down and started to kiss the scars, marks and blemishes that were scattered across his broad chest.
"Ahhh...Moka..." he whispered as he ran his fingers through her soft, silky hair that rained down over her beautiful face, partially covering it.
"M-mmm Tsukune...please...I want to become mates..tonight..." Moka begged, nearly on the verge of tears yet again. He held her close and kissed her passionately on her pink, pouty lips.
"Moka...I would like that too" he honestly replied once he reluctantly released her a minute later.
Even though Moka was very shy, this is one act she knew that would claim Tsukune as her mate. She was scared somewhat but knew she had to be strong, just to get through the first time. The silver-haired maiden then sat up and pulled her tee-shirt over her head and tossed it to the carpeted floor below. Tsukune gasped when he finally saw her large, yet firm breasts held in place by a black, lacy bra.
'Oh my kami' he said to himself, as he was on the verge of a major nosebleed.
"It's okay, Tsukune. From this night on, I am yours and yours alone. Please, become my mate" she said as she leaned down and started to kiss him once again, this time with more intensity.
Tsukune still couldn't believe that he was with Moka, the most beautiful girl in the entire Academy and he was about to cross the final step towards adulthood.
"Moka...you're so beautiful."
"And you are very handsome yourself, Tsukune."
The couple then sat up to remove the restrictive articles of clothing with great speed and efficiency. Even though they were still both shy, they knew that they would have to overcome that last obstacle if they wanted to become mates and a true couple in every sense of the word.
…..
Once they were both devoid of any clothing, they both crawled under the soft blankets of Moka's bed. Now came the most difficult part, as they both knew what had to be done, but were unsure of how to even begin.
"Um, Tsukune?" Moka asked as she was cuddled up next to him, her large bosom against his right arm.
"Yes Moka?"
"It might be easier if you removed your Rosary. Even though you are quite strong while still sealed, you might tire out quickly" she suggested.
"Oh okay Moka. Sure thing" he replied as he placed his left hand on the silver crucifix and gave it a sharp pull.
*plink*
Moka's bedroom was washed in a golden-colored light as Tsukune released the Shinso blood in his veins; his vampire self was now released from his dormant state. His ebony-brown hair washed over with pure, silvery-white. His soft, mahogany eyes turned blood red, with reptile-like slits.
Once his metamorphosis was complete, he could see Moka through the darkened room and smiled as he finally witnessed her in all her nude, glory. Full, soft breasts that seemed to defy gravity. A flat, tight abdomen. Flared hips and her amazingly, well-toned sexy legs.
He then sat up and laid on top of his blood-mate. She warmly smiled as he leaned down and kissed her on her neck and ears, which he discovered were quite sensitive.
"Ahhh...Tsukune" she cooed as she began to become aroused rather quickly.
"Moka...my sweet Moka."
"Ahgn...please...you can...kiss my – b-breasts if you'd like Tsukune," she bashfully admitted.
"Moka? Are you sure?"
"Yes, Tsukune. But please be gentle."
He then leaned down and delicately held both of her voluminous breasts between his hands and stated to kiss her soft, pink nipples which stiffened in a matter of seconds from his affectionate attention.
…..
"Please...more Tsukune...oh kami...please" she begged as her breathing and heart-beat increased. She had never felt anything like this in her entire life, but she knew what her body yearned for.
Doing so as asked by his wonderful girlfriend, he placed his mouth over her right nipple and suckled on it, while he massaged her left breast with his hands in a circular motion.
"Ahhhhh...Tsukune...oh...Tsukune...more...oh kami!" Moka clamorously bellowed as her voice echoed off her dorm room walls. She then reached down to his waist and could feel his hot flesh that was now fully erect.
She placed her hand on his manhood and gave it a gentle stroke. Much to her astonishment, the effect was instantaneously.
"Ah...Moka..."
"Tsukune...no more teasing...please I want you – inside me – Tsukune."
"Moka...this might hurt from what I've heard" he said as she spread her sexy legs, inviting her blood-mate to become one with her.
"It's...okay...Tsukune...because it's you...who I love more than life itself" she said on the edge of crying again, but this time from pure, overwhelming joy.
"Moka..." he said as she helped guide his engorged member up to her already moist flower.
Slowly and tenderly Moka assisted in guiding him inside her warmth.
"Oh Moka...you feel amazing...so warm" he said as his length was enveloped by Moka's warm sex.
"Tsukune...oh kami...so hard...and big..." she moaned out as she was acclimating to the pulsating sensation she could feel inside of her.
She then winced in pain, arching her back.
"Moka? Are you okay?"
She barley shook her head yes.
"I'm fine, love. Please proceed, but slowly" she whispered back, with a happy tear in her eye.
He slowly continued entering her womanhood, allowing her to acclimate to the pain that felt similar to tiny pin-pricks inside.
Tsukune then suddenly stopped, as if the remainder of her womanhood was blocked somehow.
He knew that it must be her hymen.
…..
"Moka, please hold me tight, as this might hurt."
She quietly did as he requested, holding him much closer than ever. Her loving arms trembling; waiting for the pain that was imminent any moment now.
"Okay, I'm ready...please...go ahead...Tsukune..." Moka softly beckoned, her voice full of complete love and adoration.
Moka could barely speak, as her mind was full of new emotions and feelings she never had experienced in her brief life. He then slowly thrusted forward, breaking her hymen.
A minute amount of blood gushed out. Her entire body shook from the sudden jolt of pain that felt to her as if she were shocked from the inside.
"Moka...Moka...are you okay?" he asked, his voice full of concern.
He gently kissed her on her trembling, pink, pouty lips to help her get through the momentary painful sensation that would soon pass.
"Yes...Tsukune...I'm okay...it doesn't hurt too much...I'll be fine...just give me a moment... please," she quietly requested. Her forehead was lightly moist from perspiration.
After a few moments, she asked him to continue.
He slowly did for a few minutes, as to allow the pain to recede and be replaced by pleasure.
"Tsukune...ahhh...m-hmm...you can go faster, if you want...Tsukune...ah-ahhhh..." she panted, as if she were in heat. She had never felt this close to any other person in her entire life. She knew it would bring them much closer than they already were, even more so than she would ever hope for or imagine.
Tsukune slowly started to increase his rhythm to match her breathing. He continuously increased his thrusting as Moka moaned louder, and held him around his waist.
Moka was becoming further and further aroused with each passing second. Her moaning became much louder as well, which resulted in furthering Tsukune's building arousal.
"Moka...oh kami...you feel so good."
As his rhythm rapidly increased, Moka's bed started to rock to and fro violently. That continued on for at least 30 minutes. Screams of complete ecstasy filled the walls of her dormitory room.
"Tsukune...more...oh kami...more please" she begged as she was on the edge of her first ever climax; the pressure was rapidly increasing and much to her chagrin, she no longer had any control over her voice whatsoever.
Little did the vampire couple realize that their intense lovemaking was causing the entire dormitory building to shake to and fro to match their movements! The other female residents actually believed that an earthquake was happening during the entire time!
…..
"Moka...any second now...I can't – oh Moka!"
"It's okay Tsukune...me too..."
After an hour of impassioned lovemaking and with one, final barrage, the vampire duo climaxed simultaneously rather vociferously.
Moka held Tsukune closely, still joined at the hips and was humming happily.
"Wow" is all he could say once he had calmed down dramatically.
"Yes, wow indeed" Moka agreed, smiling brightly. Tsukune pried himself from Moka and retrieved his silver Rosary then replaced it on the matching chain around his right wrist. He laid down next to his mate as his transformation into his 'human' persona took effect.
"So um, how do you feel, Tsukune?" Moka asked as she turned to her left and laid her head on his chest, using it like a pillow. He then wrapped his right arm around her still-naked frame and pulled her closer. 'Kami, her body is still warm', he thought to himself.
"I feel great Moka. How about yourself?"
"Me too, love. I had no idea that it would be so...I don't know how to describe it, actually."
"So you're telling me that the smartest girl in our class is speechless for once?" he teased.
"Aw, well. Yes. Oh Tsukune, it's after 10 PM" Moka told him once she glanced over to the digital clock on her desk by the window.
"Oh crap! Now what?" Tsukune panicked, realizing he was going to be in deep trouble if he left her dorm at this late an hour. He was about to get up from her bed then was quickly pulled backwards.
"Tsukune, you can...spend the night here with me. Besides if you left now, you'd most likely be in trouble. And quite frankly, I – uh, would like for you to spend the night. That is if you don't have any objections. I can set my alarm clock for an early time so you can return to your dorm to get ready for class in the morning. How does that sound?" Moka suggested.
It only took the ebony-haired young man a microsecond to give it any thought.
"That sounds like a good idea, Moka. And like you said, I'd probably get in trouble returning to my dorm way past curfew. Besides, I like being next to you...like this" he admitted with a slight blush.
"Really Tsukune? You really mean that?" Moka asked excitedly.
"Well, sure. I mean we are mates now, right?"
"Oh Tsukune!" Moka bellowed as she brought him into her abundant bosom and hugged him with more love than ever before.
'If Kurumu can do this on a daily basis, well, so can I. Besides my breasts are a lot nicer and firmer than her flabby ones' Moka mused silently to herself, still grinning happily from ear to ear.
This was the side to the new and improved Moka that would take some time getting used to, but he knew that they would be together for a very long time.
….
A/N: The 'earthquake' scene was inspired by my 'adopted' little brother 'CorlessLawiet' on deviantArt. He suggested via PM that when they finally became mates that the entire dorm falls down, LOL. I just had the entire building shake instead, since they were both unsealed.
4 days I worked on this chapter (on and off) I had one idea just to have Moka cook dinner for him and maybe make out a little bit. I had no intentions of them becoming blood-mates or mates so soon and include a Lemon scene. But after much internal debate, I gave in, LOL. I hope that everyone liked this chapter as I had to go over it nearly a dozen times and re-edit it.
The next chapter won't be out for a while as I need to take a break from writing. I hope to have it out just before Christmas. Maybe sooner. I have an idea for the next one and will probably skip to their Graduation, since this chapter takes place the same day (evening) as chapter 1 (Confession).
Chapter 2: 'Blood-Mates'
Based upon Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and story written by Gamer68.
Complete alternate version of my fan-fic 'A Confession and A Vampire'
Inner Moka X Tsukune
Rated M for an intense Lemon.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga series.
OOC Inner Moka.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
Takes place right after Moka confesses her love to Tsukune.
...
As Moka and Tsukune walked down the old, worn pathway towards the female dormitory, they both felt as though they were being followed. Moka stopped suddenly and looked behind at the source of her irritation. Sure enough, the silver-haired beauty was correct. They were being stalked by their younger female Witch friend, Yukari.
"Um, hey guys" she nervously said as she slowly approached them, as they neared the front entrance of the dorm.
"Good evening, Yukari" Moka calmly replied as she was still firmly holding Tsukune's hand.
"Um, what's going on Tsukune? You two seem to be awfully close all of a sudden. Well, much closer than usual" the teen Witch stated a matter-of-factually.
Tsukune decided to remain quiet as he could detect that Moka was getting somewhat annoyed after being followed all the way from the Academy building. Maybe Yukari needed to be reminded of her place once again she hypothesized.
"I'm making dinner for Tsukune this evening. And we are now...dating" Moka said as she released Tsukune's hand momentarily and came nose-to-nose with her classmate.
"Really Moka? That's great! It's about time you two got together. Now we can finally become a threesome. But I wonder how Kurumu and Mizore will take the news?" Yukari replied, barely containing her own exuberance while she blushed madly, lost in her own perverted fantasies yet again.
"Yes, we are. And they didn't take the news too well. I had confessed to Tsukune just a short while ago. He has already dedicated his life to me and me alone, with a kiss on my thigh. Those other two will be reminded of their places if they ever forget again. As will you, Yukari. There is no room in our bed for anyone else. I personally do not believe in polygamy and neither does Tsukune. We never meant to hurt you, but we won't apologize. Come, Tsukune. It's getting late and I'm getting hungry" Moka said as she continued walking towards the dorm's front entrance-way just a meter or so away.
Tsukune opened the door for Moka and followed her inside. Yukari just remained glued in place outside in utter shock, awe and disbelief.
Her dream of becoming the meat in a vampire sandwich was never going to happen now, it would seem.
Yukari knew better than to debate with the real Moka, even if she had softened up to some extent over the past year since the entire 'Fairy Tale' fiasco.
It would be far too painful otherwise, she swiftly remembered.
…...
As Tsukune walked alongside Moka down the long corridor to her room, he was feeling slightly gloomy. It's true that he cared about Yukari as a close friend, just as he did Mizore and Kurumu, but never intended to hurt either one of them. He knew that had brought this on himself for being so indecisive for three, long years. They had been through so much together and had all nearly come close to dying several times.
"Tsukune? We're here" Moka told him after she had unlocked and opened the door to her room.
"Oh sorry about that Moka. I was just thinking" he sadly replied as he followed behind her and automatically removed his shoes once he was inside and then closed the door behind himself.
He had immediately noticed that it looked exactly the same, just before Outer Moka had 'passed on'.
"It's alright, Tsukune. I know that you haven't been here in quite a while...since..." she answered as she gestured for him to make himself at home for the time being.
"Yeah, it's been a while, I guess" he simply replied as he sat down next to the low table alongside her bed.
The last time he had visited was early last year when he and Outer Moka were studying for a math test, just before the Fairy Tale incident. If it weren't for her helpful tutoring, he most likely would've had to repeat the class all over again. And considering who the teacher was, he wasn't going to go down that path, no matter what.
Moka sat down on his left and gave him a warm hug from the side.
"I know that you miss her Tsukune. And truth be told...I miss her...as well" Moka honestly said. He returned her hug and held her very close.
"You do know that her and I both have had a very deep appreciation for you Tsukune. Your kindness, bravery and thoughtfulness of always putting us first. That is something nobody had ever shown either one of us before we met you. And I know for a fact that she loved you just as much as I do. Even though she's no longer around, she's still a part of me, Tsukune. And I promise you, for as long as my heart beats, it will only beat for you" Moka told him as a solitary tear trickled down her cheek.
…..
"I know Moka. Thank you. I guess I just needed to hear that" he replied as he wiped her salty, stray tear away.
"You're welcome Tsukune. You know, you've matured so much since we first met. And have become very strong. But no matter how much you've changed, you're still the same sweet, kind, and compassionate young man I first met. Now, why don't you make yourself comfortable while I prepare dinner for us, okay?" Moka told him as she ceased their embrace and stood up once again.
"Oh, sure thing, Moka. Um, would you like any help?" he asked as he sat up and stretched his arms over his head, working out the kinks in his back from sitting at an awkward position on her carpeted, dorm room, floor.
"Thank you for offering, but I can manage. I've actually practiced cooking several types of traditional Japanese dishes, so I'm sure I can manage just fine without burning the dormitory down to the ground. But if you really want to help out, you can set the table when I'm done cooking" Moka said with mischievous smirk.
Tsukune snickered at Moka's little joke at her own expense then stood up and gave her another warm embrace.
"Sure thing Moka. I just know whatever you cook will be great" he said with a wink and a smile once he released her so she could make her way into the kitchenette to get their dinner prepared. Moka blushed hard and muttered a quick thank you to him.
She then made herself scarce to change out of her school uniform.
A few minutes later she reappeared dressed in a simple pair of dark, denim jeans and a burgundy short-sleeved, v-necked, tee-shirt that fit her in all the proper places. She then covered herself with an apron to avoid getting her clothes dirty from cooking.
'Wow, she looks amazing in jeans' he though to himself.
It's true though. Moka was the absolute pinnacle of beauty and grace with the physique of a Greek Goddess.
Moka then gave her new boyfriend a warm, genuine smile as she went about preparing their dinner.
Tsukune leaned back against her bed and wondered to himself just how much her cooking had improved. He remembered the time when Inner Moka first baked a pumpkin pie for him in her baking class. When she first failed by burning the crust, she exhibited obvious, severe depression. Shortly afterward, her cold personality vanished when Tsukune praised how good it tasted. He devoured the entire pie in one sitting, much to her surprise.
As the raven-haired vampire reminisced about the past, a detectible scent permeated his nostrils and caused him to nearly drool. He reopened his eyes and saw a vision of loveliness cooking for him and him alone.
…..
Tsukune then stood up and waked over to where Moka had her attention focused on the task at hand. He then gently wrapped his arms around her waist from behind, leaned his head on her right shoulder and breathed in her womanly scent. Moka shivered when his warm breath had tickled her sensitive ear.
"Tsukune...please...not when I'm cooking. That tickles" she begged as she attempted to worm her way out of his arms but was failing miserably. Her knees nearly buckled when he kissed her on her delicate neck and sent goosebumps up and down her spine.
"Sorry Moka, but you smell really good" he told her which caused her breath to come out in short, labored pants.
"You're not being fair, Tsukune" she protested as she shut the stove off and turned to face him; her ruby red eyes sparkled with a keen interest as she closed the short space between themselves and kissed him passionately on his lips with great fervor.
Moka slowly walked him in reverse as she quickly removed his green, school jacket and loosened the tie around his collar. The next thing the couple knew is that they were on top of Moka's bed.
Breaking their kiss for life-giving oxygen, they just stared lovingly at each other. Moka had bared her canines in the heat of the moment and was fighting against her base instincts. She had taken one good whiff of his scent that caused her fangs to ache with a dull, throbbing sensation.
"M-mm...Tsukune...you smell so intoxicating" Moka breathed into his left ear.
Sensing where this was going, he simply nodded yes and leaned his head slightly to the left so she had easy access to what she so desperately wanted. He then remembered that Inner Moka had only drank his blood one time prior, nearly over a year ago.
She then licked his flesh with her hot, wet tongue in an erotic fashion that caused his heart-rate to skyrocket. He closed his eyes as she slowly opened her mouth and bore her fangs gently into his skin.
Tsukune held her much closer as she drank his sweet blood in slow, steady slurps; her impressive bosom smashing into his chest. Moka couldn't help the purr of appreciation that bubbled up the back of her throat that tickled his neck to a certain degree.
"Moka...I love you" he whispered.
"I...love...you...Tsukune...so much" she replied in-between slurps.
Once her thirst was quenched a few moments later, she retracted her fangs, licked his neck clean with her tongue and sealed the puncture marks that dulled to a purplish bruise, resembling a love-bite, which would disappear in a short time.
….
"M-mmm, so yummy" Moka said with a dreamy look in her eyes. Tsukune just remained still for a moment as she then sat up from her bed and walked back to the kitchenette to serve their dinner which had been done for a while now.
He then rose up from his lying position and then followed Moka to retrieve the plates and utensils they would be needing for their dinner.
"Thank you, Tsukune" she replied as she handed the plates to her so she could serve themselves. Dinner consisted of steamed brown rice, fresh mixed vegetables and Mahi-mahi.
"No problem Moka. This looks and smells amazing" he replied as she handed a plate to him.
"Oh, thank you, Tsukune. I hope it's to your liking" she said as they walked over to the short table next to her bed. He just smiled that smile that she loved the most. They then sat down adjacent to each other in typical, Japanese fashion.
"Itadakimasu!" they said in unison as they dug into their evening meals like the hungry vampires they were.
"Wow, Moka! This is fantastic! I am definitely impressed" Tsukune said that caused her to become embarrassed immediately. She placed both of her hands over her already pink cheeks in an adorable manner.
"Thank you Tsukune. That really means a lot to me. Like I mentioned earlier, I've been practicing cooking different types of meals...just for you" Moka admitted as her face glowed bright red.
Now Tsukune was the one who was embarrassed. He thought he heard Moka say that she had practiced cooking...just for him? He had to be hearing things, right? The real, inner Moka said that?
"Oh, uh...not a problem Moka" he said as he continued eating the wonderful meal she had made, just for him and him alone.
The vampire couple remained silent throughout the remainder of their dinner time, most likely due to not knowing what to say to each other without becoming flustered anymore than they already were. Tsukune knew that he and Moka would be spending a lot more time together since they had admitted to one another their true feelings and it wouldn't be easy since they both were still shy to a certain extent.
Once Tsukune was finished eating, he leaned back against her bed, patted his full stomach and released a deep breath that he didn't even know he was holding in.
"Hey Moka..."
"Yes Tsukune..."
"That was by far the best home-cooked meal I've had in years"
"Really Tsukune?" she asked as she scooted to her right and stared at him in his chocolate-brown eyes.
"Well, yeah. I had no idea that you were – practicing, for me. But thank you Moka. Hearing that has made me really happy."
Moka was quite happy herself. She really wanted to get closer to Tsukune, but had no idea how. Since her Outer self was no longer around, she had summoned all her courage and did her very best to learn how to become a better cook. After all, the way to a man's heart is through his stomach, she had heard in her Home Economics class.
Moka then pushed the table back a bit from where Tsukune was sitting and then crawled onto his lap. He was caught off guard by her sudden chutzpah and had no idea what had come over her so suddenly. She then wrapped her arms around his shoulders and hugged him firmly. Tsukune returned her embrace and held her for all he was worth.
"Thank you Tsukune. Thank you so much. You have no idea how happy I am to hear that" she said as she held him closer, not wanting him to leave anytime soon. She was definitely madly in love with him, that much she was positive of. Another wave of pure happiness and adoration washed over her and she started to softly cry once again.
Thinking he had unintentionally upset her somehow, Tsukune began to panic profusely.
"Moka? Are you okay?" he asked out of genuine sincerity. She silently shook her head 'yes' and held him firmer.
"I'm fine, love. Thank you for loving me and accepting me for who I am" she said between sobs.
"Oh Moka...like I told you on the roof earlier, I've always loved you, since the moment I first met you. And I will continue to love you forever" he said as she leaned back for a moment and looked at him, searching his features for any signs of deceit.
"Really Tsukune? You mean that you want to be with me forever?" she asked once the waterworks ceased a few moments later.
…..
"Of course, Moka. After everything we've been through, I can't imagine living without you."
"Oh Tsukune..." she said as she quickly kissed him once again. Moka was on cloud nine. She also knew that she wanted to be with him for the remainder of her life. And since he was now an immortal much like herself, there was one thing left to do: perform the blood-bonding of mate-ship. It was the one ceremony that would cement their relationship for all of eternity.
Once she realized she had forgotten how to breath properly, she had ceased their longer-than-usual kiss momentarily, anyway. Her head was positively spinning from the flood of emotions she was experiencing since she had first kissed him earlier on the roof of the school.
Still sitting in his lap, Moka had the brightest smile that Tsukune had seen in quite some time.
"Tsukune...can I ask you something?"
"Sure Moka. What is it?"
"Well, since you said that you want to be with me – forever, there is once thing we can do to make sure that we'll always be together" Moka said with a slight blush.
'God, she looks so cute tonight' he thought.
"Uh, of course Moka. I do love you more than anything. So what is it?"
…..
"It's a ceremony that involves us drinking each others' blood simultaneously. It's called the blood-bonding of mate-ship. It can be seen as a type of union between us...you could say that it's similar to being engaged in the human world" Moka told him, her cheeks still bright pink from telling him so much.
Honestly, could she be anymore embarrassed than she already was?
"E-engaged?" he stuttered, unsure of what to make of all this new information.
"You do want to be with me forever, Tsukune? That's what you said...or don't you love me as much as you claim you do?" she inquired with a hint of agitation and sadness.
"Moka, of course I love you. I'm just not sure how my parents will react when I tell them that we're engaged. Well, I'm planning on telling them everything. I mean the truth. About me, you and the Academy. If we're going to be together, then they need to know everything. No more secrets" he said with absolute conviction in his voice.
Moka eyeballed him for a moment, thinking over what he said. It was true that his parents would be meeting the real Moka soon enough. And they would definitely see that she wasn't exactly 'normal'. But that didn't concern her anymore than what her Father would say once he found out that she was now blood-mates with a human. Well, former human. Plus Tsukune was the one who had basically saved her life last year when she was at death's door by injecting his Shinso vampire blood into her. That had to account for something, right?
"Sorry Tsukune, but I want to make sure this is what you want, just as much as I do. Once we perform the ceremony, there's no turning back. We will become bound by our blood. It will also allow us to sense each others thoughts, feelings and emotions, as well as know where the other is, even if either one of us is halfway around the world, hidden off somewhere isolated" Moka explained the best that she could with what little she actually knew of the ceremony.
"I see. Well that would've come in really handy before, but I understand. Yes Moka. I want this too" he said with absolute certainty. She stood up and pulled him to his feet then gestured for him to lay down on her soft bed once more. He did as requested by the vampire princess. She laid down on top of him while he then held her around her slender waist.
"Thank you love" she said as she closed her eyes.
Piercing the base of each others necks in unison, both vampires gasped as the blood-bonding began to take effect.
…..
As they each closed their eyes, they could see visions of the past when they first met each other. Every memory from the other was shared between themselves. Nothing was hidden as the blood-bonding took effect.
Closing her eyes even more-so, Moka's mind could see every moment they spent together since they met on that fateful day, nearly three years ago. Every happy time. As well as sad, played through her mind as the wave of memories caused her heart to overflow and swell with emotions. His emotions.
The only person who truly accepted her for who she was and never saw her for anything other than a normal, teenaged girl. Tsukune Aono.
'My sweet Tsukune...'
As Tsukune closed his eyes, he experienced everything she did, memories that seemed as though they were happening at this very special moment. He smiled inwardly remembering how they met. How he felt the first time she had saved his life. How incredibly cute and amazingly sexy she was.
And how she was his very first friend.
He was saddened though when he observed Moka through her memories, while she was in junior high school. The other kids in her class would make fun of and tease her on a daily basis, just because she claimed to believe in yokai and happened to have bright, pink hair at the time. That's what hurt the most. Tsukune wished he could go back in time and help her through those three, lonely years.
'My dear Moka...'
A few minutes later, which seemed as if hours had passed, they each released their fangs and licked each others neck clean, sealing the puncture marks that would vanish before the end of the night. Tsukune held Moka much firmer and felt a lot closer to her, whom he had been in love with for as long as he could remember. Moka on the other hand was quite happy and felt as though she had known him for her entire life.
"Wow Moka. That was really something else. I had no idea it would be that – intense" Tsukune admitted as she sighed with happiness and leaned her head on his chest as he continued holding her. It was now evening and her room was growing dark, reflecting the setting 'sun' over the yokai realm. Where had all the time gone so suddenly?
"Yes it was Tsukune. Thank you. I feel much closer to you now" Moka quietly said.
"Uh, of course Moka. I feel a lot closer to you too" he replied as she began planting soft, wet kisses on his neck in the very same spot she had bitten him previously when they became blood-mates. He was swiftly becoming aroused and couldn't help the groan of pleasure building inside of himself.
…..
Moka on the other hand started to pant heavily as she was becoming more and more affectionate with the passing second.
"Tsukune...I...want you" she said between kisses.
"Moka?" he asked as she sat up on his lap, momentarily breaking their closeness. She then started to unbutton his white dress shirt and parted the cloth that was covering his broad, scarred chest. To be honest, he wasn't exactly proud of all the injuries he had been inflicted with, especially the large 'X' shaped one that had covered most of his bare skin.
"It's okay, love. I don't mind your scars, because I know they are the result of your bravery, always putting yourself in harm's way, and from protecting my other half when I wasn't able to" Moka said as a few tears streamed down her face and landed on his warm flesh. She then leaned down and started to kiss the scars, marks and blemishes that were scattered across his broad chest.
"Ahhh...Moka..." he whispered as he ran his fingers through her soft, silky hair that rained down over her beautiful face, partially covering it.
"M-mmm Tsukune...please...I want to become mates..tonight..." Moka begged, nearly on the verge of tears yet again. He held her close and kissed her passionately on her pink, pouty lips.
"Moka...I would like that too" he honestly replied once he reluctantly released her a minute later.
Even though Moka was very shy, this is one act she knew that would claim Tsukune as her mate. She was scared somewhat but knew she had to be strong, just to get through the first time. The silver-haired maiden then sat up and pulled her tee-shirt over her head and tossed it to the carpeted floor below. Tsukune gasped when he finally saw her large, yet firm breasts held in place by a black, lacy bra.
'Oh my kami' he said to himself, as he was on the verge of a major nosebleed.
"It's okay, Tsukune. From this night on, I am yours and yours alone. Please, become my mate" she said as she leaned down and started to kiss him once again, this time with more intensity.
Tsukune still couldn't believe that he was with Moka, the most beautiful girl in the entire Academy and he was about to cross the final step towards adulthood.
"Moka...you're so beautiful."
"And you are very handsome yourself, Tsukune."
The couple then sat up to remove the restrictive articles of clothing with great speed and efficiency. Even though they were still both shy, they knew that they would have to overcome that last obstacle if they wanted to become mates and a true couple in every sense of the word.
…..
Once they were both devoid of any clothing, they both crawled under the soft blankets of Moka's bed. Now came the most difficult part, as they both knew what had to be done, but were unsure of how to even begin.
"Um, Tsukune?" Moka asked as she was cuddled up next to him, her large bosom against his right arm.
"Yes Moka?"
"It might be easier if you removed your Rosary. Even though you are quite strong while still sealed, you might tire out quickly" she suggested.
"Oh okay Moka. Sure thing" he replied as he placed his left hand on the silver crucifix and gave it a sharp pull.
*plink*
Moka's bedroom was washed in a golden-colored light as Tsukune released the Shinso blood in his veins; his vampire self was now released from his dormant state. His ebony-brown hair washed over with pure, silvery-white. His soft, mahogany eyes turned blood red, with reptile-like slits.
Once his metamorphosis was complete, he could see Moka through the darkened room and smiled as he finally witnessed her in all her nude, glory. Full, soft breasts that seemed to defy gravity. A flat, tight abdomen. Flared hips and her amazingly, well-toned sexy legs.
He then sat up and laid on top of his blood-mate. She warmly smiled as he leaned down and kissed her on her neck and ears, which he discovered were quite sensitive.
"Ahhh...Tsukune" she cooed as she began to become aroused rather quickly.
"Moka...my sweet Moka."
"Ahgn...please...you can...kiss my – b-breasts if you'd like Tsukune," she bashfully admitted.
"Moka? Are you sure?"
"Yes, Tsukune. But please be gentle."
He then leaned down and delicately held both of her voluminous breasts between his hands and stated to kiss her soft, pink nipples which stiffened in a matter of seconds from his affectionate attention.
…..
"Please...more Tsukune...oh kami...please" she begged as her breathing and heart-beat increased. She had never felt anything like this in her entire life, but she knew what her body yearned for.
Doing so as asked by his wonderful girlfriend, he placed his mouth over her right nipple and suckled on it, while he massaged her left breast with his hands in a circular motion.
"Ahhhhh...Tsukune...oh...Tsukune...more...oh kami!" Moka clamorously bellowed as her voice echoed off her dorm room walls. She then reached down to his waist and could feel his hot flesh that was now fully erect.
She placed her hand on his manhood and gave it a gentle stroke. Much to her astonishment, the effect was instantaneously.
"Ah...Moka..."
"Tsukune...no more teasing...please I want you – inside me – Tsukune."
"Moka...this might hurt from what I've heard" he said as she spread her sexy legs, inviting her blood-mate to become one with her.
"It's...okay...Tsukune...because it's you...who I love more than life itself" she said on the edge of crying again, but this time from pure, overwhelming joy.
"Moka..." he said as she helped guide his engorged member up to her already moist flower.
Slowly and tenderly Moka assisted in guiding him inside her warmth.
"Oh Moka...you feel amazing...so warm" he said as his length was enveloped by Moka's warm sex.
"Tsukune...oh kami...so hard...and big..." she moaned out as she was acclimating to the pulsating sensation she could feel inside of her.
She then winced in pain, arching her back.
"Moka? Are you okay?"
She barley shook her head yes.
"I'm fine, love. Please proceed, but slowly" she whispered back, with a happy tear in her eye.
He slowly continued entering her womanhood, allowing her to acclimate to the pain that felt similar to tiny pin-pricks inside.
Tsukune then suddenly stopped, as if the remainder of her womanhood was blocked somehow.
He knew that it must be her hymen.
…..
"Moka, please hold me tight, as this might hurt."
She quietly did as he requested, holding him much closer than ever. Her loving arms trembling; waiting for the pain that was imminent any moment now.
"Okay, I'm ready...please...go ahead...Tsukune..." Moka softly beckoned, her voice full of complete love and adoration.
Moka could barely speak, as her mind was full of new emotions and feelings she never had experienced in her brief life. He then slowly thrusted forward, breaking her hymen.
A minute amount of blood gushed out. Her entire body shook from the sudden jolt of pain that felt to her as if she were shocked from the inside.
"Moka...Moka...are you okay?" he asked, his voice full of concern.
He gently kissed her on her trembling, pink, pouty lips to help her get through the momentary painful sensation that would soon pass.
"Yes...Tsukune...I'm okay...it doesn't hurt too much...I'll be fine...just give me a moment... please," she quietly requested. Her forehead was lightly moist from perspiration.
After a few moments, she asked him to continue.
He slowly did for a few minutes, as to allow the pain to recede and be replaced by pleasure.
"Tsukune...ahhh...m-hmm...you can go faster, if you want...Tsukune...ah-ahhhh..." she panted, as if she were in heat. She had never felt this close to any other person in her entire life. She knew it would bring them much closer than they already were, even more so than she would ever hope for or imagine.
Tsukune slowly started to increase his rhythm to match her breathing. He continuously increased his thrusting as Moka moaned louder, and held him around his waist.
Moka was becoming further and further aroused with each passing second. Her moaning became much louder as well, which resulted in furthering Tsukune's building arousal.
"Moka...oh kami...you feel so good."
As his rhythm rapidly increased, Moka's bed started to rock to and fro violently. That continued on for at least 30 minutes. Screams of complete ecstasy filled the walls of her dormitory room.
"Tsukune...more...oh kami...more please" she begged as she was on the edge of her first ever climax; the pressure was rapidly increasing and much to her chagrin, she no longer had any control over her voice whatsoever.
Little did the vampire couple realize that their intense lovemaking was causing the entire dormitory building to shake to and fro to match their movements! The other female residents actually believed that an earthquake was happening during the entire time!
…..
"Moka...any second now...I can't – oh Moka!"
"It's okay Tsukune...me too..."
After an hour of impassioned lovemaking and with one, final barrage, the vampire duo climaxed simultaneously rather vociferously.
Moka held Tsukune closely, still joined at the hips and was humming happily.
"Wow" is all he could say once he had calmed down dramatically.
"Yes, wow indeed" Moka agreed, smiling brightly. Tsukune pried himself from Moka and retrieved his silver Rosary then replaced it on the matching chain around his right wrist. He laid down next to his mate as his transformation into his 'human' persona took effect.
"So um, how do you feel, Tsukune?" Moka asked as she turned to her left and laid her head on his chest, using it like a pillow. He then wrapped his right arm around her still-naked frame and pulled her closer. 'Kami, her body is still warm', he thought to himself.
"I feel great Moka. How about yourself?"
"Me too, love. I had no idea that it would be so...I don't know how to describe it, actually."
"So you're telling me that the smartest girl in our class is speechless for once?" he teased.
"Aw, well. Yes. Oh Tsukune, it's after 10 PM" Moka told him once she glanced over to the digital clock on her desk by the window.
"Oh crap! Now what?" Tsukune panicked, realizing he was going to be in deep trouble if he left her dorm at this late an hour. He was about to get up from her bed then was quickly pulled backwards.
"Tsukune, you can...spend the night here with me. Besides if you left now, you'd most likely be in trouble. And quite frankly, I – uh, would like for you to spend the night. That is if you don't have any objections. I can set my alarm clock for an early time so you can return to your dorm to get ready for class in the morning. How does that sound?" Moka suggested.
It only took the ebony-haired young man a microsecond to give it any thought.
"That sounds like a good idea, Moka. And like you said, I'd probably get in trouble returning to my dorm way past curfew. Besides, I like being next to you...like this" he admitted with a slight blush.
"Really Tsukune? You really mean that?" Moka asked excitedly.
"Well, sure. I mean we are mates now, right?"
"Oh Tsukune!" Moka bellowed as she brought him into her abundant bosom and hugged him with more love than ever before.
'If Kurumu can do this on a daily basis, well, so can I. Besides my breasts are a lot nicer and firmer than her flabby ones' Moka mused silently to herself, still grinning happily from ear to ear.
This was the side to the new and improved Moka that would take some time getting used to, but he knew that they would be together for a very long time.
….
A/N: The 'earthquake' scene was inspired by my 'adopted' little brother 'CorlessLawiet' on deviantArt. He suggested via PM that when they finally became mates that the entire dorm falls down, LOL. I just had the entire building shake instead, since they were both unsealed.
4 days I worked on this chapter (on and off) I had one idea just to have Moka cook dinner for him and maybe make out a little bit. I had no intentions of them becoming blood-mates or mates so soon and include a Lemon scene. But after much internal debate, I gave in, LOL. I hope that everyone liked this chapter as I had to go over it nearly a dozen times and re-edit it.
The next chapter won't be out for a while as I need to take a break from writing. I hope to have it out just before Christmas. Maybe sooner. I have an idea for the next one and will probably skip to their Graduation, since this chapter takes place the same day (evening) as chapter 1 (Confession).
Rosario + Vampire "A Confession and a Vampire: Reboot"
Chapter 1: 'A Confession and a Vampire: Moka's side'
Author's Notes: Please read:
This is a complete 'reboot' of my ever-popular, original fan-fiction story 'A Confession and a Vampire' except it will be somewhat different. This will follow the events of the most recent manga chapters and contains major spoilers from season 2, chapter 65 and onward.
It also combines elements from my one-shot 'Moka's Strangest Day Ever' (co-written with my very good friend and beta reader, Shadowwolf08, from here on fan-fic) minus the part with Outer Moka, who is no longer around in the manga series; so it will definitely be different. Some events will be the same; otherwise it is a completely different story...kind of, LOL. ^_^
My other story is on hiatus right now as I have no idea what to write or how to wrap it up, so this story will have to hold you over, for the time being anyway. Sorry! :(
Don't worry – I will not abandon it. I still have some more to cover – eventually.
Any and all positive feedback is always welcomed and appreciated.
Takes place about a year after the defeat of 'Fairy Tale' and the demon, Alucard.
Complete Beta by 'Train48' from deviantArt. Thanks!
…..
This chapter is rated T:
Comedy / Drama / Romance
.
* [Prologue] *
Moka Akashiya was a nervous wreck. In fact, she could hardly breathe!
In just three days' time, she, along with all her friends, would be graduating from Yokai Academy and would be going their separate ways. The reason for her nervousness sat in front of her during homeroom every day for the past three years since they had become friends. Actually, very best friends. The only person who had always been there for her no matter what they went through, and accepted her for who she was, inside and out.
The one person who had saved her from a fate worse than death on the first day of Freshman Year:
Tsukune Aono.
.
.
For the first time in her life, she knew what true fear really was. Though she was deeply in love with him, there was always the concern whether or not he held the same feelings for her. Would he return her love? Was she merely wishful thinking? Did he only love her pink-haired, Outer half who was no longer around? Once she had gathered her thoughts together in some sort of comprehensive order, she wrote a letter and placed it in his shoe locker early this morning.
It was simple and to the point…
Dear Tsukune,
Please meet me on the roof of the school at the end of the day. I have something very important that I must tell you and can't bear to hold it in any longer. I will be looking forward to seeing you at that time.
Your friend.
When Tsukune found the note in his shoe locker, he was caught off guard by the cryptic message, unsure of not only of which friend it was from, but also the meaning behind it.
'Maybe somebody wants to fight me again? *sigh* I wouldn't blame them, considering the rumors about me defeating Alucard. Or it could be a girl wanting to confess to me. Yeah, right! Like that would ever happen in a million years!' the raven-haired teen thought to himself.
He really wasn't in the mood to fight anyone, especially since graduation was literally around the corner. And he was sure that no girl ever thought of him like that, anything beyond just a Friend, Destined One, or Mate of Fate.
The teen sighed, running a hand through his disheveled hair. Nothing seemed to be going right anymore.
He had more pressing issues wandering through his mind, namely a certain female vampire, whom he held very strong feelings for since the day they met during their first year at the Academy. Even after all they had been through, he still wasn't exactly sure how she felt about him or if she would even return his feelings. He knew she cared about him, but to what extent exactly?
Could he be with the girl of his dreams and live a happy, peaceful life once and for all?
…..
He didn't want to ruin the friendship they shared, and wanted more than anything to remain being friends, even after Graduation. It was true that he secretly hoped for more, but he didn't want to pressure her into a relationship, fearful she would flat-out reject him.
The boy pinched his eyes shut with a loud groan. All this stress was really beginning to get to him.
As soon as the last bell of the day had rung, Moka gathered her books, shoved them into her leather bag and started toward the door.
"Hey, Moka…Moka?" Tsukune said as she left the classroom as quickly as possible, nearly knocking over a few students that were blocking the doorway.
'That's weird. I wonder where Moka ran off to so suddenly?' he thought to himself as she disappeared down the hallway. 'Well, I guess I should head to the roof and meet with whoever wrote that note.'
With that decision firmly made, Tsukune walked down the long hallway towards the stairwell that lead the rooftop of the building.
.
Meanwhile, Moka was waiting at said rooftop, sitting on a bench, facing the doorway; silently praying that Tsukune would show up and listen to what she had to say to him.
She was going through the memories of the past three years; everything they had experience together. It was never easy of course; especially since her other side was no longer around. The silver-haired beauty secretly wished that she was there for her now. She was the one who was always better at facing her feelings.
It's a real shame though. After her Rosary was completely destroyed last year by Alucard, she and Tsukune never really talked too much, even though he was now a Shinso Vampire, much like herself.
Outer Moka was severely injured and her stepsister Akua was failing miserably as she attempted to revive her with her very own blood. He was the one who tore off his Holy Lock, just to prove a point to the eldest Shuzen daughter. Once his Lock was completely removed, the true, Shinso power in his blood was released and he became a Vampire, just as he predicted. If he was wrong, he would have gone berserk and turned into a bloodthirsty Ghoul once again.
Good thing he was correct though, otherwise the Chairman would have had to put him down, permanently.
The other girls were shocked of course, seeing his true power unleashed, but they knew they couldn't do a damn thing about it. What was done was finally done.
Her thoughts were brought back to the present, and her heart nearly stopped as the object of her turmoil slowly stepped out into the dimming sunshine, bathing his hair in a warm, chocolaty glow.
As Tsukune slowly pushed open the heavy, metal door, he spotted Moka sitting on a bench near the fence surrounding the roof.
'Moka? Wh-what's she doing here? It-it can't be…' Tsukune thought to himself, as he stood there, glued in place, uncertain as to what was going on. His question was answered a moment later.
Moka stood up from her seat and smiled brightly as she slowly approached the bewildered, ebony-haired object of her desire.
"Hello there, Tsukune. I'm so glad that you made it. I was wondering if you'd actually show up or not," the red-eyed vampiress muttered, slowly crossing the distance between them.
"Moka? Um, y-you w-wrote that note?" he nervously inquired, feeling his cheeks instantly warm at her closeness.
"Oh, yes Tsukune, I did. See, there is something I've wanted to tell you for some time now, but I've never had the chance to. Whenever I had a moment alone with you, even if it were just for a minute, we were always interrupted."
...
'What's she getting at? I d-don't understand.'
Moka could tell that Tsukune was getting nervous; thanks to the special bond they had shared since the first day they met during their freshman year.
She took a deep breath to gather her thoughts and slowly continued.
'I can do this…I know I can…somehow…' she reassured herself.
"Well, you see, Tsukune, I never really had the chance to thank you for everything since we became friends. Especially…when you saved the other me…from Saizo…and…and…he tried to – he tried to..." Moka stated as the painful memory from the experience resurfaced, and she instantly felt her shoulders shake against the sobs that quickly began to overtake her.
Seeing her cry so suddenly, Tsukune reached over and quickly pulled her into a firm hug.
'Wh-what the hell am I doing?!' the embarrassed teen thought with a blush, 'S-still, I-I had to do something. I've never seen her cry like this…'
Caught off guard by the affectionate gesture, Moka returned the embrace and gently leaned her head on his right shoulder.
"Moka, I-I don't know what to say…I j-just couldn't abandon you…I could never leave you behind…I'm so-sorry, Moka. I wasn't strong enough to protect you back then…but I had to do something. When you asked me to be your friend, I was really happy, Moka. It's just that, well, pretty girls such as yourself never spoke to me before I came here to Yokai…" he replied, still holding her closely.
Feeling better a few minutes later, Tsukune reluctantly released her from their hug as her crying finally ceased. Moka blushed hard hearing that last tidbit of information. Her feelings for Tsukune were clearer than ever before. She was definitely in love with him, no doubt about it.
"T-thank you, Tsukune. Thank you for being my friend and always being there for me," she whispered, a small smile tugging at her, plump, red lips.
"You're welcome, Moka. Is, um, that what you wanted to tell me?"
"Oh actually, Tsukune…there's a lot more," she replied as she nervously poked her index fingers together. He knew by that simple, yet adorable gesture, that something was definitely on her mind. Whatever it was had to be either very important or embarrassing, if he had to guess. He knew that a small part of 'Outer' Moka was still there – helping her along somewhat.
"Okay, Moka. Uh, is there something bothering you?" he asked as they walked towards the bench and sat down, less than a foot apart.
"Well, you see Tsukune. Um, it's quite embarrassing."
"It's fine, Moka. You can tell me anything. Whatever it is, I will listen. We are friends, right?" he asked with a warm smile.
Moka was getting more and more nervous by the passing second.
Time was quickly running out, and she honestly wanted to tell him how she felt about him, but was still hesitant – unsure of how to say it without getting more flustered than she already was.
The silver-haired vampire princess weakly smiled and slowly placed her left hand atop his right hand then squeezed gently. Tsukune's face flushed bright red, caught off guard by her unexpected, yet bold gesture.
"Moka?"
"Tsukune. Please, just listen. What I'm about to tell you is not easy for me."
…..
'W-what's going on here? She isn't going to… *gulp* confess to me is she? No. It's not possible…is it? Oh, man! If she does, I- I don't know what I'll do…I mean, does she really think of me more than just a 'friend'?'
Moka lightly squeezed his hand again, attempting to gain his undivided attention, as she could tell he was deep in thought. Or at least she believed he was.
"Tsukune?" she questioned.
"Uh, sorry about that, Moka. Um, you were saying?"
Moka closed her eyes for a moment and released a deep breath she did not know that she was even holding.
"Last year, when I was abducted by Fairy Tale…I wasn't sure if I'd ever see you again, Tsukune. And I missed being near you so much…it hurt, especially to my other half. The loneliness I felt when we were apart was quite painful. It's then that I realized that…that…I was in love with you…and I'm sorry it took me this long – to tell you…," Moka told him as her face turned bright red.
Tsukune's mouth fell open in disbelief; Moka was still holding his hand. To say that he was shocked would be the understatement of the millennium. Moka Akashiya, the only girl who he had been madly in love with for as long as he could remember just told him that she was in love with him.
'I-I'm dreaming, right? That's it. This has to be a dream! B-but even if it is…I don't want to wake up…' he thought to himself.
His thoughts immediately screeched to a grinding halt as Moka pulled him into her arms, holding the boy for all she was worth as she silently prayed he would return her love. She had told him how she felt about him and felt as though a weight had been lifted. However, she was not out of the woods yet.
God, what would she do if he rejected her now?
"Moka…um…the thing is…that…oh boy…the thing is Moka…that I've - *gulp* - been in love with you since the very first moment I saw you…but I didn't want to ruin our friendship…I was happy…just being your friend and just wanted to attend class with you every day…I'm sorry that I was indecisive and couldn't tell you how I felt about you sooner…pretty silly, huh?"
Tsukune hugged her tighter, as Moka shed a few tears of happiness. He loved her too! She was ecstatic! All her worries were for naught. Her chest suddenly felt too tight as a powerful surge of happiness swept through her. She honestly couldn't remember the last time she had been this happy. Had she ever even been this happy before?
…..
After everything they've been through, they have actually gotten closer together it would seem.
Pulling back slightly, the vampiress gave a soft smile. She could tell he was nervous, not unlike herself. She couldn't seem to help the nervous laughter that bubbled up in her throat. This was definitely a first time for her.
Swallowing the last bit of her nervousness, the vampiress surprised the young boy once again as she leaned forward and hesitantly touched their lips together in a timid kiss.
Tsukune gasped, feeling a delicious shiver of pleasure tingle down his spine. Still unsure of whether this was real, or just an amazing dream, he slowly returned her kiss. God, her lips were even softer than he'd imagined!
'Oh, please don't let me wake up if this is a dream.'
A soft moan from the girl in his arms caused him to tremble lightly as he hesitantly deepened the kiss. Feeling a little bolder now, he lightly traced the tip of his tongue along her bottom lip, begging for permission.
Moka gave a startled squeak, her cheeks burning a brighter shade of red than ever before as she hesitantly parted her lips, granting him access. Her head was positively spinning. Was it really safe for her heart to be beating this fast? Should her body be feeling this warm?
Finally, the couple pulled back slightly, breaking the kiss for air.
"W-wow…," Tsukune breathed, his lips still tingling from the passionate kiss.
The vampiress refused to meet his eyes for a moment. She honestly couldn't believe that she had actually done that. The most beautiful girl in the entire school, and she was proclaiming her love for him. Him: the ordinary average guy. Glancing the vampiress over, a soft smile graced his lips. He had to be the luckiest man on the planet right now.
'She's so sweet. In fact, she seems almost shy…'
"Moka…" he whispered. Unable to think of anything else to say, he wrapped his arms around her and, taking a chance, softly pressed his lips to hers once again. As he felt her move to gently nip down his neck, two things ran through his mind…
This has been an unexpected turn of events, but it's definitely a day I'll remember for the rest of my life!
…..
Unknown to the vampire couple, they were secretly being watched from a small crack in the roof-top doorway.
"I can't believe she would actually do that."
"Yeah. I mean, it's the real Moka."
"So, what do we do now?"
"We watch and see what's going to happen next."
"No! I won't allow her to take away my destined one."
"Will you be quiet already? I don't want them to hear us...oh shit!"
"What? Move...I can't see..."
"Look...Moka finally let him go."
Once the pair broke their embrace, Moka reached down and held his hands in her own.
"Tsukune...may I ask a favor of you...well...since you feel the same way I do...Uh...there is something I'd like for you to do for me" Moka said, as she quickly averted his eyes and stared at the concrete floor of the roof as if it were the most fascinating thing in the world.
Unsure of where this was heading, he simply shook his head yes and warmly smiled.
"Before you do Tsukune, I just want to let you know, that it's kind of embarrassing."
"It's okay Moka. I do love you. Whatever it is, it can't be all that bad, right?" he inquired as she gently squeezed her hands in a comforting gesture.
Moka's heartbeat finally returned to normal and offered him a smile of her own.
"Well, the truth is Tsukune, Graduation is in a few days, and then we'll be heading back to our homes...but now...after all this, I don't want to be separated from you ever again. There's a very old custom between vampires. Uh...the thing is...I'd like for you to kiss...my inner...thigh" Moka admitted as her face burned bright crimson yet again.
"Um, Moka...what does that mean exactly?" he wondered aloud.
"Well, the custom says that if you kiss my thigh, it means that you will devote your life to me and me alone. After that, we can become mates" Moka explained once she faced him and gazed lovingly into his chocolate-brown eyes.
"Of course Moka. It would be my pleasure" he said as she released one hand so he could get down on one knee and perform the ceremony.
Moka hiked her already too-short, school skirt up slowly, centimeter by centimeter; her cheeks glowing pink. Tsukune had quite the view of her creamy, alabaster thighs. To say that he was becoming quite aroused would be a severe understatement.
…..
Without warning, the two spies burst through the partially-opened door and tumbled onto the hard floor of the roof.
Moka noticed this and got upset immediately.
"Tsukune, please. Kiss my thigh now" she begged. He leaned forward and gently pressed his lips against the cool skin of the vampire princess. She shuddered with absolute delight from the affectionate gesture. "Ah-hhh...Tsukune" Moka whispered.
"NOOOO! YOU CAN'T TAKE HIM AWAY FROM ME!" Kurumu bellowed out as she opened her leathery wings and flew over to where Tsukune was in a compromising position. Mizore got up from the floor and was nearly crying. It was too late and she knew better than to interrupt an unsealed Moka.
Kurumu flew into Moka and knocked her back a few meters. Tsukune fell back as well unsure of what the hell had just happened just a second ago. He couldn't detect any other yokai in the immediate vicinity and was wondering why he was now on the floor.
Moka got up and dusted herself off. She was very upset due to some idiot interrupting her and Tsukune. They were sharing a very private moment together and were now separated.
"Kurumu! How dare you! Have you no common sense? You need to know your place!" the irate vampire princess shouted.
In less than a millisecond Moka raced over to the Succubus and with an elegant roundhouse kick with her extended leg, knocked her into the stratosphere with the force of a bullet train going full speed ahead.
"Ahhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh!" she screamed as she was thrown over a kilometer into the red sky above. Tsukune witnessed this and marveled at Moka's unsealed power. It was truly frightening. Even though he had the same level of power, his was held in check by a silver Rosary wrapped around his right wrist with a long, matching chain.
"Don't give me that look, Tsukune. She should not have interrupted us. She needs to know her place and realize that we are going to be mates soon" Moka explained as she wrapped her arms around him again and gave him a warm hug.
He loved Moka more than anything in the world but sometimes wished that her Rosary could have been repaired. He also knew that if he was going to be with her that it wouldn't be the least bit easy, especially when he would have to introduce her to his parents soon enough, but he would do it took to make sure it worked out for the best.
After losing Outer Moka last year, it wasn't easy for him to accept the fact that she wouldn't be coming back. He loved all of her, but could never choose between either of them, as he always saw them as two distinct sides to the most amazing woman he had ever met.
"Sorry about that Moka. But I guess that you do have a point. And Mizore, I know you're here too, so you might as well come on out."
...
Moka decided to stay silent for a moment and just held Tsukune close by in a loving, protective manner. She felt calmer now that her anger had subsided drastically.
The Snow Maiden poked her head out the from behind the heavy roof-top door and looked at the one boy who she loved more than anything in the entire universe, holding hands with Moka and it broke her heart in half. She knew that it was now a futile effort to come in-between them, especially after she witnessed Tsukune kissing Moka's inner thigh.
"Um...hi Tsukune...Moka...um...sorry about that. I uh, do wish you both the very best...and I promise I won't bother either of you ever again...I guess...I guess I should've known that you'd choose Moka. I mean, you're a vampire too...and um...I guess I'll be going now" Mizore said with tears streaming down her cheeks.
"Mizore, wait a minute. Moka was the one who confessed to me first. And the truth is that I've always been in love with her. I was always hesitant on deciding on how to tell her and I didn't want to hurt you other girls, but I won't apologize. I love Moka and have decided that I want to be with her. I'm sure you know what a kiss on the thigh means. And we have mutually decided to be with each other."
Mizore just shook her head yes, and bolted for the door. She had to get away as quickly as possible. It was too painful to be in the same area as Moka right now.
Moka continued to hold his hand and knew he was being completely honest about his feelings. She would know if he was being dishonest through their bond. After all, they have each other's blood coursing through each other's veins.
"Tsukune, it's getting late. Would you like to – come over to my dorm room for dinner? I'd like to show you my appreciation for today" she asked as she leads him to the doorway after retreating her brown, leather schoolbag. He didn't even need a second to think it over.
"Uh sure, Moka. I'd like that very much."
With that Tsukune opened the door for Moka and allowed her to descend the stairwell first. She briefly waited for him on the second step and held his free hand in her own as they made their way to the bottom floor of the school, which was completely devoid of any students or faculty members by this time.
Truth be told, he was quite excited to visit her dorm room, as it had been quite a long time since he was there last. A part of him knew it would be a painful reminder of the 'Outer' Moka, but he would have to tell himself that she was still a part of the real Moka, whom he loved very much. After all, Moka is still Moka.
He was already the luckiest guy on the planet and if he played his cards right, they could become a real couple this very evening.
…..
A/N:
Wow. That was not easy but it came out pretty good. Like I mentioned at the very beginning, this is going to be a reboot or an 'alternate' version of my first R + V fan-fic "A Confession and a Vampire" which is on temporary hiatus. I will not abandon it, as I still have some more to write, but not until after Christmas, anyway,
I welcome all the comments, critiques and feedback as long as they stay somewhat on the positive side. This story will include Lemons, but only when I deem necessary, hence the "M" rating, but not nearly as often with the original "Confession".
Next chapter will be in a few days or a week at the earliest. I already know what that will cover and yes, the real Moka can cook, and she won't burn the dorm down, LOLs.
Chapter 1: 'A Confession and a Vampire: Moka's side'
Author's Notes: Please read:
This is a complete 'reboot' of my ever-popular, original fan-fiction story 'A Confession and a Vampire' except it will be somewhat different. This will follow the events of the most recent manga chapters and contains major spoilers from season 2, chapter 65 and onward.
It also combines elements from my one-shot 'Moka's Strangest Day Ever' (co-written with my very good friend and beta reader, Shadowwolf08, from here on fan-fic) minus the part with Outer Moka, who is no longer around in the manga series; so it will definitely be different. Some events will be the same; otherwise it is a completely different story...kind of, LOL. ^_^
My other story is on hiatus right now as I have no idea what to write or how to wrap it up, so this story will have to hold you over, for the time being anyway. Sorry! :(
Don't worry – I will not abandon it. I still have some more to cover – eventually.
Any and all positive feedback is always welcomed and appreciated.
Takes place about a year after the defeat of 'Fairy Tale' and the demon, Alucard.
Complete Beta by 'Train48' from deviantArt. Thanks!
…..
This chapter is rated T:
Comedy / Drama / Romance
.
* [Prologue] *
Moka Akashiya was a nervous wreck. In fact, she could hardly breathe!
In just three days' time, she, along with all her friends, would be graduating from Yokai Academy and would be going their separate ways. The reason for her nervousness sat in front of her during homeroom every day for the past three years since they had become friends. Actually, very best friends. The only person who had always been there for her no matter what they went through, and accepted her for who she was, inside and out.
The one person who had saved her from a fate worse than death on the first day of Freshman Year:
Tsukune Aono.
.
.
For the first time in her life, she knew what true fear really was. Though she was deeply in love with him, there was always the concern whether or not he held the same feelings for her. Would he return her love? Was she merely wishful thinking? Did he only love her pink-haired, Outer half who was no longer around? Once she had gathered her thoughts together in some sort of comprehensive order, she wrote a letter and placed it in his shoe locker early this morning.
It was simple and to the point…
Dear Tsukune,
Please meet me on the roof of the school at the end of the day. I have something very important that I must tell you and can't bear to hold it in any longer. I will be looking forward to seeing you at that time.
Your friend.
When Tsukune found the note in his shoe locker, he was caught off guard by the cryptic message, unsure of not only of which friend it was from, but also the meaning behind it.
'Maybe somebody wants to fight me again? *sigh* I wouldn't blame them, considering the rumors about me defeating Alucard. Or it could be a girl wanting to confess to me. Yeah, right! Like that would ever happen in a million years!' the raven-haired teen thought to himself.
He really wasn't in the mood to fight anyone, especially since graduation was literally around the corner. And he was sure that no girl ever thought of him like that, anything beyond just a Friend, Destined One, or Mate of Fate.
The teen sighed, running a hand through his disheveled hair. Nothing seemed to be going right anymore.
He had more pressing issues wandering through his mind, namely a certain female vampire, whom he held very strong feelings for since the day they met during their first year at the Academy. Even after all they had been through, he still wasn't exactly sure how she felt about him or if she would even return his feelings. He knew she cared about him, but to what extent exactly?
Could he be with the girl of his dreams and live a happy, peaceful life once and for all?
…..
He didn't want to ruin the friendship they shared, and wanted more than anything to remain being friends, even after Graduation. It was true that he secretly hoped for more, but he didn't want to pressure her into a relationship, fearful she would flat-out reject him.
The boy pinched his eyes shut with a loud groan. All this stress was really beginning to get to him.
As soon as the last bell of the day had rung, Moka gathered her books, shoved them into her leather bag and started toward the door.
"Hey, Moka…Moka?" Tsukune said as she left the classroom as quickly as possible, nearly knocking over a few students that were blocking the doorway.
'That's weird. I wonder where Moka ran off to so suddenly?' he thought to himself as she disappeared down the hallway. 'Well, I guess I should head to the roof and meet with whoever wrote that note.'
With that decision firmly made, Tsukune walked down the long hallway towards the stairwell that lead the rooftop of the building.
.
Meanwhile, Moka was waiting at said rooftop, sitting on a bench, facing the doorway; silently praying that Tsukune would show up and listen to what she had to say to him.
She was going through the memories of the past three years; everything they had experience together. It was never easy of course; especially since her other side was no longer around. The silver-haired beauty secretly wished that she was there for her now. She was the one who was always better at facing her feelings.
It's a real shame though. After her Rosary was completely destroyed last year by Alucard, she and Tsukune never really talked too much, even though he was now a Shinso Vampire, much like herself.
Outer Moka was severely injured and her stepsister Akua was failing miserably as she attempted to revive her with her very own blood. He was the one who tore off his Holy Lock, just to prove a point to the eldest Shuzen daughter. Once his Lock was completely removed, the true, Shinso power in his blood was released and he became a Vampire, just as he predicted. If he was wrong, he would have gone berserk and turned into a bloodthirsty Ghoul once again.
Good thing he was correct though, otherwise the Chairman would have had to put him down, permanently.
The other girls were shocked of course, seeing his true power unleashed, but they knew they couldn't do a damn thing about it. What was done was finally done.
Her thoughts were brought back to the present, and her heart nearly stopped as the object of her turmoil slowly stepped out into the dimming sunshine, bathing his hair in a warm, chocolaty glow.
As Tsukune slowly pushed open the heavy, metal door, he spotted Moka sitting on a bench near the fence surrounding the roof.
'Moka? Wh-what's she doing here? It-it can't be…' Tsukune thought to himself, as he stood there, glued in place, uncertain as to what was going on. His question was answered a moment later.
Moka stood up from her seat and smiled brightly as she slowly approached the bewildered, ebony-haired object of her desire.
"Hello there, Tsukune. I'm so glad that you made it. I was wondering if you'd actually show up or not," the red-eyed vampiress muttered, slowly crossing the distance between them.
"Moka? Um, y-you w-wrote that note?" he nervously inquired, feeling his cheeks instantly warm at her closeness.
"Oh, yes Tsukune, I did. See, there is something I've wanted to tell you for some time now, but I've never had the chance to. Whenever I had a moment alone with you, even if it were just for a minute, we were always interrupted."
...
'What's she getting at? I d-don't understand.'
Moka could tell that Tsukune was getting nervous; thanks to the special bond they had shared since the first day they met during their freshman year.
She took a deep breath to gather her thoughts and slowly continued.
'I can do this…I know I can…somehow…' she reassured herself.
"Well, you see, Tsukune, I never really had the chance to thank you for everything since we became friends. Especially…when you saved the other me…from Saizo…and…and…he tried to – he tried to..." Moka stated as the painful memory from the experience resurfaced, and she instantly felt her shoulders shake against the sobs that quickly began to overtake her.
Seeing her cry so suddenly, Tsukune reached over and quickly pulled her into a firm hug.
'Wh-what the hell am I doing?!' the embarrassed teen thought with a blush, 'S-still, I-I had to do something. I've never seen her cry like this…'
Caught off guard by the affectionate gesture, Moka returned the embrace and gently leaned her head on his right shoulder.
"Moka, I-I don't know what to say…I j-just couldn't abandon you…I could never leave you behind…I'm so-sorry, Moka. I wasn't strong enough to protect you back then…but I had to do something. When you asked me to be your friend, I was really happy, Moka. It's just that, well, pretty girls such as yourself never spoke to me before I came here to Yokai…" he replied, still holding her closely.
Feeling better a few minutes later, Tsukune reluctantly released her from their hug as her crying finally ceased. Moka blushed hard hearing that last tidbit of information. Her feelings for Tsukune were clearer than ever before. She was definitely in love with him, no doubt about it.
"T-thank you, Tsukune. Thank you for being my friend and always being there for me," she whispered, a small smile tugging at her, plump, red lips.
"You're welcome, Moka. Is, um, that what you wanted to tell me?"
"Oh actually, Tsukune…there's a lot more," she replied as she nervously poked her index fingers together. He knew by that simple, yet adorable gesture, that something was definitely on her mind. Whatever it was had to be either very important or embarrassing, if he had to guess. He knew that a small part of 'Outer' Moka was still there – helping her along somewhat.
"Okay, Moka. Uh, is there something bothering you?" he asked as they walked towards the bench and sat down, less than a foot apart.
"Well, you see Tsukune. Um, it's quite embarrassing."
"It's fine, Moka. You can tell me anything. Whatever it is, I will listen. We are friends, right?" he asked with a warm smile.
Moka was getting more and more nervous by the passing second.
Time was quickly running out, and she honestly wanted to tell him how she felt about him, but was still hesitant – unsure of how to say it without getting more flustered than she already was.
The silver-haired vampire princess weakly smiled and slowly placed her left hand atop his right hand then squeezed gently. Tsukune's face flushed bright red, caught off guard by her unexpected, yet bold gesture.
"Moka?"
"Tsukune. Please, just listen. What I'm about to tell you is not easy for me."
…..
'W-what's going on here? She isn't going to… *gulp* confess to me is she? No. It's not possible…is it? Oh, man! If she does, I- I don't know what I'll do…I mean, does she really think of me more than just a 'friend'?'
Moka lightly squeezed his hand again, attempting to gain his undivided attention, as she could tell he was deep in thought. Or at least she believed he was.
"Tsukune?" she questioned.
"Uh, sorry about that, Moka. Um, you were saying?"
Moka closed her eyes for a moment and released a deep breath she did not know that she was even holding.
"Last year, when I was abducted by Fairy Tale…I wasn't sure if I'd ever see you again, Tsukune. And I missed being near you so much…it hurt, especially to my other half. The loneliness I felt when we were apart was quite painful. It's then that I realized that…that…I was in love with you…and I'm sorry it took me this long – to tell you…," Moka told him as her face turned bright red.
Tsukune's mouth fell open in disbelief; Moka was still holding his hand. To say that he was shocked would be the understatement of the millennium. Moka Akashiya, the only girl who he had been madly in love with for as long as he could remember just told him that she was in love with him.
'I-I'm dreaming, right? That's it. This has to be a dream! B-but even if it is…I don't want to wake up…' he thought to himself.
His thoughts immediately screeched to a grinding halt as Moka pulled him into her arms, holding the boy for all she was worth as she silently prayed he would return her love. She had told him how she felt about him and felt as though a weight had been lifted. However, she was not out of the woods yet.
God, what would she do if he rejected her now?
"Moka…um…the thing is…that…oh boy…the thing is Moka…that I've - *gulp* - been in love with you since the very first moment I saw you…but I didn't want to ruin our friendship…I was happy…just being your friend and just wanted to attend class with you every day…I'm sorry that I was indecisive and couldn't tell you how I felt about you sooner…pretty silly, huh?"
Tsukune hugged her tighter, as Moka shed a few tears of happiness. He loved her too! She was ecstatic! All her worries were for naught. Her chest suddenly felt too tight as a powerful surge of happiness swept through her. She honestly couldn't remember the last time she had been this happy. Had she ever even been this happy before?
…..
After everything they've been through, they have actually gotten closer together it would seem.
Pulling back slightly, the vampiress gave a soft smile. She could tell he was nervous, not unlike herself. She couldn't seem to help the nervous laughter that bubbled up in her throat. This was definitely a first time for her.
Swallowing the last bit of her nervousness, the vampiress surprised the young boy once again as she leaned forward and hesitantly touched their lips together in a timid kiss.
Tsukune gasped, feeling a delicious shiver of pleasure tingle down his spine. Still unsure of whether this was real, or just an amazing dream, he slowly returned her kiss. God, her lips were even softer than he'd imagined!
'Oh, please don't let me wake up if this is a dream.'
A soft moan from the girl in his arms caused him to tremble lightly as he hesitantly deepened the kiss. Feeling a little bolder now, he lightly traced the tip of his tongue along her bottom lip, begging for permission.
Moka gave a startled squeak, her cheeks burning a brighter shade of red than ever before as she hesitantly parted her lips, granting him access. Her head was positively spinning. Was it really safe for her heart to be beating this fast? Should her body be feeling this warm?
Finally, the couple pulled back slightly, breaking the kiss for air.
"W-wow…," Tsukune breathed, his lips still tingling from the passionate kiss.
The vampiress refused to meet his eyes for a moment. She honestly couldn't believe that she had actually done that. The most beautiful girl in the entire school, and she was proclaiming her love for him. Him: the ordinary average guy. Glancing the vampiress over, a soft smile graced his lips. He had to be the luckiest man on the planet right now.
'She's so sweet. In fact, she seems almost shy…'
"Moka…" he whispered. Unable to think of anything else to say, he wrapped his arms around her and, taking a chance, softly pressed his lips to hers once again. As he felt her move to gently nip down his neck, two things ran through his mind…
This has been an unexpected turn of events, but it's definitely a day I'll remember for the rest of my life!
…..
Unknown to the vampire couple, they were secretly being watched from a small crack in the roof-top doorway.
"I can't believe she would actually do that."
"Yeah. I mean, it's the real Moka."
"So, what do we do now?"
"We watch and see what's going to happen next."
"No! I won't allow her to take away my destined one."
"Will you be quiet already? I don't want them to hear us...oh shit!"
"What? Move...I can't see..."
"Look...Moka finally let him go."
Once the pair broke their embrace, Moka reached down and held his hands in her own.
"Tsukune...may I ask a favor of you...well...since you feel the same way I do...Uh...there is something I'd like for you to do for me" Moka said, as she quickly averted his eyes and stared at the concrete floor of the roof as if it were the most fascinating thing in the world.
Unsure of where this was heading, he simply shook his head yes and warmly smiled.
"Before you do Tsukune, I just want to let you know, that it's kind of embarrassing."
"It's okay Moka. I do love you. Whatever it is, it can't be all that bad, right?" he inquired as she gently squeezed her hands in a comforting gesture.
Moka's heartbeat finally returned to normal and offered him a smile of her own.
"Well, the truth is Tsukune, Graduation is in a few days, and then we'll be heading back to our homes...but now...after all this, I don't want to be separated from you ever again. There's a very old custom between vampires. Uh...the thing is...I'd like for you to kiss...my inner...thigh" Moka admitted as her face burned bright crimson yet again.
"Um, Moka...what does that mean exactly?" he wondered aloud.
"Well, the custom says that if you kiss my thigh, it means that you will devote your life to me and me alone. After that, we can become mates" Moka explained once she faced him and gazed lovingly into his chocolate-brown eyes.
"Of course Moka. It would be my pleasure" he said as she released one hand so he could get down on one knee and perform the ceremony.
Moka hiked her already too-short, school skirt up slowly, centimeter by centimeter; her cheeks glowing pink. Tsukune had quite the view of her creamy, alabaster thighs. To say that he was becoming quite aroused would be a severe understatement.
…..
Without warning, the two spies burst through the partially-opened door and tumbled onto the hard floor of the roof.
Moka noticed this and got upset immediately.
"Tsukune, please. Kiss my thigh now" she begged. He leaned forward and gently pressed his lips against the cool skin of the vampire princess. She shuddered with absolute delight from the affectionate gesture. "Ah-hhh...Tsukune" Moka whispered.
"NOOOO! YOU CAN'T TAKE HIM AWAY FROM ME!" Kurumu bellowed out as she opened her leathery wings and flew over to where Tsukune was in a compromising position. Mizore got up from the floor and was nearly crying. It was too late and she knew better than to interrupt an unsealed Moka.
Kurumu flew into Moka and knocked her back a few meters. Tsukune fell back as well unsure of what the hell had just happened just a second ago. He couldn't detect any other yokai in the immediate vicinity and was wondering why he was now on the floor.
Moka got up and dusted herself off. She was very upset due to some idiot interrupting her and Tsukune. They were sharing a very private moment together and were now separated.
"Kurumu! How dare you! Have you no common sense? You need to know your place!" the irate vampire princess shouted.
In less than a millisecond Moka raced over to the Succubus and with an elegant roundhouse kick with her extended leg, knocked her into the stratosphere with the force of a bullet train going full speed ahead.
"Ahhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh!" she screamed as she was thrown over a kilometer into the red sky above. Tsukune witnessed this and marveled at Moka's unsealed power. It was truly frightening. Even though he had the same level of power, his was held in check by a silver Rosary wrapped around his right wrist with a long, matching chain.
"Don't give me that look, Tsukune. She should not have interrupted us. She needs to know her place and realize that we are going to be mates soon" Moka explained as she wrapped her arms around him again and gave him a warm hug.
He loved Moka more than anything in the world but sometimes wished that her Rosary could have been repaired. He also knew that if he was going to be with her that it wouldn't be the least bit easy, especially when he would have to introduce her to his parents soon enough, but he would do it took to make sure it worked out for the best.
After losing Outer Moka last year, it wasn't easy for him to accept the fact that she wouldn't be coming back. He loved all of her, but could never choose between either of them, as he always saw them as two distinct sides to the most amazing woman he had ever met.
"Sorry about that Moka. But I guess that you do have a point. And Mizore, I know you're here too, so you might as well come on out."
...
Moka decided to stay silent for a moment and just held Tsukune close by in a loving, protective manner. She felt calmer now that her anger had subsided drastically.
The Snow Maiden poked her head out the from behind the heavy roof-top door and looked at the one boy who she loved more than anything in the entire universe, holding hands with Moka and it broke her heart in half. She knew that it was now a futile effort to come in-between them, especially after she witnessed Tsukune kissing Moka's inner thigh.
"Um...hi Tsukune...Moka...um...sorry about that. I uh, do wish you both the very best...and I promise I won't bother either of you ever again...I guess...I guess I should've known that you'd choose Moka. I mean, you're a vampire too...and um...I guess I'll be going now" Mizore said with tears streaming down her cheeks.
"Mizore, wait a minute. Moka was the one who confessed to me first. And the truth is that I've always been in love with her. I was always hesitant on deciding on how to tell her and I didn't want to hurt you other girls, but I won't apologize. I love Moka and have decided that I want to be with her. I'm sure you know what a kiss on the thigh means. And we have mutually decided to be with each other."
Mizore just shook her head yes, and bolted for the door. She had to get away as quickly as possible. It was too painful to be in the same area as Moka right now.
Moka continued to hold his hand and knew he was being completely honest about his feelings. She would know if he was being dishonest through their bond. After all, they have each other's blood coursing through each other's veins.
"Tsukune, it's getting late. Would you like to – come over to my dorm room for dinner? I'd like to show you my appreciation for today" she asked as she leads him to the doorway after retreating her brown, leather schoolbag. He didn't even need a second to think it over.
"Uh sure, Moka. I'd like that very much."
With that Tsukune opened the door for Moka and allowed her to descend the stairwell first. She briefly waited for him on the second step and held his free hand in her own as they made their way to the bottom floor of the school, which was completely devoid of any students or faculty members by this time.
Truth be told, he was quite excited to visit her dorm room, as it had been quite a long time since he was there last. A part of him knew it would be a painful reminder of the 'Outer' Moka, but he would have to tell himself that she was still a part of the real Moka, whom he loved very much. After all, Moka is still Moka.
He was already the luckiest guy on the planet and if he played his cards right, they could become a real couple this very evening.
…..
A/N:
Wow. That was not easy but it came out pretty good. Like I mentioned at the very beginning, this is going to be a reboot or an 'alternate' version of my first R + V fan-fic "A Confession and a Vampire" which is on temporary hiatus. I will not abandon it, as I still have some more to write, but not until after Christmas, anyway,
I welcome all the comments, critiques and feedback as long as they stay somewhat on the positive side. This story will include Lemons, but only when I deem necessary, hence the "M" rating, but not nearly as often with the original "Confession".
Next chapter will be in a few days or a week at the earliest. I already know what that will cover and yes, the real Moka can cook, and she won't burn the dorm down, LOLs.
R + V: Anime Convention and a Vampire
This is chapter 38 of my R+V fan-fic: 'A Confession and a Vampire'.
(Chapter 39 on fanfic dot net)
Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and fan-fic written by Gamera68.
Rated T.
Moka and Tsukune are both 19 years old and married.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga.
However, I'm pretty much borrowing already-established canon from the series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
….
A/N: Here is the long-awaited 'Anime Convention' Chapter.
Nekomini = Cat Ears / Neko = Cat / Nya = meow
Update: 82,800 views this story has of this writing! Thank you everyone!
The Anime Convention and location are real, as is the "Electric Town" JR train exit in Akihabara.
…..
December 28th, Saturday Morning.
Moka awoke rather early today, seeing that she would be attending her very first Anime Convention in Akihabara at the UDX Building on Sotokanda Street, just a short stroll from the 'Electric Town' exit of the JR 'Akiba' Train Station. Tsukune had caught her off-guard by purchasing a pair of tickets for themselves online over a month ago, seeing as they most likely would have sold out otherwise.
It was a last minute Christmas present for his otaku wife who thoroughly enjoyed anime and manga.
She had even purchased a special accessory just for the event, to go along with her cosplay for the day: Electronic 'Nekomini' Ears that move according to your emotions, which are controlled by brainwaves via a sensor, attached to the forehead of the wearer.
After getting herself prepared for the day and dressed in her cosplay, she decided to surprise Tsukune with breakfast in bed, as her way of saying thanks once again for his heartfelt generosity.
Moka walked downstairs and into the kitchen. Her mother-in-law Kasumi who had a bright smile grace her features greeted her.
"Good morning, Moka Dear. My, you look very cute today," she said as Moka approached her.
"Good morning, mom. Um, thank you" Moka replied as her electronic cat ears twitched with appreciation.
"Making breakfast?" Kasumi inquired.
"Oh, yes mom. I just wanted to thank Tsukune again for the Anime Convention tickets," the silver-haired maiden answered. Kasumi smiled again seeing Moka look so happy today.
...
Fifteen minutes later, Moka was carrying her love-filled breakfast upstairs to her mate on a wooden bed tray with foldaway legs.
After setting the tray on the hallway floor, Moka gently tapped on their bedroom door in order to gain his attention. As she heard him rustling in bed, she opened the door then bent down to retrieve the tray with the wonderful breakfast she had prepared for him.
"Good morning, ~nya," she announced as Tsukune sat up, attempting to wipe the sleep from his chocolate brown eyes. Unsure if he was still dreaming or not, he blinked in utter disbelief upon seeing Moka's outfit for the entire day.
She was sporting her original French Maid Cosplay: black with white trim, the short, frilly skirt showing off her creamy, shapely thighs. The scoop neckline presented her generous bosom without giving too much away.
She was also wearing black, thigh-high stockings to keep her legs warm against the chilly air, since it was now late December.
Around her neck was a leather 'cat' collar, black with a small, round, silver bell that would gently jingle with every movement.
On top of her head, she was wearing black nekomini (cat ears), which moved on their own accord via the brainwave sensor that was hidden by her silver bangs, over her forehead.
'Oh Kami, she looks so cute today', the ebony-haired teen thought breathlessly.
His breakfast consisted of homemade French toast, sausage patties, buttermilk pancakes, scrambles eggs, and a tall glass of orange juice.
"Oh, good morning Moka" he answered once all the pieces of the puzzle fell into place.
"I hope you're hungry, ~nya," she said as she approached their bed and set the tray over his lap. She then stood off to his side, leaned over and gave him a chaste kiss on his lips.
"Itadakimasu!" he said as he dug into the morning meal Moka made with pure love and devotion. She just sat at the foot of the bed on her knees, blushing the entire time.
"Wow. This is amazing, Moka. Thank you so much" he beamed back with a warm, genuine smile.
"Oh you're welcome, Tsukune ~nya. It's my way of saying thank you for the anime convention tickets, ~nya" she replied, her blush only deepening as she remained 'in character'.
"I see. Well, you look really cute as a Neko Maid."
"Oh thank you, love" Moka replied as her cat ears perked up. Tsukune noticed that movement and was somewhat mesmerized by the animated Nekomini. He continued eating but had a difficult time concentrating as he was enraptured by Moka's more-than-adorable appearance.
When Tsukune finally finished his breakfast, Moka removed the wooden tray and set it by the doorway. She then sauntered back to the bed and crawled into her husband's lap. He wrapped his arms affectionately around her waist and kissed her passionately.
…..
Several minutes later, both teens were begging for life-giving oxygen before either passed out. Moka's mechanical nekomini were lying flat, due to her emotional high.
"Tsukune...um...if you want to, you can" she whispered into his right ear as she leaned her head on his shoulder.
As the pair continued their hug, he gently placed his left hand on the back of her head, while his right hand wrapped around to the small of her back. He then sank his extended fangs into her alabaster flesh, causing Moka's breath to hitch.
"Ah...Tsukune...oh kami...ahhhhngh...~nyaaaa!" she bellowed out lustfully.
Moka's electronic cat ears were twitching insanely now due to her building stimulation.
Closing her eyes, her body began to quickly heat up as he lapped up her precious blood in short, slow slurps. She attempted to hold back the moans that suddenly escaped her pink, pouty lips, which caused Tsukune to get immediately aroused as he groaned with pleasure upon hearing her tempting voice, which was akin to music to his ears.
"Mmmm...Ahhhhh...Tsukune...angh...aha-nnnhhh...oh...ahhhhnn...", she breathed, moaning lightly in the back of her throat as the tingles of pleasure immediately ran down her spine, causing her toes to curl in her ecstasy.
As Tsukune continued to suck her blood, the young vampires quickly became further aroused. As she attempted to hold back her growing blood lust, she realized it was a futile effort. She adjusted herself into the junction of his neck and collarbone and licked his skin with her hot, moist tongue.
'Go ahead, Moka' he wordlessly communicated to her via their blood-bond. Without any further warning, she dug her longer fangs into his neck and began drinking her fill of his addicting blood in deep, satisfying slurps.
Tsukune became even further aroused as the blood-bond deepened even more so. Both vampires shared their thoughts, feelings, and memories once again.
'Ah...Moka...'
'Tsukune ~nya.'
…..
Several moments later once they were both satisfied they each removed their fangs from one another's necks and licked the puncture marks closed with their tongues.
Moka sat up and climbed off the bed once she regained her bearings.
"Um, Tsukune...we should get going soon as the convention opens at 11" Moka said when she noticed what time it was by the clock on the dresser.
"Oh sure thing Moka. I'll meet you downstairs shortly" he replied as he got up from the bed and walked over to the closet to search for something warm, yet comfortable to wear.
"Thank you, love. I'll see you soon," she said as she walked over to the door and opened it, then bent down and grabbed the bed tray. After walking down the hallway, she made her way into the kitchen where Kasumi and Koji were now eating breakfast. Koji of course nearly had a nosebleed when he saw Moka in her Neko Maid Cosplay.
Kasumi then smacked him in the back of the head and called him a pervert that caused Moka to snicker at his ridiculous antics.
Tsukune was now dressed and ready to head out for their excursion. He was sporting black cargo pants, a black, long-sleeved tee shirt under his Batman tee shirt, which was dark gray with the classic, black Bat symbol on the front. He found his wife, Moka in the kitchen sipping on a glass of tomato juice while she waited for his eventual appearance.
They had roughly a forty-five minute train ride to Akihabara where the daylong event was located at. Thankfully, the Anime Convention wouldn't be as packed as compared to Winter Comiket, which boasted approximately 500,000 attendees over the course of the weekend.
"Good morning, Sweetie" his mother said once he walked into the kitchen.
"Good morning, mom" he announced as Moka sat up from her chair and gave him a warm, yet brief embrace.
"So Moka tells me you're going to an anime convention today," Kasumi said.
"Oh yes, I bought the tickets as one of her Christmas presents. It's being held in Akihabara."
"Well have fun and be safe," Kasumi sternly said with motherly love.
"Don't worry Mom. I won't let Moka out of my sight" he reassured her as they made their way to the front door to fetch their shoes and coats.
Once the duo was ready to go, they stepped out into the chilly, morning air and walked down the sidewalk towards the downtown train station. Moka had brought along a small, black purse along too, just in case she found something 'cute' to purchase while attending the convention. Thankfully, the snow had stopped and the sun was shining brightly for once.
…..
After walking for roughly ten minutes, they eventually reached the local train station. After riding the escalator to the second-floor platform, Moka found the route they needed to take to the Akihabara – Electric Town Exit. After purchasing two round trip tickets, the happy couple sat on a bench off to the side while waiting for the train to arrive.
Leaning her head on Tsukune's shoulder, the silver-haired vampiress just smiled, and then giggled adorably. Moments later, the overhead announcement indicated the train would be arriving shortly.
Honestly, Moka was having a difficult time containing her enthusiasm! It was another of her 'first times' and she would be experiencing it with her very best friend and now husband.
Once the express train slowed to a complete halt, dozens of passengers rushed out onto the platform, going off to who knows where. As soon as the sea of people eventually dispersed, Tsukune slipped his hand into Moka's and made a beeline to the closest window seat.
Thankfully, the train car was not too full. Sitting down now, the young couple sat in blissful silence, admiring the rapidly passing scenery.
"Tsukune, I can't wait until we get there, ~nya" Moka said, breaking her mate out of his thoughts.
"Yeah Moka. We're going to have a great time. You'll even have a chance to meet some voice actresses, too" he gladly informed her as she gently squeezed her hand.
Roughly, forty-five minutes later, the overhead announcement brought the duo out of their thoughts, indicating they were arriving at their destination.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS: NOW APPROACHING AKIHABARA – ELECTRIC TOWN STATION. PLEASE BRING ALL BELONGINGS WITH YOU WHILE EXITING THE TRAIN. ONCE AGAIN, NOW APPROACHING ELECTRIC TOWN STATION. THANK YOU."
Once the train slowed down and came to a complete stop a minute later, Moka and Tsukune got off their seat and made their way, hand-in-hand, to the nearest exit. As soon as the automatic aluminum doors slid open, they stepped out, onto the platform and off to the side, looking for the nearest escalator. Upon finding it, Moka told him to follow her, which he happily did without any further petition nor hesitation.
Once they reached street level, they made a sharp left and walked along Sotokanda Street; towards the UDX Building, where the one-day convention was being held at.
A few minutes later, they reached the location. The couple walked through the double-glass doors and into the huge lobby. After finding their way to a row of elevators, Moka pressed the "up" call button, awaiting the next car to arrive and take them to the fourth floor.
…..
Once the elevator car arrived, they stepped inside and Tsukune pressed the number 4 button, indicating their next stop. The silver-colored door then closed. He pulled out the tickets from one of many pants pockets and handed one to Moka.
"Thank you again, Tsukune. This really means a lot to me. And I'm glad my first time going will be with you, ~nya" she said as she swiftly pulled him into a firm hug.
"You're welcome again, Moka. It's my pleasure," he said as he returned her embrace.
'I just want you to have a great time, Moka,' he quietly thought to himself.
*ding ding*
The automatic doors then slid open, indicating they had arrived to their destination.
"Wow, Tsukune!" Moka bellowed as she grabbed his hand and dragged him towards the entrance of the Anime Convention. Moka spotted several booths selling quite a lot of types of anime goods from posters, figurines, and even special editions of manga.
Moka slowed down seeing Tsukune was befuddled due to her over-anxiousness.
"Sorry about that Tsukune" she replied with a slight blush of embarrassment. Her cat ears swiftly perked up and were fluttering like crazy.
"It's okay Moka. I know you're excited. Here, lets' wait in line over there."
"Thank you Tsukune" she said as she held his hand and walked over to the actual entrance, hands still linked. As the approached the front of the line, they each handed the young woman their tickets and were handed back a lanyard with an identification card, indicating VIP status. That would allow them the special privilege of meeting the voice actors in person.
They also were asked to leave their coats in a coat-check area for the time being.
"Tsukune…let's go, let's go, let's go" Moka squealed with delight as she made her rounds towards the vendor's tables. She was quite shocked seeing all sorts of anime and manga inspired collectables.
The silver-haired maiden had quite a difficult time deciding on what she wanted to bring home with her today. Tsukune found her enthusiasm to be quite adorable. He was thankful that even though the real Moka was back, her personality still showed signs of being fused together to some extent due to her pregnancy.
Moka didn't take notice of the stares she was receiving from the other convention goers since she was so immersed in perusing over the ridiculous amount of anime goods offered.
She decided to leave the shopping for later on, as she took notice of a few TV screens showing trailers for some upcoming anime shows for the new season.
"Wow, so neat" she replied as she took in the sights and sounds of some new anime shows she just had to see, early next year.
"So Moka, what do you think so far?" Tsukune asked her as she was lost in all the sights and sounds around herself.
"Oh, it's really nice Tsukune. Thank you again" she replied as she slid her hand into her own.
"It's no problem Moka. It's my first time attending too," he honestly answered.
"ATTENTION ALL CONVENTION ATTENDEES, WE WILL BE HAVING THE MEET AND GREET OF VOICE ACTORS IN FIFTEEN MINUTES IN THE MAIN HALL. ALL VIP PASS HOLDERS WILL HAVE A CHANCE TO MEET THEM UP CLOSE AND PERSONAL. THANK YOU"
Once Moka heard the overhead announcement, her ears perked up, literally.
"Tsukune, let's go!" she said as she grabbed his hand and made her way toward the main hall where the meet and greet would be heading. She wanted more than anything in the world to get a good seat, even though she and Tsukune both held a VIP pass.
"Coming Moka!" he yelped out as she dragged him down the large corridor as other convention-goers witnessed the scene before them in shock and disbelief.
As the arrived in the Main Hall, Moka saw who the guest voice actors were.
Most notably, Rie Kugimiya, who was quite famous in the anime industry.
…..
Some of Kugimiya's most prominent roles include Alphonse Elric in Fullmetal Alchemist, Happy in Fairy Tail, and Kagura in Gintama. However, because of her voicing of tsundere lead characters such as Nagi from Hayate the Combat Butler, Shana from Shakugan no Shana, and Louise from Zero no Tsukaima…all of which aired around the same time.
Some of her fans have nicknamed her the "Queen of Tsundere", or "TsundeRie" for short. Other tsundere characters voiced by her include Lotte in Astarotte no Omocha, Taiga Aisaka in Toradora, Iori Minase in The Idolmaster, Rose from Dragon Crisis, and Aria H. Kanzaki in Aria the Scarlet Ammo.
(She also voiced Mizore Shirayuki in the anime adaptation of Rosario + Vampire, LOLs)
The second special guest star was Yui Hiore.
Hiore debuted in 1997 in the video game Voice Fantasia and for several years had minor roles in various anime series. She landed her first leading role as Haruka in Kurogane Communication. The turning point in her career was not until 2000, when she won the role of Naru Narusegawa in the popular anime series Love Hina.
Other notable and defining career moments were taking the role of Tohru Honda in the anime Fruits Basket in 2001, and releasing her first music album 'Mizutamari ni Utsuru Sekai' in 2000. She has since become one of the most popular anime voice actresses in Japan. Her most recent role was of the 'Angeloid' Ikaros in the anime adaptation of Sora no Otoshimono. (Heaven's Lost Property)
…..
Finding the first row of red chairs empty in the large auditorium, Moka plopped down in one, holding Tsukune very close to herself, pressing her abundant bosom against his left arm, much to his embarrassment. A few other male attendees saw this and got insanely jealous.
'What does she see in him? He looks like a wimp'
'I don't know. Maybe she feels sorry for him?'
Moka heard the negative remarks aimed at not only herself, but her blood-mate as well. A deep growl bubbled up in the back of her throat when she saw who had made those ludicrous comments and shot them both a dirty look. The two teens gulped hard when they felt the irate yokai's aura right down to their very bones.
"Moka, please calm down. They're just jealous, that's all," Tsukune explained as he felt her growing animosity towards the two idiots through their bond.
"Sorry, love" she replied with a hint of sadness. He then reached over and kissed her.
"It's okay Moka. I understand" he replied once they ceased their embrace. Moka's face burned bright crimson from her husband's bold gesture of affection in front of the entire Hall, which was packed to capacity as the two voice actors made their way to a table set up on the stage, a nameplate set in front of each seat.
The entire audience rose to their feet and gave a hearty round of applause as the two women sat down, each waving energetically for their adoring fans.
…..
As the hour-long question and answer panel wound down, the emcee asked the VIP holders to come up to the stage so they could meet the voice actresses and have a photo taken with each of them. A long line quickly formed in an orderly fashion as each patron shook their hands and had a photo taken with them as they smiled happily for their fans.
As Moka's turn was next, she suddenly had a bout of nervousness. Tsukune held her hand and walked her up to the table. She silently thanked her mate as she stood in front of Miss Kugimiya and Miss Hiore.
"T-thank you for all your hard w-work" Moka sputtered out as she shook each woman's hand in turn, quite enthusiastically. Her nekomini twitched in response to her sudden apprehension.
"Oh, thank you very much" they both responded as they returned the vampiress' hearty handshake.
"Would you like to take a picture with us?" Rie asked the still-nervous yokai.
"Um, yes please. If it's not too much trouble," Moka replied as she poked her index fingers together out of habit. Tsukune pulled out from one of his several pockets, his digital camera to Moka's surprise.
"Sure. Not a problem" Yui answered back as she and her cohort walked around to the front of the table and each stood on either side of the silver-haired maiden. They each wrapped an arm around Moka's waist and smiled brightly for the photo opportunity.
"On three…one, two, three!" Tsukune announced as he shot a few pictures in a row.
Moka nearly fainted due to all the attention from her now-favorite voice actresses. She then bowed out of gratitude to the two women as she waved goodbye and ambled off the stage with Tsukune, who had to hold her up before she keeled over.
He walked her over to the nearest chair and asked her to sit for a few minutes so she could regain her composure and sanity.
...
"Moka? Are you okay now?" he asked as he sat down next to her. She then leaned against him as was breathing heavily.
"Oh yes, love. Thank you. I - um…well…that was surreal" she said as he hugged her closer.
"I see. I guess you were kind of surprised, huh?"
"Yes, I was very surprised. You knew beforehand, didn't you?" she inquired with a light blush.
"Well of course I knew. The website said who would be the guest speakers. I really wanted you to be surprised, Moka. I knew they were somewhat famous from what I read," he explained.
"I see. Somewhat famous? They're the most well-known voice actresses in the business" she happily informed him.
"Oh, well. I see. I just wanted you to be happy Moka."
"Thank you again, Tsukune. You've made me very happy today. I love you so much," Moka, replied as she sat up straight and kissed him on his cheek.
"I love you too, Moka. I don't know about you, but I'm thirsty. Why don't we go to the food court and see what they have to offer?" he asked as he stood up and offered his free hand to Moka, which she gladly accepted with a loving smile.
"Sure thing Tsukune. That sounds like a wonderful idea," she said as she stood up and walked along the crowded convention hall with her thoughtful spouse to the far side of the building where the food court was located at.
Once they finally reached the food court, Moka suddenly found herself to be the center of unwarranted attention as she was without warning, surrounded by a horde of horny teenagers with cameras. She was then quickly divided from her mate as their hands broke contact.
...
"Tsukune!" she yelled, as she was pushed further and further away from him, dozens of fans taking photos of her, without her vocal consent.
"Moka!" he hollered as she was promptly buried behind a wall of people, at least ten deep!
"Tsukune!" she replied even louder as she lost sight of her husband.
"Hey baby, smile for us."
"Yeah, show us a smile."
"You know you like it, don't ya?'
"No! Get away from me!" Moka bellowed as she tried to break away from the throng of people who had separated her from her blood-mate.
"Aw, come on baby, meow for us."
*Hisss!* Moka bit out as she bared her fangs and swiped her hands at the perverted photographers.
"Aw look, the neko-chan is upset."
"Out of my way! Moka! MOKA!" Tsukune shouted as he broke through the mass of bodies that engulfed his wife. He held out his hand to Moka, which she swiftly grabbed and was pulled into his arms. She was shaking like a leaf and her face was bright red.
"Back off! Every one of you! She's my wife and she's pregnant! Idiots!" he barked as the sea of people heeded his sharp warning and backed away as hastily as possible.
A collective groan erupted from the mob of otaku who walked away with a dejected sense of defeat. Some mumbled 'No fair' and 'lucky dog' as they finally left the two vampires alone. Tsukune walked Moka over to one of several food stalls and asked her to order anything she would like, seeing it was already past Noon.
"Thank you Tsukune. I was kind of scared," she admitted as they stood in front of the counter.
"You're welcome, Moka. I'm here for you. So what would you like to eat?"
…..
Once Moka decided on her lunchtime meal, she and Tsukune walked over to a vacant table and sat down. The vampiress ordered something to her liking: a huge Pepperoni Pizza and two melon sodas.
"Thank you for lunch Tsukune" Moka said as she dug into her pizza slice like the hungry vampire she was.
"It's my pleasure, Moka. So, um…are you feeling better now?"
"Oh yes, love. Thank you. I'm feeling a lot better now," she replied in between bites of her lunchtime meal with great eagerness.
"Anytime Moka. I'm always going to be here for you, no matter what," he replied as he reached over and gave her free hand a gentle squeeze. She smiled brightly upon hearing his honest words of love and compassion for her overall safety and well-being.
When the pair finished off the pizza and sweet beverages, Tsukune asked his spouse what she'd like to do next.
"Well, if it's alright…could we…um…go back to the dealer's room?" she asked with a cuter-than-usual blush.
"Sure thing, Moka. Let's go" he answered in turn, as she slid her hand into his and walked back to the front of the complex. Seems like Moka wanted to do some shopping now.
"Look Tsukune! So cute!" she said as she ran up to a dealer's table that had several types of Vocaloid figures, each one in a different outfit of sorts. He saw how happy she was and could definitely detect it through their ever-growing blood-bond.
Tsukune was relieved that she was back to her usual self, especially after the 'cosplay incident' just a short while ago. He knew he'd have to be on his toes to avoid another unpleasant scene like that from happening for the remainder of their time at the convention.
"Tsukune…Tsukune…" Moka said as she held his hand and was attempting to gain his attention.
…..
"Oh sorry about that Moka. I was just thinking" he replied, as he shook the thoughts from his mind and refocused his attention towards his wife who had a worried look across her features and had her brow wrinkled.
"Are you alright, Tsukune?" she inquired, still somewhat concerned.
"Oh yes. You were saying Moka?"
"It's okay love. I was saying I bought something. What do you think?" she said as she pulled the item in question out from the large, white bag she held in her hands. It was a figure of the most recent version (2.0) of the Vocaloid Miku Hatsune in her 'concert' outfit from the 'Good Smile' Company.
"I see. Very cute" he agreed with a smile as he examined the miniature holographic singer in question. Her hair was in twin-tails, the color a bright aqua, her outfit was a black and white number; the necktie, and trim of her mini skirt matched her brightly hued hair. She was also sporting, thigh-high, shiny, black boots and matching 'sleeves' on her dainty arms.
The Figma had several accessories including an electric guitar, wireless microphone and stand as well as three pair of clear angel wings, along with a pair of spring onions, which were the classic items she shook about in her 'concerts'. The last piece was a clear stand so the figurine could be displayed in many different poses.
"Thanks Tsukune. She's soooo cute, ~nya!" Moka squealed with delight and smiling happily regarding her recent purchase. Her cat ears once again flickered with happiness.
"You're welcome Moka" he replied, relieved that she was indeed doing much better.
"Aww…well she only cost me 6,000 Yen*," she happily informed her spouse.
"What? Oh wow…" he nervously answered upon hearing that ridiculous amount of cash.
"Yep, and she's worth every bit" Moka replied as she grinned favorably and replaced her newly acquired acquisition back into the large, white bag she held in her hand.
"Well, as long as you're happy then I guess it's alright to spoil yourself every once in a while" he agreed as they wandered around some more, just to waste time, since it was mid- afternoon.
"Thanks Tsukune" she replied with a blush once again.
"No problem, beautiful."
…..
"Moka! Tsukune!" the vampire couple heard their names being called by a fairly familiar female voice.
It was their friend, Yukari Sendo dressed in her Yokai Academy uniform, complete black, pointed hat, matching cape along with her magic wand. She ran up to the silver-haired Vampiress and greeted her with a hug.
"Yukari? What are you doing here?" Moka questioned her younger friend after they had ceased their longer-than-usual greeting.
"Oh, I'm actually working here. I'm putting on a magic show in a little while," the teen-Witch explained.
"Yukari? You're not using your powers, are you?" Tsukune asked her.
"Nope. It's all tricks: sleight-of-hand type "magic". I'm not that dense to use my natural talent out in the open like that" Yukari retorted back, clearly upset over Tsukune's comment.
Sensing he had unintentionally hurt her emotionally, he bowed out of embarrassment.
"I'm sorry, Yukari. I wasn't thinking and made an assumption" he apologized.
Now clearly embarrassed herself, the younger, ebony-haired teen waved her hands in front of herself, asking him to stop prostrating so much.
"It's okay, Tsukune. I forgive you. Please, stop bowing now. It's fine, really" Yukari assured him.
After he stood straight up, Moka and himself gave her a quick hug, which caused her to start fantasizing once again. Yukari even drooled a somewhat as her mind began to wander.
'Oh thank you Kami! I'm once again the meat in a Vampire sandwich!'
"Um, thanks guys. It's really great to see you again, especially you, Moka. By the way, I love your cosplay. I uh, have to head back right now, but you're more than welcome to see my show at five o'clock," Yukari informed the pair as her face regained its natural complexion a few moments later.
"Oh, um…thank you Yukari," Moka blushed back as she heard her friend's somewhat perverse comment.
"Anytime, Yukari. We'll have to wait and see how Moka's feeling later on. We had a minor run in with some *ahem* unwanted attention earlier" Tsukune explained.
"Oh, I see. Well, I hope you're feeling better soon, Moka. And Tsukune, please take care of Moka. I'm genuinely happy for the both of you. After everything we've been through; you guys really deserve to be happy. Take care and I'll see ya' soon, I hope," Yukari said as she bowed towards her friends and waved farewell.
"Thanks Yukari. Take care of yourself, too" Tsukune said as he and Moka waved goodbye to their friend, as she disappeared into the crowd of convention-goers to head back to her part-time job.
...
"That was – interesting" Moka quipped as she held her mate's hand and started to walk in the opposite direction. Tsukune just nodded his head 'yes' in silent agreement.
Once they reached the very front of the massive Hall, Moka quickly stopped. Tsukune nearly toppled over at his mate's abrupt halt.
"Hey Moka? Is everything alright?"
"Oh yes, love. I was wondering if it would be okay if we headed home now. I'm feeling kind of tired all of a sudden," Moka explained in the simplest of terms without having her overly protective husband freak out over her health.
"I see. Do you need anything to drink? You know, anything?" he asked as calmly as possible, carefully accentuating his words hoping she would take notice of his equivocal suggestion.
"No Tsukune. I'm fine. Just tired is all. Can we go home now, please?" she begged as she flung herself into his arms and nearly knocked him to the floor due to her impulsive glomp. She then wrapped her arms around his hips and clutched his buttocks rather firmly.
"Ah. It's okay Moka. I understand. Let's get our coats and head back, if that's what you want."
"Thank you love" she responded once she released Tsukune from her sudden embrace.
Once the pair retrieved their coats, they made their way hand-in-hand towards the elevators. After pressing the 'down' call button, Tsukune held his wife's hand very firmly.
As soon as the elevator arrived, Moka pulled her mate inside and pressed the 'Lobby' button. The silver doors slid closed as the elevator descended down to the bottom floor in a matter of seconds.
*ding ding* the bell rung, indication they had finally arrived in the actual Lobby itself.
…..
Once they exited the massive UDX Building, they made a quick left and walked down the long sidewalk in the direction of the nearest train station. They arrived in less than five minutes flat.
Moka was relieved to see that the train platform wasn't the least bit busy. They made themselves comfortable in the covered waiting area, several meters away from the train track. Moka leaned to her right and rested herself against Tsukune who wrapped his left arm around her and held her firmly.
Her eyes were closed and she had a peaceful, serene look on her face as well as a big smile on her lips.
A few minutes later, their train finally arrived. Once it came to a full stop, the automatic doors swooshed open and all the passengers poured out onto the upper deck and went about their business, off to parts unknown.
"Moka, the train's here," Tsukune said as he gave her a slight nudge. She blinked her eyes a few times to wake herself up. She had inadvertently dozed off and momentarily forgot where she was.
"Oh thanks love. Let's go, shall we?" she said as she stood up and wobbled her way to the sliding, metal doors of the express train. Tsukune held her hand firmly as he carried her new Vocaloid figure in the other.
Moka settled herself into the nearest seat and closed her eyes once again.
"Thank you Tsukune" she muttered before she leaned to her right and propped herself against her mate. He wrapped his left arm around his sleepyhead of a spouse and warmly smiled at her.
…
Nearly an hour later, the couple finally reached home. Tsukune had to practically carry Moka her the entire walk back from the train station, since she claimed she was 'so tired'.
After opening the front door, Tsukune aided Moka to remove her jacket and shoes and then helped her to walk upstairs.
When they arrived in their bedroom, Moka hugged Tsukune firmly and pushed him onto the bed.
"Thank you Tsukune. I had fun today," she said as she buried her head in the crook of his neck.
"You're welcome, Moka. I had fun, too."
"Um, Tsukune?" she inquired as she sat partly up on the bed and looked into his eyes.
"Yes, Moka?" he answered with a smile.
"Um, Tsukune…would it…be okay…if I…um…you know…I uh - you smell so good!" she adorably stated, her breath coming out in short pants, seeing as they were still embraced tightly.
~ Capa-chu!
"Moka!" he yelped, as she sunk her longer fangs deep into the crook of his neck, drinking in his sweet ambrosia. He held her close and allowed her to take what she so desperately needed, even though she claimed to be 'tired' at the Convention Hall.
Well, like he has said time and time again: Moka is Moka.
…..
Author's Notes: PLEASE READ regarding UPDATES!
*6,000 Yen is approximately $59.00, U.S.
I am done! I worked on this chapter for almost 3 days. I was going to do another bonus chapter, but it wasn't turning out so well. So I erased what I had and started on this chapter, which I had set up in the previous chapter "First Christmas and A Vampire"
I hope that you enjoyed this chapter even though it's on the short side (Just about 6,000 words)
Next chapter will be out…whenever...as I have NO idea what to write next as I'm kind of out of ideas! :(
I could just end the story like I have been hinting at, and that would mean the next chapter will more than likely be the very last which means I will then do a time skip to where Moka finally has their baby. Once that happens, the story will then END.
I honestly have no plans on writing this fan-fiction for much longer, even if it is my most Followed, Fave'd and Reviewed story to date! Please do not be mad or upset if I decide to end this fan-fic soon. I do not make any money from this and it takes up a great deal of my time.
If anyone can give me a good idea for the next chapter or 2, (By PM only)
And if I decide to use it, I will share credit with you, BUT it must fit into my 'universe' of Rosario + Vampire.
Thanks for reading ^_^
This is chapter 38 of my R+V fan-fic: 'A Confession and a Vampire'.
(Chapter 39 on fanfic dot net)
Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and fan-fic written by Gamera68.
Rated T.
Moka and Tsukune are both 19 years old and married.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga.
However, I'm pretty much borrowing already-established canon from the series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
….
A/N: Here is the long-awaited 'Anime Convention' Chapter.
Nekomini = Cat Ears / Neko = Cat / Nya = meow
Update: 82,800 views this story has of this writing! Thank you everyone!
The Anime Convention and location are real, as is the "Electric Town" JR train exit in Akihabara.
…..
December 28th, Saturday Morning.
Moka awoke rather early today, seeing that she would be attending her very first Anime Convention in Akihabara at the UDX Building on Sotokanda Street, just a short stroll from the 'Electric Town' exit of the JR 'Akiba' Train Station. Tsukune had caught her off-guard by purchasing a pair of tickets for themselves online over a month ago, seeing as they most likely would have sold out otherwise.
It was a last minute Christmas present for his otaku wife who thoroughly enjoyed anime and manga.
She had even purchased a special accessory just for the event, to go along with her cosplay for the day: Electronic 'Nekomini' Ears that move according to your emotions, which are controlled by brainwaves via a sensor, attached to the forehead of the wearer.
After getting herself prepared for the day and dressed in her cosplay, she decided to surprise Tsukune with breakfast in bed, as her way of saying thanks once again for his heartfelt generosity.
Moka walked downstairs and into the kitchen. Her mother-in-law Kasumi who had a bright smile grace her features greeted her.
"Good morning, Moka Dear. My, you look very cute today," she said as Moka approached her.
"Good morning, mom. Um, thank you" Moka replied as her electronic cat ears twitched with appreciation.
"Making breakfast?" Kasumi inquired.
"Oh, yes mom. I just wanted to thank Tsukune again for the Anime Convention tickets," the silver-haired maiden answered. Kasumi smiled again seeing Moka look so happy today.
...
Fifteen minutes later, Moka was carrying her love-filled breakfast upstairs to her mate on a wooden bed tray with foldaway legs.
After setting the tray on the hallway floor, Moka gently tapped on their bedroom door in order to gain his attention. As she heard him rustling in bed, she opened the door then bent down to retrieve the tray with the wonderful breakfast she had prepared for him.
"Good morning, ~nya," she announced as Tsukune sat up, attempting to wipe the sleep from his chocolate brown eyes. Unsure if he was still dreaming or not, he blinked in utter disbelief upon seeing Moka's outfit for the entire day.
She was sporting her original French Maid Cosplay: black with white trim, the short, frilly skirt showing off her creamy, shapely thighs. The scoop neckline presented her generous bosom without giving too much away.
She was also wearing black, thigh-high stockings to keep her legs warm against the chilly air, since it was now late December.
Around her neck was a leather 'cat' collar, black with a small, round, silver bell that would gently jingle with every movement.
On top of her head, she was wearing black nekomini (cat ears), which moved on their own accord via the brainwave sensor that was hidden by her silver bangs, over her forehead.
'Oh Kami, she looks so cute today', the ebony-haired teen thought breathlessly.
His breakfast consisted of homemade French toast, sausage patties, buttermilk pancakes, scrambles eggs, and a tall glass of orange juice.
"Oh, good morning Moka" he answered once all the pieces of the puzzle fell into place.
"I hope you're hungry, ~nya," she said as she approached their bed and set the tray over his lap. She then stood off to his side, leaned over and gave him a chaste kiss on his lips.
"Itadakimasu!" he said as he dug into the morning meal Moka made with pure love and devotion. She just sat at the foot of the bed on her knees, blushing the entire time.
"Wow. This is amazing, Moka. Thank you so much" he beamed back with a warm, genuine smile.
"Oh you're welcome, Tsukune ~nya. It's my way of saying thank you for the anime convention tickets, ~nya" she replied, her blush only deepening as she remained 'in character'.
"I see. Well, you look really cute as a Neko Maid."
"Oh thank you, love" Moka replied as her cat ears perked up. Tsukune noticed that movement and was somewhat mesmerized by the animated Nekomini. He continued eating but had a difficult time concentrating as he was enraptured by Moka's more-than-adorable appearance.
When Tsukune finally finished his breakfast, Moka removed the wooden tray and set it by the doorway. She then sauntered back to the bed and crawled into her husband's lap. He wrapped his arms affectionately around her waist and kissed her passionately.
…..
Several minutes later, both teens were begging for life-giving oxygen before either passed out. Moka's mechanical nekomini were lying flat, due to her emotional high.
"Tsukune...um...if you want to, you can" she whispered into his right ear as she leaned her head on his shoulder.
As the pair continued their hug, he gently placed his left hand on the back of her head, while his right hand wrapped around to the small of her back. He then sank his extended fangs into her alabaster flesh, causing Moka's breath to hitch.
"Ah...Tsukune...oh kami...ahhhhngh...~nyaaaa!" she bellowed out lustfully.
Moka's electronic cat ears were twitching insanely now due to her building stimulation.
Closing her eyes, her body began to quickly heat up as he lapped up her precious blood in short, slow slurps. She attempted to hold back the moans that suddenly escaped her pink, pouty lips, which caused Tsukune to get immediately aroused as he groaned with pleasure upon hearing her tempting voice, which was akin to music to his ears.
"Mmmm...Ahhhhh...Tsukune...angh...aha-nnnhhh...oh...ahhhhnn...", she breathed, moaning lightly in the back of her throat as the tingles of pleasure immediately ran down her spine, causing her toes to curl in her ecstasy.
As Tsukune continued to suck her blood, the young vampires quickly became further aroused. As she attempted to hold back her growing blood lust, she realized it was a futile effort. She adjusted herself into the junction of his neck and collarbone and licked his skin with her hot, moist tongue.
'Go ahead, Moka' he wordlessly communicated to her via their blood-bond. Without any further warning, she dug her longer fangs into his neck and began drinking her fill of his addicting blood in deep, satisfying slurps.
Tsukune became even further aroused as the blood-bond deepened even more so. Both vampires shared their thoughts, feelings, and memories once again.
'Ah...Moka...'
'Tsukune ~nya.'
…..
Several moments later once they were both satisfied they each removed their fangs from one another's necks and licked the puncture marks closed with their tongues.
Moka sat up and climbed off the bed once she regained her bearings.
"Um, Tsukune...we should get going soon as the convention opens at 11" Moka said when she noticed what time it was by the clock on the dresser.
"Oh sure thing Moka. I'll meet you downstairs shortly" he replied as he got up from the bed and walked over to the closet to search for something warm, yet comfortable to wear.
"Thank you, love. I'll see you soon," she said as she walked over to the door and opened it, then bent down and grabbed the bed tray. After walking down the hallway, she made her way into the kitchen where Kasumi and Koji were now eating breakfast. Koji of course nearly had a nosebleed when he saw Moka in her Neko Maid Cosplay.
Kasumi then smacked him in the back of the head and called him a pervert that caused Moka to snicker at his ridiculous antics.
Tsukune was now dressed and ready to head out for their excursion. He was sporting black cargo pants, a black, long-sleeved tee shirt under his Batman tee shirt, which was dark gray with the classic, black Bat symbol on the front. He found his wife, Moka in the kitchen sipping on a glass of tomato juice while she waited for his eventual appearance.
They had roughly a forty-five minute train ride to Akihabara where the daylong event was located at. Thankfully, the Anime Convention wouldn't be as packed as compared to Winter Comiket, which boasted approximately 500,000 attendees over the course of the weekend.
"Good morning, Sweetie" his mother said once he walked into the kitchen.
"Good morning, mom" he announced as Moka sat up from her chair and gave him a warm, yet brief embrace.
"So Moka tells me you're going to an anime convention today," Kasumi said.
"Oh yes, I bought the tickets as one of her Christmas presents. It's being held in Akihabara."
"Well have fun and be safe," Kasumi sternly said with motherly love.
"Don't worry Mom. I won't let Moka out of my sight" he reassured her as they made their way to the front door to fetch their shoes and coats.
Once the duo was ready to go, they stepped out into the chilly, morning air and walked down the sidewalk towards the downtown train station. Moka had brought along a small, black purse along too, just in case she found something 'cute' to purchase while attending the convention. Thankfully, the snow had stopped and the sun was shining brightly for once.
…..
After walking for roughly ten minutes, they eventually reached the local train station. After riding the escalator to the second-floor platform, Moka found the route they needed to take to the Akihabara – Electric Town Exit. After purchasing two round trip tickets, the happy couple sat on a bench off to the side while waiting for the train to arrive.
Leaning her head on Tsukune's shoulder, the silver-haired vampiress just smiled, and then giggled adorably. Moments later, the overhead announcement indicated the train would be arriving shortly.
Honestly, Moka was having a difficult time containing her enthusiasm! It was another of her 'first times' and she would be experiencing it with her very best friend and now husband.
Once the express train slowed to a complete halt, dozens of passengers rushed out onto the platform, going off to who knows where. As soon as the sea of people eventually dispersed, Tsukune slipped his hand into Moka's and made a beeline to the closest window seat.
Thankfully, the train car was not too full. Sitting down now, the young couple sat in blissful silence, admiring the rapidly passing scenery.
"Tsukune, I can't wait until we get there, ~nya" Moka said, breaking her mate out of his thoughts.
"Yeah Moka. We're going to have a great time. You'll even have a chance to meet some voice actresses, too" he gladly informed her as she gently squeezed her hand.
Roughly, forty-five minutes later, the overhead announcement brought the duo out of their thoughts, indicating they were arriving at their destination.
"ATTENTION PASSENGERS: NOW APPROACHING AKIHABARA – ELECTRIC TOWN STATION. PLEASE BRING ALL BELONGINGS WITH YOU WHILE EXITING THE TRAIN. ONCE AGAIN, NOW APPROACHING ELECTRIC TOWN STATION. THANK YOU."
Once the train slowed down and came to a complete stop a minute later, Moka and Tsukune got off their seat and made their way, hand-in-hand, to the nearest exit. As soon as the automatic aluminum doors slid open, they stepped out, onto the platform and off to the side, looking for the nearest escalator. Upon finding it, Moka told him to follow her, which he happily did without any further petition nor hesitation.
Once they reached street level, they made a sharp left and walked along Sotokanda Street; towards the UDX Building, where the one-day convention was being held at.
A few minutes later, they reached the location. The couple walked through the double-glass doors and into the huge lobby. After finding their way to a row of elevators, Moka pressed the "up" call button, awaiting the next car to arrive and take them to the fourth floor.
…..
Once the elevator car arrived, they stepped inside and Tsukune pressed the number 4 button, indicating their next stop. The silver-colored door then closed. He pulled out the tickets from one of many pants pockets and handed one to Moka.
"Thank you again, Tsukune. This really means a lot to me. And I'm glad my first time going will be with you, ~nya" she said as she swiftly pulled him into a firm hug.
"You're welcome again, Moka. It's my pleasure," he said as he returned her embrace.
'I just want you to have a great time, Moka,' he quietly thought to himself.
*ding ding*
The automatic doors then slid open, indicating they had arrived to their destination.
"Wow, Tsukune!" Moka bellowed as she grabbed his hand and dragged him towards the entrance of the Anime Convention. Moka spotted several booths selling quite a lot of types of anime goods from posters, figurines, and even special editions of manga.
Moka slowed down seeing Tsukune was befuddled due to her over-anxiousness.
"Sorry about that Tsukune" she replied with a slight blush of embarrassment. Her cat ears swiftly perked up and were fluttering like crazy.
"It's okay Moka. I know you're excited. Here, lets' wait in line over there."
"Thank you Tsukune" she said as she held his hand and walked over to the actual entrance, hands still linked. As the approached the front of the line, they each handed the young woman their tickets and were handed back a lanyard with an identification card, indicating VIP status. That would allow them the special privilege of meeting the voice actors in person.
They also were asked to leave their coats in a coat-check area for the time being.
"Tsukune…let's go, let's go, let's go" Moka squealed with delight as she made her rounds towards the vendor's tables. She was quite shocked seeing all sorts of anime and manga inspired collectables.
The silver-haired maiden had quite a difficult time deciding on what she wanted to bring home with her today. Tsukune found her enthusiasm to be quite adorable. He was thankful that even though the real Moka was back, her personality still showed signs of being fused together to some extent due to her pregnancy.
Moka didn't take notice of the stares she was receiving from the other convention goers since she was so immersed in perusing over the ridiculous amount of anime goods offered.
She decided to leave the shopping for later on, as she took notice of a few TV screens showing trailers for some upcoming anime shows for the new season.
"Wow, so neat" she replied as she took in the sights and sounds of some new anime shows she just had to see, early next year.
"So Moka, what do you think so far?" Tsukune asked her as she was lost in all the sights and sounds around herself.
"Oh, it's really nice Tsukune. Thank you again" she replied as she slid her hand into her own.
"It's no problem Moka. It's my first time attending too," he honestly answered.
"ATTENTION ALL CONVENTION ATTENDEES, WE WILL BE HAVING THE MEET AND GREET OF VOICE ACTORS IN FIFTEEN MINUTES IN THE MAIN HALL. ALL VIP PASS HOLDERS WILL HAVE A CHANCE TO MEET THEM UP CLOSE AND PERSONAL. THANK YOU"
Once Moka heard the overhead announcement, her ears perked up, literally.
"Tsukune, let's go!" she said as she grabbed his hand and made her way toward the main hall where the meet and greet would be heading. She wanted more than anything in the world to get a good seat, even though she and Tsukune both held a VIP pass.
"Coming Moka!" he yelped out as she dragged him down the large corridor as other convention-goers witnessed the scene before them in shock and disbelief.
As the arrived in the Main Hall, Moka saw who the guest voice actors were.
Most notably, Rie Kugimiya, who was quite famous in the anime industry.
…..
Some of Kugimiya's most prominent roles include Alphonse Elric in Fullmetal Alchemist, Happy in Fairy Tail, and Kagura in Gintama. However, because of her voicing of tsundere lead characters such as Nagi from Hayate the Combat Butler, Shana from Shakugan no Shana, and Louise from Zero no Tsukaima…all of which aired around the same time.
Some of her fans have nicknamed her the "Queen of Tsundere", or "TsundeRie" for short. Other tsundere characters voiced by her include Lotte in Astarotte no Omocha, Taiga Aisaka in Toradora, Iori Minase in The Idolmaster, Rose from Dragon Crisis, and Aria H. Kanzaki in Aria the Scarlet Ammo.
(She also voiced Mizore Shirayuki in the anime adaptation of Rosario + Vampire, LOLs)
The second special guest star was Yui Hiore.
Hiore debuted in 1997 in the video game Voice Fantasia and for several years had minor roles in various anime series. She landed her first leading role as Haruka in Kurogane Communication. The turning point in her career was not until 2000, when she won the role of Naru Narusegawa in the popular anime series Love Hina.
Other notable and defining career moments were taking the role of Tohru Honda in the anime Fruits Basket in 2001, and releasing her first music album 'Mizutamari ni Utsuru Sekai' in 2000. She has since become one of the most popular anime voice actresses in Japan. Her most recent role was of the 'Angeloid' Ikaros in the anime adaptation of Sora no Otoshimono. (Heaven's Lost Property)
…..
Finding the first row of red chairs empty in the large auditorium, Moka plopped down in one, holding Tsukune very close to herself, pressing her abundant bosom against his left arm, much to his embarrassment. A few other male attendees saw this and got insanely jealous.
'What does she see in him? He looks like a wimp'
'I don't know. Maybe she feels sorry for him?'
Moka heard the negative remarks aimed at not only herself, but her blood-mate as well. A deep growl bubbled up in the back of her throat when she saw who had made those ludicrous comments and shot them both a dirty look. The two teens gulped hard when they felt the irate yokai's aura right down to their very bones.
"Moka, please calm down. They're just jealous, that's all," Tsukune explained as he felt her growing animosity towards the two idiots through their bond.
"Sorry, love" she replied with a hint of sadness. He then reached over and kissed her.
"It's okay Moka. I understand" he replied once they ceased their embrace. Moka's face burned bright crimson from her husband's bold gesture of affection in front of the entire Hall, which was packed to capacity as the two voice actors made their way to a table set up on the stage, a nameplate set in front of each seat.
The entire audience rose to their feet and gave a hearty round of applause as the two women sat down, each waving energetically for their adoring fans.
…..
As the hour-long question and answer panel wound down, the emcee asked the VIP holders to come up to the stage so they could meet the voice actresses and have a photo taken with each of them. A long line quickly formed in an orderly fashion as each patron shook their hands and had a photo taken with them as they smiled happily for their fans.
As Moka's turn was next, she suddenly had a bout of nervousness. Tsukune held her hand and walked her up to the table. She silently thanked her mate as she stood in front of Miss Kugimiya and Miss Hiore.
"T-thank you for all your hard w-work" Moka sputtered out as she shook each woman's hand in turn, quite enthusiastically. Her nekomini twitched in response to her sudden apprehension.
"Oh, thank you very much" they both responded as they returned the vampiress' hearty handshake.
"Would you like to take a picture with us?" Rie asked the still-nervous yokai.
"Um, yes please. If it's not too much trouble," Moka replied as she poked her index fingers together out of habit. Tsukune pulled out from one of his several pockets, his digital camera to Moka's surprise.
"Sure. Not a problem" Yui answered back as she and her cohort walked around to the front of the table and each stood on either side of the silver-haired maiden. They each wrapped an arm around Moka's waist and smiled brightly for the photo opportunity.
"On three…one, two, three!" Tsukune announced as he shot a few pictures in a row.
Moka nearly fainted due to all the attention from her now-favorite voice actresses. She then bowed out of gratitude to the two women as she waved goodbye and ambled off the stage with Tsukune, who had to hold her up before she keeled over.
He walked her over to the nearest chair and asked her to sit for a few minutes so she could regain her composure and sanity.
...
"Moka? Are you okay now?" he asked as he sat down next to her. She then leaned against him as was breathing heavily.
"Oh yes, love. Thank you. I - um…well…that was surreal" she said as he hugged her closer.
"I see. I guess you were kind of surprised, huh?"
"Yes, I was very surprised. You knew beforehand, didn't you?" she inquired with a light blush.
"Well of course I knew. The website said who would be the guest speakers. I really wanted you to be surprised, Moka. I knew they were somewhat famous from what I read," he explained.
"I see. Somewhat famous? They're the most well-known voice actresses in the business" she happily informed him.
"Oh, well. I see. I just wanted you to be happy Moka."
"Thank you again, Tsukune. You've made me very happy today. I love you so much," Moka, replied as she sat up straight and kissed him on his cheek.
"I love you too, Moka. I don't know about you, but I'm thirsty. Why don't we go to the food court and see what they have to offer?" he asked as he stood up and offered his free hand to Moka, which she gladly accepted with a loving smile.
"Sure thing Tsukune. That sounds like a wonderful idea," she said as she stood up and walked along the crowded convention hall with her thoughtful spouse to the far side of the building where the food court was located at.
Once they finally reached the food court, Moka suddenly found herself to be the center of unwarranted attention as she was without warning, surrounded by a horde of horny teenagers with cameras. She was then quickly divided from her mate as their hands broke contact.
...
"Tsukune!" she yelled, as she was pushed further and further away from him, dozens of fans taking photos of her, without her vocal consent.
"Moka!" he hollered as she was promptly buried behind a wall of people, at least ten deep!
"Tsukune!" she replied even louder as she lost sight of her husband.
"Hey baby, smile for us."
"Yeah, show us a smile."
"You know you like it, don't ya?'
"No! Get away from me!" Moka bellowed as she tried to break away from the throng of people who had separated her from her blood-mate.
"Aw, come on baby, meow for us."
*Hisss!* Moka bit out as she bared her fangs and swiped her hands at the perverted photographers.
"Aw look, the neko-chan is upset."
"Out of my way! Moka! MOKA!" Tsukune shouted as he broke through the mass of bodies that engulfed his wife. He held out his hand to Moka, which she swiftly grabbed and was pulled into his arms. She was shaking like a leaf and her face was bright red.
"Back off! Every one of you! She's my wife and she's pregnant! Idiots!" he barked as the sea of people heeded his sharp warning and backed away as hastily as possible.
A collective groan erupted from the mob of otaku who walked away with a dejected sense of defeat. Some mumbled 'No fair' and 'lucky dog' as they finally left the two vampires alone. Tsukune walked Moka over to one of several food stalls and asked her to order anything she would like, seeing it was already past Noon.
"Thank you Tsukune. I was kind of scared," she admitted as they stood in front of the counter.
"You're welcome, Moka. I'm here for you. So what would you like to eat?"
…..
Once Moka decided on her lunchtime meal, she and Tsukune walked over to a vacant table and sat down. The vampiress ordered something to her liking: a huge Pepperoni Pizza and two melon sodas.
"Thank you for lunch Tsukune" Moka said as she dug into her pizza slice like the hungry vampire she was.
"It's my pleasure, Moka. So, um…are you feeling better now?"
"Oh yes, love. Thank you. I'm feeling a lot better now," she replied in between bites of her lunchtime meal with great eagerness.
"Anytime Moka. I'm always going to be here for you, no matter what," he replied as he reached over and gave her free hand a gentle squeeze. She smiled brightly upon hearing his honest words of love and compassion for her overall safety and well-being.
When the pair finished off the pizza and sweet beverages, Tsukune asked his spouse what she'd like to do next.
"Well, if it's alright…could we…um…go back to the dealer's room?" she asked with a cuter-than-usual blush.
"Sure thing, Moka. Let's go" he answered in turn, as she slid her hand into his and walked back to the front of the complex. Seems like Moka wanted to do some shopping now.
"Look Tsukune! So cute!" she said as she ran up to a dealer's table that had several types of Vocaloid figures, each one in a different outfit of sorts. He saw how happy she was and could definitely detect it through their ever-growing blood-bond.
Tsukune was relieved that she was back to her usual self, especially after the 'cosplay incident' just a short while ago. He knew he'd have to be on his toes to avoid another unpleasant scene like that from happening for the remainder of their time at the convention.
"Tsukune…Tsukune…" Moka said as she held his hand and was attempting to gain his attention.
…..
"Oh sorry about that Moka. I was just thinking" he replied, as he shook the thoughts from his mind and refocused his attention towards his wife who had a worried look across her features and had her brow wrinkled.
"Are you alright, Tsukune?" she inquired, still somewhat concerned.
"Oh yes. You were saying Moka?"
"It's okay love. I was saying I bought something. What do you think?" she said as she pulled the item in question out from the large, white bag she held in her hands. It was a figure of the most recent version (2.0) of the Vocaloid Miku Hatsune in her 'concert' outfit from the 'Good Smile' Company.
"I see. Very cute" he agreed with a smile as he examined the miniature holographic singer in question. Her hair was in twin-tails, the color a bright aqua, her outfit was a black and white number; the necktie, and trim of her mini skirt matched her brightly hued hair. She was also sporting, thigh-high, shiny, black boots and matching 'sleeves' on her dainty arms.
The Figma had several accessories including an electric guitar, wireless microphone and stand as well as three pair of clear angel wings, along with a pair of spring onions, which were the classic items she shook about in her 'concerts'. The last piece was a clear stand so the figurine could be displayed in many different poses.
"Thanks Tsukune. She's soooo cute, ~nya!" Moka squealed with delight and smiling happily regarding her recent purchase. Her cat ears once again flickered with happiness.
"You're welcome Moka" he replied, relieved that she was indeed doing much better.
"Aww…well she only cost me 6,000 Yen*," she happily informed her spouse.
"What? Oh wow…" he nervously answered upon hearing that ridiculous amount of cash.
"Yep, and she's worth every bit" Moka replied as she grinned favorably and replaced her newly acquired acquisition back into the large, white bag she held in her hand.
"Well, as long as you're happy then I guess it's alright to spoil yourself every once in a while" he agreed as they wandered around some more, just to waste time, since it was mid- afternoon.
"Thanks Tsukune" she replied with a blush once again.
"No problem, beautiful."
…..
"Moka! Tsukune!" the vampire couple heard their names being called by a fairly familiar female voice.
It was their friend, Yukari Sendo dressed in her Yokai Academy uniform, complete black, pointed hat, matching cape along with her magic wand. She ran up to the silver-haired Vampiress and greeted her with a hug.
"Yukari? What are you doing here?" Moka questioned her younger friend after they had ceased their longer-than-usual greeting.
"Oh, I'm actually working here. I'm putting on a magic show in a little while," the teen-Witch explained.
"Yukari? You're not using your powers, are you?" Tsukune asked her.
"Nope. It's all tricks: sleight-of-hand type "magic". I'm not that dense to use my natural talent out in the open like that" Yukari retorted back, clearly upset over Tsukune's comment.
Sensing he had unintentionally hurt her emotionally, he bowed out of embarrassment.
"I'm sorry, Yukari. I wasn't thinking and made an assumption" he apologized.
Now clearly embarrassed herself, the younger, ebony-haired teen waved her hands in front of herself, asking him to stop prostrating so much.
"It's okay, Tsukune. I forgive you. Please, stop bowing now. It's fine, really" Yukari assured him.
After he stood straight up, Moka and himself gave her a quick hug, which caused her to start fantasizing once again. Yukari even drooled a somewhat as her mind began to wander.
'Oh thank you Kami! I'm once again the meat in a Vampire sandwich!'
"Um, thanks guys. It's really great to see you again, especially you, Moka. By the way, I love your cosplay. I uh, have to head back right now, but you're more than welcome to see my show at five o'clock," Yukari informed the pair as her face regained its natural complexion a few moments later.
"Oh, um…thank you Yukari," Moka blushed back as she heard her friend's somewhat perverse comment.
"Anytime, Yukari. We'll have to wait and see how Moka's feeling later on. We had a minor run in with some *ahem* unwanted attention earlier" Tsukune explained.
"Oh, I see. Well, I hope you're feeling better soon, Moka. And Tsukune, please take care of Moka. I'm genuinely happy for the both of you. After everything we've been through; you guys really deserve to be happy. Take care and I'll see ya' soon, I hope," Yukari said as she bowed towards her friends and waved farewell.
"Thanks Yukari. Take care of yourself, too" Tsukune said as he and Moka waved goodbye to their friend, as she disappeared into the crowd of convention-goers to head back to her part-time job.
...
"That was – interesting" Moka quipped as she held her mate's hand and started to walk in the opposite direction. Tsukune just nodded his head 'yes' in silent agreement.
Once they reached the very front of the massive Hall, Moka quickly stopped. Tsukune nearly toppled over at his mate's abrupt halt.
"Hey Moka? Is everything alright?"
"Oh yes, love. I was wondering if it would be okay if we headed home now. I'm feeling kind of tired all of a sudden," Moka explained in the simplest of terms without having her overly protective husband freak out over her health.
"I see. Do you need anything to drink? You know, anything?" he asked as calmly as possible, carefully accentuating his words hoping she would take notice of his equivocal suggestion.
"No Tsukune. I'm fine. Just tired is all. Can we go home now, please?" she begged as she flung herself into his arms and nearly knocked him to the floor due to her impulsive glomp. She then wrapped her arms around his hips and clutched his buttocks rather firmly.
"Ah. It's okay Moka. I understand. Let's get our coats and head back, if that's what you want."
"Thank you love" she responded once she released Tsukune from her sudden embrace.
Once the pair retrieved their coats, they made their way hand-in-hand towards the elevators. After pressing the 'down' call button, Tsukune held his wife's hand very firmly.
As soon as the elevator arrived, Moka pulled her mate inside and pressed the 'Lobby' button. The silver doors slid closed as the elevator descended down to the bottom floor in a matter of seconds.
*ding ding* the bell rung, indication they had finally arrived in the actual Lobby itself.
…..
Once they exited the massive UDX Building, they made a quick left and walked down the long sidewalk in the direction of the nearest train station. They arrived in less than five minutes flat.
Moka was relieved to see that the train platform wasn't the least bit busy. They made themselves comfortable in the covered waiting area, several meters away from the train track. Moka leaned to her right and rested herself against Tsukune who wrapped his left arm around her and held her firmly.
Her eyes were closed and she had a peaceful, serene look on her face as well as a big smile on her lips.
A few minutes later, their train finally arrived. Once it came to a full stop, the automatic doors swooshed open and all the passengers poured out onto the upper deck and went about their business, off to parts unknown.
"Moka, the train's here," Tsukune said as he gave her a slight nudge. She blinked her eyes a few times to wake herself up. She had inadvertently dozed off and momentarily forgot where she was.
"Oh thanks love. Let's go, shall we?" she said as she stood up and wobbled her way to the sliding, metal doors of the express train. Tsukune held her hand firmly as he carried her new Vocaloid figure in the other.
Moka settled herself into the nearest seat and closed her eyes once again.
"Thank you Tsukune" she muttered before she leaned to her right and propped herself against her mate. He wrapped his left arm around his sleepyhead of a spouse and warmly smiled at her.
…
Nearly an hour later, the couple finally reached home. Tsukune had to practically carry Moka her the entire walk back from the train station, since she claimed she was 'so tired'.
After opening the front door, Tsukune aided Moka to remove her jacket and shoes and then helped her to walk upstairs.
When they arrived in their bedroom, Moka hugged Tsukune firmly and pushed him onto the bed.
"Thank you Tsukune. I had fun today," she said as she buried her head in the crook of his neck.
"You're welcome, Moka. I had fun, too."
"Um, Tsukune?" she inquired as she sat partly up on the bed and looked into his eyes.
"Yes, Moka?" he answered with a smile.
"Um, Tsukune…would it…be okay…if I…um…you know…I uh - you smell so good!" she adorably stated, her breath coming out in short pants, seeing as they were still embraced tightly.
~ Capa-chu!
"Moka!" he yelped, as she sunk her longer fangs deep into the crook of his neck, drinking in his sweet ambrosia. He held her close and allowed her to take what she so desperately needed, even though she claimed to be 'tired' at the Convention Hall.
Well, like he has said time and time again: Moka is Moka.
…..
Author's Notes: PLEASE READ regarding UPDATES!
*6,000 Yen is approximately $59.00, U.S.
I am done! I worked on this chapter for almost 3 days. I was going to do another bonus chapter, but it wasn't turning out so well. So I erased what I had and started on this chapter, which I had set up in the previous chapter "First Christmas and A Vampire"
I hope that you enjoyed this chapter even though it's on the short side (Just about 6,000 words)
Next chapter will be out…whenever...as I have NO idea what to write next as I'm kind of out of ideas! :(
I could just end the story like I have been hinting at, and that would mean the next chapter will more than likely be the very last which means I will then do a time skip to where Moka finally has their baby. Once that happens, the story will then END.
I honestly have no plans on writing this fan-fiction for much longer, even if it is my most Followed, Fave'd and Reviewed story to date! Please do not be mad or upset if I decide to end this fan-fic soon. I do not make any money from this and it takes up a great deal of my time.
If anyone can give me a good idea for the next chapter or 2, (By PM only)
And if I decide to use it, I will share credit with you, BUT it must fit into my 'universe' of Rosario + Vampire.
Thanks for reading ^_^
R + V: First Christmas and a Vampire (Parts 1 and 2)
This is chapter 37 of my R+V fan-fic: 'A Confession and a Vampire'.
(Chapter 38 on fanfic dot net)
Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and fan-fic written by Gamera68.
Rated M for a Lemon towards the end.
Moka and Tsukune are both 19 years old and married.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga.
However, I'm pretty much borrowing already-established canon from the series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
A/N: I know it's quite early, but here is the long-awaited Christmas arc! Enjoy!
This little story of mine has now passed over 80,000 views as of this writing!
Inner Moka sings once again!
…..
December 24th, evening: Aono Residence.
…..First Christmas (Part 1)...
Moka Aono was very excited today. So excited in fact, that she had barely gotten a decent night's sleep last night. It was her very first Christmas ever; she would be celebrating it with her blood-mate and husband, Tsukune. The house was brightly decorated for the festive holiday that focused mainly on being with the love of your life and she would make sure that she would do her very best to make him happy.
After all, they have been the very best of friends for nearly 4 years by this time.
It was now early evening and all the members of the household would be starting the traditional annual event off with a proper Christmas party. The dinner would consist of KFC roasted chicken (it's a big deal in Japan, since turkeys are not imported to the island nation), mashed potatoes with gravy, green-bean casserole along with freshly made buttermilk biscuits.
For dessert would be the traditional "Christmas Cake" topped with glazed strawberries.
After the Christmas dinner, they would be exchanging presents with each other, per the holiday practice. Moka had literally gone out of her way to find her one and only, the perfect presents. As did Tsukune for his Moka. He wanted to give her something she would never expect and knew that she would love whatever she received from him, since it came from his heart.
.
It was now 5 PM and Moka was the first to arrive downstairs. She was simply dressed in a long, red sweater 'dress' that came down to just above her knees along with a silver pair of leggings and a red 'Santa' hat complete with a white, fuzzy trim and topped off with a white 'puff' ball on the top.
She walked over to the tall Christmas tree in the living room, knelt down, and placed her mate's gifts under the evergreen decorated with hundreds of twinkling lights, per her mother-in-law Kasumi's suggestion.
Kasumi was dressed similarly; a long, white, sweater and contrasted with a bright, red pair of slacks. Koji was sporting a green dress shirt and black dress trousers. Tsukune arrived a few minutes later and walked over to the living-room where Moka was sitting on the couch, awaiting his imminent arrival.
Her mate was wearing a cranberry-red dress shirt and black pinstriped slacks.
After setting Moka's presents under the Tree, he joined her on the couch and she gave him a quick peck on the cheek.
"Wow, Moka. You look really cute this evening," he said breaking her out of her thoughts. "Oh, T-thank you Tsukune, You look really handsome yourself" the platinum-haired vampiress replied with a light blush.
"Moka, Tsukune. I hope that you're hungry" Koji said to the young couple, who seemed to be lost in their own, little world, and were staring lovingly into each others eyes.
"Oh yes, coming" Tsukune answered as he stood up, offered his hand to Moka and walked over to the dining room table.
"Thank you love" Moka said with a small smile, as Tsukune pulled out her seat as they then sat down on the left-hand side of the table opposite from his parents.
"No problem, Moka" he replied.
The table itself was covered with a red tablecloth adorned with silver and gold stars, with matching plates and cutlery.
"Itadakimasu!" everyone called out in unison.
"Wow, this is really good!" the vampiress announced as she tried her Christmas dinner.
"Oh, yes. This is our family tradition every year, Moka, Dear" Kasumi explained to the green-eyed yokai.
"I can see why, Mom. It's really delicious!" Moka agreed.
"We have a Christmas Cake topped with strawberries for dessert" Koji added a moment later.
"I see. Oh I really can't wait to try it" their daughter-in-law replied. Her in-laws snickered at her loveable enthusiasm.
"So Moka, I understand that this is your first time celebrating Christmas?" Koji asked Moka who seemed to be deep in thought and was blushing the entire time.
"Oh, yes dad. Growing up we never celebrated human holidays except birthdays which were never as elaborate as I have experienced here" Moka explained with a hint of sadness in her reply.
"I see. Well, I guess we tend to put a lot of effort into birthdays and holidays" Koji mused.
"That's true. But New Years is more of a low-key holiday. We usually visit the local shrine, say a few prayers, and have a simple dinner beforehand. Some families even stay up all night to watch the first sunrise of the New Year, too," Kasumi added.
"Yeah, and New Year's usually means most local businesses are closed until January third" Tsukune told her.
"I see" Moka replied.
...
Once the holiday meal was finished, Koji helped his wife clear the plates and leftovers. Kasumi returned minute later carrying clean plates for the strawberry-topped dessert.
Koji cut a slice for everyone while Kasumi distributed the delectable dessert.
"M-mm-mm. This is really good" Moka exclaimed with great exuberance, as she tried her first piece of Christmas cake.
"Yeah, we have this every...year..." Tsukune replied to his wife.
"Tsukune? What's wrong?" Moka asked as he stopped eating his cake and stared blankly at the table.
"Sorry Moka, I was just thinking..." he sadly replied.
Moka then stood up from her seat and then gave her mate a hearty hug from behind. She knew what was bothering him and it broke her heart. She knew why he missed spending time with his parents and hadn't celebrated Christmas in over three, long, years.
"It's okay love. I know. It's okay Tsukune," Moka said as tears rolled down her pink cheeks. Tsukune's parents had no idea what was happening and how Moka knew that something was bothering their son. They had no indication just how close Moka and Tsukune actually were thanks to the special blood-bond between themselves that allowed them to know how the other was feeling or thinking at any given moment.
"Thanks, Moka" Tsukune said a few awkward moments later.
"You're welcome, love," she happily replied once she returned to her seat to finish off her slice of holiday treat.
.
Once everyone's appetite was assuaged, Kasumi asked for them to have a seat in the living-room, as it was time to exchange gifts. Since Tsukune was now considered an adult and had a wife, Japanese tradition dictated that spouses gave gifts to each other.
Tsukune walked over to the tree to retrieve the presents he had chosen for his one and only. Moka did likewise, following his lead.
"Merry Christmas, Moka" Tsukune said as he handed her several gift-wrapped boxes. The largest easily weighed 15 pounds and was on the large side, wrapped in metallic red paper with a silver bow placed on the top. The smaller gifts were wrapped similarly.
"Thank you, Tsukune. And...M-merry Christmas to you" she said as she handed him a large, rectangular-shaped box wrapped in gold paper topped with a blue bow.
"Thank you, Moka" he replied as their hands brushed momentarily.
"Go on Moka. Open it" he gently nudged, indicating the largest of her three presents.
With great speed, Moka tore off the candy-colored paper and set it on the floor in front her. Once she understood what her first gift was, she placed both hands over her mouth and started to gently cry.
"Moka, is something wrong? Don't you like it?" Tsukune panicked. She softly shook her head 'no' from side to side, then leapt into his arms, and hugged him firmly.
"T-thank you, Tsukune...I love it" she said between sobs of joy.
It was a portable Karaoke machine.
He returned her embrace and kissed her cheek, attempting to lift her mood. Kasumi and Koji were moved just as much if not more so, seeing just how cheerful their daughter-in-law was at this time. Once the vampiress's mood lifted, she examined her new gift with great intent.
Moka then opened her next gift. It was a large, brown teddy bear holding a red heart with the inscription "I Love You". She then hugged her new plush animal up to her ample bosom and brightly smiled.
Her last gift was a small, rectangular box wrapped in silver paper with a red ribbon. Upon opening it, she nearly broke down in tears yet again. It was a Sterling Silver necklace with an oval-shaped Emerald pendant. She had never seen jewelry so beautiful in her entire life.
On the back of the pendant was etched: "To my one and only, Moka. I will love you for as long as my heart beats. Forever yours, Tsukune".
Moka then stood up, tackled Tsukune off the couch, and smothered him with kisses on his face, neck, and ears. A few minutes later, she then realized she was in a rather compromising position; she gave Tsukune a hand up, blushing the entire time.
"Thank you again, Tsukune. The gifts are very lovely."
"You're welcome, Moka. I just...want you to be happy. After everything you've ever been through, you really deserve it the most."
"Oh Tsukune!" Moka said as she flung herself into his arms once more and nearly knocked him off the sofa. She hugged him for all she was worth as a few tears of absolute joy trickled down her still-pink, tinted cheeks. She was falling in love him even more if that were possible. He always went out of his way to put her happiness before his very own. And that's the way he's been since she met him.
Several moments later, the vampiress released her husband from her bear hug and recomposed herself.
"Okay, now it's your turn, love" she told him as she pointed to his present, still waiting to be opened. Picking up the oblong-shaped box, he tore off the paper and set it aside.
Prying the box open, he was not only shocked but stunned as well. It was a black Armani two-piece, men's suit, custom-made just for him. He also received a few silk ties and dress shirts in various shades of greens and blues. He gave his thoughtful spouse a warm hug followed by an affectionate kiss on her plump, pouty, lips.
"Thank you, Moka. I really don't know what to say" he replied once they ceased their embrace.
"You're welcome, Tsukune. I just knew you'd like your gifts," she said with a warm smile.
Kasumi and Koji had opened their gifts as well.
Koji had ironically received two new silk ties and dress shirts from his wonderful wife, his were beige and light gray.
Kasumi's presents consisted of a new house robe, light pink in color with matching, fuzzy slippers and a pair of Silver, hoop-shaped earrings with small stars dangling in the center of each from dainty chains.
…..
"Um Tsukune? Could I try out my new Karaoke machine? Please?" Moka begged her mate who was looking over his presents.
"Sure Moka. That's a great idea" he replied as he assisted her in removing it from the large box and plugged it into the power outlet adjacent to the Christmas tree. It sat about a meter tall since it was on a tripod-type stand which locked in place with a loud 'click'. After reading the instruction manual, she finally figured out the controls and she decided on a song to perform for her 'adopted' family.
Once she chose her holiday-themed tune, Moka removed the wired microphone and paused for the music to begin. Facing the LCD screen, she waited for the lyrics to appear.
City sidewalks...busy sidewalks...
Dressed in holiday style -
In the air...
There's a feeling...
of Christmas -
Children laughing...
People passing...
Meeting smile after smile...
And on every street corner...you'll hear -
Silver bells...silver bells -
It's Christmas time...in the city...
Ring a ling...Hear them ring -
Soon it will be Christmas day...
Strings of streetlights...
Even stop lights -
Blink a bright red and green...
As the shoppers rush
home...with their treasures...
Hear the snow crunch...
See the kids bunch -
This is Santa's big scene...
And above all this bustle -
You'll hear...
Silver bells...silver bell...
It's Christmas time...in the city -
Ring-a-ling...Hear them ring...
Soon it will be...Christmas day.
Once the song was finished, Moka bowed as everybody gave her a warm round of applause. She returned the microphone to its home on the side of her new karaoke machine and turned the power off for now.
"Moka, that was...beautiful!" Kasumi said as Moka returned to her seat next to Tsukune and held his hand lovingly.
"Yeah Moka. We had no idea just how amazing your voice was" Koji agreed.
…..
"Oh thank you mom and dad. Like I mentioned before, I only sing as a hobby. I do enjoy it, but not as a career" she replied while blushing from her in-law's honest, heartfelt compliments. They understood why, remembering what she had told them after the "Idol" incident this past July.
"You're welcome, Moka, Dear" Kasumi said as she cleared her throat, silently telling Koji to follow her. She wanted to give her son and daughter-in-law some privacy. They had returned their now open presents under the Christmas tree for the time being.
"Hey Moka, are you going to be alright?" Tsukune asked as she held his hand more firmly.
"Oh yes love. Thank you for your concern. I do love my gifts very much. Thank you once again," she said as she reached over and hugged him for all she was worth.
"That's good to hear. And thank you Moka. You really surprised me too," he said as he returned her warm embrace.
"Aw, you're welcome Tsukune. Um, I was wondering..." she said a moment later once they ended their longer-than-usual hug and sat straight up on the plush, beige, sofa.
"Anytime Moka. What is it?" he answered.
"Um, I was wondering...could we go see the pretty Christmas lights in Tokyo? And maybe...spend the rest of the night...at...my apartment in Roppongi Hills, if it's alright with you" Moka asked with an adorable blush.
"Sure. That sounds like a great idea. I don't see why not. We can pack an overnight bag too. But the trains might be packed though" he answered.
"Well, then may I borrow your cellphone? I could call my Father and ask him to send a Limo for us, if it's okay, to avoid the holiday crowds," Moka suggested as she stood up.
"Alright, let's get ready then. I'll tell my folks and meet you upstairs in a few minutes," he said as she got up from the couch as well and reached into this pants pocket and handed her his cellphone.
"Thank you, Tsukune. I'll see you upstairs when you're done," she answered as she made her way to the stairwell. Following behind her, he wandered into the kitchen to tell his folks of their plans for the remainder of the night.
"No problem Moka. I'll be up in a few minutes," he said as his wife headed upstairs with a spring in her step. She and Tsukune would be spending the night together in Roppongi and she wanted the night to be very special for her and her mate.
….First Christmas (Part 2)...
"Mom, Dad...um...Moka wanted to go see the Christmas displays in Tokyo, so she's going to ask her Father to send a car for us" Tsukune told his parents who were sitting down at the round table and sharing a pot of coffee in the kitchen.
"Oh, okay sweetie. Have a nice time and we'll see you two whenever you get back" his mother Kasumi said.
"And don't do anything I wouldn't do" joked his father Koji.
"Um, yeah...thanks", Tsukune groaned as he turned around, waving farewell to his folks. He then walked up the stairwell and made his way to their bedroom to pack an overnight bag with enough necessities for an overnight stay.
Once he opened the bedroom door, he noticed that Moka was all set to head out for the remainder of the night with her pink and white mini-suitcase. Surprisingly, his bag was packed as well.
"I'm all ready to go, Tsukune. I took the opportunity and packed a bag for you," she said as she handed the blue and white duffel bag to him.
"Oh, thanks Moka. I appreciate it" he said as he took the bag in his right hand.
"Aw, you're very welcome, Tsukune. We're going to have such a wonderful time, that much I can promise" Moka said with a loving smile.
With that the couple turned their bedroom light off and walked into the hallway, then made their way downstairs. His parents, Koji and Kasumi at the bottom of the stairwell, greeted them.
"You two have fun and we'll see you whenever you come home" Koji said to the couple who walked towards the front entrance-way to fetch their winter coats from the front, hallway closet.
Moka's winter wardrobe was once again her full-length, dark pink, leather coat with matching wool gloves and long, leather boots. Tsukune's was a black leather 'bomber' military-type jacket and color-coordinated gloves. After slipping his black, boots on, he opened the front door for Moka, who exited first.
"Thanks dad. We'll see you then" he replied as he stepped out after his wife. His folks waved farewell to the happy pair then closed and locked the door for the remainder of the night.
…..
Tsukune firmly held Moka's hand as they walked down the walkway to the side of the road. It was a clear, Christmas Eve night and thankfully the snow had stopped falling two days ago. Hundreds of stars twinkled brightly in the ebony, cloudless sky above.
A long, black limousine was waiting for the vampire couple by the roadside.
When Moka and Tsukune made themselves comfortable in the back seat of the limo, Moka scooted close to her mate, leaned her head on his left shoulder and then sighed happily.
Once the car door was closed, the driver turned the engine on and placed the motor in drive. Pulling away from the side of the street, the driver maneuvered the midnight-black vehicle down the busy avenue and headed north towards Tokyo via the expressway.
Moka looked out the partially-tinted window and was mesmerized by the rapidly passing Holiday scenery.
"So beautiful" she commented when she spotted an especially wonderful Christmas display. Tsukune wrapped his arms around her waist from the back and gave her a gentle squeeze.
"Not as beautiful as you Moka" he said, breaking her out of her thoughts, temporarily at least.
"Aw, thank you Tsukune" she replied as she turned her attention back to her husband who was smiling warmly. She then glomped him and pushed him back onto the black, leather seat and kissed him passionately. He returned the affectionate gesture and nibbled on her right ear which caused her to moan with arousal.
"Ah-hhhn...no fair" she whispered back.
"Sorry Moka. But you smell really nice" he truthfully answered.
"Mmmm...so do you my love" was her honest reply when she buried her head against his left shoulder and licked his neck erotically with her warm, wet tongue.
"It's okay, Moka. Everything I am belongs to you and you alone" he said, knowing very well what she wanted and held herself back all day from doing so.
"Thank you my love" she whispered again, as she slightly opened her mouth and bore down her fangs against the base of his neck, breaking his flesh. Her mate held her even closer as she began drinking his addictive blood in slow, steady slurps. He shuddered with delight when she brushed her tongue against a particularly sensitive spot.
"...Moka..."
"Ah...Tsukune..."
"I love you...Moka..."
"I love you too, Tsukune..."
Taking one, last drink of his ambrosia, she removed her fangs and licked his neck clean, sealing up the puncture marks which resembled a love-bite with a purplish color, that would fade away in about 15 minutes or so. Tsukune continued to hold Moka in his arms and thanked his lucky stars for sending her into his life. Moka was very thankful as well. Meeting her mate on the very first day of high school changed not only her outlook on humans, but on life in general. She sighed a sigh of absolute joy and contentment,
"Miss Moka, we have arrived in Tokyo" a male voice announced via a speaker embedded in the wall that separated the driver from the passengers.
"Oh, thank you. Could you drive us downtown, towards Tokyo Tower please?" Moka replied as she sat up followed by Tsukune a second later.
"Very well, Miss Moka. We shall arrive in a few minutes" was the reply from the black-suited Chauffeur.
"Look, Tsukune...so pretty" she said as they passed several more buildings decorated with lights of every color imaginable. Every tree along the avenue was lit up with white and blue LEDs, adding to the wintertime theme.
"M-hmm" was his simple reply.
A few minutes later, the black limousine pulled up to Tokyo Tower. The driver stopped the car and pulled up alongside the sidewalk. Moka opened her door and gestured for Tsukune to follow her for a minute. She stood on the concrete walkway and glanced high into the sky. Her mate mimicked her actions and held her hand.
Tokyo Tower was lit up on every side in red, green and blue lights. It was quite a scene to behold that reminded Tsukune of a gigantic Christmas Tree.
"Wow!" the pair bellowed in unison as they looked skyward. There were several, smaller evergreens decorated similarly at the foot of the massive, steel structure.
"Amazing" Tsukune added a minute later.
Moka was now shivering as a blast of cold air shot down the boulevard, chilling her to the bone. She then led Tsukune back to the car and entered first. Taking her silent cue, he did likewise and closed the door behind himself.
"Driver, please take us to Mid-Town Tower, Roppongi Hills" Moka requested over the two-way speaker.
"Right away, Miss Moka. We shall arrive shortly" was the answer from the chauffeur.
"We'd stay longer, Tsukune, but it's really cold out there" Moka explained as the car was driven eastbound, towards the Roppongi district.
"It's okay Moka. No worries," he agreed as he held her hands in his own.
"Thanks Tsukune. We'll be there soon" she replied with a small smile.
Glancing out the windows again, the duo saw more and more elaborate Christmas displays on every building and tree along the way.
…...
Approximately 15 minutes later, they arrived in Roppongi which was decorated simply, compared to the remainder of Tokyo itself. Most of the bars and restaurants were quite busy due to the sudden influx of couples wanting to spend the evening out on the town with their loved ones.
Once the long Limo pulled up to Mid-Town Tower, the driver stopped the vehicle and allowed the couple to exit. They each held their overnight bags in their hand after opening and closing the door of the car behind themselves. Thankfully the sidewalk was clear of any ice or snow, due to the diligence of the condominium's ever-vigilant staff.
Moka walked up to the driver's side window and personally thanked the chauffeur for his hard work. He then placed the vehicle's engine in drive and left off to return to her Father's home, located in the yokai realm.
Meandering up to the front door, it opened automatically granting them access into the large foyer. In the center was a huge Christmas tree, decorated rather elaborately and roughly 20 feet tall.
After they arrived inside the main lobby of Mid-Town Tower, Moka opened her purse and presented her resident ID card to the front desk. The clerk on duty, in turn, gave her the key-card to her often-used apartment on the top floor. He didn't even take notice of Moka's appearance, which was the complete opposite of the photo plastered on the ID card itself.
"Okay, Tsukune, this way," she informed him once he found his bearings inside the massive marble foyer once again.
Moka then walked up to a row of elevators and pressed the 'up' button, her husband Tsukune hot on her heels. Soon, the express elevator arrived; the silver-colored, metallic mechanical door slid open and they stepped inside. Moka then passed her key-card in front of the sensor on the control panel, indicating her floor number: eighty.
The door then slid closed and the elevator quickly ascended to the predetermined destination. Tsukune felt somewhat light-headed as the elevator car rapidly accelerated. He had to grab the brass handrail behind himself, so he wouldn't fall over again. Moka saw his bemused dismay, once again, and helped him regain his equilibrium.
"Thanks again, Moka," he bashfully replied, his featured tinted pink from embarrassment.
"No problem, Tsukune. It's been a while since we were here last."
…..
The elevator started to gradually slow down a few minutes later, indicating they were nearly at their stop: the penthouse floor.
* ding ding *
As the silver door swooshed open, Moka made a right turn down the hallway to her apartment. After walking along for what seemed like forever and a day, Moka stopped in front of a large, wooden, door with an electronic locking mechanism on top of where the door handle should be. She swiped her key-card down through the slot on front; unlocking it. A small, green light told her the door was now open.
Once they were inside, Moka flipped on the wall-mounted switch, illuminating the massive apartment. Tsukune was surprised to see that it was already decorated for Christmas. They then both removed their winter gear and boots, stowing them away in the front closet for the time being.
"Moka, look" he said, pointing to a large tree decorated in front of the long, bay windows that overlooked downtown Roppongi.
"Yes, love. I had my Father send the staff over to decorate the apartment for us" Moka explained with a slight blush.
"Amazing" he simply replied.
"Merry Christmas, Tsukune" Moka said as she hugged him lovingly. He returned her embrace and kissed her affectionately on her pink, pouty lips. She moaned yet again which instantly aroused him.
"Merry Christmas, Moka" he replied once they both decided to end their kiss before either of them passed out due to the lack of life-giving oxygen. He then reached into his pant's right pocket and handed a small envelope to his wife who eyed it, wondering what it was.
"Go on, Moka. Open it" he told her which she quickly did as requested. She then pulled out two tickets, wondering what they were.
"Tsukune...are these what I think they are?" she asked as she closely examined them with great intent.
"Yep. Two tickets to this weekend's Anime Convention in Tokyo" he replied with a bright grin.
"Really?" she shouted. He just shook his head yes in affirmation.
"Oh Tsukune! Thank you, thank you, thank you so much!" she replied as she embraced her thoughtful spouse in a warm hug and held him for all she was worth.
Moka was not only caught completely off guard by his genuine sincerity, but was stunned as well. She knew the approaching anime convention was coming up this Saturday, December 28th, and the tickets were very hard to come by since they practically sold out overnight.
"I actually bought them online last month, since I kind of figured that you'd want to go. Plus you can even dress up in one of your cosplays if you want to. They're having several voice actors and panels about some new animes coming out next year and even a dance in the evening. We're going to have a great time, Moka. That much I can promise you," he explained as she still held him in her loving arms, crying her eyes out with pure happiness.
"Oh Tsukune...I do love you so, so very much. You've made me the happiest woman in the world tonight" Moka replied as she dried her eyes on the sleeves of her red sweater dress.
A few moments later they ended their hug and walked hand-in-hand towards Moka's bedroom located at the end of the hallway, adjacent to the living-room. She opened the door then was scooped up in her husband's arms and carried bridal-style to the large, queen-sized bed.
Once she was comfortable on the plush bed, she opened her arms, silently inviting Tsukune to lay down next to her, which he did without any further hesitation. She held him very close, feeling more love and adoration towards her one-and-only mate.
"Moka...um...are you...you know..." he sputtered out.
"Of course I am, Tsukune. Always" she boldly replied with a cuter-than-average wink and a smile.
She sat up and removed her red sweater dress and tossed it across the darkened bedroom, where it landed on the carpeted floor below. She quickly pulled off her metallic silver leggings which were lost in the darkness as well. All that remained were her red cotton bra and color-coordinated panties. She helped Tsukune undress likewise in a matter of seconds, as if her very life depended on it.
Once they were situated under the soft bedding, they swiftly displaced themselves of their underwear and held each other closer than ever before, the heat of their nude forms, keeping one another warm.
"Ah, Tsukune...please...rub my breasts, love" she asked once she finished their embrace momentarily and then sat up on his lap and leaned her voluminous breasts over his face. Without saying a word, he did as requested by his one and only mate. Holding her monumental bosom between his hands, he massaged them from the side which caused Moka to softly moan with wanton desire.
…..
"Tsukune...oohhh...ahhhhhn...feels...so...good...p lease, kiss my nipples, please love" she begged.
He then partially sat up and then started to lightly suckle on her nipples, taking turns on each one as the pink erogenous zones stiffened immediately. Moka's heartbeat and breathing increased due to the wonderful sensations that began to completely overwhelm her.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...more...ahhhh...more...love...oh Kami...ahhhhhhhnnnngh -Tsukune!"
Moka uttered erotically as tingles of pleasure traveled down her spine and caused her toes to curl from the exquisite sensation. Waves of pure ecstasy washed over her body as the heat was becoming nearly impossible for the silver-haired vampiress to bear for much longer.
She suddenly arched her back and climaxed explosively as the stimulation on her sensitive nipples increased. Tsukune sucked on them even harder as she moaned his name loudly with lustful delight.
Once her breathing returned to somewhat normal levels, Tsukune wrapped her in his caring arms, kissed her tenderly and felt the bond between themselves multiply by the passing second.
"Tsukune...I want...you...now...inside me, please my love" she whispered between the eager, soft kisses they exchanged.
Her husband then sat up on the bed then swapped positions with Moka.
She then laid her head on the satiny-soft pillow as he hovered over her on his knees once she spread her sexy, well-toned legs apart then invited him to become one with her. As his throbbing manhood entered her warm sex, Moka loudly gasped as they consummated their union once more, as husband and wife.
'Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...ah-hhh...' she silently communicated through their ever-growing blood-bond.
'Oh Moka...you feel so good', Tsukune wordlessly responded likewise.
Slowly and tenderly the couple made passionate love, growing much closer as the flaming romance of their union burned inside of them. Time seemed to slow down for the young couple as they were immersed with complete affection, absolute devotion and adoration, towards each other. Their pounding hearts beat in absolute accord.
As they became further aroused, Moka could sense the growing blood-lust in her mate. She then tenderly licked him on his neck, signaling to him it would be alright if he wanted to partake in some of her sweet blood this time. He in response did the same, as his fangs extended then slowly pierced her delicate neck, drinking in her wonderful life-force.
As Tsukune lapped up her blood in small, steady slurps, Moka's longer fangs pierced his neck yet again, and hungrily consumed her mate's blood in turn. Once more, the blood-bonding took effect as they drank each others life-force in absolute harmony.
…..
Memories of the past they shared between themselves, cemented their relationship even further. No other yokai shared this bond that would always be a permanent fixture in their union as not only as husband and wife, but of blood-mates as well.
Tsukune's rhythm slowly increased, as Moka moaned, her fangs still buried in his neck, as she lapped his blood in small, tender slurps. The tickling sensation was becoming too much for her hubby, which caused a groan of desire in the back of his throat to bubble forth.
'Ahhh...Tsukune...oh yes...please...now...ah-hhh...Tsukune!'
'Moka...ahh-hhh...ah-hhhh...Moka...I can't – hold – out – anymore, oh kami!'
'It's okay, Tsukune...I'm ready, love...ah...Tsukune...ahhhnngn...'
As Moka released her fangs from her mate's neck, she shuddered in the aftershocks of a rather powerful orgasm, her voice reverberating clamorously off her bedroom's walls.
As her back arched, Tsukune retracted his fangs, rapidly cleaned her neck with his tongue and sealed the puncture marks closed. A moment later, he released his hot seed inside her, his entire body trembling as he peaked forcefully.
As they held each other closely yet again, legs intertwined, they eventually fell asleep and dreamed of the future, knowing very well that they would always have each other as well as a child on the way in seven month's time.
…...
.
Author's Note: This chapter I worked on for nearly 3 days! I know what I wanted it to cover but was having a hard time getting it down. I apologize if it's short, but I packed a LOT of emotion into Moka's first-ever Christmas with Tsukune. Next chapter will be "Anime Convention and A Vampire" and will be out around the end of November, since my birthday and Thanksgiving are next to each other. :)
Thanks once again to all my friends, followers, watchers and Beta readers for their continued support!
This is chapter 37 of my R+V fan-fic: 'A Confession and a Vampire'.
(Chapter 38 on fanfic dot net)
Characters created by Akihisa Ikeda.
Original idea and fan-fic written by Gamera68.
Rated M for a Lemon towards the end.
Moka and Tsukune are both 19 years old and married.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga.
However, I'm pretty much borrowing already-established canon from the series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
A/N: I know it's quite early, but here is the long-awaited Christmas arc! Enjoy!
This little story of mine has now passed over 80,000 views as of this writing!
Inner Moka sings once again!
…..
December 24th, evening: Aono Residence.
…..First Christmas (Part 1)...
Moka Aono was very excited today. So excited in fact, that she had barely gotten a decent night's sleep last night. It was her very first Christmas ever; she would be celebrating it with her blood-mate and husband, Tsukune. The house was brightly decorated for the festive holiday that focused mainly on being with the love of your life and she would make sure that she would do her very best to make him happy.
After all, they have been the very best of friends for nearly 4 years by this time.
It was now early evening and all the members of the household would be starting the traditional annual event off with a proper Christmas party. The dinner would consist of KFC roasted chicken (it's a big deal in Japan, since turkeys are not imported to the island nation), mashed potatoes with gravy, green-bean casserole along with freshly made buttermilk biscuits.
For dessert would be the traditional "Christmas Cake" topped with glazed strawberries.
After the Christmas dinner, they would be exchanging presents with each other, per the holiday practice. Moka had literally gone out of her way to find her one and only, the perfect presents. As did Tsukune for his Moka. He wanted to give her something she would never expect and knew that she would love whatever she received from him, since it came from his heart.
.
It was now 5 PM and Moka was the first to arrive downstairs. She was simply dressed in a long, red sweater 'dress' that came down to just above her knees along with a silver pair of leggings and a red 'Santa' hat complete with a white, fuzzy trim and topped off with a white 'puff' ball on the top.
She walked over to the tall Christmas tree in the living room, knelt down, and placed her mate's gifts under the evergreen decorated with hundreds of twinkling lights, per her mother-in-law Kasumi's suggestion.
Kasumi was dressed similarly; a long, white, sweater and contrasted with a bright, red pair of slacks. Koji was sporting a green dress shirt and black dress trousers. Tsukune arrived a few minutes later and walked over to the living-room where Moka was sitting on the couch, awaiting his imminent arrival.
Her mate was wearing a cranberry-red dress shirt and black pinstriped slacks.
After setting Moka's presents under the Tree, he joined her on the couch and she gave him a quick peck on the cheek.
"Wow, Moka. You look really cute this evening," he said breaking her out of her thoughts. "Oh, T-thank you Tsukune, You look really handsome yourself" the platinum-haired vampiress replied with a light blush.
"Moka, Tsukune. I hope that you're hungry" Koji said to the young couple, who seemed to be lost in their own, little world, and were staring lovingly into each others eyes.
"Oh yes, coming" Tsukune answered as he stood up, offered his hand to Moka and walked over to the dining room table.
"Thank you love" Moka said with a small smile, as Tsukune pulled out her seat as they then sat down on the left-hand side of the table opposite from his parents.
"No problem, Moka" he replied.
The table itself was covered with a red tablecloth adorned with silver and gold stars, with matching plates and cutlery.
"Itadakimasu!" everyone called out in unison.
"Wow, this is really good!" the vampiress announced as she tried her Christmas dinner.
"Oh, yes. This is our family tradition every year, Moka, Dear" Kasumi explained to the green-eyed yokai.
"I can see why, Mom. It's really delicious!" Moka agreed.
"We have a Christmas Cake topped with strawberries for dessert" Koji added a moment later.
"I see. Oh I really can't wait to try it" their daughter-in-law replied. Her in-laws snickered at her loveable enthusiasm.
"So Moka, I understand that this is your first time celebrating Christmas?" Koji asked Moka who seemed to be deep in thought and was blushing the entire time.
"Oh, yes dad. Growing up we never celebrated human holidays except birthdays which were never as elaborate as I have experienced here" Moka explained with a hint of sadness in her reply.
"I see. Well, I guess we tend to put a lot of effort into birthdays and holidays" Koji mused.
"That's true. But New Years is more of a low-key holiday. We usually visit the local shrine, say a few prayers, and have a simple dinner beforehand. Some families even stay up all night to watch the first sunrise of the New Year, too," Kasumi added.
"Yeah, and New Year's usually means most local businesses are closed until January third" Tsukune told her.
"I see" Moka replied.
...
Once the holiday meal was finished, Koji helped his wife clear the plates and leftovers. Kasumi returned minute later carrying clean plates for the strawberry-topped dessert.
Koji cut a slice for everyone while Kasumi distributed the delectable dessert.
"M-mm-mm. This is really good" Moka exclaimed with great exuberance, as she tried her first piece of Christmas cake.
"Yeah, we have this every...year..." Tsukune replied to his wife.
"Tsukune? What's wrong?" Moka asked as he stopped eating his cake and stared blankly at the table.
"Sorry Moka, I was just thinking..." he sadly replied.
Moka then stood up from her seat and then gave her mate a hearty hug from behind. She knew what was bothering him and it broke her heart. She knew why he missed spending time with his parents and hadn't celebrated Christmas in over three, long, years.
"It's okay love. I know. It's okay Tsukune," Moka said as tears rolled down her pink cheeks. Tsukune's parents had no idea what was happening and how Moka knew that something was bothering their son. They had no indication just how close Moka and Tsukune actually were thanks to the special blood-bond between themselves that allowed them to know how the other was feeling or thinking at any given moment.
"Thanks, Moka" Tsukune said a few awkward moments later.
"You're welcome, love," she happily replied once she returned to her seat to finish off her slice of holiday treat.
.
Once everyone's appetite was assuaged, Kasumi asked for them to have a seat in the living-room, as it was time to exchange gifts. Since Tsukune was now considered an adult and had a wife, Japanese tradition dictated that spouses gave gifts to each other.
Tsukune walked over to the tree to retrieve the presents he had chosen for his one and only. Moka did likewise, following his lead.
"Merry Christmas, Moka" Tsukune said as he handed her several gift-wrapped boxes. The largest easily weighed 15 pounds and was on the large side, wrapped in metallic red paper with a silver bow placed on the top. The smaller gifts were wrapped similarly.
"Thank you, Tsukune. And...M-merry Christmas to you" she said as she handed him a large, rectangular-shaped box wrapped in gold paper topped with a blue bow.
"Thank you, Moka" he replied as their hands brushed momentarily.
"Go on Moka. Open it" he gently nudged, indicating the largest of her three presents.
With great speed, Moka tore off the candy-colored paper and set it on the floor in front her. Once she understood what her first gift was, she placed both hands over her mouth and started to gently cry.
"Moka, is something wrong? Don't you like it?" Tsukune panicked. She softly shook her head 'no' from side to side, then leapt into his arms, and hugged him firmly.
"T-thank you, Tsukune...I love it" she said between sobs of joy.
It was a portable Karaoke machine.
He returned her embrace and kissed her cheek, attempting to lift her mood. Kasumi and Koji were moved just as much if not more so, seeing just how cheerful their daughter-in-law was at this time. Once the vampiress's mood lifted, she examined her new gift with great intent.
Moka then opened her next gift. It was a large, brown teddy bear holding a red heart with the inscription "I Love You". She then hugged her new plush animal up to her ample bosom and brightly smiled.
Her last gift was a small, rectangular box wrapped in silver paper with a red ribbon. Upon opening it, she nearly broke down in tears yet again. It was a Sterling Silver necklace with an oval-shaped Emerald pendant. She had never seen jewelry so beautiful in her entire life.
On the back of the pendant was etched: "To my one and only, Moka. I will love you for as long as my heart beats. Forever yours, Tsukune".
Moka then stood up, tackled Tsukune off the couch, and smothered him with kisses on his face, neck, and ears. A few minutes later, she then realized she was in a rather compromising position; she gave Tsukune a hand up, blushing the entire time.
"Thank you again, Tsukune. The gifts are very lovely."
"You're welcome, Moka. I just...want you to be happy. After everything you've ever been through, you really deserve it the most."
"Oh Tsukune!" Moka said as she flung herself into his arms once more and nearly knocked him off the sofa. She hugged him for all she was worth as a few tears of absolute joy trickled down her still-pink, tinted cheeks. She was falling in love him even more if that were possible. He always went out of his way to put her happiness before his very own. And that's the way he's been since she met him.
Several moments later, the vampiress released her husband from her bear hug and recomposed herself.
"Okay, now it's your turn, love" she told him as she pointed to his present, still waiting to be opened. Picking up the oblong-shaped box, he tore off the paper and set it aside.
Prying the box open, he was not only shocked but stunned as well. It was a black Armani two-piece, men's suit, custom-made just for him. He also received a few silk ties and dress shirts in various shades of greens and blues. He gave his thoughtful spouse a warm hug followed by an affectionate kiss on her plump, pouty, lips.
"Thank you, Moka. I really don't know what to say" he replied once they ceased their embrace.
"You're welcome, Tsukune. I just knew you'd like your gifts," she said with a warm smile.
Kasumi and Koji had opened their gifts as well.
Koji had ironically received two new silk ties and dress shirts from his wonderful wife, his were beige and light gray.
Kasumi's presents consisted of a new house robe, light pink in color with matching, fuzzy slippers and a pair of Silver, hoop-shaped earrings with small stars dangling in the center of each from dainty chains.
…..
"Um Tsukune? Could I try out my new Karaoke machine? Please?" Moka begged her mate who was looking over his presents.
"Sure Moka. That's a great idea" he replied as he assisted her in removing it from the large box and plugged it into the power outlet adjacent to the Christmas tree. It sat about a meter tall since it was on a tripod-type stand which locked in place with a loud 'click'. After reading the instruction manual, she finally figured out the controls and she decided on a song to perform for her 'adopted' family.
Once she chose her holiday-themed tune, Moka removed the wired microphone and paused for the music to begin. Facing the LCD screen, she waited for the lyrics to appear.
City sidewalks...busy sidewalks...
Dressed in holiday style -
In the air...
There's a feeling...
of Christmas -
Children laughing...
People passing...
Meeting smile after smile...
And on every street corner...you'll hear -
Silver bells...silver bells -
It's Christmas time...in the city...
Ring a ling...Hear them ring -
Soon it will be Christmas day...
Strings of streetlights...
Even stop lights -
Blink a bright red and green...
As the shoppers rush
home...with their treasures...
Hear the snow crunch...
See the kids bunch -
This is Santa's big scene...
And above all this bustle -
You'll hear...
Silver bells...silver bell...
It's Christmas time...in the city -
Ring-a-ling...Hear them ring...
Soon it will be...Christmas day.
Once the song was finished, Moka bowed as everybody gave her a warm round of applause. She returned the microphone to its home on the side of her new karaoke machine and turned the power off for now.
"Moka, that was...beautiful!" Kasumi said as Moka returned to her seat next to Tsukune and held his hand lovingly.
"Yeah Moka. We had no idea just how amazing your voice was" Koji agreed.
…..
"Oh thank you mom and dad. Like I mentioned before, I only sing as a hobby. I do enjoy it, but not as a career" she replied while blushing from her in-law's honest, heartfelt compliments. They understood why, remembering what she had told them after the "Idol" incident this past July.
"You're welcome, Moka, Dear" Kasumi said as she cleared her throat, silently telling Koji to follow her. She wanted to give her son and daughter-in-law some privacy. They had returned their now open presents under the Christmas tree for the time being.
"Hey Moka, are you going to be alright?" Tsukune asked as she held his hand more firmly.
"Oh yes love. Thank you for your concern. I do love my gifts very much. Thank you once again," she said as she reached over and hugged him for all she was worth.
"That's good to hear. And thank you Moka. You really surprised me too," he said as he returned her warm embrace.
"Aw, you're welcome Tsukune. Um, I was wondering..." she said a moment later once they ended their longer-than-usual hug and sat straight up on the plush, beige, sofa.
"Anytime Moka. What is it?" he answered.
"Um, I was wondering...could we go see the pretty Christmas lights in Tokyo? And maybe...spend the rest of the night...at...my apartment in Roppongi Hills, if it's alright with you" Moka asked with an adorable blush.
"Sure. That sounds like a great idea. I don't see why not. We can pack an overnight bag too. But the trains might be packed though" he answered.
"Well, then may I borrow your cellphone? I could call my Father and ask him to send a Limo for us, if it's okay, to avoid the holiday crowds," Moka suggested as she stood up.
"Alright, let's get ready then. I'll tell my folks and meet you upstairs in a few minutes," he said as she got up from the couch as well and reached into this pants pocket and handed her his cellphone.
"Thank you, Tsukune. I'll see you upstairs when you're done," she answered as she made her way to the stairwell. Following behind her, he wandered into the kitchen to tell his folks of their plans for the remainder of the night.
"No problem Moka. I'll be up in a few minutes," he said as his wife headed upstairs with a spring in her step. She and Tsukune would be spending the night together in Roppongi and she wanted the night to be very special for her and her mate.
….First Christmas (Part 2)...
"Mom, Dad...um...Moka wanted to go see the Christmas displays in Tokyo, so she's going to ask her Father to send a car for us" Tsukune told his parents who were sitting down at the round table and sharing a pot of coffee in the kitchen.
"Oh, okay sweetie. Have a nice time and we'll see you two whenever you get back" his mother Kasumi said.
"And don't do anything I wouldn't do" joked his father Koji.
"Um, yeah...thanks", Tsukune groaned as he turned around, waving farewell to his folks. He then walked up the stairwell and made his way to their bedroom to pack an overnight bag with enough necessities for an overnight stay.
Once he opened the bedroom door, he noticed that Moka was all set to head out for the remainder of the night with her pink and white mini-suitcase. Surprisingly, his bag was packed as well.
"I'm all ready to go, Tsukune. I took the opportunity and packed a bag for you," she said as she handed the blue and white duffel bag to him.
"Oh, thanks Moka. I appreciate it" he said as he took the bag in his right hand.
"Aw, you're very welcome, Tsukune. We're going to have such a wonderful time, that much I can promise" Moka said with a loving smile.
With that the couple turned their bedroom light off and walked into the hallway, then made their way downstairs. His parents, Koji and Kasumi at the bottom of the stairwell, greeted them.
"You two have fun and we'll see you whenever you come home" Koji said to the couple who walked towards the front entrance-way to fetch their winter coats from the front, hallway closet.
Moka's winter wardrobe was once again her full-length, dark pink, leather coat with matching wool gloves and long, leather boots. Tsukune's was a black leather 'bomber' military-type jacket and color-coordinated gloves. After slipping his black, boots on, he opened the front door for Moka, who exited first.
"Thanks dad. We'll see you then" he replied as he stepped out after his wife. His folks waved farewell to the happy pair then closed and locked the door for the remainder of the night.
…..
Tsukune firmly held Moka's hand as they walked down the walkway to the side of the road. It was a clear, Christmas Eve night and thankfully the snow had stopped falling two days ago. Hundreds of stars twinkled brightly in the ebony, cloudless sky above.
A long, black limousine was waiting for the vampire couple by the roadside.
When Moka and Tsukune made themselves comfortable in the back seat of the limo, Moka scooted close to her mate, leaned her head on his left shoulder and then sighed happily.
Once the car door was closed, the driver turned the engine on and placed the motor in drive. Pulling away from the side of the street, the driver maneuvered the midnight-black vehicle down the busy avenue and headed north towards Tokyo via the expressway.
Moka looked out the partially-tinted window and was mesmerized by the rapidly passing Holiday scenery.
"So beautiful" she commented when she spotted an especially wonderful Christmas display. Tsukune wrapped his arms around her waist from the back and gave her a gentle squeeze.
"Not as beautiful as you Moka" he said, breaking her out of her thoughts, temporarily at least.
"Aw, thank you Tsukune" she replied as she turned her attention back to her husband who was smiling warmly. She then glomped him and pushed him back onto the black, leather seat and kissed him passionately. He returned the affectionate gesture and nibbled on her right ear which caused her to moan with arousal.
"Ah-hhhn...no fair" she whispered back.
"Sorry Moka. But you smell really nice" he truthfully answered.
"Mmmm...so do you my love" was her honest reply when she buried her head against his left shoulder and licked his neck erotically with her warm, wet tongue.
"It's okay, Moka. Everything I am belongs to you and you alone" he said, knowing very well what she wanted and held herself back all day from doing so.
"Thank you my love" she whispered again, as she slightly opened her mouth and bore down her fangs against the base of his neck, breaking his flesh. Her mate held her even closer as she began drinking his addictive blood in slow, steady slurps. He shuddered with delight when she brushed her tongue against a particularly sensitive spot.
"...Moka..."
"Ah...Tsukune..."
"I love you...Moka..."
"I love you too, Tsukune..."
Taking one, last drink of his ambrosia, she removed her fangs and licked his neck clean, sealing up the puncture marks which resembled a love-bite with a purplish color, that would fade away in about 15 minutes or so. Tsukune continued to hold Moka in his arms and thanked his lucky stars for sending her into his life. Moka was very thankful as well. Meeting her mate on the very first day of high school changed not only her outlook on humans, but on life in general. She sighed a sigh of absolute joy and contentment,
"Miss Moka, we have arrived in Tokyo" a male voice announced via a speaker embedded in the wall that separated the driver from the passengers.
"Oh, thank you. Could you drive us downtown, towards Tokyo Tower please?" Moka replied as she sat up followed by Tsukune a second later.
"Very well, Miss Moka. We shall arrive in a few minutes" was the reply from the black-suited Chauffeur.
"Look, Tsukune...so pretty" she said as they passed several more buildings decorated with lights of every color imaginable. Every tree along the avenue was lit up with white and blue LEDs, adding to the wintertime theme.
"M-hmm" was his simple reply.
A few minutes later, the black limousine pulled up to Tokyo Tower. The driver stopped the car and pulled up alongside the sidewalk. Moka opened her door and gestured for Tsukune to follow her for a minute. She stood on the concrete walkway and glanced high into the sky. Her mate mimicked her actions and held her hand.
Tokyo Tower was lit up on every side in red, green and blue lights. It was quite a scene to behold that reminded Tsukune of a gigantic Christmas Tree.
"Wow!" the pair bellowed in unison as they looked skyward. There were several, smaller evergreens decorated similarly at the foot of the massive, steel structure.
"Amazing" Tsukune added a minute later.
Moka was now shivering as a blast of cold air shot down the boulevard, chilling her to the bone. She then led Tsukune back to the car and entered first. Taking her silent cue, he did likewise and closed the door behind himself.
"Driver, please take us to Mid-Town Tower, Roppongi Hills" Moka requested over the two-way speaker.
"Right away, Miss Moka. We shall arrive shortly" was the answer from the chauffeur.
"We'd stay longer, Tsukune, but it's really cold out there" Moka explained as the car was driven eastbound, towards the Roppongi district.
"It's okay Moka. No worries," he agreed as he held her hands in his own.
"Thanks Tsukune. We'll be there soon" she replied with a small smile.
Glancing out the windows again, the duo saw more and more elaborate Christmas displays on every building and tree along the way.
…...
Approximately 15 minutes later, they arrived in Roppongi which was decorated simply, compared to the remainder of Tokyo itself. Most of the bars and restaurants were quite busy due to the sudden influx of couples wanting to spend the evening out on the town with their loved ones.
Once the long Limo pulled up to Mid-Town Tower, the driver stopped the vehicle and allowed the couple to exit. They each held their overnight bags in their hand after opening and closing the door of the car behind themselves. Thankfully the sidewalk was clear of any ice or snow, due to the diligence of the condominium's ever-vigilant staff.
Moka walked up to the driver's side window and personally thanked the chauffeur for his hard work. He then placed the vehicle's engine in drive and left off to return to her Father's home, located in the yokai realm.
Meandering up to the front door, it opened automatically granting them access into the large foyer. In the center was a huge Christmas tree, decorated rather elaborately and roughly 20 feet tall.
After they arrived inside the main lobby of Mid-Town Tower, Moka opened her purse and presented her resident ID card to the front desk. The clerk on duty, in turn, gave her the key-card to her often-used apartment on the top floor. He didn't even take notice of Moka's appearance, which was the complete opposite of the photo plastered on the ID card itself.
"Okay, Tsukune, this way," she informed him once he found his bearings inside the massive marble foyer once again.
Moka then walked up to a row of elevators and pressed the 'up' button, her husband Tsukune hot on her heels. Soon, the express elevator arrived; the silver-colored, metallic mechanical door slid open and they stepped inside. Moka then passed her key-card in front of the sensor on the control panel, indicating her floor number: eighty.
The door then slid closed and the elevator quickly ascended to the predetermined destination. Tsukune felt somewhat light-headed as the elevator car rapidly accelerated. He had to grab the brass handrail behind himself, so he wouldn't fall over again. Moka saw his bemused dismay, once again, and helped him regain his equilibrium.
"Thanks again, Moka," he bashfully replied, his featured tinted pink from embarrassment.
"No problem, Tsukune. It's been a while since we were here last."
…..
The elevator started to gradually slow down a few minutes later, indicating they were nearly at their stop: the penthouse floor.
* ding ding *
As the silver door swooshed open, Moka made a right turn down the hallway to her apartment. After walking along for what seemed like forever and a day, Moka stopped in front of a large, wooden, door with an electronic locking mechanism on top of where the door handle should be. She swiped her key-card down through the slot on front; unlocking it. A small, green light told her the door was now open.
Once they were inside, Moka flipped on the wall-mounted switch, illuminating the massive apartment. Tsukune was surprised to see that it was already decorated for Christmas. They then both removed their winter gear and boots, stowing them away in the front closet for the time being.
"Moka, look" he said, pointing to a large tree decorated in front of the long, bay windows that overlooked downtown Roppongi.
"Yes, love. I had my Father send the staff over to decorate the apartment for us" Moka explained with a slight blush.
"Amazing" he simply replied.
"Merry Christmas, Tsukune" Moka said as she hugged him lovingly. He returned her embrace and kissed her affectionately on her pink, pouty lips. She moaned yet again which instantly aroused him.
"Merry Christmas, Moka" he replied once they both decided to end their kiss before either of them passed out due to the lack of life-giving oxygen. He then reached into his pant's right pocket and handed a small envelope to his wife who eyed it, wondering what it was.
"Go on, Moka. Open it" he told her which she quickly did as requested. She then pulled out two tickets, wondering what they were.
"Tsukune...are these what I think they are?" she asked as she closely examined them with great intent.
"Yep. Two tickets to this weekend's Anime Convention in Tokyo" he replied with a bright grin.
"Really?" she shouted. He just shook his head yes in affirmation.
"Oh Tsukune! Thank you, thank you, thank you so much!" she replied as she embraced her thoughtful spouse in a warm hug and held him for all she was worth.
Moka was not only caught completely off guard by his genuine sincerity, but was stunned as well. She knew the approaching anime convention was coming up this Saturday, December 28th, and the tickets were very hard to come by since they practically sold out overnight.
"I actually bought them online last month, since I kind of figured that you'd want to go. Plus you can even dress up in one of your cosplays if you want to. They're having several voice actors and panels about some new animes coming out next year and even a dance in the evening. We're going to have a great time, Moka. That much I can promise you," he explained as she still held him in her loving arms, crying her eyes out with pure happiness.
"Oh Tsukune...I do love you so, so very much. You've made me the happiest woman in the world tonight" Moka replied as she dried her eyes on the sleeves of her red sweater dress.
A few moments later they ended their hug and walked hand-in-hand towards Moka's bedroom located at the end of the hallway, adjacent to the living-room. She opened the door then was scooped up in her husband's arms and carried bridal-style to the large, queen-sized bed.
Once she was comfortable on the plush bed, she opened her arms, silently inviting Tsukune to lay down next to her, which he did without any further hesitation. She held him very close, feeling more love and adoration towards her one-and-only mate.
"Moka...um...are you...you know..." he sputtered out.
"Of course I am, Tsukune. Always" she boldly replied with a cuter-than-average wink and a smile.
She sat up and removed her red sweater dress and tossed it across the darkened bedroom, where it landed on the carpeted floor below. She quickly pulled off her metallic silver leggings which were lost in the darkness as well. All that remained were her red cotton bra and color-coordinated panties. She helped Tsukune undress likewise in a matter of seconds, as if her very life depended on it.
Once they were situated under the soft bedding, they swiftly displaced themselves of their underwear and held each other closer than ever before, the heat of their nude forms, keeping one another warm.
"Ah, Tsukune...please...rub my breasts, love" she asked once she finished their embrace momentarily and then sat up on his lap and leaned her voluminous breasts over his face. Without saying a word, he did as requested by his one and only mate. Holding her monumental bosom between his hands, he massaged them from the side which caused Moka to softly moan with wanton desire.
…..
"Tsukune...oohhh...ahhhhhn...feels...so...good...p lease, kiss my nipples, please love" she begged.
He then partially sat up and then started to lightly suckle on her nipples, taking turns on each one as the pink erogenous zones stiffened immediately. Moka's heartbeat and breathing increased due to the wonderful sensations that began to completely overwhelm her.
"Ahhh...Tsukune...more...ahhhh...more...love...oh Kami...ahhhhhhhnnnngh -Tsukune!"
Moka uttered erotically as tingles of pleasure traveled down her spine and caused her toes to curl from the exquisite sensation. Waves of pure ecstasy washed over her body as the heat was becoming nearly impossible for the silver-haired vampiress to bear for much longer.
She suddenly arched her back and climaxed explosively as the stimulation on her sensitive nipples increased. Tsukune sucked on them even harder as she moaned his name loudly with lustful delight.
Once her breathing returned to somewhat normal levels, Tsukune wrapped her in his caring arms, kissed her tenderly and felt the bond between themselves multiply by the passing second.
"Tsukune...I want...you...now...inside me, please my love" she whispered between the eager, soft kisses they exchanged.
Her husband then sat up on the bed then swapped positions with Moka.
She then laid her head on the satiny-soft pillow as he hovered over her on his knees once she spread her sexy, well-toned legs apart then invited him to become one with her. As his throbbing manhood entered her warm sex, Moka loudly gasped as they consummated their union once more, as husband and wife.
'Oh Tsukune...it...ah...so...good...my love...ah-hhh...' she silently communicated through their ever-growing blood-bond.
'Oh Moka...you feel so good', Tsukune wordlessly responded likewise.
Slowly and tenderly the couple made passionate love, growing much closer as the flaming romance of their union burned inside of them. Time seemed to slow down for the young couple as they were immersed with complete affection, absolute devotion and adoration, towards each other. Their pounding hearts beat in absolute accord.
As they became further aroused, Moka could sense the growing blood-lust in her mate. She then tenderly licked him on his neck, signaling to him it would be alright if he wanted to partake in some of her sweet blood this time. He in response did the same, as his fangs extended then slowly pierced her delicate neck, drinking in her wonderful life-force.
As Tsukune lapped up her blood in small, steady slurps, Moka's longer fangs pierced his neck yet again, and hungrily consumed her mate's blood in turn. Once more, the blood-bonding took effect as they drank each others life-force in absolute harmony.
…..
Memories of the past they shared between themselves, cemented their relationship even further. No other yokai shared this bond that would always be a permanent fixture in their union as not only as husband and wife, but of blood-mates as well.
Tsukune's rhythm slowly increased, as Moka moaned, her fangs still buried in his neck, as she lapped his blood in small, tender slurps. The tickling sensation was becoming too much for her hubby, which caused a groan of desire in the back of his throat to bubble forth.
'Ahhh...Tsukune...oh yes...please...now...ah-hhh...Tsukune!'
'Moka...ahh-hhh...ah-hhhh...Moka...I can't – hold – out – anymore, oh kami!'
'It's okay, Tsukune...I'm ready, love...ah...Tsukune...ahhhnngn...'
As Moka released her fangs from her mate's neck, she shuddered in the aftershocks of a rather powerful orgasm, her voice reverberating clamorously off her bedroom's walls.
As her back arched, Tsukune retracted his fangs, rapidly cleaned her neck with his tongue and sealed the puncture marks closed. A moment later, he released his hot seed inside her, his entire body trembling as he peaked forcefully.
As they held each other closely yet again, legs intertwined, they eventually fell asleep and dreamed of the future, knowing very well that they would always have each other as well as a child on the way in seven month's time.
…...
.
Author's Note: This chapter I worked on for nearly 3 days! I know what I wanted it to cover but was having a hard time getting it down. I apologize if it's short, but I packed a LOT of emotion into Moka's first-ever Christmas with Tsukune. Next chapter will be "Anime Convention and A Vampire" and will be out around the end of November, since my birthday and Thanksgiving are next to each other. :)
Thanks once again to all my friends, followers, watchers and Beta readers for their continued support!
R + V: Christmas Party and a Vampire
This is chapter 36 of my Rosario + Vampire fan-fic: 'A Confession and A Vampire', with characters created by Akihisa Ikeda. (Chapter 37 on FF dot net)
Original idea and fan-fic written by Gamera68.
Rated T for some mild language.
Moka and Tsukune are both 19 years old and married.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga.
However, I'm pretty much borrowing already-established canon from the series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
A/N: This is the follow-up chapter to "Truth" and "Uninvited Guest".
Inner Moka is still around for the remainder of this fan-fic.
Saturday night, December 21st.
…..
"Moka, are you sure about this?" Tsukune asked his spouse, who was putting on her makeup for the evening. Metallic silver eye shadow, bright red lipstick and a light dusting of pink blush on her cheeks.
"Of course I am, love. Ruby invited us to this pre-Christmas party and I really want to see her. And I feel just fine, so please, let's just have some fun tonight" Moka explained as she brushed out her knee-length, silver hair one, final time. She double-checked her appearance in the bathroom mirror.
They had received an invitation in the mail from their Witch friend, Ruby Toujo who was still employed part-time as a cocktail server at the Gothic-themed, nighttime establishment.
Her employer was throwing an early Christmas party and thought it would be a positive way to bring more business in before the big, Holiday rush. There would be a complimentary late-night dinner buffet as well as beverages, too.
"Perfect" she said as she set her pink hairbrush down on the white counter-top.
"Okay, Moka. You're right. I'm just making sure you were feeling up to it," he said as she cutely twirled around, giving her mate an eyeful of her outfit for the evening. She was wearing a full-length crimson evening gown, with a modest scoop neck, a knee-high slit along the left side, as well as matching heels.
"Wow" Tsukune said as she saw how amazingly beautiful she looked. Moka blushed hard hearing his simple, yet honest compliment. Her husband was sporting a deep wine colored, burgundy dress shirt, silver silk tie and pinstriped, black dress slacks.
"Thank you, Tsukune. And I must say, you look very handsome tonight" she told him as she gave him a firm, loving embrace.
"Uh, thanks Moka" he sputtered out once they ceased their hug.
The duo left the restroom after shutting the light off and walked down the hallway, then made their way downstairs. His parents, Koji and Kasumi at the bottom of the stairwell, greeted them.
"My, you two look very nice" Kasumi said smiling brightly.
"Oh thanks, Mom" Moka replied with another adorable blush while she held Tsukune's hand.
"Uh, yeah, Thanks" Tsukune replied likewise.
…..
"You two have fun and we'll see you whenever you come home" Koji said to the couple who walked towards the front entrance-way to fetch their winter coats from the closet.
Moka's winter wardrobe was a full-length, dark pink, leather coat with matching wool gloves. Tsukune's was a black leather 'bomber' military-type jacket and color-coordinated gloves. After slipping his black, dress oxfords on, he opened the front door for Moka, who exited first.
"Thanks dad. We'll see you then" he replied as he stepped out after his wife. His folks waved farewell to the happy pair then closed and locked the door for the remainder of the night.
Tsukune firmly held Moka's hand as they walked down the partially, snow-covered walkway to the side of the road. It was a chilly, winter night and thankfully the snow had stopped falling a few hours ago. Hundreds of stars twinkled brightly in the inky, ebony, cloudless sky above.
A long, black limousine was waiting for the vampire pair by the side of the street. Moka had called her Father, Lord Shuzen, asking for a favor and had had him send the car to drive them to and from Club Gotham; the very same all-ages nightclub Tsukune had brought her to for her 19th birthday this past May,
When Moka and Tsukune made themselves comfortable in the back seat of the limo, Moka scooted close to her mate, leaned her head on his left shoulder and then sighed happily.
"Tsukune thanks again."
"Oh, don't worry about it Moka. I'm just glad you're doing better."
"Well, I have gained a little weight and now have a small baby bump" she said with a small smile.
"True, but it's barely noticeable, Moka" Tsukune replied as he wrapped his left arm around her shoulder in a gentle hug.
"Really?" she asked.
"Well, yeah. Even if you gain some more weight, you'll still be the most beautiful woman in the world to me."
"Awww...thank you Tsukune" she gleefully answered as she leaned even closer to her one-and-only and lightly pressed her magnificent bosom against the side of his chest.
"A-anytime, Moka" he replied with a slight blush. He was still getting used to the fact that the real Moka was back in his life and he still felt somewhat nervous around the silver-mained vampire princess. "Well, Moka is still Moka", he reminded himself day-in and day-out since her abrupt, inverse metamorphosis.
….
Approximately ten minutes later, the long, jet black, limousine entered the downtown business district. Every building was brightly decorated for Christmas, which was only a few days away. Upon arrival at the club the limo stopped to drop them off. Tsukune opened his door, closed it behind himself, and then walked behind the car to open Moka's door, which was adjacent to the sidewalk. He held her right hand, which she happily accepted.
"Why thank you, Tsukune," she said, as she smiled happily at his chivalrous gesture.
"You're very welcome, my princess," he simply replied, as he then closed her door behind her.
The limousine driver left the duo and would return to bring them back home whenever they were ready to call it a night. They walked up to the two-story brick and mortar building, and discovered that the line wasn't very long this time, as it was moving along rather speedily.
By the time they arrived at the actual entrance a few minutes later, the doorman asked for their names which were printed out on a list held in place on a clipboard that the larger man held in his hand.
"Tsukune and Moka Aono" Tsukune told him. The tall, bald man nodded in acknowledgment after checking their names off from the list and stamped both of their right hands with a red "G" once they removed their gloves and stuffed them into their coat pockets.
Walking through the front door, they passed by a temporary coat-check area. The hostess handed them a ticket in exchange for their jackets that would be neatly hung up for the duration of their stay at the nightclub.
Moka noticed that the club was simply decorated with strings of red LED lights dangling down vertically from the ceiling, ten meters above the floor. Strands of silver garland were wrapped around the perimeter of each table as well as the Bar that ran along the majority of the back wall. The long buffet table was set up next to the Bar, perpendicular against the right-hand wall.
The upstairs mezzanine that encompassed the entire perimeter of the venue had strings of mini, amber LED lights, and gold garland wrapped around the railing to present a warm, welcoming glow.
Tsukune led Moka to the same booth they sat at for her birthday located towards the far, left corner. Once they were settled comfortably on the red, leather seat, Ruby quickly approached their table when she spotted them and was smiling happily.
The elder Witch was dressed in a deep, violet bodice with black trim and a long, black velvet skirt. Her hair was tied back in her classic twin-tails held in place with matching ribbons.
"Tsukune! Moka!" Ruby yelled as she quickly sat down next to Moka on her right, and gave her a warm, friendly, hug. Moka returned her friend's unexpected embrace with just as much enthusiasm.
"Hi there Ruby!" Moka said once the two young women finished their reunion.
"Hey guys, I'm so glad you could make it. And I heard about your current 'self' from Kokoa" Ruby said as she excused herself and stood on the side of their booth, her round serving tray held behind her back.
Moka winced upon hearing her pest of a younger sister's name mentioned.
…..
"Thanks for inviting us, Ruby. Uh, yeah. We still don't understand how it happened, but it doesn't matter to me. Moka is always Moka" Tsukune replied. Moka then reached over and gave his right hand a gentle squeeze.
"Anytime you guys. Can I get you the usual? All the drinks are on the house for tonight's party," Ruby explained with a smile.
"Thanks again, Ruby. Yes, two glasses of chilled tomato juice sound great" Moka replied smiling as well.
"You got it Moka, coming right up" Ruby said as she made her way to the Bar.
"Hey Moka, I'm sure Ruby didn't know. Are you going to be okay?" Tsukune asked his beautiful wife who was clearly upset hearing that last part of information. He could detect it through their blood-bond.
"I'll be okay, love. But thank you for being concerned. I'm very sure Ruby didn't know either, otherwise she wouldn't have said anything. It seems to me like she keeps in contact with Kokoa. Maybe I can use that to my advantage," Moka said to her husband who didn't have the opportunity to reply, since Ruby was returning to their corner booth with their beverage order.
"Here you, go Moka, Tsukune. If you need anything at all, please feel free to let me know. The buffet is open so please help yourselves and I'll see you in a little while."
"Thanks, Ruby. We'll be sure to let you know if we do" Tsukune replied as the Witch / cocktail waitress excused herself and waved to the couple as she made her way to serve the other customers who had just arrived.
"I'd like to propose a toast. Here's to our first Christmas season together," Tsukune announced, as they both raised their drinks. "Kampai!" they both exclaimed, as they clinked their glasses together, each taking a sip of their refreshing beverage.
Moka was rather excited to spend her first-ever Christmas with her very best friend and now husband. She still couldn't get used the fact that she was Misses Moka Aono.
"Hey Moka, would you like to see what kind of food the buffet has?" Tsukune asked as he set his now half-full drink on the dark, wooden table. Moka repeated the action a few seconds after.
Tsukune then sat up and walked to her side of the booth, his right hand stretched out.
"Sure Tsukune, that sounds like a wonderful idea" she cheerfully answered as she stood up and linked her arm with his as they walked over to the far side of the club towards the smorgasbord. Several other patrons were neatly lined up, each waiting their turn to grab a plate of food.
Moka's sharp eyes caught sight of several types of sweet deserts which caused her cravings to kick into overdrive. Her stomach rumbled energetically with approval, which resulted in her to become somewhat embarrassed. She hastily buried her red face on her husband's shoulder.
He then draped his right arm around her in a comforting gesture, silently communicating to her that it was all right.
…..
"Sorry Tsukune. But those desserts look so yummy" she murmured, her face still colored pink.
"It's okay Moka. I know. They do look really good," he agreed once she unraveled herself from her mate's embrace and stood back in line. They each grabbed a red, plastic plate and fork then glanced at the food choices before them.
Baked chicken wings, red, white, and green pasta with sausage, macaroni pie, rice-stuffed cabbage smothered in marinara sauce, potato pancakes with pink applesauce, mini pork potpies, shrimp cocktail, and green-bean casserole with slivered almonds.
The dessert choices included strawberry cheesecake, 'snow ball' almond cookies, chocolate mint cake, raspberry tiramisu, red velvet brownies, banana pudding, sweet-potato pie and apple pie a la' mode.
Moka nearly salivated all over the floor, upon seeing so many types of food and desserts spread out on the five meter table. She picked out a small portion of all the dinner selections, which Tsukune found to be 'cute', seeing as she had quite a difficult decision in choosing something to her liking.
It was the same way for the desserts; her mate just wondered to himself if she could actually devour everything on both her plates.
Tsukune chose the chicken wings, potato pancakes and shrimp cocktail, as well as a few 'snow ball' cookies and chocolate mint cake. Once they returned to their table Moka dug into her food like a ravenous beast. Her husband was rather astonished at her sudden appetite.
"M-mm, this is really good" she said in-between mouthfuls.
"Uh yeah, it is" Tsukune replied as he ate his food at a slow, steady, rate.
"Oh sorry Tsukune. I guess I was a lot hungrier than I thought I was" Moka sheepishly replied.
"It's alright Moka. I understand, so don't worry about it so much. I'm pretty sure the baby is enjoying it, too" he told her, as he reached over and held her left hand.
"Aww that's so sweet. Thank you Tsukune" she said as she slowed her pace, savoring the early holiday meal.
...
"Hey guys" a monotone, female voice announced, breaking the duo away from their dinner.
They both looked in the direction of said voice and were surprised to see Mizore. The Snow Faerie was wearing a powder-blue blouse and matching skirt along with white stockings, a cerulean blue snowflake pattern printed on her cottony leggings.
In her mouth, she held an ever-present lollipop that kept her body at a comfortable, cool temperature. She quickly noticed that Moka looked like her original 'inner' self, minus the red eyes.
"Hey Mizore" Moka said when she saw her friend, who was smiling happily.
"I just saw Ruby and she told me you were here. So Moka, how are you doing?"
"I'm doing great actually. Thanks for asking Mizore."
"That's good to hear Moka. I'm really happy to hear that." the snow maiden answered with a smile.
"Hey Mizore, have you seen Kurumu? You two looked really close at our wedding reception" Moka asked her with a stern tone. Tsukune decided to stay silent, knowing very well where this conversation was heading and didn't want to say or do anything idiotic.
Mizore literally froze in place when she felt her vampire friend's yokai fluctuate, which caused her to wince at the compelling sensation and knees to wobble.
"Uh, why do you ask Moka?" the lavender-haired yukki-onna nervously replied.
"I was just wondering that's all. Besides, I can smell her scent. You're covered in it," Moka told her as she narrowed her eyes and glared at Mizore, who suddenly backed up a few steps.
Moka got up from their booth and stood behind Mizore in a microsecond.
'Damn it!' Tsukune mentally cursed.
He pinched his eyes shut in frustration and was hoping to have a relaxing evening out with Moka and now this was happening. It was like they were in high school all over again.
The constant bickering and fighting nearly drove him to the brink of madness for three years.
Why couldn't the happy couple live a normal, peaceful life?
...
"Um, no. I haven't...seen her all day" Mizore muttered as she tried to get away from the enraged vampiress, as her legs suddenly felt like jello and was finding it rather difficult to move.
"Listen Mizore. I know that you and Kurumu have gotten...close lately. I don't care about that. I just want to know if she has seen or spoken to you recently, that's all. I thought you were my friend, Mizore?" Moka said as a solitary tear ran down her face.
Now Mizore felt like she had hurt her friend Moka and didn't want to deceive her. She really wanted to stay friends with both her and Tsukune even if it meant betraying Kurumu. Mizore was privy to what the succubus had did to Moka and Tsukune; she realized it wasn't right and they frankly didn't deserve it.
"Sorry Moka. She's...in the restroom" Mizore hesitantly answered.
Moka was gone in a flash. Tsukune stood up from his seat and walked over to Mizore since he heard the entire, uncomfortable conversation.
"Tsukune! I'm sorry. I couldn't lie to Moka. You gotta stop her before she kills Kurumu," she cried out, as she started to sob. She just betrayed her closest friend and didn't want to see her injured, or worse. Tsukune then gave her a quick hug.
"Let's go Mizore. You're going to have to go in there and talk to Moka, since she went inside the ladies' room" he told her once the ended their brief embrace.
The two yokai ran off in the direction of the restrooms, which were in the back of the building at the end of a long hallway, located near the bar.
…..
Moka entered the restroom and saw Kurumu standing in front of the large wall-mounted mirror, above a row of sinks, and checking her makeup. The unsealed vampiress locked the door behind herself.
The petite blue-haired Succubus was wearing a mint-green mini dress that was cut in front, revealing her abundant cleavage. She didn't even detect Moka's abrupt arrival until she was directly behind her.
"Hello Kurumu" Moka whispered into her ear.
"Oh shit! Moka! W-what are you d-doing here?" the enchantress anxiously asked.
"Oh, I think you know why I'm here. I mean you tried to kill me by charming my own sister, into doing your dirty work. Something that you couldn't even do yourself" Moka said as deep growl bubbled up in the back of her throat.
"W-what do you mean, Moka?" Kurumu inquired as a nervous sweat overcame her.
"Don't play stupid with me, Kurumu. Kokoa told me everything!" Moka spat out, just centimeters from her.
Kurumu remained quiet for a few awkward seconds, unsure of what to say without digging her own grave. Moka knew! And that damn runt Kokoa had spilled the beans!
…..
"It's locked, Tsukune!" Mizore told him once they reached the woman's restroom.
"Maybe I can break it down" he replied, weighing his options.
"Um, Tsukune, look...security cameras" she softly replied as she noticed the closed-circuit cameras bolted to the wall near the ceiling. If he did break the door down he would be seen using his powers, as would Mizore if she tried to cover the cameras with frost, ice or snow.
"Now what do we do?" he wondered.
Mizore was now banging loudly on the door, trying to get Moka's attention.
"It's no good. She's ignoring us" she said.
"Moka! Moka!" Tsukune shouted.
"Kurumu! Kurumu!" the snow maiden hollered likewise.
…..
"Fine Moka. You want the truth. Yes, I charmed your bratty, little sister to do my dirty work. I wanted you gone, for good. You stole my Destined One away from me and I won't ever forgive you" Kurumu bit out with tears in her eyes.
"But why Kurumu? Why? Tsukune never loved you and you know it. You just can't take what you want. You tried to have me killed and turned my own sister against me! Tsukune got hurt and could have nearly died in my place. Half the skin on his face was nearly peeled off from the Holy Water! I told this to you at our wedding reception and you acted like nothing happened! Tsukune is MY husband and I'm having HIS baby! You need to know your place!" Moka shouted out in anguish as she digested what the succubus just admitted to her.
Not only did Kurumu confess to attempted murder, but had also used Moka's younger sister Kokoa and basically brainwashed her, just like Tsukune had predicted.
"Is that a threat, Moka? If it is, then bring it on. I'm not afraid of you anymore!" Kurumu taunted as she took a fighting stance and brought out her foot-long claws, ready for whatever Moka had planned for her.
…..
"Mizore, please find Ruby. Maybe she has a key. I'll stay here and try to reach out to Moka. Her yokai's going crazy and I'm afraid she might do something stupid," Tsukune surmised.
"Alright Tsukune, but please try. I don't want anyone to get hurt, especially Kurumu," Mizore said as she sprinted off down the hallway in the opposite direction, searching the vast nightclub for Ruby.
'Moka...Moka. Please. Calm down' he reached out to his mate, subconsciously through their blood-bond.
'Damn it Tsukune. Not now! Get out of my head' Moka replied in the same fashion.
...
Before Kurumu could react, Moka raced forward, grabbed the tiny yokai woman by her throat, and smashed her into the tile wall behind her, shattering it to smithereens.
"KNOW YOUR PLACE!" the enraged vampiress bellowed.
Kurumu staggered around for a moment as she attempted to remain standing: the severe impact leaving her partly stunned and disorientated. Destroyed ceramic tiling and drywall was scattered all over the restroom's once, clean floor.
"You...damn blood...sucker...that's just...dirty...," she slurred out, as she collapsed to the floor face-first in a heap.
Moka approached the flattened succubus and pulled her up to her feet. Her violet eyes were closed and her claws receded to their natural state. Moka lightly slapped her cheeks, attempting to wake her up.
"Hey Kurumu. I'm not done with you yet" Moka said with anger dripping in her voice.
…..
Mizore returned to where she left Tsukune just a few moments ago, worry evident on her brow.
"I can't find Ruby anywhere and the club is packed," she said.
Tsukune was now leaning against the still-locked restroom door.
"I'm sorry, Mizore. I couldn't reach out to Moka in time."
"Why? What happened?" Mizore cried out as she dropped to her knees.
"Moka showed Kurumu her place," he told his friend, upset over what just transpired and couldn't stop it, despite his best efforts.
"What? Oh Kami! I know I shouldn't have left her alone" Mizore replied, as she broke down and started to cry heavily again, fearful that she had lost Kurumu for good this time.
…..
"Kurumu, if you ever try anything like that again, I will personally see to it that you won't make it to your next birthday. Stay away from MY family. And that is NOT a threat, it's a promise" Moka told the half-awake succubus as she dropped her to the floor. Moka stood up and left her there, hoping her words would reach the selfish yokai.
As Moka unlocked the door, Tsukune tumbled backwards with an "oof" into the ladies room and saw his wife standing over him.
"What?" she asked as she glanced down to her mate who was sprawled out on the tiled floor below her.
He quickly sat partly up, realizing he was in a compromising position and was looking up her dress. Moka walked around him and then grabbed his hand, pulling him to his feet.
"I'm sorry Mizore. She had it coming to her," Moka told her friend who ran into the restroom, bent down, took Kurumu into her arms and hugged her closely.
"Please, Tsukune. Don't give me that look. I didn't kill her if that's what you're wondering. I just told her what she did was wrong. But if she tried it again, I promised her that I wouldn't hold myself back" Moka informed him as they walked down the corridor and headed back to their still vacant table.
Tsukune was rather relieved to hear that Moka left her alive. He was honestly scared, unsure of what she would do whenever she found Kurumu. Once they sat down again, Moka finished the remainder of her food and gulped down her now warm tomato juice.
A few minutes later, Ruby approached their table, clearly upset over what had happened a few minutes ago. She saw Mizore drag Kurumu out of the ladies room and left the club without even saying anything to her.
"Moka? What the hell happened in the ladies room?" the elder Witch asked as she plopped herself down and sat next to her vampire friend.
"I just showed Kurumu her place. She not only used my sister but tried to kill me back in September," Moka told her in the simplest of terms. Ruby's moth dropped open in utter shock and disbelief.
"Oh my god! So she's the one that planned that?" Ruby inquired.
"Yes Ruby. She turned my sister against me and betrayed our friendship and trust. I was a fool to think that she and I could be friends again. I'm very sorry about the restroom wall. I take full responsibility and will pay for the damages," Moka said as she turned away in a shameful manner. She had lost control again and just destroyed private property.
At least she had admitted to what she had done and even promised to make amends.
…..
"Oh it's okay Moka. Actually, I have an idea. We'll forget about the entire ordeal if you do me a small favor. Oh, don't worry. It won't be anything embarrassing. Gin told me about your stint as an up-and-coming Idol," Ruby said with a sly smirk.
"Oh, okay. Thank you. Once again, I'm really sorry about the wall, Ruby. Um, what did you have in mind, exactly" Moka asked the Witch turned cocktail server, who now stood up alongside their table. Tsukune was curious about this so-called 'favor' as well.
"Oh that's easy Moka. You can sing a Christmas song in front of the entire club," Ruby answered with a knowing wink.
"What? Um, I don't know any Christmas songs, Ruby" Moka interjected by frantically waving her hands in front of her.
"Don't worry about that, Moka. It's an easy song and I'll get the lyrics for you. Oh this is gonna be so much fun" Ruby squealed with delight. Tsukune laid his head on the table and groaned in frustration, knowing very well that Ruby was up to something.
Ruby left the vampire couple alone for now, as she had to prepare for Moka's nightclub debut. She had to talk to her boss and tell him that she had found a singer that she personally knows to perform tonight, and for no charge.
"Moka? Are you sure about this? Maybe you should just pay for the damaged restroom wall and call it even."
"Aw, come on Tsukune. You know that I love to sing. Besides it might be fun."
"Really Moka? In front of all these people?" he asked as he pointed to the crowded nightclub. Moka then gulped hard. It was a lot more packed than she had anticipated before agreeing to Ruby's favor.
"Oh. I see. Um..." Moka softly replied, as she quickly developed a case of stage fright.
Tsukune sat next to Moka and gave her a deep, passionate kiss, catching her entirely off guard. Moka leaned into his kiss and began to loudly moan in his mouth, furthering his building arousal. They then realized they were in public and swiftly ended their kiss before they started to do much, much more.
"Feeling better, Moka?"
"Oh, yes. Thank you love. I can do it. I mean, it has been a while since I sang in front of an audience" Moka replied with a contented smile.
...
"Ladies and Gentleman, Club Gotham is pleased to announce a very special guest, my very good friend, Moka Aono. She will be performing a special holiday song for us tonight," Ruby announced as she stood next to the DJ booth with a wireless microphone. She then walked over to Moka and Tsukune's table, where a spotlight had focused on the silver-haired beauty.
"I know you can do it Moka. I have complete faith in you" Tsukune said as Moka stood up as Ruby handed her the lyrics and wireless microphone.
"Thank you Tsukune" his wife replied with a smile.
"Moka, this is a very popular Christmas song, I was told" Ruby said.
Moka took the sheet of paper from Ruby as well as the microphone. Studying the lyrics for a moment, Moka thanked her friend and took a deep breath. Moka nodded to the Disc Jockey, giving him a silent cue. The holiday tune then started playing throughout the nightclub from the large speakers that were suspended from the ceiling.
"Have Yourself A Merry Little Christmas"
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Let your heart be light...
From now on, our troubles will be out of sight..
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Make the Yuletide gay...
From now on, our troubles will be miles away
Here we are as in olden days
Happy golden days of yore...
Faithful friends who are dear to us...
Gather near to us once more...
Through the years we all will be together
If the fates allow...
So hang a shining star upon the highest bough
And have yourself...a merry little Christmas...now
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Let your heart be light...
From now on, our troubles will be out of sight
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Make the Yuletide gay...
From now on, our troubles will be miles away
Here we are as in olden days
Happy golden days of yore...
Faithful friends...who are dear to us
Gather near to us once more...
Through the years we all will be together
If the fates allow...
So hang a shining star upon the highest bough
And have yourself a merry little Christmas..now...
As the song ended, the night club crowd broke out in a hearty applause. Tsukune stood up and clapped with even more enthusiasm. Moka politely bowed in appreciation, her cheeks now bright crimson.
Ruby ran over to the table and was in tears. She was completely stunned at Moka's impressive singing voice. The Witch then glomped her vampire friend in a warm embrace.
"Moka, that was...amazing! Wow, I had no idea you could sing like a professional" Ruby spouted out once the two young women ended their hug. Tsukune was moved again by his lovely wife's awe-inspiring singing voice. Moka blushed hard from her friend's heartfelt compliment. She then returned the lyric sheet and microphone to Ruby.
…..
"Oh, thank you Ruby. Like I told Tsukune, I took singing lessons when I was younger. I just do it mostly as a hobby," Moka explained, her features still tinted pink.
"Moka, you should think about singing for...oh sorry. Gin told me what they tried to do to have you sign a contract. Sorry Moka…I just…forgot" Ruby said once Moka and her husband Tsukune returned to their seats.
"It's fine Ruby. I know...you meant well. I enjoyed singing the song, but it's only a hobby. Besides, I have a family to take care of" Moka replied with a hint of sadness.
Tsukune placed his arms around her, embraced her firmly, less she break down, and start crying again. The painful memory in the back of her mind of what the music producer tried to force her into doing, just to sign a five-year contract: leave her mate.
"Sorry Moka. Please don't cry. Oh, me and my big mouth!" Ruby lamented knowing she had unintentionally brought up a painful memory from this past summer. Gin told her the story of what one of his supervisors from the Avex Music Group tried to do to Moka, just to sign a record deal, and Ruby just simply forgot about it.
…..
"Ruby, it's okay. Really. I'm totally fine. Now, um, could we have another drink, please? I'm thirsty now from singing," Moka asked as she tried to get her friend brought back to reality.
"Oh yes, sure thing, Moka. I'll be back in a jiffy" Ruby said as she sprinted towards the bar, which was surrounded with thirsty patrons.
"Moka are you going to be okay? Ruby just forgot. I'm sure she didn't do it on purpose."
"Oh yes, love. Thank you. I'm completely fine" she replied as she reached over and held his hands in her own.
"Moka if you're not, just tell me okay? You know that you can tell me anything."
"Thank you Tsukune. I really don't know what I'd do without you" she replied as she stared into his warm, chocolate-brown eyes.
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Oh Moka..."
"Oh Tsukune..."
"My Moka..."
"My Tsukune..."
Ruby watched the scene play out before her in fascination as if they were still in high school.
'Moka, you sure lucked out. Tsukune really is such a great guy,' the elder Witch though to herself.
"Um, hello? Moka? Tsukune? Hello?" Ruby announced as she attempted to gain her friend's attention.
"Ah! Sorry Ruby. We didn't hear you" Tsukune replied as he was clearly flustered.
"Oh it's okay, you guys look so cute together," Ruby teased as she sat their drinks on the table in front of them.
"Um, thanks Ruby" Moka said, her face red as an overly-ripened tomato.
'How embarrassing!' the vampiress thought in mortification.
"No problem. I'll see you two in a while. I have to get back to work. Have fun!" Ruby told the pair as she waved goodbye for now and headed back to her part-time job.
...
Tsukune gulped down his second glass of tomato juice and glanced over to Moka who seemed deep in thought. He then heavily sighed unsure of how to get his wife's spirit lifted. The DJ then started to play a slow love song. Looks like Tsukune's silent wish was answered.
"Hey Moka?"
"Yes Tsukune?"
"Um, would you like to dance?"
"Oh yes. I was wondering when you'd ask me, silly" Moka brightly replied. Tsukune then stood up and walked to her side of the booth and offered his wife his outstretched hand which she happily took with a warm smile.
He led Moka to the center of the dance floor and wrapped his left arm around her waist and held her right hand in his own.
She repeated his movements, leaned her head on his left shoulder and began slowly swaying her hips to the music.
…..
"Um, Tsukune?" she asked, her head still leaning against his shoulder.
"Yes Moka?"
"I'm sorry if I worried you earlier. I didn't want to do what I did to Kurumu. But she got me so upset, playing it off as if she did nothing wrong." she said with a sniffle. He embraced her more firmly, attempting to prevent her from crying again.
"I understand Moka. It's true that I was very concerned about you and the baby. Just promise me that you'll be more careful in the future. I really don't know what I'd do if I lost you again." he said as he pulled her closer to himself.
Moka knew exactly what he was saying. Her Outer self died last year when her Rosary was destroyed by Alucard. Thankfully his mentor Touhou Fuhai was able to repair it and her sister Akua had helped to revive her. He had honestly never been so scared in his entire existence. Tsukune just wanted to have a quiet, peaceful life with his wife Moka and leave all that behind him.
"Oh Tsukune. I'm sorry. So very sorry" Moka said as she held her husband next to her.
The silver-haired vampiress herself was terrified as well. The somber memories she so desperately wanted to leave in the past was something she never wanted to relive ever again for as long as she lived with her mate.
Moka had their child growing inside of herself and she was the happiest she had ever been since she had found her one, true love. Her very best friend who had accepted and loved all of her for who she was.
"It's okay Moka. I'm always going to be love and be here for you. Forever."
As the vampire couple continued dancing close to each other, they both silently desired that private their lives would not have anymore unwarranted disruptions for as long as they had each other. It hadn't been easy, but they would make sure to always support each other emotionally and do their best to prevent any event similar to that happen ever again.
…...
A/N: I worked on this chapter for over 2 days! I had this entire chapter planned out for quite some time, but had a difficult time wrapping it up.
I apologize to any Kurumu fans out there. She got what she had coming to her. At least Moka held herself back somewhat and simply knocked her out cold. I know it's kind of harsh, but like I stated time and time again, I never really liked her. Sorry!
Next chapter will be out in about a week or so.
Any and all positive reviews are welcome as long as they stay on topic and remain spoiler-free. If you have any questions, please feel free to drop me a PM and I will do my best to answer your question(s) any way I can ^_^
This is chapter 36 of my Rosario + Vampire fan-fic: 'A Confession and A Vampire', with characters created by Akihisa Ikeda. (Chapter 37 on FF dot net)
Original idea and fan-fic written by Gamera68.
Rated T for some mild language.
Moka and Tsukune are both 19 years old and married.
Alternate Reality, set after the events of the current manga.
However, I'm pretty much borrowing already-established canon from the series.
Comedy / Drama / Romance
…..
A/N: This is the follow-up chapter to "Truth" and "Uninvited Guest".
Inner Moka is still around for the remainder of this fan-fic.
Saturday night, December 21st.
…..
"Moka, are you sure about this?" Tsukune asked his spouse, who was putting on her makeup for the evening. Metallic silver eye shadow, bright red lipstick and a light dusting of pink blush on her cheeks.
"Of course I am, love. Ruby invited us to this pre-Christmas party and I really want to see her. And I feel just fine, so please, let's just have some fun tonight" Moka explained as she brushed out her knee-length, silver hair one, final time. She double-checked her appearance in the bathroom mirror.
They had received an invitation in the mail from their Witch friend, Ruby Toujo who was still employed part-time as a cocktail server at the Gothic-themed, nighttime establishment.
Her employer was throwing an early Christmas party and thought it would be a positive way to bring more business in before the big, Holiday rush. There would be a complimentary late-night dinner buffet as well as beverages, too.
"Perfect" she said as she set her pink hairbrush down on the white counter-top.
"Okay, Moka. You're right. I'm just making sure you were feeling up to it," he said as she cutely twirled around, giving her mate an eyeful of her outfit for the evening. She was wearing a full-length crimson evening gown, with a modest scoop neck, a knee-high slit along the left side, as well as matching heels.
"Wow" Tsukune said as she saw how amazingly beautiful she looked. Moka blushed hard hearing his simple, yet honest compliment. Her husband was sporting a deep wine colored, burgundy dress shirt, silver silk tie and pinstriped, black dress slacks.
"Thank you, Tsukune. And I must say, you look very handsome tonight" she told him as she gave him a firm, loving embrace.
"Uh, thanks Moka" he sputtered out once they ceased their hug.
The duo left the restroom after shutting the light off and walked down the hallway, then made their way downstairs. His parents, Koji and Kasumi at the bottom of the stairwell, greeted them.
"My, you two look very nice" Kasumi said smiling brightly.
"Oh thanks, Mom" Moka replied with another adorable blush while she held Tsukune's hand.
"Uh, yeah, Thanks" Tsukune replied likewise.
…..
"You two have fun and we'll see you whenever you come home" Koji said to the couple who walked towards the front entrance-way to fetch their winter coats from the closet.
Moka's winter wardrobe was a full-length, dark pink, leather coat with matching wool gloves. Tsukune's was a black leather 'bomber' military-type jacket and color-coordinated gloves. After slipping his black, dress oxfords on, he opened the front door for Moka, who exited first.
"Thanks dad. We'll see you then" he replied as he stepped out after his wife. His folks waved farewell to the happy pair then closed and locked the door for the remainder of the night.
Tsukune firmly held Moka's hand as they walked down the partially, snow-covered walkway to the side of the road. It was a chilly, winter night and thankfully the snow had stopped falling a few hours ago. Hundreds of stars twinkled brightly in the inky, ebony, cloudless sky above.
A long, black limousine was waiting for the vampire pair by the side of the street. Moka had called her Father, Lord Shuzen, asking for a favor and had had him send the car to drive them to and from Club Gotham; the very same all-ages nightclub Tsukune had brought her to for her 19th birthday this past May,
When Moka and Tsukune made themselves comfortable in the back seat of the limo, Moka scooted close to her mate, leaned her head on his left shoulder and then sighed happily.
"Tsukune thanks again."
"Oh, don't worry about it Moka. I'm just glad you're doing better."
"Well, I have gained a little weight and now have a small baby bump" she said with a small smile.
"True, but it's barely noticeable, Moka" Tsukune replied as he wrapped his left arm around her shoulder in a gentle hug.
"Really?" she asked.
"Well, yeah. Even if you gain some more weight, you'll still be the most beautiful woman in the world to me."
"Awww...thank you Tsukune" she gleefully answered as she leaned even closer to her one-and-only and lightly pressed her magnificent bosom against the side of his chest.
"A-anytime, Moka" he replied with a slight blush. He was still getting used to the fact that the real Moka was back in his life and he still felt somewhat nervous around the silver-mained vampire princess. "Well, Moka is still Moka", he reminded himself day-in and day-out since her abrupt, inverse metamorphosis.
….
Approximately ten minutes later, the long, jet black, limousine entered the downtown business district. Every building was brightly decorated for Christmas, which was only a few days away. Upon arrival at the club the limo stopped to drop them off. Tsukune opened his door, closed it behind himself, and then walked behind the car to open Moka's door, which was adjacent to the sidewalk. He held her right hand, which she happily accepted.
"Why thank you, Tsukune," she said, as she smiled happily at his chivalrous gesture.
"You're very welcome, my princess," he simply replied, as he then closed her door behind her.
The limousine driver left the duo and would return to bring them back home whenever they were ready to call it a night. They walked up to the two-story brick and mortar building, and discovered that the line wasn't very long this time, as it was moving along rather speedily.
By the time they arrived at the actual entrance a few minutes later, the doorman asked for their names which were printed out on a list held in place on a clipboard that the larger man held in his hand.
"Tsukune and Moka Aono" Tsukune told him. The tall, bald man nodded in acknowledgment after checking their names off from the list and stamped both of their right hands with a red "G" once they removed their gloves and stuffed them into their coat pockets.
Walking through the front door, they passed by a temporary coat-check area. The hostess handed them a ticket in exchange for their jackets that would be neatly hung up for the duration of their stay at the nightclub.
Moka noticed that the club was simply decorated with strings of red LED lights dangling down vertically from the ceiling, ten meters above the floor. Strands of silver garland were wrapped around the perimeter of each table as well as the Bar that ran along the majority of the back wall. The long buffet table was set up next to the Bar, perpendicular against the right-hand wall.
The upstairs mezzanine that encompassed the entire perimeter of the venue had strings of mini, amber LED lights, and gold garland wrapped around the railing to present a warm, welcoming glow.
Tsukune led Moka to the same booth they sat at for her birthday located towards the far, left corner. Once they were settled comfortably on the red, leather seat, Ruby quickly approached their table when she spotted them and was smiling happily.
The elder Witch was dressed in a deep, violet bodice with black trim and a long, black velvet skirt. Her hair was tied back in her classic twin-tails held in place with matching ribbons.
"Tsukune! Moka!" Ruby yelled as she quickly sat down next to Moka on her right, and gave her a warm, friendly, hug. Moka returned her friend's unexpected embrace with just as much enthusiasm.
"Hi there Ruby!" Moka said once the two young women finished their reunion.
"Hey guys, I'm so glad you could make it. And I heard about your current 'self' from Kokoa" Ruby said as she excused herself and stood on the side of their booth, her round serving tray held behind her back.
Moka winced upon hearing her pest of a younger sister's name mentioned.
…..
"Thanks for inviting us, Ruby. Uh, yeah. We still don't understand how it happened, but it doesn't matter to me. Moka is always Moka" Tsukune replied. Moka then reached over and gave his right hand a gentle squeeze.
"Anytime you guys. Can I get you the usual? All the drinks are on the house for tonight's party," Ruby explained with a smile.
"Thanks again, Ruby. Yes, two glasses of chilled tomato juice sound great" Moka replied smiling as well.
"You got it Moka, coming right up" Ruby said as she made her way to the Bar.
"Hey Moka, I'm sure Ruby didn't know. Are you going to be okay?" Tsukune asked his beautiful wife who was clearly upset hearing that last part of information. He could detect it through their blood-bond.
"I'll be okay, love. But thank you for being concerned. I'm very sure Ruby didn't know either, otherwise she wouldn't have said anything. It seems to me like she keeps in contact with Kokoa. Maybe I can use that to my advantage," Moka said to her husband who didn't have the opportunity to reply, since Ruby was returning to their corner booth with their beverage order.
"Here you, go Moka, Tsukune. If you need anything at all, please feel free to let me know. The buffet is open so please help yourselves and I'll see you in a little while."
"Thanks, Ruby. We'll be sure to let you know if we do" Tsukune replied as the Witch / cocktail waitress excused herself and waved to the couple as she made her way to serve the other customers who had just arrived.
"I'd like to propose a toast. Here's to our first Christmas season together," Tsukune announced, as they both raised their drinks. "Kampai!" they both exclaimed, as they clinked their glasses together, each taking a sip of their refreshing beverage.
Moka was rather excited to spend her first-ever Christmas with her very best friend and now husband. She still couldn't get used the fact that she was Misses Moka Aono.
"Hey Moka, would you like to see what kind of food the buffet has?" Tsukune asked as he set his now half-full drink on the dark, wooden table. Moka repeated the action a few seconds after.
Tsukune then sat up and walked to her side of the booth, his right hand stretched out.
"Sure Tsukune, that sounds like a wonderful idea" she cheerfully answered as she stood up and linked her arm with his as they walked over to the far side of the club towards the smorgasbord. Several other patrons were neatly lined up, each waiting their turn to grab a plate of food.
Moka's sharp eyes caught sight of several types of sweet deserts which caused her cravings to kick into overdrive. Her stomach rumbled energetically with approval, which resulted in her to become somewhat embarrassed. She hastily buried her red face on her husband's shoulder.
He then draped his right arm around her in a comforting gesture, silently communicating to her that it was all right.
…..
"Sorry Tsukune. But those desserts look so yummy" she murmured, her face still colored pink.
"It's okay Moka. I know. They do look really good," he agreed once she unraveled herself from her mate's embrace and stood back in line. They each grabbed a red, plastic plate and fork then glanced at the food choices before them.
Baked chicken wings, red, white, and green pasta with sausage, macaroni pie, rice-stuffed cabbage smothered in marinara sauce, potato pancakes with pink applesauce, mini pork potpies, shrimp cocktail, and green-bean casserole with slivered almonds.
The dessert choices included strawberry cheesecake, 'snow ball' almond cookies, chocolate mint cake, raspberry tiramisu, red velvet brownies, banana pudding, sweet-potato pie and apple pie a la' mode.
Moka nearly salivated all over the floor, upon seeing so many types of food and desserts spread out on the five meter table. She picked out a small portion of all the dinner selections, which Tsukune found to be 'cute', seeing as she had quite a difficult decision in choosing something to her liking.
It was the same way for the desserts; her mate just wondered to himself if she could actually devour everything on both her plates.
Tsukune chose the chicken wings, potato pancakes and shrimp cocktail, as well as a few 'snow ball' cookies and chocolate mint cake. Once they returned to their table Moka dug into her food like a ravenous beast. Her husband was rather astonished at her sudden appetite.
"M-mm, this is really good" she said in-between mouthfuls.
"Uh yeah, it is" Tsukune replied as he ate his food at a slow, steady, rate.
"Oh sorry Tsukune. I guess I was a lot hungrier than I thought I was" Moka sheepishly replied.
"It's alright Moka. I understand, so don't worry about it so much. I'm pretty sure the baby is enjoying it, too" he told her, as he reached over and held her left hand.
"Aww that's so sweet. Thank you Tsukune" she said as she slowed her pace, savoring the early holiday meal.
...
"Hey guys" a monotone, female voice announced, breaking the duo away from their dinner.
They both looked in the direction of said voice and were surprised to see Mizore. The Snow Faerie was wearing a powder-blue blouse and matching skirt along with white stockings, a cerulean blue snowflake pattern printed on her cottony leggings.
In her mouth, she held an ever-present lollipop that kept her body at a comfortable, cool temperature. She quickly noticed that Moka looked like her original 'inner' self, minus the red eyes.
"Hey Mizore" Moka said when she saw her friend, who was smiling happily.
"I just saw Ruby and she told me you were here. So Moka, how are you doing?"
"I'm doing great actually. Thanks for asking Mizore."
"That's good to hear Moka. I'm really happy to hear that." the snow maiden answered with a smile.
"Hey Mizore, have you seen Kurumu? You two looked really close at our wedding reception" Moka asked her with a stern tone. Tsukune decided to stay silent, knowing very well where this conversation was heading and didn't want to say or do anything idiotic.
Mizore literally froze in place when she felt her vampire friend's yokai fluctuate, which caused her to wince at the compelling sensation and knees to wobble.
"Uh, why do you ask Moka?" the lavender-haired yukki-onna nervously replied.
"I was just wondering that's all. Besides, I can smell her scent. You're covered in it," Moka told her as she narrowed her eyes and glared at Mizore, who suddenly backed up a few steps.
Moka got up from their booth and stood behind Mizore in a microsecond.
'Damn it!' Tsukune mentally cursed.
He pinched his eyes shut in frustration and was hoping to have a relaxing evening out with Moka and now this was happening. It was like they were in high school all over again.
The constant bickering and fighting nearly drove him to the brink of madness for three years.
Why couldn't the happy couple live a normal, peaceful life?
...
"Um, no. I haven't...seen her all day" Mizore muttered as she tried to get away from the enraged vampiress, as her legs suddenly felt like jello and was finding it rather difficult to move.
"Listen Mizore. I know that you and Kurumu have gotten...close lately. I don't care about that. I just want to know if she has seen or spoken to you recently, that's all. I thought you were my friend, Mizore?" Moka said as a solitary tear ran down her face.
Now Mizore felt like she had hurt her friend Moka and didn't want to deceive her. She really wanted to stay friends with both her and Tsukune even if it meant betraying Kurumu. Mizore was privy to what the succubus had did to Moka and Tsukune; she realized it wasn't right and they frankly didn't deserve it.
"Sorry Moka. She's...in the restroom" Mizore hesitantly answered.
Moka was gone in a flash. Tsukune stood up from his seat and walked over to Mizore since he heard the entire, uncomfortable conversation.
"Tsukune! I'm sorry. I couldn't lie to Moka. You gotta stop her before she kills Kurumu," she cried out, as she started to sob. She just betrayed her closest friend and didn't want to see her injured, or worse. Tsukune then gave her a quick hug.
"Let's go Mizore. You're going to have to go in there and talk to Moka, since she went inside the ladies' room" he told her once the ended their brief embrace.
The two yokai ran off in the direction of the restrooms, which were in the back of the building at the end of a long hallway, located near the bar.
…..
Moka entered the restroom and saw Kurumu standing in front of the large wall-mounted mirror, above a row of sinks, and checking her makeup. The unsealed vampiress locked the door behind herself.
The petite blue-haired Succubus was wearing a mint-green mini dress that was cut in front, revealing her abundant cleavage. She didn't even detect Moka's abrupt arrival until she was directly behind her.
"Hello Kurumu" Moka whispered into her ear.
"Oh shit! Moka! W-what are you d-doing here?" the enchantress anxiously asked.
"Oh, I think you know why I'm here. I mean you tried to kill me by charming my own sister, into doing your dirty work. Something that you couldn't even do yourself" Moka said as deep growl bubbled up in the back of her throat.
"W-what do you mean, Moka?" Kurumu inquired as a nervous sweat overcame her.
"Don't play stupid with me, Kurumu. Kokoa told me everything!" Moka spat out, just centimeters from her.
Kurumu remained quiet for a few awkward seconds, unsure of what to say without digging her own grave. Moka knew! And that damn runt Kokoa had spilled the beans!
…..
"It's locked, Tsukune!" Mizore told him once they reached the woman's restroom.
"Maybe I can break it down" he replied, weighing his options.
"Um, Tsukune, look...security cameras" she softly replied as she noticed the closed-circuit cameras bolted to the wall near the ceiling. If he did break the door down he would be seen using his powers, as would Mizore if she tried to cover the cameras with frost, ice or snow.
"Now what do we do?" he wondered.
Mizore was now banging loudly on the door, trying to get Moka's attention.
"It's no good. She's ignoring us" she said.
"Moka! Moka!" Tsukune shouted.
"Kurumu! Kurumu!" the snow maiden hollered likewise.
…..
"Fine Moka. You want the truth. Yes, I charmed your bratty, little sister to do my dirty work. I wanted you gone, for good. You stole my Destined One away from me and I won't ever forgive you" Kurumu bit out with tears in her eyes.
"But why Kurumu? Why? Tsukune never loved you and you know it. You just can't take what you want. You tried to have me killed and turned my own sister against me! Tsukune got hurt and could have nearly died in my place. Half the skin on his face was nearly peeled off from the Holy Water! I told this to you at our wedding reception and you acted like nothing happened! Tsukune is MY husband and I'm having HIS baby! You need to know your place!" Moka shouted out in anguish as she digested what the succubus just admitted to her.
Not only did Kurumu confess to attempted murder, but had also used Moka's younger sister Kokoa and basically brainwashed her, just like Tsukune had predicted.
"Is that a threat, Moka? If it is, then bring it on. I'm not afraid of you anymore!" Kurumu taunted as she took a fighting stance and brought out her foot-long claws, ready for whatever Moka had planned for her.
…..
"Mizore, please find Ruby. Maybe she has a key. I'll stay here and try to reach out to Moka. Her yokai's going crazy and I'm afraid she might do something stupid," Tsukune surmised.
"Alright Tsukune, but please try. I don't want anyone to get hurt, especially Kurumu," Mizore said as she sprinted off down the hallway in the opposite direction, searching the vast nightclub for Ruby.
'Moka...Moka. Please. Calm down' he reached out to his mate, subconsciously through their blood-bond.
'Damn it Tsukune. Not now! Get out of my head' Moka replied in the same fashion.
...
Before Kurumu could react, Moka raced forward, grabbed the tiny yokai woman by her throat, and smashed her into the tile wall behind her, shattering it to smithereens.
"KNOW YOUR PLACE!" the enraged vampiress bellowed.
Kurumu staggered around for a moment as she attempted to remain standing: the severe impact leaving her partly stunned and disorientated. Destroyed ceramic tiling and drywall was scattered all over the restroom's once, clean floor.
"You...damn blood...sucker...that's just...dirty...," she slurred out, as she collapsed to the floor face-first in a heap.
Moka approached the flattened succubus and pulled her up to her feet. Her violet eyes were closed and her claws receded to their natural state. Moka lightly slapped her cheeks, attempting to wake her up.
"Hey Kurumu. I'm not done with you yet" Moka said with anger dripping in her voice.
…..
Mizore returned to where she left Tsukune just a few moments ago, worry evident on her brow.
"I can't find Ruby anywhere and the club is packed," she said.
Tsukune was now leaning against the still-locked restroom door.
"I'm sorry, Mizore. I couldn't reach out to Moka in time."
"Why? What happened?" Mizore cried out as she dropped to her knees.
"Moka showed Kurumu her place," he told his friend, upset over what just transpired and couldn't stop it, despite his best efforts.
"What? Oh Kami! I know I shouldn't have left her alone" Mizore replied, as she broke down and started to cry heavily again, fearful that she had lost Kurumu for good this time.
…..
"Kurumu, if you ever try anything like that again, I will personally see to it that you won't make it to your next birthday. Stay away from MY family. And that is NOT a threat, it's a promise" Moka told the half-awake succubus as she dropped her to the floor. Moka stood up and left her there, hoping her words would reach the selfish yokai.
As Moka unlocked the door, Tsukune tumbled backwards with an "oof" into the ladies room and saw his wife standing over him.
"What?" she asked as she glanced down to her mate who was sprawled out on the tiled floor below her.
He quickly sat partly up, realizing he was in a compromising position and was looking up her dress. Moka walked around him and then grabbed his hand, pulling him to his feet.
"I'm sorry Mizore. She had it coming to her," Moka told her friend who ran into the restroom, bent down, took Kurumu into her arms and hugged her closely.
"Please, Tsukune. Don't give me that look. I didn't kill her if that's what you're wondering. I just told her what she did was wrong. But if she tried it again, I promised her that I wouldn't hold myself back" Moka informed him as they walked down the corridor and headed back to their still vacant table.
Tsukune was rather relieved to hear that Moka left her alive. He was honestly scared, unsure of what she would do whenever she found Kurumu. Once they sat down again, Moka finished the remainder of her food and gulped down her now warm tomato juice.
A few minutes later, Ruby approached their table, clearly upset over what had happened a few minutes ago. She saw Mizore drag Kurumu out of the ladies room and left the club without even saying anything to her.
"Moka? What the hell happened in the ladies room?" the elder Witch asked as she plopped herself down and sat next to her vampire friend.
"I just showed Kurumu her place. She not only used my sister but tried to kill me back in September," Moka told her in the simplest of terms. Ruby's moth dropped open in utter shock and disbelief.
"Oh my god! So she's the one that planned that?" Ruby inquired.
"Yes Ruby. She turned my sister against me and betrayed our friendship and trust. I was a fool to think that she and I could be friends again. I'm very sorry about the restroom wall. I take full responsibility and will pay for the damages," Moka said as she turned away in a shameful manner. She had lost control again and just destroyed private property.
At least she had admitted to what she had done and even promised to make amends.
…..
"Oh it's okay Moka. Actually, I have an idea. We'll forget about the entire ordeal if you do me a small favor. Oh, don't worry. It won't be anything embarrassing. Gin told me about your stint as an up-and-coming Idol," Ruby said with a sly smirk.
"Oh, okay. Thank you. Once again, I'm really sorry about the wall, Ruby. Um, what did you have in mind, exactly" Moka asked the Witch turned cocktail server, who now stood up alongside their table. Tsukune was curious about this so-called 'favor' as well.
"Oh that's easy Moka. You can sing a Christmas song in front of the entire club," Ruby answered with a knowing wink.
"What? Um, I don't know any Christmas songs, Ruby" Moka interjected by frantically waving her hands in front of her.
"Don't worry about that, Moka. It's an easy song and I'll get the lyrics for you. Oh this is gonna be so much fun" Ruby squealed with delight. Tsukune laid his head on the table and groaned in frustration, knowing very well that Ruby was up to something.
Ruby left the vampire couple alone for now, as she had to prepare for Moka's nightclub debut. She had to talk to her boss and tell him that she had found a singer that she personally knows to perform tonight, and for no charge.
"Moka? Are you sure about this? Maybe you should just pay for the damaged restroom wall and call it even."
"Aw, come on Tsukune. You know that I love to sing. Besides it might be fun."
"Really Moka? In front of all these people?" he asked as he pointed to the crowded nightclub. Moka then gulped hard. It was a lot more packed than she had anticipated before agreeing to Ruby's favor.
"Oh. I see. Um..." Moka softly replied, as she quickly developed a case of stage fright.
Tsukune sat next to Moka and gave her a deep, passionate kiss, catching her entirely off guard. Moka leaned into his kiss and began to loudly moan in his mouth, furthering his building arousal. They then realized they were in public and swiftly ended their kiss before they started to do much, much more.
"Feeling better, Moka?"
"Oh, yes. Thank you love. I can do it. I mean, it has been a while since I sang in front of an audience" Moka replied with a contented smile.
...
"Ladies and Gentleman, Club Gotham is pleased to announce a very special guest, my very good friend, Moka Aono. She will be performing a special holiday song for us tonight," Ruby announced as she stood next to the DJ booth with a wireless microphone. She then walked over to Moka and Tsukune's table, where a spotlight had focused on the silver-haired beauty.
"I know you can do it Moka. I have complete faith in you" Tsukune said as Moka stood up as Ruby handed her the lyrics and wireless microphone.
"Thank you Tsukune" his wife replied with a smile.
"Moka, this is a very popular Christmas song, I was told" Ruby said.
Moka took the sheet of paper from Ruby as well as the microphone. Studying the lyrics for a moment, Moka thanked her friend and took a deep breath. Moka nodded to the Disc Jockey, giving him a silent cue. The holiday tune then started playing throughout the nightclub from the large speakers that were suspended from the ceiling.
"Have Yourself A Merry Little Christmas"
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Let your heart be light...
From now on, our troubles will be out of sight..
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Make the Yuletide gay...
From now on, our troubles will be miles away
Here we are as in olden days
Happy golden days of yore...
Faithful friends who are dear to us...
Gather near to us once more...
Through the years we all will be together
If the fates allow...
So hang a shining star upon the highest bough
And have yourself...a merry little Christmas...now
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Let your heart be light...
From now on, our troubles will be out of sight
Have yourself a merry little Christmas
Make the Yuletide gay...
From now on, our troubles will be miles away
Here we are as in olden days
Happy golden days of yore...
Faithful friends...who are dear to us
Gather near to us once more...
Through the years we all will be together
If the fates allow...
So hang a shining star upon the highest bough
And have yourself a merry little Christmas..now...
As the song ended, the night club crowd broke out in a hearty applause. Tsukune stood up and clapped with even more enthusiasm. Moka politely bowed in appreciation, her cheeks now bright crimson.
Ruby ran over to the table and was in tears. She was completely stunned at Moka's impressive singing voice. The Witch then glomped her vampire friend in a warm embrace.
"Moka, that was...amazing! Wow, I had no idea you could sing like a professional" Ruby spouted out once the two young women ended their hug. Tsukune was moved again by his lovely wife's awe-inspiring singing voice. Moka blushed hard from her friend's heartfelt compliment. She then returned the lyric sheet and microphone to Ruby.
…..
"Oh, thank you Ruby. Like I told Tsukune, I took singing lessons when I was younger. I just do it mostly as a hobby," Moka explained, her features still tinted pink.
"Moka, you should think about singing for...oh sorry. Gin told me what they tried to do to have you sign a contract. Sorry Moka…I just…forgot" Ruby said once Moka and her husband Tsukune returned to their seats.
"It's fine Ruby. I know...you meant well. I enjoyed singing the song, but it's only a hobby. Besides, I have a family to take care of" Moka replied with a hint of sadness.
Tsukune placed his arms around her, embraced her firmly, less she break down, and start crying again. The painful memory in the back of her mind of what the music producer tried to force her into doing, just to sign a five-year contract: leave her mate.
"Sorry Moka. Please don't cry. Oh, me and my big mouth!" Ruby lamented knowing she had unintentionally brought up a painful memory from this past summer. Gin told her the story of what one of his supervisors from the Avex Music Group tried to do to Moka, just to sign a record deal, and Ruby just simply forgot about it.
…..
"Ruby, it's okay. Really. I'm totally fine. Now, um, could we have another drink, please? I'm thirsty now from singing," Moka asked as she tried to get her friend brought back to reality.
"Oh yes, sure thing, Moka. I'll be back in a jiffy" Ruby said as she sprinted towards the bar, which was surrounded with thirsty patrons.
"Moka are you going to be okay? Ruby just forgot. I'm sure she didn't do it on purpose."
"Oh yes, love. Thank you. I'm completely fine" she replied as she reached over and held his hands in her own.
"Moka if you're not, just tell me okay? You know that you can tell me anything."
"Thank you Tsukune. I really don't know what I'd do without you" she replied as she stared into his warm, chocolate-brown eyes.
"Moka..."
"Tsukune..."
"Oh Moka..."
"Oh Tsukune..."
"My Moka..."
"My Tsukune..."
Ruby watched the scene play out before her in fascination as if they were still in high school.
'Moka, you sure lucked out. Tsukune really is such a great guy,' the elder Witch though to herself.
"Um, hello? Moka? Tsukune? Hello?" Ruby announced as she attempted to gain her friend's attention.
"Ah! Sorry Ruby. We didn't hear you" Tsukune replied as he was clearly flustered.
"Oh it's okay, you guys look so cute together," Ruby teased as she sat their drinks on the table in front of them.
"Um, thanks Ruby" Moka said, her face red as an overly-ripened tomato.
'How embarrassing!' the vampiress thought in mortification.
"No problem. I'll see you two in a while. I have to get back to work. Have fun!" Ruby told the pair as she waved goodbye for now and headed back to her part-time job.
...
Tsukune gulped down his second glass of tomato juice and glanced over to Moka who seemed deep in thought. He then heavily sighed unsure of how to get his wife's spirit lifted. The DJ then started to play a slow love song. Looks like Tsukune's silent wish was answered.
"Hey Moka?"
"Yes Tsukune?"
"Um, would you like to dance?"
"Oh yes. I was wondering when you'd ask me, silly" Moka brightly replied. Tsukune then stood up and walked to her side of the booth and offered his wife his outstretched hand which she happily took with a warm smile.
He led Moka to the center of the dance floor and wrapped his left arm around her waist and held her right hand in his own.
She repeated his movements, leaned her head on his left shoulder and began slowly swaying her hips to the music.
…..
"Um, Tsukune?" she asked, her head still leaning against his shoulder.
"Yes Moka?"
"I'm sorry if I worried you earlier. I didn't want to do what I did to Kurumu. But she got me so upset, playing it off as if she did nothing wrong." she said with a sniffle. He embraced her more firmly, attempting to prevent her from crying again.
"I understand Moka. It's true that I was very concerned about you and the baby. Just promise me that you'll be more careful in the future. I really don't know what I'd do if I lost you again." he said as he pulled her closer to himself.
Moka knew exactly what he was saying. Her Outer self died last year when her Rosary was destroyed by Alucard. Thankfully his mentor Touhou Fuhai was able to repair it and her sister Akua had helped to revive her. He had honestly never been so scared in his entire existence. Tsukune just wanted to have a quiet, peaceful life with his wife Moka and leave all that behind him.
"Oh Tsukune. I'm sorry. So very sorry" Moka said as she held her husband next to her.
The silver-haired vampiress herself was terrified as well. The somber memories she so desperately wanted to leave in the past was something she never wanted to relive ever again for as long as she lived with her mate.
Moka had their child growing inside of herself and she was the happiest she had ever been since she had found her one, true love. Her very best friend who had accepted and loved all of her for who she was.
"It's okay Moka. I'm always going to be love and be here for you. Forever."
As the vampire couple continued dancing close to each other, they both silently desired that private their lives would not have anymore unwarranted disruptions for as long as they had each other. It hadn't been easy, but they would make sure to always support each other emotionally and do their best to prevent any event similar to that happen ever again.
…...
A/N: I worked on this chapter for over 2 days! I had this entire chapter planned out for quite some time, but had a difficult time wrapping it up.
I apologize to any Kurumu fans out there. She got what she had coming to her. At least Moka held herself back somewhat and simply knocked her out cold. I know it's kind of harsh, but like I stated time and time again, I never really liked her. Sorry!
Next chapter will be out in about a week or so.
Any and all positive reviews are welcome as long as they stay on topic and remain spoiler-free. If you have any questions, please feel free to drop me a PM and I will do my best to answer your question(s) any way I can ^_^